UBRARY ymVEISITY OF CALIFORNIA lUVERSiDE r / to-tx^' c^ /-t^^ NAPOLEON THE FIRST A BIOGRAPHY AUGUST FOURNIER TRANSLATED BY MARGARET BACON CORWIN AND ARTHUR DART BISSELL EDITED BY EDWARD GAYLORD BOURNE Professor of History in Yale University NFAV YORK HENRY HOLT AND COAnWNY 1903 Copyright, 1903, HENRY HOLT AND COMPANY. ROBERT PRUMMCND, PRINTER, NEW YORK. EDITOR^S PREFACE Before the appearance of the recent Lives of Napoleon by Professor Sloane and Mr. J. H. Rose, the work here presented in English was generally recognized by competent judges to be the best brief history' of Napoleon that had been written. Whatever relative position would be accorded to it to-day, com- pared with these biographies, it may be affirmed confidently and without invidiousness that its positive merits are vj less great than formerly and that it has the relative advantage in this edition of being comprised in one volume and of being accompanied by a classified bibliography equally well adapted, within its limits, to serve as a guide to the student of Napo- leonic history and as a manual for the librarian. Among the positive merits of Fournier's Napoleon I. should be mentioned the thorough research upon which the narrative is based, the interesting, vivid, and at times dramatic style in which it is written, its broad historical spirit and impartiality of judgment, its excellent proportions, not allotting undue space to certain phases nor neglecting the civil side of Napoleon's career, and, finally, its lucid exposition of the general historical situation and of the various contending factors. These merits so strongly impressed me at the time of its original publication that I felt that a good translation would be a distinct and valuable addition to the large mass of Napo- leonic literature already accessible to the English reader. Some years later I secured the author's sanction for such an under- taking and entrusted the work of translation to my friend and former pupil Mr. F. H. Schwan of Cleveland. Mr. Schwan executed the task with scholarly fidelity. As I was not able, however, at the time arrangements were made for publication to iv Editor's Preface give the manuscript the Hterary revision which seemed desirable to the publishers and to myself, I enlisted the services of Mrs. Corwin for the work. After revising the first chapters Mrs. Corwin became convinced that she could accomplish better results if she could labour with a freer hand, and she therefore proceeded to make a new translation. Mr. Bissell's experience was similar with his part of the work, which is to an equal degree an independent version, although its preparation was facilitated by consulting Mr. Schwan's manuscript. Mr, Schwan's contribution to the production of the book, there- fore, although not exactly measurable, deserves appreciative recognition. For Mrs. Corwin's part of the volume, the first fifteen chapters, the French translation of the first two volumes of the original by E. Jaegle proved of consid- erable assistance, and, in most cases where the French text differed from the German, it was followed as representing a revised edition. Mr. Bissell translated the third volume of the German, i.e., the last six chapters in this edition and the bibli- ograpMes accompanying them. The index, in the main, is the work of the translators. As editor, I have gone carefully over the entire work in manu- script and in proof, making such changes as seemed desirable, translated the Table of Contents and the bibliographies for Chapters I-XV, and supplied the material supplementary to the bibliographies as contained in the original. I have refrained almost entirely from editorial comment, and beyond adopting the readings of the French version in most cases of variation, I have made no changes in Fournier's text except a very few of minor character, such, for the most part, as the correction of obvious errors in dates or numbers. I cannot flatter myself that no mistakes have escaped my eye or that I have made none of my own, but I hope that few serious errors will be found. I shall be glad to have my attention called to any that may be discovered. E. G. B. New Haven, August, 1903. AUTHOR'S PREFACE* The purpose of the following pages is to recount briefly and simply for the benefit of the wide circle of cultivated readers the rise, the ventures, and the achievements of a man of incom- parable historical importance. I am well aware that persons competent to judge have recently and repeatedly stated that the time has not yet come for the history of Napoleon I. to be written. If I undertake the task in spite of this warning, it is due to the conviction that the historian, even if unable to pre- sent definite and final results, is nevertheless under obligation to supply those far from the laboratories of science with infor- mation in regard to the existing state of knowledge, just as it is their right to demand of him such information. To delve for ore and never do anything but delve for ore cannot be the chief aim of his life's work; the world demands ornaments and arms, and their makers may not be idle. To the historian of Napoleon I. the task is moreover not such an easy one as would be involved in simply clothing in appropriate w'ords a record of present results in historical re- search. For these results are frequently contradictory to one another and again often not sufficiently substantiated to allow of their being at once accepted as settled. Consider the changes that have come over the memory of the mighty Corsican even in France, from the hymns of Beranger to the satires of Barbier, from the glorifying narrative of Thiers to the anni- hilating criticism of Lanfrey. The latter work, which was published between 1S67 and 1S75. overthrew forever the legend of the immaculate glory of Napoleon I., and since that time the * To the first volume of the German edition. vi Author's Preface general judgment in regard to the first Emperor of the French has but increased in severity. Two causes have been espe- cially prominent in bringing about this result. In the first place authentic memoranda made in the days of Napoleon and published since Lanfrey's work — such, for instance, as the memoirs of Madame de Remusat — have kept disclosing new faults and weaknesses in this the most celebrated seK-made man of all ages, and have so influenced and affected the esti- mate of history in respect to him that at the present time the inclination is but too marked to overlook his greatness in dwelling upon what is petty. In the second place the imperial reign of his nephew, Napoleon III., which had been founded upon the basis of the as yet unshaken Bonapartist tradition, was in 1870 compelled to give place to the Republic, that is to say, to that form of government which Napoleon I. earlier violently and arbitrarily destroyed. France having again decided in favour of a republic, the historians who had been its opponents were thrown as it were for reasons of state into dis- credit, while the acts and achievements of the great Revolution were brought forward into undeservedly favourable light. Not until quite recently has it been recognized among earnest French scholars, detached from party strife, — having perhaps been incited thereto by the investigations of the Germans, — that there is not only a Napoleonic but also a Revolutionary legend which must needs be rejected as the other has been, and be replaced by the truth without reserve. The efforts made in this direction have not as yet produced incontestable results, nor has the light yet been turned upon all the questions involved in the history of the last hundred years in France. But already it may be seen that with a more correct estimate of the first Republic, 1792-1799, a more accurate appreciation is at the same time to be gained of the historical importance of Napo- leon I. The fact must be borne in mind that he was at the same time the product and the consummation of the Revo- lution, and that he still continued to tread the path which it had marked oiit even while his hand was boldly preparing to grasp the diadem of France. Author's Preface vii It is from tliis point of view that Napoleon's biographer of to-day must approach his problem, and it is from such a stand- point that I have attempted in a most modest way to make my contribution to its solution in so far as permitted by the nar- row limits imposed by circumstances upon this work. It makes no pretence to being anything further than a simple outline. To what extent I am indebted to earlier works it is impossible to acknowledge in detail ; it will be obvious at once to specialists. At times I have, however, preferred to follow my own course, which I hope has led me, avoiding political bias on the one hand and the mere cavilling of a moralizer on the other, to a portrait which, though imperfect and indefinite in its lines, is perhaps a faithful picture of the character and work of this man who more than any one before him has influenced the destinies of the world. Bibliographical notes are appended, but they are of course far from complete even in regard to the most essential points. Neither they nor the notes at the bottom of the pages are in the least intended to corroborate statements in the text, but arc offered rather as guidance in finding the works which may best be relied upon to serve such readers as maj' be stimulated through this book to wider reading and deeper research into the subject. Only by stimulating such a desire will this work accomplish the result which is desired for it. The Author. Vienna, December, 1885. CONTENTS PAOB Editor's Preface iii Author's Preface v CHAPTER I The Bonapautes in Corsica. Napoleon's Birth and Early Training, 1769-1788 J. J. Rousseau on Corsica. P. Paoli and the French Occupa- tion. Carlo l^uonaparte and his Family. La^titia. Napo- leon's Birth and Childhood. Autun and Brienne. Character of the Boy. Studios and Day-dreams. Napoleon at the Ecole militaire. Appointment as Lieutenant of Artillerj-. Judg- ment of his Teachers. Officers of the Ancien Rt^'gime. Valence. Rousseau and Raynal. Literary Essays. Various Perplexities. Napoleon's Twofold Nature. His Patriotism as a Corsican. His Ambition and the Obstacles to it under the Prevailing Conditions. CHAPTER II The Revolutio.n. Napoleon's Corsican Adventures, 1789-1793 19 The Inevitable Decaj- of the Old R(?gime. The National As- sembly and its Laws Establisliing Equality. The Revolution in Paris and in the Provinces. Napoleon at .Auxonne. His Views in Regard to Corsica. Parties in Corsica. Napoleon at Ajaccio. He .\cts the Demagogue. First Lieutenant Bvionaparte. Love of Books and .Attempts at Authorship. The Constitution of 1791 and the Flight of Louis X^T. The Volunt<>ers of Ajaccio and their Commander The Easter Uprising of 1792. Napo- leon in Paris. The 10th of August. Captain Buonapart-e. New Ventures in Corsica. Critical Incidents. Without a Countrj'. Contents CHAPTER III AGE The Siege of Toulon, and the Defence of the Convention, 1793-1795 38 The Girondists and the Mountain. The System of the Terror^ The Opposition to it. Lyons, Marseilles, Toulon. Napoleon with the Army of the South. Before Avignon. "The Supper of Beaucaire." Important Acquaintances. Napoleon in Com- mand of a Battalion. His Part in the Siege of Toulon. Ap- pointed Brigadier-General of Artillery. Relations with Robes- pierre. Mission to Genoa. Recalled and Imprisoned. Sali- cetti. Restored to the Army. Expedition to Corsica. In Paris. Jacobin or Thermidorian. Napoleon's Plan of Campaign. Hopes and Disappointments. His Precarious Situation. The Con- sti<^.ution of the Year III (1795). The Opponents of the Con- vention. Barras. The 13th of Vend^miaire. Major-General Bonaparte. CHAPTER IV Jo.aRPHINE, 1796 CO Society under the Directory. Napoleon and the Women. Plans for Marriage. Desiree Clary. Madame de Permon. The Marchioness de Beauhamais. Descriptions of Contemporaries. Napoleon in Love with Josephine. Intervention of Barras. Pas- sion and Calculation. Wooing and Marriage. Command of the Italian Expedition. Josephine's Character. CHAPTER V T)«K Campaigns in Italy and the Peace of Campo Formio, 1796- 1797 72 Foreign Policy. The Revolutionary Sj'stem of Conquest. The Scene of War in Italy. Sch(5rer and Bonaparte. A Promise and its Fulfilment. Montenottc, Milesimo, Dego, Mondovi. Severing the Alliance between Austria and Sardinia. Lodi and Milan. The Directory and Napoleon's Victories. Borglvtto. The lilockade of Mantua. Spoils of War. Napoleon's Tactics. Struggle for Mantua. Lonato and Castiglione. The Battle of Bas.sano and its Importance. Verona and Arcole. Rivoli. Surrender of Mantua. The French Invade the Papal States. The Peace of Tolentino. Ambition on Historic Ground. The Campaign of 1797. The French in Styria. The Preliminaries of Leoben. Napoleon and the Republic of Venice. Criticism of Contents xi PAGE the Opposition in Paris. The Coup d'Etat of the 18tli of Frutti- dor. Napoleon's Independent Activity. The Negotiations of Passariano. The Peace of Campo Formio. CHAPTER VI Egypt, 179&-1799 Ill Oriental Plans. France and Egypt. Napoleon in Paris. His Attitude on the Eastern Question. Celebrations and Public Addresses. The Code Complet de Politique. Aiming at Supreme Power. Momentary Hopelessness of the Idea. Reasons. The Egyptian Expedition Resolved upon. Napoleon's Real In- tentions. Malta. Landing in Egypt. The Mamelukes. Dis- appointments and Difficulties. The Battle of the Pyramids. The Disaster at Aboukir. Its Con.sequences. Rising in Cairo. Fighting the Turks. Syrian Expedition. Actual and Alleged Plans. El Arish, Gaza, Jaffa. The Resistance of Acre. The Battle of Mt. Tabor. Enforced Retreat. Distresses. Victory of the .Irmy near Aboukir. Resolution to Return to France, This Resolution Examined. CHAPTER VII The Coup d'Etat and the Consulate, 1799 154 The Return. Landing at Frojus. Enthusiasm of the French. Causes of the Change in Public C^pinion. The Dictatorsliip of the Directorate. Renewal of the War on the Continent in 1799. Inadequate Preparation. Defeat Follows Defeat. Reaction on Internal Affairs. Opposition Gains at the Elections. The Parliamentary Coup d'Etat of the 30th of Prairial. SieySs Director. His Views. The Opposition of the Jacobins. New Defeats in Italy. Hopes Resting on Sieyes Shattered. Public Opinion Declares for Napoleon. His Conduct in Paris. The Plans of the Reformers and the Plot against the Constitution. The 18th and 19th of Brumaire. The Resolution of the "Rump Pariiament." The Consuls and the Constitutional Commissions. Sieyes' Outline of the Constitution. Napoleon's Changes in it. He is Named First Consul and Head of the Executive. New Chambers. CHAPTER VIII War and Peace, 1800-1802 188 Napoleon and the Revolution. The Principle of Equality and the Spirit of Conquest. Love of Peace and Preparation for xii Contents PAGE War. Plan of Campaign for 1300. The Passage of the Great Saint Bernard. Milan. The Battle of Marengo. Armistice. The Mission of Saint-Julien. The Battle of Hohenlinden. The Peace of Lmieville. Napoleon and Paul I. The Limitation of the French Sphere of Influence. Understanding with Spain, \ Naples, and Rome. The Concorda^;^ T)eath of Paul I., and its Results. Negotiations with England. The Preliminaries of Oc- tober 1st, 1801. General Peace. The Programme of the French Hegemony. CHAPTER IX The New France and her Sovereign, 1802 221 Napoleon's Contribution to the Reorganization of France. The Council of State. The Ministries. The General "Directions." The Secretaryship of State. The Reorganization of the Admin- istration. Its Problems. Public Finances before the I8th of Brumaire. Financial Pteform. The Caisse d'Amortissement. The Bank of France. Judicial Reforms. The Code Napoleon. The Organization of Public Instruction. Scholars and the Legion of Honour. The Laws against the Emigres Repealed. The Op- position of the Liberals, of the Radicals, and of the Royalists. Conspiracies. Regulation of the Tribunate. Napoleon First Consul for Life. The Mistake of the French. CHAPTER X The Last Years of the Consulate. The Emperor, 1802-1804. 242 France after the Peace of Amiens. Political Reaction. The Court of the First Consulate. His Family. Warlike Projects. The Dependent States. The Constitutional Changes in Holland and in the Cis-Alpine Republic. Incorporation of Piedmont in France. Liguria, Lucca, Elba. Switzerland. The Seculariza- tions in Germany and the Isolation of Austria. LTnpopularity of the Peace in England. Rxvusons. Bonaparte's Colonial Policy. San Domingo and Louisiana. Malta. Otto's Instructions, The Demands of the British. The Outbreak of War. Hanover and Taranto. The Contributions of the Dependencies and the Army of Boulogne. The Plot against the First Consul. The Affair of the Due d'Engliicn. Its I''.ffects. Tlie People Demand that the Chief Magistracy be HcTcditary. The Proposition of Cur<''e. The Constitutif)ii of tlic Year XII (1804). Emperor Napoleon I. and his Court. Empire and State. Contents xiii CHAPTER XI p\(ii-: The \Yar of 1S05 283 The Emperor's Army. The Project of the Invasion of England. Discu.s.sion of it. Napoleon's Plan of a Continental War. Breach with Russia. The Intermediate Powers. Austria's Submissive Neutrality. Pius VII. in Paris. The Coronation. The Italian Question. Austria in the Camp of the Coalition. Demonstrations at Boulogne. The Beginning of the War on the Continent. Austria's Preparations and Plans. Mack on the Iller. Napo- leon's Manreuvre to Surround the Austrians. The Disaster at Ulm. Trafalgar. Napoleon's Advance on Vienna. Kutusoff. Murat and the Affair at HoUabrunn. Prussia's Approaches to the Coalition. Napoleon in Briinn. His Precarious Situation. Helped out by the Enemy. Austerlitz. The Russians Fall Back. Armistice with Austria. Haugwitz. Peace of Press- burg. National Patriotism and the Revolution on the Throne. CHAPTER XII N"aj»oleonic Creatioks. BiiEAcn WITH Prussia, 1806 325 The Effects of Recent Events on the French. Their Twofold Mistake. Naples. The Italian Titular Fiefs. Their Inter- national Character. Emperor and Pope. Extension of the Napoleonic System. The Kingdom of Holland. South German Princes are Made Sovereigns and Vassals of Napoleon. Family Alliances. Dalberg and the Founding of the Confederation of the Rhine. The Attitude of the Gennan Powers. Francis II. Re- signs the Imperial Crown and Dissolves the German Empire. Permanent Occupation of South German}' by the French. Its Meaning. The Treat}' between France and Prussia, February 13th, 1800. Negotiations with England and Russia. Their Failure. Prussia is Threatened by France. She Takes Arms. Napoleon's Plan. National I'prising in Germany. Pahn. Prussia Refuses to Disarm. "War again. CHAPTER XIII From Jena to Tilsit, 180G-1S0? 356 Napoleon's Prudent Plan of Campaign. Confusion in the Prus- sian Headquarters. The Advance of the French from lianibcrg to Thuringia. They Take the Enemy in the Rear. The Battles of Jena and Auerstadt. Dispersion of the Prussian Army. xiv Contents PAGE Napoleon in Berlin. He Refuses to Negotiate. Russia Inter- venes. Napoleon's Counter-measures. His Relations with Po- land and Turkey. The Berlin Decree against England. Advance toward the East. Pultusk. The Army in Cantonments in Po- land. Bennigsen's Offensive Movement toward the West. Napoleon's Counter-march to the North. The Battle of Eylau. The French on the Passarge. Napoleon at Osterode and Finken- stein. His Critical Situation, Negotiations with Prussia, Austria, and the Eastern Powers. Reinforcements. Resump- tion of Hostilities. Friedland. Napoleon and Alexander I. The Agreements at Tilsit. The Treaty of Peace and the Secret Alliance. Their Significance. CHAPTER XIV The Situation of Affairs in France. Bayonne and Erfurt, 180S 391 Napoleon and the French. Secret Opposition. Napoleon's Counter-measures. Averting Want and Promoting Prosperity. The Jewish Question. Financial Policy. Hereditary Official Nobility. The Army Denationalized. Restraints upon the Freedom of the Press. The Tribunate Abolished. The Judges. The Senators. Educating Imperialists. The University. Per- sonality of Napoleon. The Court at Fontainebleau. Steps Taken against Prussia. Napoleon's Intrigues. His Conduct toward Prussia and Austria. Tuscany Annexed to France. Action Taken in Regard to the States of the Church. Napoleon in Spain. His Designs. Portugal and the Treaty of Fontaine- bleau. Its Significance. Contentions at the Spanish Court. The French Occupation. The Intrigue at Bayonne. Napoleon's Mistake. The Uprising of the Spanish People. The Capitulations of Baylen and Cintra. Reaction upon Napoleon's Position in Europe. Hostile Disposition of Austria and Prussia. Ihider- standing between France and Russia. The Days at Erfurt. The New Treaty. Napoleon and the Great German Authors. CHAPTER XV / The Campaigns in Spain and Austria. Marie Louise, 180&-1810 445 The "Grand Army" directed toward Spain. Napoleon Fights for his Prestige. Weakness and Lack of Unity of the Spaniards. Espinosa and Tudcla. Napoleon in Madrid. Expedition of Sir John Moore. Napoleon Marches against Him. His Plan. The Contents xv PAGE Enemy Escapes. The Object in Spain only Half Attained. [ Return of the lOinpcror to Pari.s. The Causes, 'lalleyraud and Fouch(f>. Threatening Preparations of Austria. Her Unavail- ing EfTorts to Secure Help from Prus.sia and Russia. War Un- avoidable. Austrian Plan of Campaign. Their Loss of Time. 13erthier's Errors. Napoleon at Headquarters. His Successes at Abersberg, Landshut, Eggmiihl, and Ratisbon. Their Sig- nificance. Advance on Menna. The Battle of Aspem. The Political Situation Changes. Wagram. Armistice of Znaim. The Negotiations at Altenburg. The Peace of Schonbrunn. Dissatisfaction of the French. Their Desire for a Legitimate Heir to the Throne. Napoleon's Divorce from Jo.sephine. He Plaj's with Russia. Secret Negotiation for Marriage with Marie Louise. Its Reception in Vienna. The New Empress. Mo- tives of Napoleon. The King of Rome. CHAPTER XYI At the Zexith, 1810-1S12 [ .'. 493 The Resistance of the Nations. Pius VII. Excommimicates Napoleon. He is Taken to Savona. The Council of the Em- pire. Guerilla Warfare on the Spanish Peninsula. Incorpora- tion of Spain as far as the Ebro with Spain. Massena's Expedition to Portugal. ^Mi}' Napoleon did not Take the Command. The Continental Blockade as a Weapon of the Revolution. Napoleon and Neutral Commerce. The Edict of Trianon. Holland Becomes a French Province. The Incorporation of the German North Sea States and the Hanseatic Cities with the Empire. Relations with Denmark and Sweden. Designs on Sicily. Plan to Annihilate England. French Finances. Lordship of the World. Difficulties with Russia. Their Causes. Russia and the Neutrals. Preparations and Diplomatic Fencing. Internal Policy of Napoleon. The Confederation of the Rhine. Relations with Prussia. Franco-Prussian Alliance. Policy of Mqttemich, and the Austro-French Alliance. Failure of the Effort to Gain Turkej'^ and Sweden. Congress of Princes at Dresden. The Significance of Napoleon in Historj\ CHAPTER XVII Moscow, 1812 536 Warnings of the Generals. Napoleon's Reply. His Care of the -Army. The Strategy of the Advance. Attitude of the Russians. Their Mistake and its Effect upon the xvi Contents » PAGE Course of Events. To Vilna. Indifference of the Lithuanians. Its Causes. First Misfortunes. To Drissa. Sacrifices of the March. Napoleon's Personalit}^ Longing for a Battle. Vi- tebsk. The Fight for Smolensk. Dehberations. Patriotism of the Russians. The Battle of Borodino. To Moscow. Entering the City. The Fire. Great Plans. Napoleon's Hope of Peace Disappointed. Resoluteness of Alexander I. and its Causes, Necessity of Retreat. Reopening of Hostilities. Plans for the March. Retirement from Moscow. Affair at Malojaroslavetz. Deciding in Favour of the Old Fload. Fighting at Viasma. Cold ^^'eather. In Smolensk. Fighting at &issnoi. Pitiable Con- dition of the .\rmy. At the Beresina. The Battle of November 2Sth. The Disaster to the Rear. Break-up of the Army. Bulle- tin No. 29 and Napoleon's Journey to Paris. Its Dangers. CHAPTER XVIII Leipzig, 1813 580 Shattered Plans. The Beginnings of the European Coalition against Napoleon. New Levies. Uncertainty of the Allies of 1812. Yorck's Revolt. Its Effects. Napoleon's Arrangement with the Pope at Fontainebleau. Financial Measures. The Corps L(5gislatif and the Speech from the Throne February 14th, 1813. Foreign Policy. Fidelity of the Princes of the Confedera- tion of the Rhine. Hardenberg's Territorial Policy. Austria During tlie Last War. Mctternich's Peace Policy. Popular National Movement in Prussia. Russia Makes Use of it. The Treaty of ]5reslau. Saxony. Forming the Coalition. Reaction on lli(! Court of Vienna. Renewal of War. Napoleon's New Army. Battle of Lijtzen. The King of Saxony. Austria Draws off. Napoleon's Plan for a Separate Peace with Russia. Battle of Bautzen. Armistice. Motives Therefor. Armed Inter- vention Ijy Austria. Treaty of Reichenbach. Mettcrnich in Dresden. Extension of tiie Armistice. P^ffect of the English \'ictiiry at Vittoria. Austria Joins the Coalition. The Congress of Prague. Reinforcements of Napoleon and of the Allies. Plans of W'lir on Both Sides. Napoleon against Bliicher. The liat 1 le of I )resden. Why Napoleon did not Follow up His Victory. Kulni. His Designs on Berlin. Their Failure. Distress of the Army, iiiiieher's Withdrawal to the Right and its Consequences. Napoleon Lejives Dresden. At Diiben. To Leipzig. The Bat- tl<' of Wa<'liau and tiie Fighting at Mockcrn. Napoleon's Delay. 'I'lie Hut tie of Leipzig. The Disaster of October 19th. Retreat to the Khiac. The Victory ut Ilanau. Napoleon in Mainz. Contents xvii CHAPTER XIX PAOB Elba, 1814 643 Nations and Princes. Dissolution of the Empure. Negotia- tions with Ferdinand oT^Spain and Pius VII. St. Aignan's Mission. Manifesto of the Allies. Its Effects. The Closing of the Corps L^gislatif. Napoleon as the General of France. The Allies Press Forward. The Plan of Operations. The Fighting at Brienne. The Resolutions at Langres. The Battle of La Rothiere. Napoleon and the Boundaries of 1792. His Victory over Bliicher. He Faces Schwarzenberg. Bliicher Decides it. Fighting at Craonne. Battle at Laon. The Treaty of Chaumont. The Feeling in Paris. The Battle of Arcis sur Aube. Napoleon's Plan to Transfer the Campaign to the East Ignored by the Allies, The Manifesto from Vitry. Napoleon's Desperate Condition. He Hastens Back to Paris. Entry of the Allies. Their Declara- tion of March 31st. Napoleon in Fontainebleau. France Deserts Him. The Marshals. Napoleon'Abdicates in Favour of His Son. Desertion of Marmont. Unconditional Abdication, April 6th. Napoleon's Treaty with Europe. Attempted Suicide (?). Depart- ure for Elba. Dangers of the Journey. Activity at Elba. The Idyll of Marciana. Hopes. Discontent in France. Its Causes. Dissentions of the Powers at the Congress of Vienna. Napoleon's Calculations. He Leaves Elba. From Cannes over the Moim- tains into Dauphin^. Winning Over the Troops. Grenoble, Lyons, Paris. CHAPTER XX Waterloo, 1815 694 "Peace and Liberty." Napoleon Gives Guarantees. Benja- min Constant. War Instead of Peace. Hostile Resolution of the Powers at Vienna. Its Decisive Effects in P'rance upon the Civilians and upon the Army. Gloomy Mood of the Emperor. His Constituent Assembly. The "Acte Additionnel" of April 22d. Dissatisfaction with it. The Cliamp de Mai. The Opening of the Chambers. Distrust on All Sides. War. Strength of the Parties. Napoleon Resolves upon the Offensive. His Reasons. Surprising the Enemy. It is Incomplete. Napoleon Deceived in Regard to it. The Battle of Ligny. Gneisenau's Act. Na^ poleon's Second Mistake. Grouchy Sent to the East. The Battle of June 18th. Napoleon in Flight. "Courage, Resolution." xviii Contents CHAPTER XXI I'AGE St. Helena, 1815-1821 721 Paris During the Battles. Napoleon at the Elyste. The Ministry and the Chambers. The Chambers Request the Em- peror to Abdicate. He Hesitates. "Hors la loi!" Abdication Follows. Napoleon at Malmaison. To Rochefort. England's Prisoner. The Traces of the Hundred Days. In the Harbour at Plymouth. The Sentence. On the Northumberland. Landing at St. Helena. Longwood. Sir Hudson Lowe. The Prison- er's Manner of Life. "Letters from the Cape of Good Hope." Calculations on the British Opposition Prove False. Napoleon Seriously 111. His Last Arrangements. His Death. The Intel- lectual Legacy of the Emperor. "The Campaign of 1815." Discourses on the Wars of the Republic. Their Purpose. The Legend of St, Helena and History. Bibliography 745 Index 789 Napoleon the First CHAPTER I THE BONAPARTES IN" CORSICA. NAPOLEON'S BIRTH AND EARLY TRAINING "There is still one country in Europe susceptible of mould- ing by legislation — the island of Corsica. The courage and steadfastness which enabled this brave people to regain and to defend its Uberty well deserve that a sage should teach it how that blessing should be preserved. I have a presentiment that this Uttle island will some day astonish Europe." Thus wTote Jean Jacques Rousseau in 1762 in his immortal book "Le Con- trat Social." A few years later the prophecy of the philosopher was fulfilled in the birth, on "this little island," of one by the power of whose genius the whole world was to be convulsed. Jean Jacques Rousseau was not alone in his sympathetic interest in Corsica. The attention of all Europe was attracted toward the patriotic httle nation which since 1729 had been wag- ing a war for independence against Genoa, under whose sov- ereignty it had groaned for centuries. The best minds of Europe were interested in its fortunes; the works of Frederick the Great, of Voltaire, and of Montesquieu speak with respect and sym- pathy of these energetic mountaineers and of the imposing personality of their leader, Pasquale Paoli. The latter, having been declared regent of the "kingdom" by his compatriots, had wrested the island, with the exception of the seaboard cities, from the grasp of Genoa; had established a wise and beneficent government without infringing upon the liberties of the people, 2 Birth and Early Training [i769 and had thereby exempHfied within narrow bounds the poHtical ideal of the advocates of progress and of a rational system of government. And success would certainly have attended his efforts to drive the enemy out of these last positions and to win complete independence for his country had there not interposed a power whose superior resources finally drove both combatants from the field. That power was France. This took place during the course of the Seven Years' War, when Genoa gave its adhesion to France, and Louis XV. prom- ised in return to support that republic in its contest with Corsica. For three years (1756-1759) the French occupied the harbours of San Fiorenzo, Calvi, and Ajaccio, and attempted to mediate between the belligerents. Soon, however, they took measures toward securing for themselves this important island in the Mediterranean. ■ Negotiations with the Doge of Genoa resulted in a treaty in 1768, by the terms of which the King of France, in return for the remission of sums due him from Genoa, and the payment of an annual subsidy, was granted the sovereignty of Corsica "as security." Despite the restrictive clause the whole world understood it to mean a definitive annexation. And indeed who was to prevent it? The attention of the great powers was focussed on a different object and Louis XV. had thus but a single antagonist to deal with — the Corsican people. To surrender their independence to France seemed in nowise more endurable than to submit to the rule of Genoa, and Paoli ventured the un- equal contest, but only to succumb. After gaining a few unim- portant victories he suffered defeat in a decisive battle on the Golo (May, 1769) and was obliged to flee. In July he left the island to find in England a hospitable refuge. Only a few of his most faithful companions in arms acconii)anied him thither. The greater part of them had retreated to Monte Rotondo, and, having been offered favourable terms by the French, they laid down their arms. France was in possession of the island. Among the speakers of the deputation sent to sue for peace from the victor was Carlo Buonaparte, the father of Napoleon. This confidential mission was entrusted to him doubtless on Napoleon's Father ^ account of the respect in which his family was held at Ajaccio, where they had lived for two centuries. In later years, when the little Corsican had become great, inventive flatterers were not wanting who traced back his lineage to a Byzantine emperor of the Middle Ages. His line can, however, be traced, with any degree of certainty, only to the sixteenth century, when one Gabriel Buonaparte quitted Sarzana in Tuscany to establish himself at Ajaccio. The Buonapartes were of the nobility. At least the Grand Duke of Tuscany, Leopold of Austria, did not hesitate to confirm the nobility of Napoleon's grandfather in 1757. It was also confirmed later by the Heralds' College of France. The Buonapartes (this was the original spelling of the name and thus Napoleon himself wTote it until 1796), like most of the residents of the seaboard cities, remained loyal to Genoa until no longer able to withstand the patriotic uprising. When war with France opened. Carlo joined the ranks of the patriots and was rewarded with special distinction by Paoli. After the victory of the enemy, however, he soon became a zealous supporter of the newly-established government. A cordial welcome was ever extended to the foreigners in Carlo's house at Ajaccio, where his beautiful young wife La^titia (nee Ramolino) made a charming hostess, and the French command- ant, Count Marbceuf, was a frequent visitor. Carlo Buonaparte was a man of some attainments, although not remarkably gifted; ambitious, also somewhat frivolous and fond of pleasure, yet solicitous withal in caring for his numerous family. He was a lawyer by profession, and his own client; he had nothing more at heart than the litigation he was carry- ing on for the recovery of a valuable estate bequeathed by a pious relative to the Jesuits. The latter were for this reason detested by him, and indeed he could never have been counted a very devout Catholic. The lawsuit carried on by the French authorities as legal successors to the banished monks wasted much time and money, as did also the repeated journeys to Versailles, whither his office of deputy of the Corsican nobility led him. It was while on an expedition of this kind that death overtook him at Montpellier in 1785, at the early age of thirty- 4 Birth and Early Training [i769 eight. He left, besides the iindecided lawsuit, but scant means of subsistence for his family. Maria Lsetitia had borne her husband thirteen children. When he died eight were still living, five of them boys. Je- rome, the youngest, was but three months old. It was no easy task for the widow to carry on her household and provide for so large a family with these limited resources. But Laetitia solved the problem. A woman of quick perception and sagacity, with the tenacious energy that overcomes difficulties; impul- sive yet thoughtful, undaunted and, at the same time, calculating, she was a true Corsican. With no great mental gifts and slight pretensions to education, she had much common sense and was not wanting in a certain loftiness of sentiment. When, at the time of the war with France, Carlo joined Paoli, she had coura- geously followed her husband into the mountains, and, although she was with child, had willingly borne all the hardships of the campaign. Now she governed her household with a firm hand and utilized her limited means with prudence and economy. In truth Carlo's unreserved adherence to France and the friendship of the governor had at length proved of practical benefit. The elder sons had been put to school in French insti- tutions at the king's expense; now at his father's death Joseph, the eldest, returned to Corsica to help his mother, and in the same year, 1785, Napoleon, the second son, left the Paris Military Academy as lieutenant, no less ready to help those at home to the extent of his ability. Who would have dreamed that under the protection of this little officer the whole family should some day attain to grandeur, power, and distinction? Napoleon was born in Ajaccio on the 15th of August, 1769; a date the accuracy of which is put in question by the most recent investigation. Indeed the latest researches cast no little doubt upon the much-celebrated Napoleon's Day.* Accord- ing to these the year of his birth should be 1768, and his birth- place Corte. * See the bibliogrui)liy, cfi. I, for the arguments for and against the accepted date. — B. ^T. 1-10] Napoleon's Boyhood 5 The evidence, however, is not so strong as to give cause for abandoning the traditional date, to say nothing of the fact that it is a matter of comparatively little importance whether our hero was born a year earlier or later, whether in the interior of the island or on the coast. Suffice it that there he was and that he soon made his presence felt. In his childhood he is said to have resembled his mother in appearance, having inherited also Laetitia's energetic disposi- tion, while his brothers were more like their father. Wilful and stubborn, Napoleon gave trouble to all about him. To quote his own words written toward the close of his life: "I was self-willed and obstinate, nothing awed me, nothing discon- certed me. I was quarrelsome, exasperating; I feared no one. I gave a blow here and a scratch there. Every one was afraid of me. My brother Joseph was the one with whom I had the most to do; he was beaten, bitten, scolded; I complained that he did not get over it soon enough." His mother alone was able, by the exercise of great severity, to control the headstrong boy, while his father usually defended him. As is evident, his early training was not of the best. Under the instruction of his uncle Fesch, a half-brother of Laetitia's, Napoleon learned the alphabet, and, later, in a girls' school of the little town, he acquired the essentials of his mother tongue. Doubtless he gave much greater attention to the many tales which he overheard of Paoli and the war for independence and eagerly constructed ideals from the material which lay so near at hand. He was overflowing with heroic dreams of this kind when he afterward went to France. The lad's untamable spirit may have led his father to dis- cover his predisposition for a military life. He applied for a scholarship for his son at one of the royal schools where the scions of the French nobility were prepared for a military career, and his request was granted. Toward the end of the year 1778 he left home in order to place his two elder sons in the College of Autun, where Napoleon was to learn French before entering the military school at Brienne, while Joseph was to finish his classical studies preparatory to taking orders. In three months 6 Birth and Early Training [1769-1779 the former had made some progress in learning to express him- self in French, and on the 23d of April, 1779, Napoleone do Buonaparte was enrolled among the students at Brienne. The die was cast — he was to be a soldier. The five years spent in this place were not of the happiest for the young Corsican. To be transported from the ever- smiling scenes of the south to the northern gloom of Champagne, from the sea to the most monotonous province of the interior, from untrammelled freedom to a monastic discipline, where he knew no one of the trifling pleasures which made home happy, what wonder that the sensitive nature of the boy should become gloomy and morose? What above all brought about this unhappy state of affairs was his unsociable disposition. His imperious, defiant temperament found all too soon resolute antagonists in the haughty sons of the Castries, the Comminges, and all the other illustrious houses represented by his fellow students at Brienne. He had to endure the mortification of learning that they considered his title to nobility defective, and that they spoke insultingly of his father, whom they dubbed the "usher" in derision of his incessant petitioning at Ver- sailles. For a time Napoleon revenged himself in his own un- governed fashion, but at length sullenly withdrew from the society of them all. Two of his schoolfellows have left us credible accounts of his life at the Military Academy and of his unsociable demean- our. One of them writes: "Gloomy and even savage, almost always solf-absorbed, one would have supposed that he had just come from some forest and, unmindful until then of the notice of his fellows, experienced for the first time the sensations of surprise and distrust; he detested games and all manner of boyish amusements. One part of the garden was allotted to him and there he studied and brooded, and woe to him who ventured to disturb him! One evening the boys were setting off fireworks and a small powder-chest exploded. In their fright the troop scattered in all directions and some of them took refuge in Napoleon's domain, whereat he rushed upon the fugitives in a passion and attacked them with a spade." Winter ^T. 10-15] At Brienne 7 alone compelled him to be more companionable. Then was his opportunity to show the others how to build snow forts and defences of all sorts, and how to attack and defend them. But the first day of spring found him again in his corner of the garden, serious and solitary. Naturally he made no friends among his schoolmates, — he never had one during his life. One is even inclined to doubt whether he ever had any youth; it seems indeed as if no ray of the springtime of life, which fills so many hearts with gladness, had ever brightened the path of this early embittered nature. It was not long before troubles of a more material nature were added to the pangs of wounded pride. The straitened condition of the family did not admit of keeping the boys at school supplied with an abundance of pocket-money, a new mark of inferiority to the hated Frenchmen. On this account Napoleon, then twelve years old, sent to his father a letter of expostulation which is exceedingly characteristic of the disposi- tion and mental attitude of the writer. He begs to be taken away from Brienne, and rather, if need be, to be set to learn some handicraft, than to be compelled further to exhibit his poverty. He \\Tites: "I am weary of advertising my destitu- tion and of seeing it ridiculed by insolent schoolboys whose only point of superiority to me is in their wealth, for there is not one amongst them who is not a hundred degrees below me in nobility of feeling. What! Sir, would you have your son continually the butt of a lot of high-born clowns, who, vain of the pleasures they are enabled to enjoy, insult me in laugh- ing at the privations which I am obliged to undergo?" * He learned in reply that it was indeed impossible for those at home to furnish him with funds neccssar}^ to keep up appearances. Another cause of embitterment augmented by his distress over the situation of the family at home. Napoleon was neither a verj^ industrious nor talented scholar. When he left the school after five years of study his spelling was wretched. Indeed he never was able to UTite pure French. His acquirements in Latin were of so limited a character that * This letter is rejected by Masson, "Napoleon inconnu," I. 55. — B. 8 Birth and Early Training [1779-1784 there were among his teachers men narrow-minded enough to consider him on this account without intellectual gifts. His- tory and geography, on the contrary, he studied with pleasure, and above all he preferred mathematics. "It was the general opinion," said he in later days, "that I was fit for nothing except geometry." Taken all in all he matured early. The letters which he wrote from Brienne to his uncle Fesch are throughout serious, clear, and logical. He showed ability to compare, dis- criminate, and judge acutely. One hears with astonishment the way in which this boy of fourteen characterizes his elder brother who proposed to enter the military service in place of the priesthood. "He is mistaken in this for several reasons," wrote Napoleon to Fesch. "1. As my father says, he has not the intrepidity necessary to confront the dangers of a battle. His feeble health does not permit his undergoing the hardships of a campaign. Indeed my brother considers a military career only from the standpoint of garrison life. He would unques- tionably make an excellent officer of the garrison. Well built, with ready wit, therefore fitted for paying frivolous compliments, and with his talents he will make an excellent appearance in society. But in battle? — That is the point whereon my father has his doubts. 2. He has been educated for the church; it is now very late to make a change of profession. The bishop of Autun would have given him a rich living and he would with cer- tainty have become a bishop. What advantages that would entail to the family! My Lord Bishop of Autvm has done his utmost to induce him to persevere in his original course, assuring him that he will never have cause to regret it. All in vain, — he is not to be moved. I should commend his determination if it arose from a decided taste for that calling, which is after all the finest, and if the great Controller of human affairs had planted in his breast (as in mine) a real love of things military. 3. He wants a place in the army; very good, — but in what branch of the service? . . . Doubtless he prefers the infantry, that is readily understood; he wants nothing to do the livelong day, to promenade up and down the streets all day. And to add to all this what does a petty officer of infantry amount to? ^T. If)] His Devotion to Corsica 9 A loafer three quarters of the time, and that is one thing whicli neither my father, nor you, nor my mother, nor my uncle the Archdeacon desire, so much the less that he has already shown himself somewhat frivolous and extravagant, etc." In his moments of leisure Napoleon gave free play to his lively imagination. In his reveries he was carried back to his island home with its high mountains and the ever-clear sky above them, its picturesque seacoavst and the deep blue sea, — back to the happier days of his childhood. These day-dreams were his sole recreation and comfort, and in his cheerless solitude in the midst of strangers, his longing for the land of his birth grew to be a glowing patriotism. Are not those who humiliate and sneer at him here at the same time the foes and subjugators of his native land? The thought that his father had helped to further the cause of the French in Corsica was unbearable, — forgive him he could not, and he took no pains to conceal his feelings. The heroic figure of Paoli appears before his mind in radiant splendour, and he expresses the wish to become another such as he. "I hope," he exclaims, "some time to be in a position to restore her free- dom to Corsica." The fact that he was preparing himself for that purpose at the expense of France gave him not the least uneasiness. But first of all he feels impelled to acquaint himself thoroughly with the history of the Corsican people, and begs those at home to send him Boswell and other books dealing with the subject. Perhaps the plan has even now taken shape in his mind to become himself the historian of his native island. In short, he was an out-and-out Corsican, and implacably hostile toward the French. But above all he detested those among them who arrogantly vaunted their superiority of birth and fortune and looked with scorn upon those who were not their equals in rank. Thus in the solitary broodings of this mind, naturally given to reflection, were developed those revolutionary ideas which were just then beginning to agitate the whole of France. "When once he meets them in the minds of others, they will appear neither strange nor unfamiliar. lo Birth and Early Training [i784 According to his father's wishes and his own inclinations Napoleon was to have entered the navy. But Fate willed it otherwise. So large a number of applications had already been made by boys from the military schools who preferred the marine service that had he insisted upon carrying out his intention he would have been obliged to lose a whole year. The straitened circumstances of the family scarcely admitted of this, and he decided without delay upon entering the artillery, a branch of the service usually avoided by the boys on account of the heavier work involved. His resolution once taken he was placed in the company of cadets of the nobility in Paris, to which place he removed on the 23d of October, 1784. This change had but slight effect on the inward workings of his mind. At Paris, as at Brienne, the difference was manifest between the sons of the great families and those of the lesser nobility who were edu- cated at the king's expense. The same insurmountable barrier which separated him from the Comminges and the Castries at Brienne interposed here to keep him from the Rohans and the Montmorencys, and wounded anew his unbounded self-esteem. He made himself no more beloved in Paris than at Brienne and even added to his unpopularity by protesting in a memorial against the effeminate luxury which made the Ecole militaire one of the most costly institutions of the state, while it at the same time unfitted its graduates for active service. Just at this time came the tidings of his father's death, and his attention was turned entirely to the question of an appoint- ment as officer at the earliest possible moment, an advance- ment to which he was entitled to aspire, having reached the required age of fifteen years. His examination passed after a fashion, he presented a petition to be assigned to the Artillery regiment of La FSre stationed at Valence; his commission as second lieutenant followed on the 1st of September, and in October — having borrowed the money necessary to defray his travelling expenses — he departed for the garrison. The instructors at the military school, among whom at that time was Monge, the celebrated mathematician, gave, in regard to the student who had just taken leave, the following dis- Mr. 15] Garrison Life 1 1 criminating report: "Reserved and studious, he prefers study to amusement of any kind, and takes pleasure in reading the works of good authors; while diligent in his study of abstract science, he cares little for any other; he has a thorough knowl- edge of mathematics and geography. He is taciturn, preferring solitude, capricious, haughty, and inordinately self-centred. While a man of few words, he is vigorous in his replies, ready and incisive in retort; he has great self-esteem, is ambitious, with aspirations that stop at nothing; he is a young man worthy of patronage." "When I entered the service," said Napoleon one day to Madame de R^musat, "I found garrison life tedious; I began reading novels, and that kind of reading proved interesting. I made an attempt at writing some ; this task gave range to my imagination. It took hold of my knowledge of positive facts, and often I found amusement in giving myself up to dreams in order to test them later by the standard of my reasoning powers. I transported myself in thought to an ideal world, and I sought to discover wherein lay the precise difference between that and the world in which I lived." He was then the same dreamer as of old! The fondness for seclusion and meditation, which appeared under the restraint of his school days, was not lost in the free intercourse of every-day life without its walls. What sort of men could have peopled his ideal world if, on comparison with them, his fellow mortals no longer appeared worthy of his companionship? One thing at least we may gather with safety from his con- fessions: that the officers of the royal army had ample time for novel-reading, for dreaming, and for meditation. And as a matter of fact under the old regime the organization of the army was such that neither private soldiers nor their superiors had cause to complain of hardship. Thorough drill, camp- exercises, manoeuvres, were things unknown. To be sure, after the discomfiture at Rossbach in 1757 there had been those who demanded reform, but no one heeded them; the weakness of the government and the indolent ease of the officers of the 12 Birth and Early Training [i784 nobility proved an insurmountable obstacle. There was then no want of leisure, but the prospect of the future presented to the mind of one of these young officers, had he cared to employ his leisure in considering it, could not appear brilliant unless he belonged to a powerful and wealthy family. Such alone might aspire to the rank of staff-officer and general, while the poor and inferior nobility must be satisfied throughout their lives with subaltern positions. Imagine the fiery-natured Napoleon, with his feverish thirst for appreciation, facing the barren prospect of a half-dozen years of waiting for his promotion to the rank of first fieutenant with at least the same time of weary waiting before he could be- come captain, finally as such to retire and end his days, having been faithfully accompanied throughout his career by want and privation. Who wonders that his thoughts turned into other channels, or even that he openly held aloof from those who found pleasure in so modest a lot? He associated with his comrades in the garrison as little as he had with those at school. Indeed, they differed at bottom from the youths at Brienne and Paris only in being a httle more mature. Napoleon found much more to his taste the society of royal officials, lawyers, and other persons of the middle class who suffered in a way similar to his own from the rigid distinctions of society and who paid more attention to the outbreaks in which he vented his radical opin- ions than did the officers of La Fere, who, incensed at his keen derision, threw him, one day, into the Rhone. For a time he consorted with the social circle of Valence and frequented particularly the house of Madame de Colombier, in which the Abb4 de Saint-Ruf was the most prominent guest, and in which assembled the daughters of the neighbouring fami- lies of rank, liut this was only transitory. He soon resumed his former solitary manner of life. Was it, perchance, through some tender attachment that he had been drawn toward this house, and had his feeling re- mained imreqiiited? We have no certain knowledge as to this. But five years later — at the age of twenty-two — he wrote the Mr. 15] Literary Studies 1 3 following in his "Dialogue on Love": "I was once in love and I still retain enough of its recollections not to rcciuire these metaphysical definitions which never do anything but confuse matters. I go further than to deny its existence; I consider it dangerous to society as well as to the happiness of the indi- vidual. In short, I hold that love does more harm than good and that it would be a beneficent act on the part of a protecting divinity to rid us of it and deliver mankind from its thrall." But his leisure time was by no means entirely devoted to novel-reading and the fantastic play of his imagination. He developed an interest greater than ever in serious study and read especially political and historical works. This was the time in which the greatest minds of France had appeared as leaders and teachers of the nation to proclaim those rationalistic theories which condenmed existing conditions and demanded in their place a new form of state and of society. The writings of Voltaire and Montesquieu, Rousseau and d'A- lembert were in the hands of every one. Bonaparte* had already given himself wdth eagerness to the study of their works while at the Military School in Paris, and rarely have the words of Jean Jacques fallen upon more fruitful soil. He made excerpts from the "Contrat Social" and added notes thereto, and eagerly adopted the extravagant enthusiasm of the Genevan philosopher for the state of nature. He likewise read Filangieri's "Scienza della legislazione," which had enjoyed since 1780 a quite un- deserved consideration, Adam Smith's "Wealth of Nations," Necker's "Comptc-rendu," and much else. But more than any of these, Raynal appears to have influenced his further develop- ment. Raynal was during the eighties the most widely read author in France. His " Histoire philosophique et politique des EtabUssements et du Commerce des Europeens dans les Deux Indes" had acquired an unrivalled popularity on account of its revolutionary tendencies. The book offered more than was to be inferred from its title. It discussed, for instance, not only the political situation of China, but compared the same with that of France to the distinct disadvantage of the latter. It * I shall henceforth adopt this spelling. 14 Birth and Early Training [i784 depicted with impressive eloquence the condition of his native land, the unreasonable privileges of the nobility and higher clergy, the immense abyss separating the rich from the poor, and the wrongs suffered by the middle class without power of redress; the demoralizing corruption shown in the sale of office, and the wretched administration of the finances. It prophesied the collapse of the government soon to follow, nay, more, it summoned openly to revolution as a clear duty under such circumstances. This doctrine made a profound impression on Napoleon, more profound than that made by any of the teach- ings of Rousseau. He acknowledged himself, later, a zealous disciple of Raynal in a pamphlet entitled "Discours sur le Bonheur," which he presented (blunders in speUing included) to the Academy of Lyons in 1791. In 1787 he became personally acquainted with Raynal, and spoke with him about his studies into the history of his native land. A few years later he be- stowed upon Raynal a fragment: "Lettres sur I'Histoire de la Corse," which he had begun writing in 1786 and in which he narrated the history of the island down to the time of Paoli. Napoleon's brother Lucien would have us believe that Raynal showed the "Lettres" to Mirabeau, and that the latter extolled the genius of their author. But Lucien's veracity is not un- impeachable. However that may be. Napoleon had become a writer and now, with indefatigable pen, composed, in addition to his history, a novel, the scene of which is laid in Corsica, a drama — "le Comte d'Essex," and stories after the manner of Diderot and Voltaire.* But to him it was not sufficient to put his thoughts on paper; he could not be satisfied until they should be printed and read, and this not merely for the sake of vanity and ambition, but in order to gain money. For pecuniary cares had not deserted him in his garrison life; on the contrary, they had become more than ev(>r importunate and tormented him beyond en- * lionaparte himself eventually burned, with but few exceptions, all "the rubbish of his youthful literary attempts." (Th. Jung, "Lucien Bonaparte et ses Mdmoires," t. II. p. 144.) Mt. 17] Family Adversities 1 5 durance. Not that the one hundred Uvres a month which he received as pay would have been insufhcient for his personal expenses; his wants were not many or great. His lodgings at the house of Mademoiselle Bon cost him something more than eight livres, and for a time he ate but one meal a day; the fact that he had little intercourse with his gay fellow soldiers was in itself an additional economy. But there were times when real want threatened those at home. In September, 17S6, death bereaved them of their benefactor and patron, Marbcruf, the governor of Corsica, and a great-uncle, the archdeacon Lucien, who had always helped them with his watchful care and advice, lay seriously ill. Joseph, who, in spite of remonstrance, had discarded the clerical for the military profession, and who, after his father's death, had been obliged to renounce this also in order to find a position at home, was still seeking remunerative work. Up to this time the Bonapartes had been the annual recipients of a certain sum of money, in return for the care of one of the nurseries of mulberry-trees which the government had established in Corsica; now notice was given that this stipend was to be discontinued. It was not long before the household was without money. This succession of disappointments and troubles was more than even Latitia's spirited nature could endure. She wrote her son Napoleon of her distress and besought him to return to her. The impression made upon him by this letter was both deep and painful. He resembled his father in his solicitude for the welfare of his family, and to know them to be in difficul- ties caused him unaffected sorrow. This feeling became the more intense when his request for immediate leave of absence met with the reply that such could be granted him only by the beginning of the following year. Bitter were the words in which his emotions found vent in his diary: "Always alone when in the midst of men, I return to my room to dream by myself and to give myself up to the full tide of my melancholy. Whither did my thoughts turn to-day? Toward death. In the springtime of my life, I may still hope to live for a long time. I have been away from my native 1 6 Birth and Early Training [i786 land now for six or seven years. What pleasure shall I not feel in seeing once more, four months hence, both my com- patriots and my relatives? From the tenderness felt in recalling the pleasures of my childhood may I not infer that my happiness will be complete? What madness then impels me to desire my own destruction? What, forsooth, am I here for in this world? Since death must come to me, why would it not be as well to kill myself? If I were sixty years old or more, I should respect the prejudices of my contemporaries and would patiently wait for Nature to finish her course, but, since I begin life in suffering misfortune, and nothing gives me pleasure, why should I endure these days when nothing with which I am concerned prospers? " How far men have departed from Nature! How dastardly, abject, and servile they are! What sight awaits me at home? My fellow countrymen loaded with chains kissing with trembling the hand which oppresses them. These are no longer the gal- lant Corsicans roused by the virtues of a hero, enemies of tyrants, of luxury, of base courtiers. . . . Frenchmen, not content with having ravished us of all that we held most dear, you have in addition corrupted our morals! (The picture thus presented of my country, and my own powerlessness to change it, are a new reason for leaving a world where duty compels me to praise those whom virtue bids me despise.) When I reach my own country again what attitude am I to take; in what manner am I to speak? When his country ceases to exist, a loyal citizen should die. . . . My life is a burden to me, for I relish not a single pleasure and everything causes me pain; it is a burden to me because the men among whom I live, and shall probably always live, have habits of mind as far remote from mine as the light of the moon differs from that of the sun. I am, therefore, unable to follow the only manner of living which could make life endurable, from which results a disgust toward everything." Nothing could be more characteristic than this effusion of a soul filled with discontent. It is evident that Goethe's Werther (which Napoleon claims to have read five times) and Rousseau's impassioned writings have had their effect upon his mind; ^T. 17] Napoleon Returns Home 17 their influence is plainly discernible in more than one place. And yet, side by side with this apparent subserviency, there exists a vigorous and self-reliant judgment, and one is at once convinced that the writer of the diary, however readily he may speak of his thoughts of death, has as little real intention of making his words good as had the dethroned emperor at Fontainebleau, twenty-eight years later, of taking his own life. It is always the same double nature to which he himself bears witness in the conversation with Madame de Remusat above cited; the same fantastic dreaming, to which nevertheless is always applied the measuring-rod of a calm and methodical deliberation; an idealism subdued, corrected, and controlled by a highly developed, realistic inteUigence. This is the funda- mental trait of his character and at the same time its key. And now he has suddenly fixed upon a practical resolution. Once in Ajaccio, he will get his leave of absence prolonged, "on the ground of ill health," as far as the forbearance of the Minis- ter of War will permit. In this way his family will profit by his pay, while he himself will have the opportimity to carry out his literary projects. And as a matter of fact he did not rejoin his regiment at Auxonne before May, 1788. It would, however, be a mistake to suppose that the young ofheer's concern for the support and future of his family and the cheerlessness of his own prospects were alone responsible for his dejection. What tormented him beyond all these was the conflict between what he recognized as his duty and what he himself honoured as civic virtue in the light of his specula- tions on the natural rights of mankind. He had once written in a letter to Fesch: "A soldier's sole attachment should be to his flag." But did not this flag bind him to the cause of the French whom he had learned to hate even while at school, before whose doors liis pride had been obliged to huml)le itself to beg assistance and benefits for the Buonaparte family — the French who had subjugated his country, in the hberation of which he saw realized the most audacious dreams of his fancy? He, to whom Sampiero and Paoli had been shining ideals, had sworn allegiance to their victorious 1 8 Birth and Early Training [i786 foes and thereby imposed upon himself fetters which para- lyzed his ambition and condemned his existence to insigni- ficance. He had purposed to become the hero of his nation and he had become merely one of its armed custodians. This state of affairs was intolerable and yet it was scarcely to be changed. For unheard-of things must take place in order to overcome the obstacles which towered before the feverishly urgent deter- mination of this ambitious youth. The established order of a world must be overturned to make way for the flight of this extraordinary genius. And behold! the unheard-of came to pass: the order of the world was disestablished and a new era opened. CHAPTER II THE REVOLUTION. NAPOLEON'S CORSICAN ADVENTURES It is impossible to undertake to set forth here all the caases and occasions which brought about in France that revolutionary- movement to which a large proportion of our modem political and social conditions owe their existence. In point of fact, the necessity for these changes was felt long before the decisive year of 1789. As early as the middle of the century, during the reign of I.ouis XV., notorious in history for his mistresses and his defeats, the word "Revolution" had been uttered with something of that prophetic tone with which the Old Testa- ment seers pronounced the name Messiah, and having once acquired a foothold, it never again disappeared from the lan- guage. Upon the succession of Louis XVI. to the throne of his grandfather he showed the best of intentions toward the cor- rection of abuses, but it soon became evident that the evil was too deep-rooted to be moved by well-intentioned attempts at reform. No minister, however able, could hope by means of judicious measures to overcome the difficulty. Ever since the seventeenth century the government in France had been tend- ing toward despotism and centralization; the welfare of the nation rested solely upon the caprice of the king and the will of ms domineering ministers. The fundamental rights of the people were ignored; the States General — the legal representa- tives of the three political classes, the clergy, nobility, and commons — had for a long time not been convoked for partici- pation in the framing of laws, though this right was accorded to them by the ancient constitution of the realm. As a conse- quence there existed a constant feud between the government and the Parliaments, the highest judicial courts of the country. The clergy and nobility had submitted to the position of political 19 20 The Revolution [i789 insignificance which the new system gave them, and were re- warded with lavish liand by the king for their loyalty; their exemption from taxation, together with all other prerogatives formerly granted them by the state in acknowledgment of their services as judges and guardians, was preserved to them. On the other hand, the third estate, which had not shared in any of these privileges, was obliged to assume, almost unaided, the burden of the state's expenses. Of the land two thirds were owned by the two privileged classes and were accordingly free from taxation, while the remaining third was divided among a large number of small property-holders who were in nowise entitled, as were their superiors, to exact feudal service and levy turnpike and bridge toll of the peasantry, but were com- pelled to pay taxes of all descriptions upon their meagre lands. The peasants, living exclusively upon the domains of the privi- leged classes, had to pay taxes to state, church, and stewards of the landlord, and there remained to them after the deduc- tion of these imposts an all too scanty means of subsistence. In the cities a few rich and favoured circles were opposed to a populace without property, who, excluded from guilds, corpo- rations, and all municipal offices, earned their living in daily labour for the upper classes. Thus the poor man of France was oppressed, while the aristocracy squandered the fruit of others' labour in Paris or at the prodigal royal court at Versailles in leading the brilliant and luxurious life of the salons. That these conditions were contrary to nature had long been recognized by thinking minds. In imperishable works, con- spicuous for their brilliancy and elegant simplicity of language, they attacked the intolerance of the church, which, even after 1760, incited the willing authorities to harsh measures against the members of the reformed churches; they demonstrated that existing social conditions were in violation of the rights of man, and sought, in sundry ways, the ideal government to replace the present one when that should collapse as it deserved to do. And the catastrophe followed soon. Bad financial admin- istration on th(! one side, with failure of crops and distressing need on the otiicr, hastened tlie crisis. After the disclosure by /El. 20J The Meeting of the States General 21 Necker, Minister of Finance, in the early eighties, of the des- perate condition of the State's treasury; after the inefTectual labours of his successor Calonne over the problem of how to draw upon the wealth of the two privileged classes for the benefit of the country; after repeated borrowings had exhausted credit and bankruptcy seemed inevitable, the king at last decided to yield to the universal demand and to convoke the States General at Versailles early in May, 1789. The States General as they had assembled for the last time in 1614 was no such united deliberative body as, for instance, the English Parliament or the modern German Reichstag. The deputies of the three estates debated and voted separately, and the majority of votes of all three — two to one — was neces- sary to enact or reject a bill. Under such conditions the com- mons were of necessity at a disadvantage when opposed to the clergy and the nobility. But the third estate of 1789 was a different body from that of 1614. The example of two great and successful revolutions, that of England in the seventeenth and that of America in the eighteenth century, had not remained without effect upon the minds of its members. The doctrines of philosophers and political writers had penetrated their minds, the conviction of the injustice of exist- ing conditions was pre-eminently theirs, and the wish to give expression to this conviction in deeds impelled them to take the first step toward revolution. Contrary to the provisions of the ancient constitution, as well as to the wish of Louis XVI., the representatives of the third estate, who equalled in number those of the other two combined, refused to conform to the former manner of sitting. They declared themselves to be the representatives of the nation, and summoned the deputies of the other two estates to co-operate with them in their deliberations and decrees. (June 17th, 1789.) This purpose was accomplished and thus the feudal States General were transformed into a modern Chamber of Deputies, which, far from contenting itself with complacently approving the government loans, felt itself called upon to do away en- 22 Corsican Adventures [i789 tirely with the old regime and to constitute in its place a new France. The first part of this task was accomplished before the end of the year. In the night session of the 4th of August, amidst universal excitement, those memorable decrees were passed which annulled all privileges of rank, removed all feudal burdens from the peasant, declared ecclesiastical tithes re- deemable, suppressed the selling of public offices, and pro- claimed all citizens eligible to any office whether civil or military. By this action — too precipitate, to be sure — was demolished the crumbling edifice of ancient France and the foundation laid for a new and habitable structure. These decrees were, however, not the result of calm considera- tion and deliberate judgment. While the lawmakers at Ver- sailles were drawing up the code of newly-acquired liberty the capital near by was in the wildest uproar. Riots had for years been frequent in Paris, but now they became the established order of the day. Shortly before the above-mentioned decrees were passed by the National Assembly, the populace of Paris, having become "sovereign," had repulsed the royal troops on the Place Vendome, had taken by storm the Hotel des Invalides, and had razed to the ground the Bastille. It was with tho greatest difficulty that the Deputies were able to restrain the mob from further excesses. Strange and varied elements constituted the populace of Paris: fairly-educated, honest enthusiasts in the cause of freedom stood side by side with brutish vagabonds whom the poverty of the open country had driven by thousands into the city ; oppressed labourers who were contending for their just right to live decently, marched beside impudent adventurers and light-fingered gentry who brazenly declared war upon all movable property; theorists ready to push their cherished ideas to the last extreme were beside legions of ignorant beings who blindly acted upon any suggestion overheard in the streets — an imposing array enlisted in the interests of anarchy and soon to assume a fearful imjiortance. The capital did not remain alone a prey to revolt. The provinces also felt the force of the current from the beginning of the political movement. Here hunger assumed the executive /Et. 20] Outbreaks in the Provinces 23 power. Hundreds of grain riots were but the precursors to further excesses. The harvests of 1789 in the south of France had proved a failure. In the middle and northern parts of the country, where the yield had been sufficient, no one showed the spirit necessary to put the grain on the market. The high prices kept up and occasioned new disturbances. Proprietors were forced by threats of violence to deliver up their supplies. Peasants assembled before the castles of the nobility and com- pelled them to yield not only their feudal rights, but their possessions. Whoever resisted forfeited his life. Eastern France, from the extreme north down to Provence, was dis- tracted by peasant-uprisings and confiscations of property. Murder and assassination were nothing unusual. All authority was powerless to restrain the disorder. Auxonne on the Saone, where the artillery regiment La Fere was stationed in garrison, was not undisturbed by the Revolu- tion. In July, 1789, the alarm-bell had sounded here also, the toll-gates had been broken down, the office of the tax-collector destroyed. A detachment of cannoniers, appointed to re- establish order, refused obedience to commands and stood with their weapons passive spectators of the disturbance. Their captain, who attempted to arrest one of the ringleaders, was pursued by the mob and barely escaped with his life. Not until some companies of the city's National Guard began to quell the tumult would the troops give the least assistance. Whether the young Lieutenant Bonaparte participated in this affair is unknown, nor can we gain any knowledge as to his attitude in these da3's, interesting as any information on this subject would be. We know only that after his return from Ajaccio he was more than ever friendly to the idea of a radical change in the government. In his diary we find under date of October 23d, 1788, the outline of a "Dissertation sur I'Autorite Royale." "This work," it reads, "will begin with setting forth general ideas upon the origin and growth of the name of king in the mind of man. Military government is favourable to it. This work will enter next into the details of usurped authority en- joyed by the monarchs of the twelve kingdoms of Europe. 24 The Revolution [i789 There are but very few kings who have not deserved dethrone- ment." Tolerably advanced ideas for a lieutanant in the royal army at the age of twenty! Still his mind remains fixed upon Corsica. He revises his ''Lettres sur I'Histoire de la Corse" and purposes dedicating them to the banished Paoli. In a letter of June, 1789, in which he attempts to approach his hero, he manifests most immis- takably his hatred toward the French oppressors. Presently a single idea seizes possession of his mind — to take advantage of the Revolution to obtain power and influence in his native land, and to acquire at the same time with his own independence that of his people. This is no longer the hour for written words. The "Lettres sur I'Histoire de la Corse," which Paoli declined to have dedicated to himself, remain unprinted. Their author is seeking for himself a place in the history of his country. Since their conquest by the French, the Corsicans had been divided into two parties — the partisans of the foreigner, who had reconciled themselves with the new order of things and turned the same to their own advantage, and the Nationalists, who submitted with the greatest reluctance to the yoke of the new supremacy. To the former faction, the Conservatives, belonged the inferior nobility and the clergy with its blind following, as did also a part of the residents of the seaport towns; indeed those who lived along the coast and were thus at the mercy of every passing frigate speedily learned submission to the will of a foreign power, while the mountaineers of the in- terior, not unlike their neighbours, the Montenegrins, preserved more readily their free and independent spirit. The Nationalists were themselves cleft into two divisions, of which one hoped to secure civil liberty by making common cause with the revolutionists in France, while the other wished to have nothing to do with them or with any compact in which they were concerned. The Conservatives elected to the States General the official candidates. General Buttafuoco and the Abb(5 Peretti. The Nationalists chose Salicetti and Colonna di Cesare Rocca, members of the opposition. The latter succeeded in making ^T. 20] Napoleon's Designs in Corsica 25 the wishes of their constituents prevail in the National Assembly: the Commission of Nobles, who acted as ach'isory board to the governor of the island, was to give place to an elective Council of Administration, and a paid native militia was to be maintained. While the idea of a native administrative body originated in the ambition of a group of young Corsicans, Pozzo di liorgo, Peraldi, Cuneo, and others, who were already dreaming of them- selves as Regents, the creation of a militia was the suggestion of Lieutenant Bonaparte in Auxonne, who was kept informed by his uncle Fesch as to all events on the island, and whose family after the death of Marbaaif had joined the opposition. He, too, aspired to the highest office at home, but his ambition did not rely upon elections and debates and fickle pubhc senti- ment. Even now the bayonet was to him the surest means of acquiring power. He felt that his military education would assure him a high command in the Corsican miUtia and that he, once in possession of such a command . . . But such projects demand one's presence on the scene of action. Accordingly he again obtains a somewhat extended leave of absence and the month of September, 1789, finds him back in Ajaccio. Difficulties present themselves at once upon his arrival. The Conservative deputy Buttafuoco had prevailed upon the royal government to defer the carrying out of the changes demanded by the opposition. For the present there was no hope of a popular council or a paid militia. But the time has come in which the opposition resorts to violence. Napoleon, also, has not passed through the expe- rience of this revolutionary summer without result. He has seen the National Guard form in French cities and recognized the magic of the cockade; he now utilizes his observations and displays a feverish zeal in making preparations for carr\4ng out his aims. He plans to \\Test the power from the hands of the reactionary authorities, to organize a National Guard, to seize the Bastille of Ajaccio and drive the French from the island. The patriotic club of the city, to which he confides his piu-poses, is full of the wildest enthusiasm in favour of them. 26 Corsican Adventures [1789 And in fact a National Guard was formed, and the revolu- tion, under the leadership of the young lieutenant in the royal army, started under most favourable auspices. One of his biographers tells us that "in Ajaccio he moved, he electrified everything with his indefatigable activity." But at this point Napoleon's plans were interfered with by the reinforcement of the French garrison, the suppression of the club, and the dis- banding of the National Guard; the leaders of the revolution had to content themselves with addressing a protest, drawn up by Napoleon, to the National Assembly at Paris begging its pro- tection to their hberties. (Last of October, 1789.) Meanwhile, in imitation of Ajaccio, other towns had revolted, and in some instances, as in Bastia and Isola Rossa, remained victorious. Upon the advice of Buttafuoco the government determined to quell the insurrection by levying for that purpose a large detachment of troops, and orders therefor had already been issued, when the National Assembly, at the instigation of SaUcetti, raised Corsica, hitherto considered merely as con- quered territory, to the dignity of a French province enjoying all the rights and immunities to which others were entitled. No regard was paid to the treaty of 1768 by which Genoa had surrendered the island to France "as security." An am- nesty made it possible for Paoli and his companions in exile to return to Corsica. The government at Paris was forced to abstain from carrying out the harsh measures intended, and the radicals of the island recovered complete liberty of action. In Ajaccio the club resumed its sessions in the summer of 1790, the National Guard was drilled under Napoleon's directions, and a new municipal council was elected wherein Joseph Bona- parte at last found employment. What was more natural than to resume the plans inter- rupted the year before? Nothing but the watchfulness of the garrison which occupied the citadel prevented Napoleon from carrying out his plan of seizing the stronghold; to his proposal of laying a n^gular siege the chilj would not consent. The hated French remaincMl in possession. Shortly afterwards Paoli returned. Thousands assembled ^T. 21] Napoleon Returns to France 27 to do him honour aiul greotcHl liuu witli ecstasy and transports of joy. Deputations from all cities met him. The former dictator, the glorious chief, whom the recollections of the struggle for independence and the martyrdom of exile surrounded with a subhme halo, was the object of unmixed veneration. When, in accordance with the new constitution of France, the election of pubhc officers took place in each of the departments in Sep- tember, 1790, Paoli was unanimously chosen president of the Council of Administration. All who had political aspirations gathered around him. Napoleon was among these, always con- fident that the paid militia, to the command of which he so ardently longed to be appointed, was about to become a reality. This would have enabled him to resign his commission in the royal army which was such a burden to him and withheld him from the real scene of his ambition. At the side of Paoli, who was not a trained soldier, he would have played a distinguished part — and Paoli was already an old man. Vain hopes! The ministry refused to arm the Corsican people at the expense of France, and Bonaparte at last was obliged in February, 1791, to rejoin his regiment. Meanwhile the emigration of the royalists had deprived the regiment of La Fere of many of its officers, and it was owing to this circumstance that Napoleon was not called to account for being deficient in liis sense of duty and in discipline, but was even promoted, June 1st, 1791, to the position of first lieutenant in the fourth regiment of artillery at Valence. The country was enjoying then an apparent calm, and he was able to resume his manner of fife such as it had been two years earher, except that he now shared his modest lodging and meagre pay with his younger brother Louis, the future king of Holland. When, twenty years later, Louis created difficulties for the Emperor of the French by arbitrarily resigning his crown. Napoleon alluded in conversation with Caulaincourt to these bygone days. "What ! " exclaimed he, "my brother injure instead of helping me! This Louis whom I brought up on my pay of a lieutenant, at the price of Heaven knows what privations! I found means of sending money to pay the board and lodging of 28 The Revolution. [i79i my younger brother. Do you know how I managed it? It was by never setting foot inside a caf6 or appearing in the social world; it was by eating dry bread and brushing my clothes myself so that they should remain the longer presentable. In order not to be conspicuous among my comrades I hved like a bear, always alone in my little room with my books — then my only friends. And those books ! By what strict econ- omies, practised on actual necessities, did I purchase the enjoy- ment of possessing them! When, by dint of abstinence, I had at length amassed the sum of twelve livres, I turned my steps with the joy of a child toward the shop of a bookseller who Uved near to the bishop's palace. I often went to visit his shelves with the sin of envy within me; I coveted long before my purse allowed of buying. Such were the joys and dissipations of my youth." But frequently his small income could not be brought to cover his expenses. Debts had to be contracted, modest to be sure, but nevertheless oppressive with the hopelessness of increasing his resources. Presently he resumed his hterary projects. His "Discours sur le Bonheur," presented to the Academy of Lyons in the hope of its being awarded the prize of twelve hundred francs, brought nothing but disappointment to its author. His literary reveries were resumed and resulted in the above-mentioned "Dialogue sur TAmour." Besides this he wrote "Reflexions sur I'Etat Naturel," in which he combated Rousseau's hy- potheses and gave evidence of being a keen observer of human affairs. All at once the speculative solitude of the young officer is interrupted by the noise of unprecedented excitement which prevails throughout all France. During the first months of 1791 the fundamental provisions of the new Constitution of France had been formulated, and they needed but the royal sanction to become law. But since this Constitution reduced the royal authority almost to insig- nificance, and the radical laws concerning the church wounded the rehgious conscience of the king, Louis XVI. decided to flee JEt. 21] Political Activity 29 from Paris and seek in some foreign land safoty and defence for his person and kingly dignity. The plan failed; the king and his escort were stopped on the way ana brought back to Paris. A storm of indignation swept the country against the king and against those who had persuaded him to abandon his people. The National Assembly suspended the royal authority, and in all the towns of France the clubs, the militia, and the troops of the line swore unswerving fidelity to the decrees of the Par- liament and to the new Constitution. With difficulty only could the more moderate, the " Feuillants," restrain the radical "Jacobins." Only when the king had accepted the Constitution was order in some slight degree restored. At this time First Lieutenant Bonaparte subscribed to the following oath: "I swear to use the arms delivered into my hands in the defence of my country, and to support against all enemies, whether from within or from without, the Constitution decreed by the National Assembly, to perish rather than suffer the invasion of French territory by foreign troops, and to obey only such orders as are given in accordance with the decrees of the National Assembly. Buonaparte, Officer in the 4th Regiment of Artillery. Valence, the 6th of July, 1791." Napoleon was taking an active part in the political clubs. He was secretary of the "Amis de la Constitution" of Valence, who were affiliated with the Jacobins in Paris, and in that capacity he composed an address to the National Assembly in which its acts were approved by the members of the club. On the occasion of a patriotic banquet he offered a toast in honour of the radicals. But it would be an error to regard these acts as evidence of the patriotic enthusiasm with which at that time all Frenchmen were carried away and which raised to a new significance the word "Nation." In the midst of all this Napoleon remained a Corsican, and only a Corsican, and held firmly to the plans which linked his 30 Corsican Adventures [1701 destiny with that of his native land. These projects were soon to assume more sohd form. In the session of July 22d, 1791, the National Assembly .determined to create battahons of paid volunteers, the force to include something over one hundred thousand men. The department of Corsica was to furnish four such battalions. Hardly had the news reached Napoleon when it became an impossibility for him to remain longer at Valence, The long and ardently desired opportunity to play a military part in his native island had presented itself. Before the end of September he was again on furlough in Ajaccio. What mattered it to him that France was on the eve of war? He was equally uncon- cerned that his leave of absence would terminate on the 1st of January, 1792. He sought later to exculpate himself on the ground of "unforeseen circumstances," and of "the dearest and most sacred duties to be fulfilled." "In these difficult cir- cumstances," he writes to Sucy, the Commissary of War, "the post of honour of a good Corsican is in his own country." That he was at the same time a French officer, educated at the ex- pense of the king, and that he had just sworn to defend France, counted for nothing with him. He succeeded in getting his name struck off from the army list, the act taking effect January 1st, 1792, and more zealously than ever endeavoured to obtain the position of lieutenant-colonel in the volunteer battalion of Ajaccio, which appointment lay with the vote of the troops. For years he had ingratiated himself with the mountaineers who now voted for him, and this resulted in giving him a majority above his rival. Meanwhile, until the election should be over, Napoleon took the precaution to seize and detain in his own house one of the commissioners of the election who was hostile to him. With an insignificant man chosen as first lieutenant- colonel, Bonaparte became virtual commander of the battalion from his native city. This was his first coup d'(5tat. Again his eyes turned toward the citadel, still the residence of French officers and soldiers. Now, at the head of a band of devoted men, the blow could not fail. Nothing was needed but to await ft favourable opportunity. ^T. 22] Conditions in Corsica 31 There was in Ajaccio, as in other Corsican cities, a coasider- able number of ardently pious CathoHcs to whose religioas feehng the new laws governing the church seemed no less iniqui- tous than to the King of France. It was no difficult matter for the nimierous priests of the island to strengthen this element in its hatred toward the new order of things and its advocates. It was no wonder that there were many bitter enemies of the Jacobin Club, which was in close touch with the clubs of Toulon and Marseilles. Napoleon was particularly detested, not only as having attached himself at home, as in Valence, to the radical party, but as having, with the collaboration of his uncle Fesch, published a pamphlet dealing with the question of the oath required of priests. Even as far back as in July, 1790, there had been tumults in which were heard such cries as "Vive la Revolution! Death to Jacobins, death to the officer!" Once the frenzied mob had hurled itself upon him, and his rescue from its hands was due alone to the intervention of a friendly bandit. This feeling had not modified since that time, and the church laws were accorded but sHght respect. Napo- leon now made use of this circumstance. "In order to secure respect for the decrees of the National Assembly," he took possession with his volunteers of the con- vent of the Capuchins in the city. He calculated that in the confhct which must ensue with the friars, the moderate sup- porters of the Constitution among the civil authorities would be obhged to take their stand on his side, which would afford him the desired influence against which the gates of the citadel could not remain closed. Having gained an entrance, his plan was to fraternize with the French soldiers, compel the officers to decamp and make himself master of the city. As he had anticipated, during Easter week, 1792, a furious brawl arose in the streets and Napoleon hastened to occupy the most im- portant points throughout the city. He had already erected a mighty barricade facing the gate of the citadel, in preparation for a contest with the garrison, when commissioners of the gov- ernment, sent by Paoli, appeared and demanded a cessation of 32 Corsican Adventures [1792 hostilities, and delivered to Bonaparte the censure of the governor for instigating the disorder, and the order to leave Ajaccio at once with his forces for the interior of the island. The occurrence was further reported to the Minister of War, and only the turmoil of the time prevented the trial by court- martial of the officer guilty of such misdemeanours. Again all seemed lost. Hated at home by a large number of his countrymen and regarded with just suspicion by the authorities, with charges filed against him in France, and with- out a position in the regular army, to what could he look forward when the brief one year's term of service of the volunteers came to an end? Nothing but decisive measures taken at the right place could help in this quandary. With the consent of the govern- ment Napoleon betook himself to Paris. He found the capital a prey to the most violent agitation. The truce between Crown and Revolution had been of short duration. Louis XVI. had incurred anew the resentment of the progressive parties by denying his sanction to the decrees of the legislative assembly against the priests who refused to take oath to support the new church laws, and against the emi- grant princes and aristocrats, whose assembling in arms on the frontiers was to be punished by confiscation of their property. The Jacobin clubs already openly declared themselves in favour of a republic. Besides, there could be no longer any doubt concerning the relations between the Court and foreign countries, and the opposition was persuaded that a successful war against foreign powers would be at the same time a triumph over the French monarchy. Accordingly the republicans of the Assembly agreed to foster a war against foreign princes, overthrew the ministry desirous of peace, and compelled the king to declare war against Austria, a court to which he was personally related. (April 20th, 1792.) The result was, however, at first disappointing. An attack upon the Austrian Netherlands was easily r(>pulsed and the defeat of the French troops created prodigious excitement in .Et. 22] The Fall of the Monarchy 33 Paris. "Treason," was the cry on all sides. The king was regarded as personally responsible and a conspirator against his own people, a suspicion which was strengthened by the fact that just at this time, June 1.3th, 1792, Louis dismissed the radical ministry and surrounded himself with advisers chosen from among the moderate royalists. The leaders of the racHcal jiarties profited by this feeling in playing the animosity of the anarchistic elements of the capital against the Crown. On the 20th of June a great crowd con- sisting mainly of an armed rabble .streamed into the Tuileries to compel the sanction of the two decrees. Nothing but the calm, dignified manner of the king averted an attempt upon his life. But on August 10th, at the instigation of the Jacobins, the populace returned to the charge. Bands of pikemen, workmen from the suburbs of St. Antoine and St. Marcel, and all manner of riffraff besieged the royal palace and forced Louis XVL to seek protection in the National Assembly. But here his dignity as sovereign was declared forfeited and the monarchy sus- pended. With him fell likewise the conservative ministry, giving place to a government consisting of republican Girond- ists. This change in the course of the revolution was to Bona- parte of the greatest importance. Without means of sub- sistence, in disrepute at home, he had come to the capital to solicit readmission into the army. He was not entirely without patrons, but they were powerless in dealing \^^th the June ministry, which was perfectly informed as to the recent occur- rences in Corsica. It was not long before he was unable to secure the necessaries of life. He chanced to meet Fauvelet de Bourrienne, a former schoolfellow at Brienne, whom he tried to induce to enter with him into a scheme for subletting apart- ments, but nothing eventually came of the plan as Bourrienne just then received an appointment at the Legation in Stuttgart. Napoleon's embarrassment increased so that he was at length obliged for a time to part with his watch. Those were hard, distressing days. The only possible chance of help lay in the do^-nfall of the refractory Minister of War who had shown him- 24 The Revolution [1792 self so obdurate in regard to Bonaparte's application. For this reason was the 10th of August a day of great significance to Napoleon. Whether it was a fact, as has been asserted, that he helped to keep up the agitation by harangues in wine-shops is unknown. His own account of what took place, given at a somewhat later time, would not indicate that such had been the case: "I felt, on the 10th of August, that, had I been called upon to do so, I should have defended the king. I was opposed to those who would establish the Republic by means of the populace; besides I saw civilians attacking men in uniform, that gave me a shock." No doubt that was his inmost feeling; but it did not accord with his personal interests of that time. These demanded victory to the despised rabble, and that vic- tory was welcome to him. At any rate Napoleon's circumstances now improved of a sudden. To the new radical ministry the machinations of the young officer seemed nothing extremely blameworthy; he was again received into favour, and more, he was appointed captain in his regiment, the commission being dated February 6th, 1792, that is, on the day when his promotion would have oc- curred if he had not quitted the army. Indeed, in- consequence of the flight of aristocrats, advancement of officers was at this time unusually rapid. It will be supposed that Napoleon now went to rejoin his regiment at the front, to fulfil the duties for which he was at least receiving payment. Not at all. The fate of France did not interest him in the least. The horizon of his thoughts and efforts was still bounded by the coast-line of his native island. To regain there his lost repute was to him a higher aim than honours and triumphs in the service of those principles for which at that time thousands of Frenchmen joyfully met death. Had accident not furnished a pretext for his return to Corsica he would nevertheless have found some means of accomplishing that purpose. But it so happened that the new ministry closed the boarding-schools for young gentle- women and sent the pupils back to their homes. Among these young ladies was Napoleon's sister, Marianne Bonaparte. Who could wish to hinder a brother from accompanying his sister in Mr.2:i] The Crisis in Corsica 35 times such as these with the entire country in a state of agita- tion? By the middle of vSeptember they were both again in Ajaccio. Napoleon remained there into the summer of 1793. This period of nine months was decisive for his career, and likewise for the fate of the world. At once upon his arrival Napoleon had several violent altercations with Paoli, owing to the fact that Napoleon resumed his conmiand of the volunteer forces just as if nothing had meanwhile occurred and he were not a captain in the regular army. The young officer was, indeed, in so far successful in what he desired as to be granted the command of the troops provisionally and for the time during which they were engaged in an (unsuccessful) expedition against the island of Sardinia. But the relations between him and the aged governor grew more and more strained in the course of the next few months, to end eventually in complete rupture. The cause lay to a large extent in the general situation of affairs. Paoli had returned from England with a strong predilection for constitutional monarchy and had approved the French Constitution and agreed to serve under it only because it was in accordance with that condition of affairs which he had learned to admire on British soil. But this Constitution had been shattered in its most essential provisions, the new National Convention had abolished royalty, the king had been deposed, accused of treason, tried, and put to death, January 21st, 1793. The government was in the hands of extremists who could give no assurance of stability. Futhermore, at the time of his return to Corsica, Paoli, moved by a sense of gratitude to those who had received him so hospitably during his exile, had stipulated that he should never be called upon to bear arms against Eng- land. Now, after the execution of Louis XVL, war had broken out with England, and Paoli was a French general. He refused to comply with the order to leave Corsica and attach himself to the Army of the South, and when, in reply to this resistance to command, the Convention, on April 2d, 1793, issued a warrant for his arrest (later withdrawn as having been the result of misapprehension), nine tenths of the Corsican population of the island declared themselves for their aged chieftain and 36 Corsican Adventures [1793 against the republican government and its adherents upon the island. Among the latter figured Napoleon Bonaparte. It was the critical moment of his life; two courses lay before him, and he had to choose between them. Another had achieved what it had been his dream to accomplish in Corsica, what he had striven for. Should he attach himself to the Paolists it was certain that there would be nothing but a subordinate part for him. On the other hand, his duty as an officer of the French army imperatively demanded his presence with his regiment. Moreover, all the political opinions which he had entertained up to this time drew him toward the Convention, where the Radicals were continually gaining ground. If there were still a possibility of his mastering Corsica, his ambition could be realized only with the aid of France. Accordingly, early in May, 1793, he broke openly with Paoli, — who had made one more effort to win over the son of his friend Carlo, — and threw himself unreservedly into the arms of the French who had for so long been the objects of his bitter hatred. Shortly afterwards a Corsican popular council declared him an outlaw and the whole Bonaparte family in- famous. It was with difficulty that LjEtitia escaped to Calvi with her children; her house in Ajaccio was sacked and set afire. A final effort was made by Napoleon to conquer Ajaccio. Relying upon the continued devotion of his battalion in the militia, he planned an attack upon the city with the aid of French expeditionary troops. But the enterprise miscarried. On the 11th of June, 1793, he and his family left the island and withdrew to Toulon. His brother Lucien had preceded them by a few weeks, having hurried over to France with a deputation of like-minded men, to denounce Paoli as a con- spirator against the Republic, and at the same time to demand support of the Jacobins. Napoleon had himself made accusa- tions against the aged patriot in a memorial of the 4th of June, and therein cahunniatod and insulted the ideal of his boyhood and youth. His r61e in Corsica has been played to the end. Two motives JEr. 2:i] Napoleon Ceases to be a Corsican 37 had guided him in his revolutionary undertakings there: a strong local patriotism which almost ignored everything which lay beyond the confines of the island, and an uncontrollable impulse toward the acquisition of power and influence by the aid of which he believed himself called to be the deliverer and ruler of his people. Of these two motives one had lost its object. The curse of his own nation had deprived him of his country and annihilated in him every tender feeling which he had hitherto cherished toward it. In truth the desire to con- quer the island was still active within him during the next two years, and many were the schemes which he conceived to carry out this purpose; but these were no longer due to patriotism, but rather to hatred toward the patriots and to fulfil his craving for revenge. When later, in 1796, he actually brought Corsica again under French dominion this feeling also had ceased to exist and his native country could inspire no greater interest in him than, for example, Corfu or Malta. If sympathetic interest in the weal and woe of his own people be a moral element in the nature of a man, Napoleon's subsequent life and acts were lacking in this characteristic. He ceased of necessity to be a Corsican, he never succeeded in becoming a Frenchman. His ambition, likewise, became divested of national feeling; this ambition, hitherto circumscribed by the coast-line of a small island, knew henceforth no bounds. CHAPTER III THE SIEGE OF TOULON AND THE DEFENCE OF THE CONVENTION The revolt of Corsica was but one of a long series of uprisings in opposition to the rule of the Jaicobins which had developed in Paris after the execution of the king. The contest, carried on over the grave of Louis XVI., between the two repubhcan factions of the Convention — the radicals of the Mountain, and the mod- erate Girondists — ended in the defeat of the latter in the summer of 1793. All among them who had not fled were imprisoned and perished on the scaffold. The victors thenceforth governed France by means of that body appointed by the Convention and known as the Cominittee of Public Safety, the members of which, led by Robespierre, relied upon the Jacobin Club and its branches for support. This Jacobin government possessed one quality lacking to its Girondist predecessor and indispensable to success under the extraordinary conditions then existing: unparalleled energy. The Girondists, the greater part of whom were young orators, entirely unequal to the political issues ("des fous extremement honnetes"), had plunged France into an inter- minable war with almost the whole of Europe, unprovided as the country was with either information or resources necessary to encounter the dangers they had conjured up. Their successors in executive power assumed with this war a gigantic problem, and they found its solution, though not without constant resort to illegal measures, unsparing bloodshed, and cruelty. Com- missioners of the Convention travelled throughout the country overseeing the compulsory recruiting among the people and supporting, "in the name of the Representatives of the People," the courts-martial and revolutionary tribunals appointed to 38 Mr. 23] Conservative Reaction in the South 39 punish the refractory and to judge the suspicious. And since those now in power owed their advancement solely to absolute subservience to the will of the lowest class and could preserve their authority only by further concessions to it, there arose in the capital, as in the cities of the provinces, a tyranny of the common people which, not content with threatening and perse- cuting holders of moderate political opinions, eventually accused as "traitors to their country" all wealthy and educated people. Such a Reign of Terror could not long remain unopposed. It was not only in those parts of the country where the partisans of the king and of the old faith had taken up arms against the Parisians that the opposition manifested itself, as in Vendee and Brittany, but also among those who had originally and enthusiastically promoted the revolutionary movement. Such was the case particularly in the towns of southern France, which had zealously taken part in the contest against the old regime, but which now, incited by fugitive Girondists, rose up against radicalism carried to the point of anarchy. In Lyons, Marseilles, and Toulon the Jacobins were overcome by the more moderate and peace-loving element in the commu- nity, and in Provence there arose a central committee which constituted itself an independent government and decreed armed resistance to the terrorism of the Committee of Public Safety. Battalions of insurgents had already advanced from the south as far as Avignon, when the Convention, wliich by the exercise of a little moderation could have easily restored order without bloodshed, eagerly accepted the challenge, proclaimed as the primary object of the government the complete extermination of all domestic opponents and directed its Commissioner, Dubois de Crance, to subjugate Lyons and prevent the concentration of the forces of the insurgents. Dubois hurriedly collected a corps of men from troops of the line and volunteers and sent it under command of his subordinate Carteaux against the rebels at Avignon. In the middle of July, 1793, this force encamped before the ancient residence of the popes. Here aid was forthcoming to Carteaux. He wa.s, to be sure, reinforced only to the extent of a single petty officer of artillery, 40 The Siege of Toulon [1793 but yet a man who was to render no slight service in the expedi- tion against the cities of the south: Captain Bonaparte. After his flight from Corsica, Napoleon had established his family in needy circumstances at La Vallette near Toulon and gone to rejoin his company, stationed at that time in Nice, which had been recently conquered. He bore a certificate from his fellow countryman and friend, Salicetti, Commissioner of the Convention, to the effect that his presence in Corsica had been imperatively necessary during the last few months, and this attestation shielded him from censure. On the 25th of June, 1793, he began his service in the shore battery established on the Riviera. The defences at Nice being inadequate, Napoleon was ordered to Avignon to bring back the cannon parked there. Here he came upon the before-mentioned corps commanded by Carteaux, who straightway took him into his own service, and assigned to him, as officer of artillery, a small flying column. Soon afterwards the insurgents and the troops of the Convention disputed in battle the possession of Avignon, and the forces under Carteaux were successful. Napoleon is said to have aimed the cannon himself in this engagement, and to have brought about the flight of the enemy through his personal efforts. The former statement is not improbably true, the latter is supported only by the assertions of sycophants of a later day. As the result of this victory, the neighbouring towns of Tarascon, Cavaillon, and Beaucaire had to be abandoned forthwith by the insurgents, and the way to Marseilles lay open to the troops of the govern- ment. Napoleon was despatched back to Avignon to organize an artillery park. The leisure afforded him by this task he utiUzed in writing "Le Souper de Beaucaire," in which he dis- cussed the (juestion of the civil war, the object being to convince the Marseillais of the futility of their resistance to the Convention. Two merchants of Marseilles, a native of Nimes, a manufacturer from Montpellier, and a soldier of the line accidentally meet one evening at an inn in Beaucaire, and the soldier, aided by the travelk^rs from Nimes and Montpellier, attempts to prove to one of the merchants from Marseilles that from a military point of view the position of that city is untenable and that its political iEr. 24J " Le Souper de Beaucaire" 41 stand is to be condemned. One passage, particularly, is interest- ing historically, in which, the citizen of Marseilles having adduced the Girondists as testimony in behalf of his views, the soldier, who voices the personal opinions of Napoleon, replies: "The case, as I am satisfied, is, that 'the Mountain,' actuated by public or by party spirit, having proceeded to the harshest extremities against them, having outlawed, imprisoned, and, I will atlinit, ca- lumniated them, the Brissotins (Girondists) were lost without a civil war which would put them into a position for laying down the law to their enemies. It is then in reality to them that your war is useful. Had they merited their early reputation they would have thrown down their arms upon the formulation of the Constitution, they would have sacrificed their own interests to public welfare; but it is easier to cite Decius than to imitate him." To this the traveller from Marseilles makes answer that he and his friends also desired the Republic, but wanted a Con- stitution formulated by representatives who were free to act; they also desired liberty, but liberty as granted by worthy deputies; what they did not want was a Constitution favouring pillage and anarchy. To this Napoleon makes repl}' through the manufacturer from Montpellier, who reproaches the insur- gents with rebellion and counter-revolution, "for," he declares, "the Convention is the centre of unity, the real sovereign, espe- cially when the nation is divided." Hardly was this piece finished when the Commissioners of the Convention arrived in Avignon. These were his friend Salicetti, the younger Robespierre, brother of the autocrat at Paris, and the deputy Gasparin; they were on their way to the Army of the South. Napoleon was introduced to the others by Salicetti, and his penetration and culture charmed Robespierre, with whom he from this time entered into near relations. The "Souper" was listened to with attention and satisfaction by the Commissioners, who at once published it at the expense of the state. In this wise Napoleon made his entrance into the political movement. Meanwhile Carteaux had marched upon Marseilles and, after a victorious engagement, retaken the city for the Con- 42 The Siege of Toulon [1793 vention. The "treason " of the inhabitants toward their country- was punished with frightful barbarity. After a short interval the march was resumed toward Toulon. The conquest of this port was the more essential as the insurgents there had opened negotiations with England and had actually already delivered into her hands the fleet which lay before the town and was the best in France. In the siege laid to this strong- hold Napoleon was now to play a distinguished part. During an engagement in the neighbourhood of Toulon, one of the superior officers in the artillery had been wounded, and on the 19th of October, 1793, Napoleon was promoted to the command of a battalion in the Second Regiment of Artillery; from this time he was able to act with greater independence. To add to this his new friends had made every effort to recommend him to the Convention, representing him as the only man in the besieging army capable of projecting a plan of operations. He himself had addressed a memorial to the Committee of Public Safety in which he complained of the neglected condition of his branch of the service, and asked for the appointment of an artillery general with full powers, "who, by virtue of his very- rank, would increase respect and make an impression upon a lot of ignorant fellows on the staff with whom one has to be continually laying down first principles and coming to terms in order to carry out plans approved both by theory and by experience." Carteaux was soon afterward removed from his position and the chief command given Major-General Dugommier, whose coolness, perseverance, and military perception Napoleon com- mends; General Dutcil was entrusted with the command of the artillery, while Napoleon himself was put in charge of the battery establishetl to the west of the city. He proposes now — this is the plan which he submitted to the Council of War — to capture the peninsula of C6pet lying to the southwest_, from this point to clear the harbour, and by this roundabout way to bring the city to surrender. His plan having been adopted by the generals, he at once set about the task with the greatest zeal. It was not long before his guns were placed in the desired ffiT. 24] The Fall of Toulon 43 locations; a sally on the part of the English was repulsed on the 30th of November, and for his Eno contluct on this occasion Bonaparte was appointed coloneI|_On the 17th of December Fort I'Eguillette, and with it the before-mentioned peninsular fell into his powder. When this gain was followed up by a con- centric attack of all the divisions upon the defences of the city, the besieged Toulonese, menaced with certain destruction by Napoleon's batteries, dared make no further energetic resist- ance. The English and Spaniards, allies of the insurgents, promptly embarked their troops and sailed out of the harbour, taking with them many fugitive inhabitants of the city. On the 19th of December the victors made their entrance into Toulon, and, in mad rage for vengeance, as at Marseilles and Lyons, relentlessly condemned all who were under suspicion or who were in any w^ay compromised. Hundreds of such were assembled together and shot down. It was the intention of Fr^ron, one of the Commissioners of the Convention, to leave not a single rebel ahve, but this was opposed by Dugommier, and one readily accepts the statement that Bonaparte also counselled moderation. He was not inclined to the exercise of useless cruelty, and was animated in no degree by that spirit of bloody fanaticism to which in that awful year such innumer- able victims were sacrificed. While the part played b}' Bonaparte before Toulon was one of great importance, he occupied but an inconspicuous position; he was nothing more than commander of a battalion. He had none the less rendered great service to the government through the strategy which he advised. An attack from the north and east would not have led to such prompt results, and upon this pohit much depended just at this time when the allied foes of France were beginning to turn the closest attention to Toulon, when already the Enghsh had despatched an expedition, pri- marily intended for Vendue, toward southern France, and the Austrian court had determined to send forces thither. Accord- ingly it was but a well-earned acknowledgment of his services when Napoleon was now appointed brigadier-general of artillery by a provisional decree of the Commissioners of the Conven- 44 The Siege of Toulon [1794 tion on the 22d of December, 1793, a nomination afterwards confirmed by the Committee of Pubhc Safety. When on this occasion the authorities demanded the neces- sary record of his hfe he disclaimed all nobility of origin. It could but have told against him with the Jacobins, to whom he had alhed himself, and in whose service he was employing his great talents. Whether he was really in sympathy with them, whether he inwardly espoused their cause, or whether it was due to anything more than ambition that he cast in his lot with the Radicals, is not made clear by this act. Once, — shortly after his appointment as general, — unmindful of the prevailing radi- calism and on purely strategic grounds, he recommended the rebuilding of the Marseilles Bastille, Fort St. Nicholas. He was at once declared "suspect," and called upon to justify him- self before the Convention. Salicetti had much difficulty in disposing of the matter. From that time Napoleon lost no opportunity of showing himself a zealous republican. Says Mile. Robespierre in her memoranda: "Bonaparte was a repub- lican, I should say even that he was a republican of the Moun- tain, at least he made that impression upon me from his manner of regarding things at the time when I was at Nice (1794). Later his victories turned his head and made him aspire to rule over his fellow citizens, but then, while he was but a general of artillery in the Army of Italy, he was a believer in thoroughgoing liberty and genuine equality." The younger brother of the dread Presi- dent of the Committee of Public Safety recommended him in April, 1794, as a man of transcendent merit, and reposed such confidence in him that the initiated called him the "privy counsellor" of the Commissioner. Yet the latter did not fail to add to his praise this observation: "He is a Corsican, and offers only the guaranty of a man of that nation who has with- stood the petting of Paoli and whose property has been laid waste by that traitor." But Robespierre had absolute confidence in Napoleon's military counsels and discussed with him and Ricord, the Com- missioner, a secret plan of operations for the so-called "Army of Italy." That portion of the French forces was encamped ^T. 24] The Fall of Robespierre 45 on the Riviera, engaged in war against the allied Sardinians and Austrians, who occupied the heights of the Apennines. The revolt in southern France had exhausted the land, and the Army of Italy was compelled to draw its supplies from the neutral territoiy of Genoa. Two problems presented themselves in the management of this part of the army: first, to protect these indispensable importations against interception and attack by the allies, and, second, by some fortunate offensive movement to clear the way into the rich plain of Piedmont. This plan of offensive operations was elaborated in several ways by Bona- parte, who had been detailed as general of artillery to the Army of Italy in May, 1794. In July he himself went on a mission to Genoa, officially to treat with the Doge on the subject of the condition of roads and coasts, but secretly to investigate the fortifications of Savona as a possible gateway of invasion. Two aides, Marmont and Junot, — the subsequent Dukes of Ragusa and Abrantes, — accompanied him; he was himself filled with joyful hope of being able soon to carry his plans into execution as General-in-chief . But too soon these high-soaring dreams were to come to naught. When, at the end of July, he returned to Nice, affairs in France had taken a complete change. Robespierre, who had gradually rid himself of his rivals in the Convention, Danton, Hebert, and their adherents, and had been more and more openly aiming to secure the dictatorship, was overthrowTi by a coalition of the radical and conservative elements of the Con- vention and condemned to the scaffold, July 27th, 1794 (Ther- midor 9th). With him fell the government to which Napoleon had but recently offered his services. His fate could not but be affected by this change, particularly as the plan of cam- paign upon which he had been labouring had been under dis- cussion between him and Robespierre without the knowledge of the Convention and the Committee of Public Safety. The Jaco- bins, regardful of their own safety upon the fall of their powerful leader, sought to protect themselves in the denunciation of others. And thus it came to pass that Salicetti accused his fellow countryman Bonaparte to the Convention of being 46 The Siege of Toulon [1794 "plan-maker" to the Dictator. Napoleon was deprived of his commission as general, and on the 12th of August, 1794, im- prisoned in Fort Carre.* What a tempest of distracting re- flections must have assailed him here! In the midst of his ambitious hopes he found himself paralyzed and suddenly cast out of the way whereby so many had already arrived with rapidity at power and influence. The reform in the organiza- tion of the army, begun in 1793 under Dubois de Crance, a member of the Convention, with its principle of universal mili- tary obligation and its revised list of officers, had already begun to bear fruit. At the end of the year 1792 there had been not more than a hundred and twelve thousand men of the regular troops in France, by the summer of 1794 there were not less than seven hundred and thirty thousand, animated by a fatal- istic patriotism, controlled by rigorous discipline, and com- manded by generals whose abilities, developed by equal com- petition in the open field, were brought to recognition with unexampled rapidity. At the head of the Army of the North stands Pichegru, who had at one time superintended as sergeant the little cadets at Brienne; he was now driving the enemy out of France and conquering the Austrian Netherlands. Jourdan, one of the volunteer officers of 1792, is in command of the Army of the Sambre-et-Meuse, fighting victoriously against" the Austrians in the battle of Fleurus, June 26th, 1794, while the decisive attack is led by General Marceau, a man of Napoleon's own age. Another, Hoche, his senior by a year, at the beginning of the Revolution a mere subaltern, had, as general-in-chief, vanquished the Austrians at Weissenburg and driven them out of Alsace in December of the preceding year, thereby covering * He may have anticipated this outcome, for he wrote a letter a few days previous to his arrest to 'rilly, the French Charg6 d'Affaires at Genoa, who would, as he knew, make report in Paris concerning it. In this he speaks of his relations with the younger Hohespierre Jind adds: "I was somewhat affected b}' the catastrophe of Kobespierre the younger, to whom I was attached and whom I believed to be pure; but, had he been my father, I would have stabbed him myself if he had aspired to tyranny." Napoleon III. considered it advisable to omit this letter from the official edition of the correspondence of his imcle. ^T. 25] Napoleon's Appeal 47 himself with fame and honour. Following these was a long succession of others: Saint-Cyr, in 1792 still a captain of volun- teers, was now general of division; Bcrnadotte, sergeant- major at the opening of the Revolution, commanded in 1794 likewise a division; Kleber, a volunteer in the year 1792, had, a year later, reached the same rank; and so on. And he, the most ambitious of them all, fully conscious of his abilities and qualifications, saw himself shut out of this circle, perhaps for- ever, and, moreover, threatened by an accusation which had already cost many their lives in that terrible year. But he was not the man to give himself up to despair. One thing already in his favour was that he had not been sent to Paris. In a letter addressed to the Commissioners of the Con- vention, he attempted above all to manifest his unqualified patriotism. "Have I not," it reads, "been attached to its principles ever since the beginning of the Revolution? Have I not been seen in the struggle here with the domestic enemy, or there as a soldier against the foreign foe? I have sacrificed my residence in my own department, I have abandoned my property, I have lost all for the Republic. . . . Ought I then to be confounded with the enemies of my country; and are pay-iots heedlessly to lose a general who has not been unservice- able to the Republic? Should Representatives put the govern- ment under necessity of being unjust and impolitic? Hear me, make way with the oppression which surrounds me, and restore to me the esteem of the patriots. An hour later, if the evil- minded desire my life, I will yield it to them gladly; I care so little for it, and I have so often wearied of it. Yes, only the idea that it may still be of service to my country helps me to bear the burden of it with courage." Necessity had taught him to use the word "Patrie" in speaking of France; his own country had become to him merely a " D6partement." The letter produced the desired effect. Furthermore, Sali- cetti had come to the conclusion that he was himself no longer in danger and again took up the defence of his fellow countryman, whose papers he examined personally and declared to be free 4^ The Siege of Toulon [1794 from anything of a suspicious character. On the 20th of August Napoleon was released from custody. A few weeks later, on the 14th of September, he was rehabilitated with his rank of general, and in the same month was permitted to take part in the offensive movement of the Army of Italy by means of which the Austrians were driven back from the crest of the mountains of the Riviera as far as Dego and Acqui. Upon the return of the French to the coast Bonaparte was avssigned the post of commander of artillery in the expedition fitting out for the reconquest of Corsica. There the last remaining French strongholds had fallen into the hands of the English: San Firenze on the 17th of February, Bastia on the 24th of May, and finally Calvi, on the 1st of August. In the interior of the island the British had established themselves somewhat earlier. Paoli was invited by King George III. to come to England. Influenced by the English, a popular meeting was held at Corte on the 18th of June, 1794, in which the Corsicans declared their island a con- stitutional monarchy under the protection of England and under Sir Gilbert Elliot as viceroy. Upon hearing of these events the new Committee of Public Safety at Paris undertook once more to wrest the department from the enemy. But while the division of troops intended for this service stood ready by the end of autumn, the wretched condition of the navy delayed the expedition into the following February. Napoleon in one of his letters represented the prospective conquest as a mere military "promenade," but the result was far from justify- ing this assumption. When in March, 1795, the French fleet at last set sail to clear the Corsican waters of English craft, an encounter which took place between Cape Corso and Livorno ended disastrously to the French. Two of their ships fell into the hands of their adversary and the remainder were obliged to retreat into the Gulf of Saint-Juan. After this rebuff the expedition was abandoned; the troops already on board the transports were disembarked and detailed to the Army of Italy; Corsica was, for the present, lost. Again Napoleon was without a command. Unexpectedly .ET..25] The Reaction from the Terror 49 came the order to betake himself to the Army of the West. On the 2d of May, 1795, he left Marseilles; on the 10th he reached Paris. He had no intention of leaving that city for some time. After the events of the 27th of July, 1794 (Thcrmidor 9th), the more calm and cautious elements of the population of Paris had waked, as from a state of torpor, into life. As if with the death of one man all terror had ended, they now fearlessly expressed their opinions and set forth their demands. In newspapers and pamphlets, no longer under any restraint of censorship, and in all public resorts of the capital the abhorrence in which the Jacobins were held came to unreserved expression. For the first time the number of their victims began to be appreciated. There were but few families who had not suffered under the iron yoke; many among them had lost one or more members, many had lost their property during the Terror. The opening of the prisons brought day by day new horrors to light and increased the indignation of those who had suffered injury. In the Convention itself, where the factions of the "Mountain'' had formed an alliance to depose the Dictator Robespierre, one of these, composed of the former adherents of Danton, with- drew from the Jacobins. They styled themselves Thermidorians, as they claimed the merit of having brought about the decisive step of that day. Their leaders. Merlin and Tallien, Fr^ron and Barras, sought to come into touch witli the moderate element of the Centre against the extreme Left. The banished Girond- ists were recalled to the Convention, and the readiest tools of the fallen government, after making a futile attempt at resistance, expiated their offences on the scaffold. Just at this time Napoleon arrived in Paris. Hardly a favourable moment in which to make an appearance for a man recently under accusation of being a sharer in the designs of the abhorred tyrant. \'ery likely he had not pictured to him- self so complete a change in the situation of affairs. For his outward circumstances this was exceedingly unfavourable. The mere order to betake himself to the Army of the West and serve under Hoche, who was barely his elder, as simple brigadier- ^6 The Siege of Toulon [1795 general, was intolerable to his boundless ambition. And this in a war against peasants and irregular troops where little opportunity would offer for his art to display itself! He was determined not to obey the order, and sought above all to gain time and await the outcome of a new move on the part of the Jacobins, for he still belonged to that party. But this new insurrection against the Convention, that of the 1st Prairial (20th of May, 1795), ended in the defeat of the rebellious Jaco- bins and increased the difficulty of Bonaparte's situation. He was transferred, as being a supernumerary in the artillery, to the infantry, and received peremptory orders to depart for the west. If he now hoped to maintain himself under the new condition of things, he must cut loose from the radicals and try to come into touch with the Thermidorians. He under- took this feat and was successful in accomplishing it. At no time did Fortune completely forsake him. It was certainly a happy coincidence for him that two of the leaders of the party now in power, Fr^ron and Barras, had, as Commissioners of the Convention, been present at the council of war held before Toulon, when the proposals of the young captain of artillery had been accepted. To them, at least, the conduct of Bonaparte, in serving a government they were themselves at that time endeavouring to uphold, could not appear blameworthy. They accordingly received him well and lent him their support. Those plans which Napoleon now submitted to them were essentially his projects of an offensive war which he had com- municated a year before to Robespierre, but with certain altera- tions imposed by the general political situation. Prussia had retired from the list of the enemies of France and had concluded a separate treaty of peace, April 5th, 1795. Negotiations had already been entered into with Spain which were soon also to lead to peace. There remained on the Continent but one of the great powers as adversary, but Austria was making prepa- rations to prosecute the war with all possible vigour. These changes in the situation of affairs necessitated the modifica- tion of the young general's plan of campaign. The year before it had been his proposal to have the Army of Italy take iEr. 25] Plan of an Italian Campaign 51 the offensive, co-operating with tlie troops in Germany, accord- ing to which plan the weight of action would fall upon the last- named country. "It is Germany," said he in the memorial addressed to Robespierre, "which should be overpowered; that accomplished, Spain and Italy will fall of themselves. . . . The defensive system should be adopted on the Spanish frontier, and the offensive system on that of Piedmont. Our blows should be directed against Germany, never against Spain or Italy. If we have great success, we should not allow ourselves to be thrown off the scent by penetrating into Italy while Ger- many still presents a formidable and unweakened front." * Now that, through the withdrawal of Prussia, the power of resistance on the German side had become weaker, he pro- poses striking the decisive blow against the Austrians in Italy. For this purpose the force of the Italian Army should be sub- stantially increased, an achievement easily possible by drawing for that purpose upon the troops set free by the peace with Spain. The Riviera having been seized and secured as far as Vado, the army thus reinforced would press forward along the coast and across the mountains toward Piedmont, cutting off the King of Sardinia, known to be already desirous of peace, from Austria and winning him over to the cause of France. Once in the plains the army could support itself by levying requisitions. If the expedition were started at the most fa- vourable time, in February, j\Iantua could be conquered before the end of spring, and by the termination of this first campaign the army could have reached Trent. In a second campaign, united with the Army of the Rhine, it would penetrate into the heart of Austria and dictate terms of peace. Such was the daring plan which a year later he was to carry into execution with amazing abihty, laying thereby the founda- tion of his fame and power. This plan was not entirely original. For a great part of it he was indebted to the profound study which he had made of military history, particularly of the cam- paign in Italy conducted by Count de Maillebois in 1745. This campaign had been the object of his conscientious study while * Jung, " Bonaparte," II. 43G. r2 The Siege of Toulon [1795 captain of artillery at Nice, as we are assured by a credible witness.* This plan was based upon his knowledge of a territory which he had studied minutely during the last few years, and of an adversary who was no stranger to him. And now he was called upon to remove himself from both in order to play a secondary part in Vendee, while perhaps another would be carrying out these plans of his in Italy ! He could not submit to such a fate. Hardly had the conservative Aubry, who had been the occasion of his transference to the infantry, retired from the Committee of Public Safety, when he made bold, relying upon the pro- tection of his friends, to make an energetic protest against such an arrangement. He says in this document: " General Bona- parte relies upon the justice of the members of the Committee of Public Safety to reinstate him into his former position, and to spare him the pain, after having commanded the artillery under the most unfavourable conditions during the war and having contributed to its most brilliant successes, of seeing his place occupied by men who have always kept in the rear, who are absolute strangers to our successes, unknown in our armies, and who have the impudence to present themselves to-day to grasp from you the fruit of victory which they have not been willing to incur risk in obtaining." He was so much the more confident of a favourable reply to this complaint as Aubry's successor, Doulcet de Pontecoulant, had accepted his plan of operations and had sent it to the generals commanding the Italian Army for consideration. He was temporarily assigned to serve on the committee having the duty of directing the armies and plans of campaign, and was full of happy confidence. The same hope that had been frustrated by the sudden down- fall of Robespierre animated him once more. He writes at * See the excellent article ",Sur la Campagne de Napoleon en I'Ann^e 1796," in the third supplement of the " Militiir-Wochenblatt," 1889, where it is shown that the young gciieral-in-chiof followed the " Histoire des Canipagnes du Mar6chal de Maillebois en 1745 et 1746," by Pezay (Paris, 177.5), with regard to tht; ruling idea which was to separate the Piedmont- ese from the Austrian^, impose peace upon the former, and drive back the latter as far aa the Adige. ^T. 26] The Plan Rejected c-7 this time: "My offensive plans have been adopted; we shall soon have serious action in Lonibardy." Under date of Sep- tember 8th, 1795, he writes to Joseph: "I see nothing but pleasant prospects before me, and, should it be otherwise, one must nevertheless live in the present. A man of courage may disregard the future." And "otherwise" it resulted, and his courage was soon put to a new and severe test. It was his fate henceforward to cut his way through ceaseless vicissitudes of good and evil fortune. The end of Doulcct de Pontecoulant's term of service on the Committee of PubUc Safety arrived, in accordance with the law of rotation in office, before the protest of the young general had been acted upon. In him the supphant lost his strongest supporter. Nor was he without personal enemies, and when the time for decision of his case arrived, his petition was rejected by the officials of the War Department, and his name was again stricken from the list of French generals on duty, on account of his refusal to proceed to the post assigned him. (Decree of September 15th, 1795.) And now once more his brightest hopes had been dashed. Without a position at a period whose uncertainties had already been the ruin of thousands; without money, for, as Marmont relates, "the small fund of bank-bills which he had brought back from the army " had been lost in unfortunate speculations; without credit in a financial crisis in which by the end of July, 1795, paper money had depreciated to one fortieth of its face value, he was impotent to help liis family again in need through the changed poUtical situation. He had been mistaken: one cannot always "live in the present." And what made his situation appear the more gloomy was the fact that a new and great danger was already imminent. The royahsts and the liberals of '89 and '91 menaced the hated Convention in which his friends sat. If they should be successful, he and his friends were lost together. The last revolts of the Jacobins had incUned the factions of the centre of the Convention, the Thennidorians and indepen- dents, — to use a modem expression, — farther toward the right. 54 The Siege of Toulon [1795 The new Constitution, drafted during the summer of 1795, was moderate in character and was to render a return to the cir- cumstances of the last few years forever impossible. First of all, the executive and legislative powers were no longer to be united in the hands of the national representatives. The legislative power was to be entrusted to two bodies instead of one: a "Council of Five Hundred," and a "Council of Ancients" (An- ciens) numbering two hundred and fifty members; while the executive authority was to be vested in a "Directory" of five men who must be at least forty years of age. One third of the members of each of these legislative councils was to retire an- nually, their places to be filled by election. It did not come within the domain of the executive body to propose bills, nor could it refuse to execute laws passed by the legislature; one of the Directors must retire yearly, and the outgoing member was not eligible for re-election until five years had elapsed. The Directors, to whom the ministers of departments were sub- ordinated, were chosen by the Ancients from a list drawn up by the Five Hundred. They were to have the charge of Foreign Affairs, Finance, War, Justice, and Affairs of the Interior. The Constitution accorded liberty of the press, of worship, of com- merce, and of trade; it extended its protection to home and property, but clubs were forbidden and political societies were tolerated only on condition that no public meetings should be held and that there should be no affiliation between them; no petitions of the masses, no banding together of the people was allowed; the Emigres were forbidden to return home, and the Jacobins were prohil)ited from reappearing at their club. These were the distinctive features of the Constitution of the year III (1795). It was as httle in keeping with the desires of the Jacobins as with those of the Royalists. The moderation of the parties in power tended rather to convince the latter that the hour for them to strike had come. Already there was talk of restoring the monarchy and of proclaiming the son of the decapitated king as constitutional sovereign under the name of Louis XVII., when the child died, worn out by the inhuman treatment to which he had been subjected during the preceding Mr. 26] The Royalist Reaction 55 years. At once the partisans of the Bourbons turned to Louis XVIII., the emigrant brother of the former king, who from Verona was flooding France with his unskilful agents. The agitation was accompanied by outrages on the part of the royahsts in the provinces almost equal to the horrors of the Reign of Terror. In Vendue the civil war, but just quenched by Hoche, blazed up anew. In Paris itself the common people, who were royalists, or at least of the moderate party, armed themselves against the Convention. These events made a deep impression upon that body; its republican elements, who recognized that with the loss of control their very existence was threatened, imitcd and decreed that two thirds of the new legislative body of Five Hundred must be composed of members of the Convention, the remainder to be elected without restriction. This transition decree as well as the Constitution was to be submitted to the people of France for approval by vote. While they thus secured for themselves a majority in the new con- stitutional legislature these members of the Convention believed also that they were assuring in the best way the new dispensa- tion and preventing the return of the old monarchical govern- ment. To protect themselves further against probable attack from the Paris populace, the Thermidorians united once more with the Jacobin deputies, gathered to the capital a few thousand soldiers of the line and formed a "battalion of patriots" from those brigand elements upon whose pikes the throne of Ter- rorism had been erected. This last precaution increased beyond measure the wrath of the Parisians who were opposed to the Convention. The Constitution they were ready to accept, it is true, but they rejected the additional decree, and when, in spite of their re- monstrance, the Convention promulgated, as law, the new Constitution including the transition provisions, the citizens from forty-four out of the forty-eight sections revolted, assembled some thirty thousand men of the National Guard, and on October 4th successfully resisted General Menou in command of the troops of the Convention, who in consequence of this defeat was charged with treason and removed. The 56 The Siege of Toulon [1795 situation of the legislature was distinctly critical. Barely six to eight thousand men were available with which to confront the militia of the National Guard, and absolutely no artillery. The Convention declared itself a permanent body and appointed from the Commissioners of Government a committee of five who were empowered to maintain order. Barras was one of these, and as he had formerly been an officer in the navy he assumed charge of the military part of the task. He was indeed courageous, but he was without the requisite breadth of view for the emergency and shrank from extraordinary efforts for which he did not feel himself equal. On the same day that he was appointed he called to his assistance his friend Bonaparte and discussed with him the problem of protecting the legislature against an attack which had been planned for the ensuing day. Barras having been made commander-in-chief of the Army of the Interior as the result of a stormy night-session of 4th-5th October, he induced the Committee to appoint Napoleon second in command and invest him with full power necessary to the defence of the Convention. In later life Napoleon gave Madame de R^musat the following account of this decisive moment of his career : * " One evening I was at the theatre, it was the 12th Vendemiaire (October 4th, 1795). I overheard some one say that there was to be a 'row' ('du train') on the following day; you know that was the cus- tomary expression of the Parisians who had come to view with indifference changes in the government, since they did not in- terfere with their business, their pleasures, or even their dinner. After the Reign of Terror they were satisfied with anything which did not disturb their way of Uving. They were saying around me that the sittings of the Assembly were permanent; I hurried thither, I found nothing but confusion, hesitation. From the depths of the hall a voice was suddenly raised which said: 'If any one knows the address of General Bonaparte, he is requested to go and say to him that his presence is desired by the Conunittee of the Assembly.' I have always liked to take note of the element of chance in certain events; this determined * Mme. de R6musat. " M6moires." I. 269. ^T. 26] Napoleon's Account 57 me; I went to the Committee; I found there several deputies who were quite distracted; among others Cambac6r6s.* They expected to be attacked on the morrow and did not know what course to pursue. My advice was asked; I repUed by demand- ing cannon. This suggestion appalled them; the whole night passed without coming to any conclusion. The next morning brought bad news. Thereupon the whole affair was turned over to me, after which they began to deUberate whether after all they had the right to repel force by force. * Do you expect/ I said, 'that the people are going to give you permission to fire upon them? I am now involved, since you have nominated me; it is no more than just that you should let me act according to my own discretion.'" Unfortunately we are compelled to accept with great mis- trust all accounts given by Napoleon of events in his own life. He seldom restricted himself to the exact truth, least of all where his purpose was to disguise his obvious ambition in the garb of unconstrained and disinterested conduct. Who is going to believe that the intimate of Barras and Tallien first learned of the permanent sittings of the Assembly on the decisive night while innocently attending the theatre? No one. Even though we had no knowledge of a certain note from Barras, dated on the 3d of October, summoning Napoleon to meet him, to the suspension of all other business, on the morning of the 4th of October. It is nothing unusual to encounter in the Ufe of this ambitious man an attempt to make his decisive measures appear to be the work of the last moment and a sudden inspira- tion of his genius. In the present instance also he would have one beUeve that the really masterly arrangements for the de- fence of the Convention were devised only on the morning of the 5th and immediately carried into execution. But it would be safe to conclude that everything had been carefully weighcil and considered on the previous day and the essentials deter- mined upon when the deputies gave Napoleon permission to "act according to his own discretion." * One of the leaders of the moderates who appreciated Napoleon's genius. Cambac(!'res liad recommended him to Doulcet. 58 The Siege of Toulon [1795 It was but natural that he should insist upon the use of energetic measures. His fate was linked to that of the Con- vention. As a good artilleryman he knew the power of his weapon. The National Guard had no cannon. Everything depended upon getting the ordnance from an artillery park outside the city to the Tuileries. A spirited cavalry officer, Murat, the future brother-in-law of Napoleon, was despatched, doubtless at the suggestion of the latter, to assure their safe- conduct before daybreak. He was successful, and when, on the afternoon of the 5th of October (13th Vendemiaire), the National Guard advanced upon the Tuileries where the Con- vention was in session, they found it already flanked by guns behind which the general in command had posted infantry and cavalry. Seeing the numerical superiority of the sections, the deputies wavered and were disposed to parley with the insurgents. But a shot was fired which gave the signal for battle. It will never be known whether this shot came from the side of the assail- ants or the defenders, or whether, perchance, in obedience to a secret order from Napoleon. The police reports on the occur- rences of this day are missing from among the archives of Paris. At once the strong position held by the insurgents at the church of Saint-Roch was carried, and the street of Saint-Honore effec- tively raked by cannon, the bank of the Seine was swept clean by volleys of grapeshot, and the Guards were driven back during the night of the 5th of October to the most remote quar- ters of the city, where they were easily overmastered on the fol- lowing day by separate detachments of troops of the line. Napoleon had saved the Convention and the Convention showed its gratitude. In the session of October 10th, upon the motion of Barras and Freron, his appointment as second in command of the Army of the Interior was confirmed. But this did not satisfy Napoleon. He understood striking while the iron was hot. He first of all urged his reassignment to ser- vice in the artillery, then — in a petition of the 16th of October — he requested for himself the connnission of gencral-of-division, and on the 26tli of the same month ho was appointed com- mander-in-chief of the Army of the Interior in the place of Bt. 26] Napoleon's Belief in Fate 59 Barras, who now at the close of the session assumed the duties of Director in the new government. But a few weeks before without a position and with forbid- ding prospects, a suppUcant for a mission to Constantinople, he had suddenly attained to one of the highest military posi- tions in France. It was not without cause that he wTote to Joseph on the day after the 13th Vend^miaire: "Fortune is on my side." It is said that destiny can make fatalists of men; it produced in Napoleon, with its sudden changes of favour, a man who from that time forth journeyed through hfe with full confidence in his star. "Au destin" became his motto, and this was engraved in the wedding-ring of her w^hom he chose to become his partner in life. But this reliance on fate was not bhnd. Whenever fortune appeared to hesitate, he had learned to put forward the whole of his own reckless power, his abundant talent, and — that heritage of his nation — subtlety and cunning. Fortune did not make a slave of him, he understood controlling it and making it serve his ends. Certainly the paths by which he climbed unremittingly to power, if regarded merely from the standpoint of a moralist, were not always of the straightest, the means employed to accomplish his purposes sometimes equivocal and objectionable, and if history had but to pass judgment upon the way in which such assertive individuals come to dominate over others, words could not be found harsh enough to charac- terize the conduct of this man. But there yet remains the far more important question: how was the acquired power utilized and turned to account? Only in the answer to this question can be found the means of deciding upon the historical signifi- cance of Napoleon Bonaparte. CHAPTER IV JOSEPHINE The downfall of Robespierre and his associates had brought about not merely a political revolution, but also a profound social change. It did more than simply to replace one of the political factions in power by another. The population itself, heretofore paralyzed by terror, now came forward to demand and recover the freedom of action of which it had so long been deprived. Every one rejoiced to feel that his life was safe once more and the general joy was unbounded. The theatres were crowded, and poets, enthusiastic in the cause of peace and order, lashed the overthrown rule of arbitrary cruelty, eliciting unprece- dented applause from the audience. From the houses and apartments, in which they had been living in retirement, the timid thronged into the streets, rejoicing in their deliverance from self-imposed captivity; and in the open squares where the guillotine had but recently done its cruel work, thousands of happy couples joined in the whirling dance. In the salons of the people of rank assembled a heterogeneous company of up- starts of both sexes who tried to assume the manner and appear- ance of the aristocracy of the " ancien regime." Everywhere reigned joy and pleasure, with gallantry and levity, corruption and undisguised indulgence. The iron bondage of the Reign of Terror had deprived womankind of her ruling influence oyer the other sex. Now u})on its overthrow they again exercised the power of their charms. As if to make amends for the lost years of sway, they now attempted to captivate the men by the practice of all the arts of seductive beauty, their dress was designed to reveal much of the person, and conversation became more than ever frivolous and animated. Those who like Madame de Stael had wit, brought that also into play. The other leading ladies 60 Mr. 2G] The Revival ot Social Life 6 1 of the new society, Madame Tallicn, the beautiful Madame Recamier, Mesdames de Bcauharnais, Hamehn, and others were the centre of the society which gathered about the victors of Thermidor. Barras, the hero of the daj^, was the idol of this female throng, but not the only object of their devotion. No man however uncouth and unsociable could resist the charm of this newly-awakened life of heedless enjoyment. One of those attracted and dazzled by this gay existence was the young General Bonaparte, the author of the "Dialogue sur I'Amour, " who held the omnipotence of love in contempt. We Icnow that his interests led him also to seek the society of Barras and Tallien ; but he failed to acquire in their salons such polish as to make him a particularly attractive member of society. Care- lessly dressed and indifferent as to his personal appearance, with nothing engaging in his looks or manners, he attracted attention only by his singular appearance. The wife of his friend Bourri- erme says of him that he was ill-dressed and negligent in his toilet, his character cold and often gloomy, his smile forced and often badly out of place. To be sure he could relate anecdotes of his campaigns in a way which was sprightly and charming, though sometimes tinged with cynicism. He gave way at times to outbursts of wild hilarity which gave offence and repelled those who were about him. At the theatre, w^hile the rest of the audience was convulsed with laughter, he would remain entirely unresponsive antl change no line of his face, or he would sit brood- ing with a gloomy and sullen expression as if totally unaffected by what was taking place before him. And yet we know from his own account that the unrestrained conviviality of this new life with its surroundings of splendour and beauty made a pro- found impression upon him. His letters bear witness to this. " Luxury , pleasure, and the arts are reviving here in an astonishing way," he writes from Paris to his brother Joseph in July, 1795. "Carriages and people of fashion reappear, or rather they remem- b(5r only as a long dream that they had ever ceased to shine. All that can help to pass the time and make life agreeable is here crowded together. One is torn away from incongruous reflec- tions, and indeed how is it possible to regard anything in a dismal 62 Josephine [1795 way in the midst of such ready wit and such a whirlwind of activ- ity? The women are everywhere : at the theatre, on the prome- nades, at the hbraries. In the study of the scholar you find charming young ladies. Here alone among all the places of the earth do they deserve to control the rudder; and the men are all crazy about them, think of nothing but them, and live only for them. A woman needs just six months of Paris to know what is due to her and what the extent of her dominion." A few days later he adds: "This great people gives itself up to pleasure; dances, plays, and women, who are here the most beautiful in the world, are the questions of chief importance." On the 9th of August he writes: "Life is pleasant here and much inclined to gaiety; it seems as if every one were seeking to indemnify himself for his sufferings in the past, and the uncer- tainty of the future prompts them to be unsparing for the pleas- ures of the present. Good-bye, my dear fellow; do not be anxious about the future, be happy in the present and gay, and learn to enjoy yourself." What a transformation in this solitary nature! He who had hitherto preferred seclusion, for whom society had no charms, was now its captive. Not only that, but woman, who had become all-powerful, cast her spell upon him. He was seriously considering taking unto himself a wife and beginning family life. He was then at work in the Central Committee, full of hope and with bright prospects before him. A year previous Joseph had married Julie Clary, the daughter of the rich silk-merchant of Versailles; Napoleon had her sister D6sir6e in mind. He wrote to Joseph requesting him to make advances for him to this lady, "for," as he says in his letter, "I've taken the notion to have a home of my own." His removal from the army on September 15th put an end to this plan for the time being, and the outcome of the 13th Vend6- miaire turned the thoughts of the suitor in another direction.* Now that he had made such a position for himself why * Three years later D6sir6e married General Bernadotte, and, after a further lapse of twenty years, ascended the throne of Sweden as the wife of Charles XIV. Mt.2c,] The Earlier Life of Josephine 63 should he not choose from among those brilUant women who were leaders of fashion at the capital and who had influence and prestige? There was, for instance, Madame Permon, a widow. She was of very ancient lineage, known in Corsica, and had been moreover a friend of his father's. This lady was by many years his senior, but wealthy and highly esteemed. It is said that Napoleon made proposals to her, but was rejected. Shortly afterwards another woman inspired him with genuine passion — a passion as real and true as his soul was susceptible of. The object of this affection was the Marquise Josephine, widow of General de lieauharnais. Josephine, the eldest of the three daughters of Joseph Gas- pard Tascher de la Pagerie, was born June 23d, 1763, on the Island of Martinique, where her father, formerly a captain of the Royal Dragoons, managed his estates. The family was originally of Chateauneuf in Thimerais (central France). Educated in Paris at Port-Royal, Josephine was married in 1779 to the young Viscount Alexandre de Beauharnais, son of the fomier governor of Martinique, who had long been an acquaintance and friend of the Tascher family. The first fruit of this marriage was a son, Eugene (born September 3d, 1781). But the union was not a happy one. Beauharnais left for the Antilles the following year to fight against the English, and there fell in love with a Creole and tried to get a divorce. Meanwhile his wife gave birth to a daughter who is known in history as "Queen Hortense." When the Revolution broke out, Beauharnais, who had returned to France, was elected deputy of the First Estate, and was one of the few of that order who gave energetic support to the new Constitution. In the memorable night of August 4th, 1789, he was particularly zealous in taking part against the old regime. Furthermore, he did not emigrate but remained as an officer, and when the monarchy was replaced by a republic he became a general and was given an independent conmiand in the Army of the Rhine. Not until the Prussians had retaken Mayence in 1793 did he resign his commission. During the Reign of Terror he was, as an aristocrat, accused of treason toward his country, and, 64 Josephine [1795 though innocent hke many others, was executed four days before the fall of Robespierre. Josephine, who had rejoined her husband while he was playing a part in the National Assembly, was also imprisoned, and her release was due to the intervention of her fellow prisoner Madame de Fontenay-Cabarrus and of this lady's lover, Tallien. But Josephine had lived too many years out of sympathy with her husband to mourn him now for long. She was too fickle, weak, and fond of pleasure to turn her back on the gay life which the salons of the "nouvelles couches" of 1795 offered her. She showed her preference by attaching herself the more closely to Madame Cabarrus, and soon became one of the best- known members of Parisian society and the intimate friend of Barras. Her relations with him have been disclosed in re- cent times by the publication of his "Memoires," but she did not at that time have the reputation of a prude.* To the captivating charm of her person all witnesses testify. Even Lucien, who was not particularly well-disposed toward her, had to admit this. In his "Memoires" he gives us the following picture: "Hardly to be noticed in the midst of this circle of pretty women, generally reputed to be of easy morals, is the widow of the Marquis de Beauharnais. With httle, very Uttle wit, she had no trace of what could be called beauty, but there were certain Creole characteristics in the pliant undulations of her figure which was rather below the average height. Her face was without natural freshness, it is true, but the artifices of the toilet remedied this defect so as to make it appear fairly well by the light of the chandeliers. In short, her person was not entirely bereft of some of the attractions of her youth." Arnault, in his "Souvenirs d'un Sexag^naire," does her * "At that time her reputation was badly compromised." (Madame de R^miisat, "Memoires," I. 138.) "My father was chamberlain to the Empress Josephine. He had been her lover prior to her marriage to Napoleon, and resumed his rela- tions with her after her divorce." (Viel-Castel, " M6moircs," II. 16.) Barras' "M^-moires" were publi-shcd 1895-06, but critical readers will make some reservations as to Barras' veracity in recounting his gallantries and in characterizing those to whom he bore ill will. — B. Mt 2g] Her Character 65 better justice. He says: "The evenness of her disposition, her good-nature, the amiabihty that shone in her eye and which exprc^ssed itself not only in her words but in the tones of her voice, a certain indolence pecuUar to Creoles which was recog- nizable in her carriage and movements even when she was making an effort to please, all these lent to her a charm which transcended the dazzling beauty of her two rivals Mesdames R^camier and Tallien." Madame de R^musat, who had known Josephine since 1793, gives perhaps the most accurate description of her friend in these words: "Without being precisely beautiful, her whole person was possessed of a peculiar charm. Her features were delicate and harmonious, her expression gentle, her tiny mouth dex- terously concealed defective teeth; her somewhat dark com- plexion was improved by her clever use of cosmetics. Her figure was perfect, every outline well rounded and graceful; every motion was easy and elegant. Her taste in dress was excellent, and whatever she wore seemed to have its beauty enhanced. With these advantages and her constant care for her appearance, she succeeded in being never outshone by the beauty and youth of so many women around her. She was not a person of especial wit; a Creole and coquette, her education had been rather neglected; but she knew wherein she was wanting, and never betrayed her ignorance. Naturally tactful, she found it easy to say agreeable things. . . . Unfortunately she was lacking in earnestness of feeling and true elevation of mind." At that time she felt no warm affection for the young general. And indeed Napoleon was by no means a handsome man. Short of stature, hardly five feet in height, with an abnormally de- veloped chest and disproportionately short legs, he was far from irresistible. Moreover, he was thin at the time, and the angular lines in his face sharply prominent; his sallow skin made him look hke a sick man; the glance of his gray eyes was full of determination and resolve, frank and straightforward, hut often with something wild about it. The nervousness of his disposition, which had been marked even in childhood, had 66 Josephine [1795 developed in later years under the stress of violent emotions caused by the continual changes in his fortunes and the re- peated disappointments to his inordinate ambition, until it had become morbid. A contemporary informs us that at this time Na- poleon slept but three hours a day and was in reaUty ill. Later a facial neuralgia asserted itself together with several idiosyncra- sies, such as shrugging of the right shoulder and an involuntary moving of the lips. We may safely attribute to this extreme nervousness much of his downright selfishness and rudeness and the irritability which suffered no contradiction, as well as his distrust of every one and his occasional strange and excited behaviour. On the other hand his confidence in himself im- pressed everybody and involuntarily one became interested in him. To Josephine he became an object of interest if nothing more. Very different was the impression which she produced upon him. "I was not insensible to the charms of women," he said later at St. Helena, "but up to that time I had not been petted and spoiled by them and my disposition made me timid in their company. Madame de Beauharnais was the first to reassure me. She said some flattering things to me about my military talents one day when I chanced to be seated next to her. That praise intoxicated me; I addressed myself continually to her; I followed her everywhere; I was passionately in love with her, and my infatuation was generally known among our acquaint- ances long before I ventured to declare myself to her. When this rumour became general. Barras spoke to me about it. I had no reason for denying it. 'If that is the case,' he said to me, 'you ought to marry Madame de Beauharnais. You have rank and talents to be turned to good account, but you stand alone, without fortune and without connections; you must marry; that will give you position.'" To what maimer of man did Barras say this? Napoleon was capable of suppressing any passion if it were found to inter- fere with his ambition. He gave way to this one because it was evident to him that his union with this lady of rank, the influential friend of the Directory, would strengthen his social Mt. 2t)] Her Feeling Toward Napoleon 67 position and secure advantages for the future. He felt himself to be exalted by this marriage which enabled him to ascend from his rank of plebeian to a higher social station wherein his past could sink into oblivion. Even while still a Jacobin he could not conceal a certain predilection for the aristocratic mode of life; the coarse instincts of the masses were repugnant to him, and the courtesy and politeness of people of culture were all the more agreeable to one who was himself completely lacking in social talent. There was still another reason in favour of this union. Barras valued Napoleon's genius at its true worth, and his somewhat indolent nature led him to try to put under obligations to himself a man whose ambition and abiUty might some day raise his benefactor again to power. It is said that he made an attempt to have Napoleon appointed Min- ister of War, but that his colleagues refused their consent. Now Barras undertakes to obtain Josephine's hand for him. In a letter to a friend she admits that she does not really love Napo- leon, but that she does not feel any aversion toward him; her feeling is rather that of indifference, which is as little favourable to love as it is to religion. "I admire the General's courage," continues she, "the extent of his knowledge upon all sorts of topics, upon all of which he talks equally well, the vivacity of his mind, which enables him to grasp the thoughts of other.« almost before they have been expressed, but I am frightened. I admit, at the control he tries to exercise over everything about him. His searching glance has something unusual and inex- plicable in it, but which compels the respect even of our Directors : judge for yourself whether a woman has not good cause to feel intimidated by it ! Finally, that which ought to please me, the force of his passion, which he expresses with an energy which leaves no room for doubt of his sincerity, is precisely that which makes me ^^•ithhold the consent which I have often been ready to give. Can I, a woman whose youth is past, hope to hold for any length of time this violent affection winch in the General resembles a fit of delirium? If, after our marriage, he should cease to love me, will he not reproach me with what he has done for me? Will he not regret having failed to make a more ad- 68 Josephine [1796 vantageous marriage? And what answer can I make then? What will there be for me to do? Tears will be my only re- source." And yet the fatalistic confidence with which Napoleon spoke to her of his plans and his future allured her, and when the rumour became general that the Directory would make him Commander-in-chief of the Army of Italy she yielded to his suit. As a matter of fact her friends wondered that she could marry a man so little known.* On the 9th of March, 1796, the civil marriage ceremony was performed. Barras and TaUien acted as witnesses. But Truth veiled her face when the couple presented their forged certificates of baptism to the magistrate of the deuxieme arrondissement. Napoleon pretended to have been born Feb- ruary 5th, 1768, and Josephine, who was in reality six years his senior, gave as the date of her birth June 23d, 1767 — a sacrifice of facts to the cause of female vanity to which the bridegroom gladly consented. People were then not very (scrupulous in such matters, and Napoleon was the last man to hesitate at straining the truth. Joseph and Lucien likewise made false representations at their marriages. By an absurd coincidence each of the three brothers declared as his birthday a different day of the same year, 1768. Indeed the moral stand- ard of the whole family was low. Two days before the marriage, upon the motion of Carnot, the Directory had signed the decree (dated March 2d) appoint- * A genuine love-letter from the man who a few years before had spoken so harshly of love will not be without interest. "I awake f\ill of thoughts of thee. Your portrait and the intoxicating evening of yester- day give my senses no rest. Sweet and incomparable Josephine, what a strange effect you have on my heart; are you angry, do I see you sad, are you anxious, . . . my soul is bowed down with anguish and there is no rest for your lover; but is there then more for me, when, yielding to the immeasurable feeling which overpowers me, I draw from your lips, from your heart, a flame which consumes me? Ah! it was but this very night that I realized fully that your portrait was not you. Thou Icavest at noon, in three hours I shall see thee. Meanwhile, ' mio dolcc amor,' a thousand kisses, but do not give me any, for they set my blood on fire." (Mme. de R6musat, " M6moires," I. 182.) ^Et. 20] Napoleon's Opportunity 69 ing Napoleon Commander-in-chief of the Army of Italy; on the 11th he took leave of his wife and set out for his post. To what an extent were his interests already advanced ! Here was an independent command and with it the opportunity of showing the world what he could do, and of turning from Hoche to himself the universal admiration which that general had won by his unbroken series of victories. To be sure his former position as commander of the Army of the Interior had been both high and important, for he had soon acquired a con- siderable following of men whose hopes for the future rested in this general who had become so influential. On the other hand he had been detested by the Parisian populace ever since the 13th Vendemiaire, and he was bcsid:'S pursued by the envy of those who begrudged him his rapid advancement and who were systematic and persistent in calling attention to his errors and defects, his adventures in Corsica, and his connection with Robespierre, even to his foreign accent and his lack of breeding, all of which were made much of and used against him. Who could assure him that he would not soon be pushed aside by new elements, inasmuch as the Constitution provided for changes in the highest positions of the government? While at Paris and General of the Army of the Interior he was but the hero of a single party, and victory in the streets of the capital could secure for him nothing more than the thanks of one faction. But in conflict with foreign enemies, upon what he himself had designated the most important theatre of war, glory and honour were to be acquired in the eyes of the whole nation, the nation to which he had more closely aUied himself by marrying a French gentlewoman of ancient family. This was more in accordance with the extravagant plans for the future which his exuberant fancy invented and which were too vast and undefined to depend upon the fortunes of a political coterie. Power was his party, and its possession his aim. Even before her marriage Josephine had written these re- markable words to her friend: "Barras assures me that if I marry the General he will obtain for him the appointment of Commander-in-chief of the Army of Italy. Yesterday, iii 7© Josephine [i796 speaking to me of this favour, — which is already the occasion of grumbling among his companions in arms, although it has not yet been bestowed, — Bonaparte said: 'Do they suppose that I am in need of their protection in order to succeed? They will all be but too happy some day if I will grant them mine. My sword is at my side and with it I shall go far.' What say you of such certainty of success? Is it not a proof of assurance born of excessive self-esteem? A brigadier-general protect the chiefs of the State! I know not, but sometimes this absurd self-reliance leads me to the point of believing possible every- thing that this singular man would put it into my head to do." If the letter be genuine, the woman's instinct in Josephine recognized in the soul of this extraordinary man what the acute observation of his teachers had before discovered — "an ambi- tion with aspirations that stop at nothing." * Whatever Josephine lacked in love for her husband she made amends for in her belief in him, in his genius, in his future; nor did that faith deceive her. Yet she does not seem to have had the necessary moral strength to fulfil her duty of fidelity to the man she admired. Hers was a sensual nature; not like that of Catharine II., whom not even the risk of participating in crime prevented the satisfaction of her passion ; Josephine was passive, weak, vacillating, and in danger even of becoming a victim like Mary Stuart. Her faithful friend, Madame de Remusat, who fondly dwells upon her merits, does not conceal the fact that her reputation was badly compromised before she made Napoleon's acquaintance, and we cannot but gather from his letters that during the early years of their married life she never ceased to play the coquette with the men with whom she came in contact. * HLs brother Lucien in his "M^moiros" (II. 314) also furnishes proof of the fact that Napoleon obtained command of the Army of Italy on account of his marriage with Josephine. Seven years later, in 1803, Lucien dared to brave the anger of his all-powerful brother who tried to compel him to .separate himself from his wife and marry the Queen of lOtruria. "What absurd presmnption," said Lucien to Cambaci^nXs, — or at least claims to hav(! said, — "to dare to hope that he could make nie abandon my wife! A wife who was not forced upon me and who brought me neither dowry nor command of an army." iEr. 20] His Unhappy Marriage 71 Some weeks after his parting with his bride he wrote a letter full of yearning desire asking her to follow him into Italy. She waits two months, until the close of the Paris seasoa, before she decides to comply. He writes to Carnot at this time: "I am in despair, my wife does not come; she nmst have some lover who detains her in Paris. Cursed be all women!" During the summer and autumn in which Napoleon was win- ning his immortal triumphs, she whiled away the time in Milan, Bologna, and Rome. The beginning of winter finds her again in the beloved capital on the Seine. Later, in the spring of 1798, when Napoleon undertook his Egyptian expedition, she remained in France, and her conduct during that time caused much anxiety to her distant husband, who was minutely, although perhaps not always accurately, informed of all that was taking place. From Cairo he wrote in July, 1798, to Joseph in these resigned words: "I have many domestic sorrows, for the veil is at last entirely removed. You alone are left to me on earth, your love is very dear to me, nothing more is needed to make me a complete misanthrope but to lose that and to find myself betrayed by you. ... It is a sad condition to have to harbour at the same time all kinds of feelings toward one person in one poor heart. You will understand me. See to it that on my return I have a country-seat near Paris or in Burgundy; I count upon shutting myself up there and spending the winter; I am tired of human nature. I need solitude and isolation ; greatness wearies me, my feelings are dried up." After the Coup d'Etat, when Napoleon had made himself the master of France, — it was at the time when her charms began to be less alluring to other men, — Josephine clung to him with a lasting affection, and she was almost beside herself with jealous rage whenever his heart was occupied, even if but temporarily, in some other quarter. This devotion on her part and the beUef that his good fortune was associated with her prevented him for a long time from divorcing himself from her. In the end his selfish policy triumphed over this last vestige of sentiment. CHAPTER V THE CAMPAIGNS IN ITALY AND THE PEACE OF CAMPO FORMIO The fact has already been mentioned that in 1795 Prussia and Spain withdrew from the great coalition which had been formed two years previous against revolutionary France, Even before this act Tuscany had been led to conclude a separate treaty of peace with the great republic in order to secure its own immunity in case of the advance of the French army into upper Italy. Holland also had been conquered during the win- ter and compelled to become the humble ally of France under the name of "The Batavian Republic." It was even rumoured that Austria was secretly making negotiations in Paris, but such report was entirely without foundation; Emperor Francis II. had not the slightest intention of effecting a separate treaty of peace. In view of the victories of the enemy during the fore- going year, such a peace would have but entailed losses to Austria, and Thugut, the chief adviser of the Emperor, was intent upon making gains. Since the loss of Silesia, the conquest of which had raised Prussia to one of the Great Powers, the Court of Vienna was seeking compensation everywhere: in Poland, Turkey, Germany — where Bavaria was the coveted territory, — and in Italy — where the object was to acquire Venice in order to connect Lombardy with the hereditary domains of the house of Habsburg. Thugut had made advance toward the real- ization of his ]ilans to the extent of receiving from Russia, on January .3(1, 1795, a promise of support together with a portion of Poland, on condition that Austria should continue to oppose France. This put all thought of treaty with the Republic out of the (juesiion. On the contrary, Thugut entered, May 20th, 1795, into a treaty of alliance and nuitual guaranties with Pitt. 72 Mt.2(\] Social Disintegration 73 Prime Minister of England, the aim of whose secret stipulations was to induce the Czarina to take part in active hostilities against France. On September 28th of the same year Catharine II. agreed to be a third party to this alliance. The majority of the German States having refused Prussia's offer to mediate for peace, they, with Sardinia, Portugal, and Naples, joined also in this powerful coalition. Peace was not to be thought of in that quarter. A pacific outcome of affairs between France and Austria might perhaps have been possible had the Republic been willing to renounce its recent conquests and restore them to the great power on the Danube. The situation of internal affairs in France during the last months of the Convention had been discouraging enough to make a conciliatory attitude appear not unadvisable. The demoralization was unprecedented. In its precipitate zeal the Revolution had made an end of the rotten feudal system, but had not yet been able to set up in its stead a more enduring form of government. As with " Liberty " for the watchword all political institutions had been destroyed, so, in the name of "Equality," — which had degenerated into an ever-increasingly tyrannical principle, — the entire social edifice had been overthrown. Laws of marriage and inheritance were changed to accord with revolutionary ideas, with the sole result of depriving the family of its former importance and respect. The government had confiscated the estates of the Church as well as the property of the emigrants, who were for the most part victims of arbitrary proscription. Public credit had been based on what had been thus appropriated without heed to the fact that the value of real estate decreases as the protection of the laws becomes insecure, and where that protection is wanting becomes a mere fiction. In consequence P>ance was now flooded with worthless paper money; honest tradesmen were reduced to poverty, speculators and gamblers flourished, deahng in stocks took the place of legitimate business, corruption and fraud reigned supreme. In addition to th(>se (lishoartening circumstances came the confusion in the affairs of the Church and the inadequacy of the 74 The Campaigns in Italy [1796 new educational system, which decreed compulsory education without being able to enforce its commands. The Marquis of Poterat, a man of dubious character but of unusual intelligence, describes the situation of France in a memorial addressed to the government in July, 1795, and verily his picture is in every respect accurate and faithful. "Consider the dangers of your position, they are truly alarming; with the exception of Prussia, which I mistrust, you have as declared enemies all the Great Powers of Europe; most of the young men of the land you have lost in battle or hospital ; before long recruiting will have become im- possible. Agriculture is neglected for want of hands, horses, and fertilization; trade, both domestic and foreign, is destroyed; labourers in the arts, manufactures, and trades have lost either life or reason. You are in need of provisions and of naval stores as well as of every variety of imports, and you are without credit either at home or abroad. Currency is inflated with an immense amount of worthless paper money. The administra- tion of the Interior does not work because it is subdivided into too many departments and because those departments are wretched. In short, you have as yet no government at all. When shall you have one? Shall you ever do so? If so, will there yet be time for it to avail?" There was indeed every reason for thinking of peace and giving the country opportunity to recuperate. And in fact there was in the Convention's Committee of Safety a party which was desirous of a general peace even at the price of contenting itself with the old boundaries of France. But the old boundaries represented the system of the Old Regime. The radical Revolution had wider aspirations, and for this reason its leaders would agree upon peace only on condition that France should retain her conquests of the previous year and that the "natural boundary " along the banks of the Rhine should be secured to the state. This idea was due to the doctrines of Rousseau, who derived from nature not only his theory of law and morals, but was indebted to her as well for his views of what constitut(Ml the frontiers of his country. Inasnnich as the need of rest was dee})ly felt throughout the country and especially in Paris, the conservative policy naturally ^T. 2(i] The Expansion of France y^ received the support of the people, while the Progressives placed themselves in violent opposition to it and eventually brought the Convention into that critical position from which it was rescued by Napoleon's strategic talent on October 5th, 1795. Three days previous the majority of the Convention had acceded to the proposition of the government committee to incorporate Belgium with France, thereby giving sanction to a principle of conquest which was henceforth for twenty years to remain the policy of France.* * Whoever reads the acts and debates of the year 1795 with reference to the question then under consideration of the natural boundaries of France and the incorporation of Belgium will find therein the already developed germs of Napoleon's subsequent insatiable policy of conquest with its contempt for traditional rights. In an edict of the Committee of Public Safety dated June 26th, 1795, addressed to Barthclemy, Charged d'Affaires, occurs, for example, this query: " Of what use to us then would have been this terrible war and this long Revolution if everything were to return to former conditions; and do you suppose that the Republic could maintain its existence in the midst of circumstances which had undergone no change?" Rewbell, who wiis afterwards to direct the foreign policy of the Di- rectory, discussing this question with a diplomat, gives utterance to his views, saying that one must be but little enlightened in regard to the true interests of the Republic or be completely given over to Austria and Eng- land to dare to propose a return to the former limits of the country in order to obtain peace; such a peace would not only cover France with disgrace, but would infallibly lead to the destruction of the Republic; that one could not shut his eyes to the fact that the country was insufh- ciently provided with manufactured goods, gold, silver, and produce; that, on the return of the armies to a country without means for recom- pensing its defenders and without other resources than valueless paper money, discontent would soon become general; the soldiers would of necessity take part in political and religious dissensions, and the inevitable result would be civil war of the most cruel order; foreign powers would not fail to take advantage of such circumstances, and as a consequence France would suffer the same fate as Poland. . . . Those who advocate peace at any price should not omit to take into account the fact that in Belgium alone there was public property to the amount of at least three billions in specie, and that there was still more in the other countries which had been conquered and annexed, and that this was the only resource for the redemption of the assignats. (Revue historique, XVIII. 208, 308.) Tallien never wearied of recalling the principle of 1792, that France ^6 The Campaigns in Italy [i796 Wlien, shortly afterwards, the Directory succeeded to the Convention, it accepted with other responsibiUties the war against three of the Great Powers of Europe together with their dependencies; and inasmuch as the five men who now were placed at the head of the French government, Barras, Rewbell, Carnot, Letourneur, and La Revelliere-Lepeaux, all belonged to the dominant party a change of policy was not to be expected. Their close alliance with the republican Thermi- dorians (under Tallien) and the Jacobins (under Sieyes) gave them no choice but to make war upon existing monarchies. This was a war apparently without end and, indeed, not intended to have one, as its termination would have brought about the close of the Revolution, and thereby the end of the power of its ambitious leaders. To them the revolutionary tendencies of foreign countries were the most welcome of allies, and for that reason Germany, Switzerland, and, if possible, Italy were to be roused to insurrection by a systematic propaganda and drawn within the range of P>ench political action. It was a programme of expansion in every direction. It must be confessed that at the outset the execution of this plan was greatly inferior to the boldness of its conception. Generals Jourdan and Pichegru, who had crossed the Rhine in order to take the offensive, were repulsed by the Austrian com- should surround herself with a circle of repubUcs of her own founding and which should be dependent upon the mother country. Sieyes had even elaborated a plan for the secularization of the ecclesiastical princi- palities of Germany which was in all respects similar to that which was carried out in 1803. Mallet du Pan, the clear-sighted correspondent of the Cabinet at Vienna, writes as follows in a letter of August 23d, 1795 : " The Monarchists and many of the deputies of the Convention would sacrifice all conquests made for the sake of hastening and securing peace, but the fanatical Girondists and the committee led by Sieyes persist in this plan of expansion. Three motives impel them to this course: 1st. The scheme of extending their doctrine with their territory; 2d. The desire of uniting Europe by degrees in a federation with the French Republic; 3d. That of pro- longing a war, involving a part of the nation, which prolongs at the same time extraordinary powers and revolutionary measures." (Correspond- ance in6dite, I. 288.) Cf. Chapter VIII below. /Et. 20] The Military Situation 77 niandcrs Clcrfayt and Wunnsor and thrown back to the other side of the river; at the south, likewise, the ItaUan Army was accomplishing but little. The latter had indeed been reinforced by troops drawn from Spain and put under command of Sch^rer, a general of advancing years who had hitherto been active m the Pyrenees. His instructions from Paris were to press forward through the passes of the Apennines into the plains beyond, and success attended liis first efforts in the victor}^ of Loano (November 23d-25th, 1795), but the winter season opened and interrupted hostiUties against the united Austrian and Sardinian armies. Fortmiately Russia sent no aid to Austria, and the latter, being unsupported in her endeavors to hold France in check, could not bring her forces to bear on the ItaUan theatre of war. For a moment, it is true, Vienna had considered re- moving the weight of her army from the Rhine to Italy, a move which would probably have made far more difficult the victories which Napoleon was soon after to gain in those regions. Thugut was indeed informed that the French govcnnnent was seeking to separate Sardinia from Austria by offering her Lombardy in exchange, and the reports which Mallet du Pan sent to Vienna in the beginning of the year 1796 asserted confidently that the French were determined to penetrate into Piedmont and Milan, cost what it might. But in spite of everything no decisive measures were taken. The EngUsh were able by means of subsidies to keep the Austrian forces in Germany, which was in accordance with her interests; the Grand Duke of Tuscany refused to allow Xeapohtan auxiliary troops to pass through his territory; Thugut himself feared aggressive measures on the part of Prussia and wished to be armed for resistance in Bohemia, and therefore refrained from sending reinforcements, beyond a few battaUons, to the army in Italy; in short, everything conspired to the neglect of a field of operations upon which events of the utmost importance were soon to take place. While Scherer and his troops remained inactive in the South, the plan of campaign as elaborated by Napoleon demonstrated not only the possibility but the necessity of commencing hos- 78 The Campaigns in Italy [1796 tilities as early as February. To Scherer's complaints that his troops were needy and in distress (a situation which the financial state of the repubUc did not admit of rectifying), Napoleon made reply by pointing to the rich plain of Lombardy and promised to support the army upon the enemy's country. On the 19th of January, 1796, his plan was at length adopted and sent to the Army of Italy for execution. This Scherer refused to do. Such projects, he said, might be carried out only by the man who had conceived them, and asked for his own discharge. The request came opportunely. On the 13th Ven- demiaire the little general had saved the lives of the men who were at present in power; now he showed them the way in which their policy might be saved. Then, when every military reverse shook the foundations of the Directory and strengthened the opposition, he promised triumphs which would justify the conduct of the governing body and assure its position, Scherer was relieved of his command and Napoleon took his place. On March 27th he assumed in Nice the command of the army. The new general-in-chief found his troops in deplorable condition. Of his effective force of six divisions, numbering 60,282 men, something more than 22,000 were in hospital, leaving about 38,000 in fighting trim. These were men inured to war and hardened to fatigue, but suffering for the want of proper nourishment and equipment, for the declivities of the Apennines with their poor little villages could contribute but Uttle to the support of the soldiers, and the state's treasury was empty. To these troops the manifesto now issued by the young commander-in-chief — for Napoleon was younger than any one of his generals — fell on their ears like a message of deliverance: "Soldiers, you are ill-fed and almost naked; the government owes you much, it can give you nothing. Your patience, the courage which you exhibit in the midst of these crags, are worthy of all admiration; but they bring you no atom of glory; not a ray is reflected upon you. I will conduct you into the most fertile plains in the world. Rich provinces, great cities will be in your power; there you will find honour, glory, and Mr. 2f>] Supporting War by Plunder 79 wealth. Sokliors c»f Italy, will you be lacking in courage or perseverance?" This language, of which, tt) be sure, we have no record beyond the recollections dictated by the Emperor at St. Helena, is the unvarnished expression of that policy to which finan- cial embarrassment now for some time had reduced France. Before this time the Convention had instructed the armies which crossed the Rhine that they nuist support themselves at the expense of the enemy, and their leaders were to use every means to obtain the required articles of subsistence from their adversary. The Directory made no change in this maxim beyond extending its significance. But these words are at the same time characteristic of the man who uttered them; he knew human nature too well to fail to promise wealth and glory to the poor and ambitious. It required audacity to make such promises, but still greater was the audacity of action by means of which they were to be realized. It will be remembered that two years previous to this time Napoleon had demonstrated to Robespierre the importance of effecting a passage of the Apennines from Savona, and that he had in secret, under orders of the Dictator, informed himself minutely as to the territory and fortifications of the enemy.* He was now able to profit by the knowledge thus acquired, availing himself of the very same strategic principles which he had submitted in 1794 to the all-powerful deputy in Paris. He said then: "In the management of a war, as in the siege of a city, the method should be to direct the fire upon a single point. The breach once made, equilibrium is destroyed, all further effort is useless, and the place is taken. . . . Attacks should not be scattered, but united. An army should be divided for the sake of subsistence and concentrated for combat. Unity of command is indispensable to success. Time is everything." The road wliich leads from Savona to the north over the crest of the Apennines divides upon the further side into two branches, one of which proceeds westward by way of Millesimo and Ceva to Turin, the other northeastward through Cairo * p. 45. 8o The Campaigns in Italy [i796 and Dego to Alessandria and thence to Milan. The former was held by the Piedmontese, the latter by the Austrians, the two armies being in close touch with one another. How to make his way through between them was the problem which confronted Napoleon. It was the plan of Beaulieu, commander- in-chief of the Austrian forces, to attack from the east the French division of Laharpe which had been thrown forward as far as Voltri, while the Austrians under Argenteau were to fall upon its rear from Montenotte, a village to the north of Savona. The plan was badly conceived, and in order to take advantage of this mistake on the part of the foe Napoleon was obliged to give battle before the arrival of the expected army supphes. Laharpe retreated before Beaulieu to Savona, while Argenteau was surprised at Montenotte on the 12th of April by a force twice outnimibering his own and defeated with great loss. On the following day a second Austrian division which had been detailed to the assistance of Colli, the Piedmontese general, was dispersed at Millesimo by Massena and Augereau, Bona- parte's subordinates. Without loss of time Napoleon turned in person again toward the north, and on the 15th, at Dego, completely wiped out the remnant of Argenteau's corps. Beaulieu, fearing to be cut off with the main body of his army on the road to Alessandria, withdrew on the 16th from the mountains into the plain near Acqui. Napoleon had accordingly scored a success in his first move on the chess-board. He had forced his army between those of the allies, driven back the Austrians, and isolated the Pied- montese at Ceva. The latter soon abandoned their advanced position, and on their retreat were overtaken at Mondovi, April 22d, where they suffered grievous defeat. The promised plain now lay open before the French, and their advance guard soon extended as far as Cherasco and Alba. Napoleon had generously fulfilled his promise to his soldiers. From this time they clung with blind confidence to him. His genius had triumphed not only over the Austrians and Pied- montese, but also over a third foe — mistrust and the envy of his subordinate generals. The greater number of them were Mr.2fi] Treaty with Sardinia 8 1 henceforward devoted to him, and thanks to his talent for giving precise orders with the requisite firmness, he was able to exact absolute obedience from such as were not personally attached to him. The Directory in Paris was again compelled to recognize the superiority of his policy when he, contrary to their orders, pursued Colli rather than Beaulieu, his unanswerable argument being that he could not operate with a hostile army in his rear. King Victor Amadeus of Sardinia took precisely the course which Napoleon had foreseen; insufficiently supported by Austria, and threatened in his own country by revolutionar}' tendencies, without means of strengthening himself, he turned to the French and requested an armistice preliminary to peace. Bonaparte granted this on condition that three forts should be surrendered to him as security and that his army should have freedom of passage throughout Piedmont. On April 28th the treaty was signed whereby France rid herself of her Sardinian opponent. At once Napoleon hastened to pursue the Austrians, who had retreated from Piedmont into Lombardy, and were awaiting the enemy in a strong position behind the Ticino. But Bonaparte failed to appear at the place where Beaulieu was expecting him; he had instead marched down the Po with a view to crossing it at Piacenza and thus come upon the Aus- trians in the rear. By the time that Beaulieu became aware of this step he was able only with the utmost exertion, and at the price of abandoning Milan, to reach Lodi and take up his stand behind the Adda. But even this position was untenable. On the 10th of May the French columns appeared at Lodi and forced a passage across the river with unheard-of gallantry. The Austrians fled, and the remains of the scattered and crest- fallen army gathered only on the farther side of the Mincio and in the fortress of Mantua. Lombardy was conquered. On the 16th of May Napoleon made his triumphal entry into Milan. But at the seat of government in France this unprecedented series of victories by the ambitious general was followed with a certain feeling of apprehension. Without consultation with Salicetti, who accompanied the army as commissioner of the 82 The Campaigns in Italy [i796 government, Bonaparte had agreed upon a truce with Pied- mont, while the government had intended to make this land a republic. When at last the Directory reluctantly signed the treaty, he wrote to Paris: "I have received the articles of peace with Sardinia, the army has approved it." This was a new tone. The army now gave its sanction to the acts of the govern- ment and set up in opposition to it a purpose and decision of its own ! Hitherto it had been the docile instrument of the leaders in Paris. A decisive change in the order of things announced itself in these few words which did not pass unnoticed. There were indeed some who were of opinion that the writer of such language should be shot. But his protector Barras and the Jacobinical war-party put up even with this insult. But with a view to controlling in the future the course of a general so prone to act according to his own desires, Kellerman, Commander-in-chief of the Army of the Alps, was ordered with his troops to strengthen the army in Italy, he himself to share with Bonaparte the command of the whole force and the direc- tion of further operations, while to Salicetti was to be reserved the management of all diplomatic affairs. The news of this decree reached Napoleon just after his victory on the Adda, and he was incensed by it. Give up to another the glory and the power which he was on the point of acquiring! The thought was intolerable. His ambition dictated a reply which his acute- ness of perception enabled him to put in a form at once tactful and unmistakable: ''If you impose all sorts of fetters upon me," he wrote. May 14th, 1796, to the Directory, "if I must refer every step to the Government Commissioners, if they have the right to alter my dispositions, to remove or send me troops, you may look for no further successes. ... In the present situation of affairs it is indispensable that you should have a general in whom you have entire confidence. If I am not the person I shall have no complaint to make, l)ut shall use redoubled zeal to merit your esteem at whatever post you may see fit to entrust to me. Each person has his own way of making war. General K(»llerman has had more experience and will do it better than I; but both together we shall do it badly." To Carnot, the Director ^T. 2G] The Directory Yields to Napoleon 8 3 in charge of military affairs, he wrote: "I can be useful to you only if granted the same confidence which you bestowed on me when in Paris. Whether I wage war here or elsewhere is a matter of indifference to me; to ser\^e my country, to merit from posterity a page in our history, to give the government some proofs of my attachment and of my devotion, that is the sum of my ambition." Most certainly it was not a question of indifference to him where he should make war; of the whole asseveration only the appeal to posterity was sincere; the judgment of succeeding generations was ever present in Napoleon's mind, and even during the last hours of his Ufe he sought to influence that opinion by a vast tissue of inventions and embellishments. "Human pride," said he to ]\Iadame de Remusat while Consul, "creates a public to its own taste in that ideal world which it calls posterity. If one has brought himself to think that in a hundred years beautiful verses will recall some fine action, that a picture will preserve its memory, then imagination rises, the field of battle has no further dangers, the cannon roars in vain, it seems but the voice which is to carry through a thousand years the name of a brave man to our remotest descendants." WTiatever the case, whether he was sincere or not, the Directory yielded. Kellerman was to them a person of small consequence, and Bonaparte, with his talent for making requisi- tions of which he had just given such marvellous proof, was hardly to be spared while the treasury of France remained in the impoverished condition of that time. The order was re- tracted and the Directory contented itself with merely expressing the wish that an expedition toward Rome and southern Italy should precede the march northward. "From this time," according to the recollections at St. Helena, "Napoleon had faith in his own greatness and in his call to play a decisive part in the politics of France." The fact was that he was now completely at liberty to do as seemed best to him in Italy. And the matter of first importance was to reduce Bcauheu to entire harmlessness. 84 The Campaigns in Italy [1796 The territory of the RepubUc of Venice extended at that time a long distance westward, as far as the Lake of Como ; Brescia and Bergamo formed Venetian provinces. Bonaparte marched a portion of his army into this country, thereby threatening the retreat of the Austrian commander from the Mincio toward the north and leading him to suppose that the French were going to invade the Tyrol. Beaulieu fell into the snare and scattered his forces along the whole length of the Mincio from Mantua to Peschiera. Suddenly Bonaparte turned toward the southeast and on the 30th of May forced his way with but little difficulty across the Mincio at Borghetto. He thus cut in twain the Austrian army, one portion being driven back into Mantua and the other on to the Adige and toward Tyrol. With the excep- tion of 12,000 men who occupied Mantua, there was not an Austrian corps left on Italian soil and Bonaparte could turn his attention toward subjugating the allies of the emperor, or at least to extorting from them the heaviest possible contribu- tions. The Directory had charged him to "bring away from Italy everything which was of value and capable of transporta- tion." He fulfilled these instructions to the letter. On the 9th of May he concluded a truce with the Uuke of Parma, and on the 17th with the Duke of Modena, in both cases at the price of many millions of francs besides works of art and supplies of all kinds, for paintings by the old masters figured beside beeves and corn in the list of his demands. After his victory on the Mincio Naples was constrained to sign a treaty according to the terms of which that state promised to remain neutral and to withdraw her ships from the British fleet. Thereupon the Papal government, fearing to see the Eternal City occupied by the godless republicans, ransomed the capital on the 23d of June by surrendering to the French the Legations of Ferrara and Bologna and the important harbour of Ancona, promising that English ships should be kept at a distance from the coast of the Papal States, Ijesitles making payment of something over 20,000, 000 francs and yielding from their galleries a great number of works of art. Finally, the trading port of Leghorn was seized and occupied a few days later, with a view to further crippling iE-r. 20] The Old and the New Warfare 85 the English, whose merchandise was confiscated and sold to the profit of the French treasury. But the French were yet far from being where they could enjoy their successes in peace. Austria, whose interests, as has been shown, depended upon maintaining her possessions and influence in Italy, was straining every nerve to reconquer her lost position. General Wurmser, who had been in command of the Army on the Rhine, was ordered thence to the Tyrol to replace Beauheu at the head of the army and, with the aid of fresh troops, to advance to the relief of Mantua. Napoleon was fully aware that he had before him a struggle of no mean extent, upon the issue of which depended the question whether he were able or not to maintain his own despotic position, and he took his measures accordingly. What the young general accomplished during the ensuing months, in combat with four armies successively relieving one another, belongs among the wonders of military history. His successes were due to the superiority of a genius of inexhaustible resources, a clear-sighted- ness which recognized at a glance favourable or unfavourable points in a territory, as well as the weakness or strength, ad- vantages or mistakes on the part of the enemy. Napoleon's watchfulness was always on the alert, he grasped all phases and all details of an action and kept them in mind, and he fully appreciated the value of making use of the right moment. To these considerations must be added another. The generals who were his opponents in these ItaUan campaigns were trained and experienced in a methodical kind of strategy only and, like all the generals of the older governments, in duty bound to be as saving as possible of their costly armies of mercenaries; to them a series of bloodless manoeuvres was the object aimed at. The generals of the Revolution, on the contrary, commanded armies composed of hundreds of thousands of their countiymen, animated by a frenzy for conquest and liberation ; their recruits cost nothing, and \^^th war thus carried on at the expense of foreign nations they had an immense atl- vantage over those who were obliged to subordinate strategy to economic considerations; their object was decisive battle 86 The Campaigns in Italy [i796 at whatever cost. Frederick the Great, of whose writings Na- poleon was an assiduous student, had advocated the same prin- ciple ; dire necessity and the pressure brought to bear against him by allied and superior forces had compelled him to act upon it. In one essential point, however, his method of warfare differed from Bonaparte's, for, as has been very justly remarked, "he did not, like the French general, have 10,000 men a month to spend." Dubois de Crance and Carnot share the merit of having organized the revolutionary armies. But to Napoleon belongs the honour of having applied these tactics in offensive warfare in a manner displaying transcendent genius. Throughout the campaign which was about to take place, the contrast between the leaders of the antagonistic forces was but too clearly dis- played. The general of the repubhcan army was scarce twenty- seven years old, reckless and daring, heeding only the commands of his own inspiration, while the commander of the Austrian troops at the age of seventy-nine was dependent for direction upon the Emperor, his ministers, and the Aulic Council. At the end of July — far too late — the Austrians, in two divisions, advanced impetuously southward from the Tyrol. One of these columns, under command of Quosdanovich marched down the western bank of Lake Garda, the other, under Wurmser, followed the course of the Adige. Their forces outnumbered those of the French by more than 10,000 men, the latter having not more than 42,000 in fighting condi- tion, including those who were engaged in laying siege to Mantua. Should they succeed in the execution of their plan to surround Napoleon's army by means of concerted and simultaneous action, its fate was sealed, and the outlook appeared so much the more ominous since the Austrians gave proofs in the very first engagements of unusual courage and firnmcss, and had cut off the avenue of retreat for the French to cither Milan or Verona. Napoleon recognized to the full the danger of the situation and considered the advisability of making a retreat behind the Adda, but fitially jiHowcmI himself to bo led by the audacious confidence; of Augereuu, one of l\is g(>iierals, and risked an engage- ment, though in constant danger of being caught between two M-r. 27] The Attempt to Relieve Mantua 87 fires. The daring venture was successful. With all available troops he threw himself first on Quosdanovich, defeated him on the 3d and 4th of August at Lonato, and compelled his re- treat toward the Tyrol. Then he turned against Wurmser, whose overcautious advance cost him a crushing defeat at CastigUone on the 5th of August; for him also the only way of escape lay toward the mountains. Mantua, whose blockade had been necessarily abandoned, was at once reinvested by the French. But no decisive outcome had yet been reached notwith- standing these victories. As long as this important fortress was not within his power Napoleon could not consider making further advance, inasmuch as the mere investiture of the city required so great a proportion of his troops as to make it impossi- ble for the rest to penetrate unsupported- into the Tyrol or the interior of Austria. The Court of Vienna, moreover, appreciated as clearly the significance of this stronghold to themselves; its loss would entail that of all the Austrian possessions in Italy, and for this reason their efforts were redoubled to relieve and liberate the city. On the 19th of August positive instructions were sent to Wurmser by Emperor Francis bidding him advance again to the relief of Mantua. This order he obeyed early in September with one division of the army through the valley of the Brenta, while the second, under command of Davidovich, was to hold a position on the Adige, whence, in case Wurmser should turn westward from Bassano and draw the enemy upon himself, they were to descend the valley of that river at full speed to his assistance. But shortly after the opening of this action the whole scheme was shattered by the course pursued by Napoleon, who marched with the bulk of his army into the Tyrol, where he de- feated Davidowich and drove him far behind Trent, then, turn- ing into the valley of the Brenta, hastened to overtake Wurmser, and inflicted upon him an overwhelming defeat on September 8th. Only by the practice of the most strenuous exertions did the aged general with the remnants of his vanquished army succeed 88 The Campaigns in Italy [i796 in gaining the sheltering walls of Mantua. One division had made its retreat eastward behind the Isonzo. This enterprise had cost Austria more than 100 cannon, all her munitions of war, and far above 10,000 men. For Bonaparte the achievement was one of much wider- reaching importance than had been his victory at Castiglione. Its significance was enhanced by the fact that it came just at the time when disaster had overtaken the armies at the North under Moreau and Jourdan, who had lost the advantages which they had previously obtained in Germany. By the recall of a portion of her troops from the Rhine to the aid of the forces con- tending against Napoleon, Austria had considerably weakened her forces in the North. The young Archduke Charles, who had given evidence of military talent in the Netherlands, now succeeded Wurmser in the chief command of the army. To him it seemed advisable (overestimating as he did the strength of his adversary) to withdraw his troops to the east of the Rhine. Moreau, who now, in place of Pichegru, commanded the Army of the South, took this as a challenge to cross the river, where- upon he defeated the Archduke and forced him to retreat beyond the Danube. Jourdan also was successful in an advance made against the second division of the Austrian army under Wartensleben which enabled him to invade Franconia. Wiir- temberg and Baden hastened to make peace with France, while Saxony recalled her troops from the field and declared herself neutral. It seemed as if the projected junction of the Repub- lican armies in the Tyrol for a united advance upon Vienna were really about to take place. Just then, early in September, Archduke Charles met Jourdan at Wiirzburg and totally de- feated him, thus compelling both his army and Moreau's to retreat from southern Germany back to the Rhine. The honour of the Austrian arms was at least splendidly retrieved. More than ever now everything depended upon the fate of Mantua. After his last victories Bonaparte had again acted contrary to the intentions of the Directory, which purposed restoring Lombardy to Austria when peace should be agreed upon in return for Belgium and the Rhine frontier. His method of pro- iEr. 27] Renewed Efforts of the Austrians 89 cedure had been to stir up revolt among the peoples of northern Italy against their hereditary rulers, and to incite them to the creation of national legions; such were, in fact, organized in Milan and Bologna. Austrian prestige hung in the balance. The most strenuous efforts were put forth to maintain it. Ex- tensive armaments, especially in Croatia and the military borders, were fitted out, the Tyrolese sharpshooters were called into requisition. Everything was done to increase the effective force of the Imperial Army, so that presently Davidovich found himself at the head of upward of 18,000 men in the Tyrol, while Quosdanovich was in command in Friuli of more than 25,000. The command of the whole army was entrusted to Alvinczy, a brave but aged general who had become immovably attached to the old methods. It seemed as if Fate had ordained that the generals opposed to this young and energetic genius should be of the oldest and those most wedded to tradition, thus giving to his victories the appearance of being the triumph of a new era.* The Austrians again had the advantage in point of numbers when on November 1st they advanced westward from the Piave under command of Alvinczy, and southward toward Verona under Davidovich. But these troops consisted largely of young recruits, who, like the Croatians, showed their best points in * In 1797 Bonaparte expressed himself thus in regard to the enemy: "My military successes have been great; but then consider the senice of the Emperor! His soldiers are good and brave, though heavy and inac- tive as compared with mine; but what officers! They are wretched. The generals who were sent against me were unfit and absurd. A Beaulieu who had not the slightest knowledge about localities in Italy; a Wurmser, deaf and eternally slow; an Alvinczy who was altogether incompetent. They have been accused of being bribed by me; those are nothing but falsehoods, for I never had such a thing in view. But I can prove that no one of these three generals had a single staff of which several of the superior officers were not devoted to me and in my pay. Hence I was apprised not only of their plans but of their designs, and I interfered with them while they were still under deliberation." (Jung, "Bona- parte," III. 154.) To what extent this harsh judgment is justified there is no way of ascertaining. Other evidence indeed indicated that demoralization did exist among the officers of the Austrian army. 90 The Campaigns in Italy [i796 attack, while their lack of firmness and endurance soon put them at a recognizable disadvantage. And in truth the opening of this new campaign was in every way unfavourable to Napoleon, so that for a time he stood in the same danger as at Castiglione of being attacked by both divisions of the Austrian army at the same time. But the enemy did not take advantage of the victory which they gained on November 12th at Verona, where the French lost some 3,000 men, and Napoleon thus had time to prepare a new stroke of genius by means of which he caught Alvinczy in both flank and rear. With unheard-of daring he reduced to a minimum the forces in Verona and before Mantua, and with all available troops, about 20,000 men, descended the course of the Adige, which he crossed at Ronco to the eastern bank of the river, in order to surprise the enemy. But this was by no means to be so easily accomplished. At Arcole on the little river Alpon two battalions of Croatians, commanded by their colonel, Brigido, stationed themselves so as to defend the bridge until the arrival of reinforcements. Every- thing depended upon forcing a passage across and securing the hamlet which commands the position before the strength of the foe should be increased by the expected forces. The successive assaults of the French were repulsed by the murderous fire of the enemy, who were under cover; thereupon Napoleon in person seized a flag and rushed upon the bridge, followed by his staff; an aide-de-camp fell at his side and several officers were wounded. But all in vain : an attack of the Austrians brought everything into confusion, and the commander-in-chief, who was swept backwards in the rush of the fleeing soldiers, fell into a quagmire, where his life was in the utmost peril. With difficulty his aide Marmont and his brother Louis succeeded in extricating him from the morass and in concealing him from the pursuing enemy. Only under cover of the night did the French regain their position on the Adige (November ir)ih). MeanwhiU^ the wliole force under Alvinczy had massed itself around Arcole and there the battle was renewed on the next day and the following in a bloody and long-indecisive struggle, until at length the physical cndur- vEt. 27] Rivoli gi ance of Napoleon's hardened troops carried the day against the brave Austrian recruits, and in the afternoon of the 17th the bold charge of a handful of mounted officers sufficed to assure the victory on the Alpon. The French had won in the three days' batttle of Arcole (November 15th to 17th, 1796). Davidovich, who through delay had failed to take part therein, was in Uke manner attacked immediately after the battle and compelled to withdraw into the Tryol. The third attempt to relieve Mantua had failed. But Austria ventured a fourth trial, being unwilling to yield this advanced position in Italy until her utmost endeavours had been put forth. In the opening of the year 1797 Alvinczy made another advance against the enemy, this time from the Tyrol, while two lesser subdivisions commanded by Provera and Bajalich marched from the east to overcome Napoleon. Alvinczy had himself no further hope of victory and was only acting under orders of the Emperor. And yet there came a critical moment, on the plateau of Rivoli, which, properly put to advantage, might have brought about decisive results in favour of the Austrians. This was on the 14th of January, when one of the Austrian columns fell upon the French position, threatening its rear, while four others attacked it from the front with marked success. But Bonaparte was no longer the same man as before Lonato; he hurled all his available forces against one of these columns, which recoiled under the shock, the three others followed, and soon all the forces of the enemy attacking from the front were put to flight. The column executing the flank movement found itself cut off and was taken captive by the French. The battle of Rivoli terminated in a total rout of the Austrians. Their last attempt had gone against them. On the 3d of February the fortress of Mantua capitulated. Austria's dominion in Italy was at an end. Thugut, a man of inflexible purpose and of great political ability, was scarcely able to believe the fact. Hardly two years previous, when Austria had divided with Russia all that re- mained of Poland, he had obtained the promise of pohtical support from this northern neighbour for whatever further 92 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 acquisitions Austria should make in Italy, an agreement similar to that which had formerly been made with Kaunitz and Joseph II. But in November, 1796, Catharine II. died, just at the time when the command had been issued for the mustering of the Russian auxiliary troops, and her successor Czar Paul I. refused to contribute aid toward the aggrandizement of Austria. And when in addition to this disappointment Austria's other ally, England, withdrew her fleet from the Mediterranean, thereby greatly facihtating the operations of the French in Italy, the task became more than ever difficult. And now the struggle had ended in a decisive overthrow. Yet in spite of all Thugut was of opinion that the contest ought not to cease. At the close of the preceding year, relying upon the strength of the Austrian forces alone, he had refused the proposal of the Direc- tory which required the cession of Belgium and the Rhine frontier. Even recent events had not sufficed to shake this confidence. "We are not yet at the end of our resources," he exclaimed; "all we need is to gather together all our courage." He advocated removing all troops from the Rhine so as to con- centrate their entire force in Italy, a step which might in truth far better have been taken a year earlier. Archduke Charles, who had been victorious in the preceding year, was to assume the chief command of the ItaHan army, reinforced by the divi- sions which had been active on the Rhine, and to make a vigorous advance toward the South and thus bar the passage for Bona- parte through central Austria to Vienna. It was, of course, essential that this move should be made as promptly as possible. But the contrary occurred. The Empress was a daughter of the Queen of Naples, and she, at her mother's solicitation, be- sought the Emperor to make peace; he was moreover prejudiced by the Tory party against his minister, Thugut, who was a commoner who had risen to power. Accordingly he hesitated which course to pursue, and it was several weeks before he finally determined to continue the war. And when at length this resolution had been taken, it was not in the Tyn^l that the main body of the army was assembled, but in Friuli, whither it had retreated after the defeat of RivoU and where it had re- Ml. 27] The Attack on the Pope 93 maincd, e\ddently because there it was most easily supported. The fatal drawback to this arrangement was that the reinforce- ments from the Rhine were thus detained several weeks longer on the way to their destination, communication between Friuli and the Tyrol by means of the Val Sugana being interrupted. These troops were in fact still on the way when operations were begun by the French in the early part of March, 1797. Upon the part of the French, also, hostilities against Austria had not been continued immediately after the fall of Mantua. Bonaparte's army, as well, had suffered and was in need of considerable additions from the Rhine and the Sambre to fit it for new and daring enterprises. The intervening time was turned to account in a move upon Rome. Pius VI. had refused the proposals of peace made by the Directory, since they encroached upon the jurisdiction of the Church in demanding recognition of the civil constitution of the clergy in France, the suppression of the Romish Inquisition, and sundry other similar concessions. In accordance with an agreement entered into wdth Austria he had also failed to pay to France the millions of indemnity promised in June. But with the fall of Mantua the cause of the Holy Father was lost, and on the 1st of February, 1797, Napoleon declared war against him. With a small force he dispersed the Papal troops, who proved to be unspeakable cowards, and opened up a way for himself through the Romagna and the Duchy of Urbino as far as Ancona. It will never be forgotten how Lannes, who commanded the advance-guard, at the slightest possible cost compelled thousands of the foe to surrender, nor how, while himself escorted by a few officers, he came one day upon some hundreds of cavalrymen of the army of the Pope, who, upon being ordered to dismomit, were entirely disconcerted and allowed themselves to be disarmed. It was in vain that the monks exhorted the Papal soldiery to courage and steadfastness, in vain that everywhere images of the Madonna stood with averted eyes in wTath against the French; the soldiers of the Pope were not a whit the more courageous, and the fall of Rome was imminent. But here Napoleon stayed his hand. To threaten the capital would have entailed the 94 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 flight of the Pope and prolonged a war which the General re- garded as a mere episode in the greater conflict and wished to bring to a close with the greatest speed consistent with profit. He was far too shrewd a statesman to miderestimate, as did the Directory, the immense pohtical importance of the Church, and his sagacity in that respect contributed much to his success. Instead of striking at the root of Catholicism, as he was in- structed to do, he left the Pope entirely at liberty in all matters pertaining to religion, and Rome unmolested; on the 19th of February he concluded at Tolentino a treaty which was, from a material and political point of view, advantageous to the French in every particular: Pius renounced every alliance antagonistic to France, closed his harbours to the English, re- linquished the Legations of Bologna, Ferrara, and ' Romagna together with the important port of Ancona to the French, and paid 14,000,000 francs in addition to the 16,000,000 still due. Once more Bonaparte had carried out his own intentions, contrary to those of the Directory, precisely as he had concluded the armistice with the King of Sardinia upon his own authority. It was evident that his designs in regard to Italy differed from those of the government. And what may these designs have been? Something may be inferred from the fact that he at one time thought it necessary to defend himself against the charge of having had thoughts of setting himself up as Duke of Milan or even King. It is not impossible that he may have had some such object in view and consequently sought a modus Vivendi with the Pope. More probably, however, he now had a clear and definite apprehension of the possibility of himself reigning some time on the Seine and of then establishing his rule on a firmer basis and extending his sway over a wider territory than the Directory had su(;ceetled in doing. Carnot suspected him of being "a second Ccssar, who would not hesitate to cross the Rubicon as soon as the occasion should present." Certain it is that of the tremendous contributions levied in Italy but a small portion was put at the disposal of the govern- ment and used in the support of the other armies. On the con- trary, Napoleon was far from displeased when his generals seized iET. 27] The Vision of the Orient 95 their share of the booty; he thus assuretl liiinscH' of their devo- tion. The treasure thus obtained was secretly conveyed to Switzerland for safe-keeping. When Bonaparte arrived in Ancona the proximity of Turkey made a profound impression upon him. "Ancona is an excellent port," he wrote to Paris; "in twenty-four hours from here one can reach Macedonia, and in ten days Constantinople. We must keep this port when a general peace is made, and it must remain always a French possession; this point will give us in- valuable influence upon the destinies of the Ottoman Empire, and will give us the mastery of the Adriatic Sea as we now have that of the Mediterranean through Marseilles, the island of Corsica, and St. Pierre." Doubtless the form of Alexander the Great appeared at this time to his imagination and suggested to his ambition the idea of an Oriental Empire of the like of which the Directory then scarcely dreamed. Under its spell he afterwards made his expedition into Egypt, and it was only upon his return thence in order to establish his dominion in France that the alluring vision of the conquering Macedonian gave place to that of Charlemagne as model. It was in just this respect that Napoleon differed from his immediate precursors in their systems of revolutionary conquest of the world, — from the doctrinaire Girondists with their ideal of universal liberty, and from the Directors with their system of purposeless agita- tion, — that his ambitious designs were based upon the solid ground of history and carried out according to a policy with a definite aim. Only the fact that he too was never able entirely to free himself from the spell of the Revolution fuially caused his downfall.* * At the very time when Bonaparte's victories in Italy were occurring in such rapid succession Mallet du Pan addressed these remarkable words to the Court at Vienna: "Those who think that the imperishable Republic will perish in the course of time are certainly correct in their surmises, but if they mean thereby that this downfall more or less near is to insure actual stability to the rest of Europe, if they expect that everything then will change from white to black, they are greatly mistaken; for to the Republic of to-day there may succeed another Republic xvhich may be under either a monarcJi or a dictator. Who knows? In the course of twenty years a nation in commotion may give a hundred different forms to a revolution of 96 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 The campaign of 1796 had estabUshed Napoleon's mihtary fame; he had even eclipsed Hoche, who had been so much admired. But he knew very well that public opinion in France was more in favour of peace than of new victories, and that the Directory was detested and execrated because of its war policy. Elections for replacing one third of the members of the Council of Five Hundred were at hand, and no one doubted that their places would be filled by conservatives in favour of peace, and a majority thus created hostile to the Directors. Bonaparte foresaw that if he should succeed in compelling Austria to conclude a preliminary peace upon terms favourable to France he would thus not only gain the favour of the people, who had not yet forgotten the 13th Vendemiaire, but he would also put the five Directors vmder obligations to himself, since they would then be in a position to face the elections more composedly. But Bonaparte knew also how highly Austria valued her footing in Italy, and that she would not permit herself to be thrust out of the peninsula without determined resistance, and that for a long time the power on the Danube had planned the conquest of Venice. He accordingly resolved upon availing himself of the first opportunity to offer Emperor Francis the territory of San Marco and its dependencies in Istria and Dalmatia in exchange for Lombardy and Belgium. The fact that he should thereby destroy an independent neutral state was no obstacle in the eyes of this man whose ruling principle it was to press forward toward his aim regardless of the consequences to others. Had not the legitimate monarchies dealt with Poland in the this kind." Mallet du Pan did not at all events suspect then that the "revo- lutionary monarch " was to be the very man of whom he then wrote con- temptuously. "This Bonaparte, this little puppet with dishevelled hair, whom the orators of the Councils delight to call 'the young heto' and 'the conqueror of Italy,' will soon have to suffer for his mountebank glory, his misconduct, his thefts, his fusillades, his insolent slanders It would be an entire mistake, in reading the last declaration which the Directory had printed in eulogy of the General, to suppose its expressions sincere. There were voices in favour of sending 'the >oung hero' to the 'Place de la Revolution' to have a .score of bullets lodged in his pate; but, as a friend of liarras, protected by the Jacobins of all classes, he has escaped the penalty of his folly." ^T. 271 The Campaign of 1 797 97 same manner? It is evident that this plan already filled his mind when he began the campaign of 1797. To accomplish his purpose it was indispensable that Austria should be placed at the earliest possible moment in such a situation as to make this offer acceptable, and that before the armies on the Rhine under Hoche and Moreau might be able to dispute his laurels. While the Austrian reinforcements were yet far distant, those of the French arrived at headquarters during the latter days of February; the beginning of March Napoleon resumed hostilities. Three small divisions under General Joubert were ordered to the Tyrol to protect the flank of the French army against more than 20,000 Austrians. With but four others, amounting in all to about 34,000 men, Bonaparte himself under- took the expedition which was to lead to peace. As in the preceding year at the opening of the campaign, his plan was once again to prevent the armies of the adversary from effecting a union of forces by placing himself between the two, and then, with a superior number of troops, to defeat the main body of the enemy. On March 10th he brushed aside the advance- guard of the Austrians stationed on the Piave and hastened on to the Tagliamento, behind which Archduke Charles had \N-ithdrawn with the main body of his army, while Massena upon the French left endeavoured to turn the right wing of the enemy. Before these superior forces the Austrians, instead of receding to the northeast along the valley of the Tagliamento to Pontebba, retreated southeastward to Udine and Cividale and at length to the Isonzo, where they intended to await the arrival of the troops from the Rhine. But these did not come, and Bonaparte, who continued to press impetuously forward, threatened their position, which now became untenable. The Austrians withdrew in two columns, one marching from Goerz straight toward Tarvis, the other aiming for Laibach. They planned to unite at Villach, but that proved impracticable, for the Pontebba Pass, inadequately defended after a struggle of some days, fell into the hands of Massena on the 23d of March, thus cutting off communication with the Pusterthal, through which the eagerly expected reinforcements were to haAe come. 98 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 For the present any serious resistance to the French was out of the question. In these few days the losses of the Austrians had been enormous, particularly in prisoners; the Archduke had remaining at his disposal only about 15,000 men; these he conducted first to Klagenfurt and then northward on the high road to Vienna. This seemed to Napoleon the favourable moment, before Hoche and Moreau could strike a decisive blow in Germany, for making his proposals of peace, especially as his position was more or less critical in the heart of a hostile country, without any possibility of support from the army in Germany. On the 31st of March he wrote from Klagenfurt to the Prince a letter which he himself designated as "philosophical." He alludes therein to the attempt on the part of the Directory to conclude peace with Austria, which attempt had been frustrated by England. "Is there then no hope whatever of coming to some agreement between us, and must it be that, for the sake of the interest or passions of a nation untouched by the evils of this war, we must continue to cut each other's throats? I appeal to you. Sir, the Commander-in-chief, who by your birth are so near the throne and above all the petty passions which so often animate ministers and governments, are you determined to win for yourself the title of benefactor of all mankind and of true deliverer of Germany? ... As for myself. Monsieur the General- in-chief, if the proposals which I have the honour to submit to you could be the means of saving the life of a single human being, I should account myself more justly proud of the civic crown to which I should feel myself thus entitled than of the melancholy glory which may come as the reward of military successes," In order to give proper emphasis to these words, he recalled to himself at Lienz, Joubcrt, who had made a victorious advance as far as Brixen and had driven back the enemy to the north- west as far as Stcrzing and to the west as far as M^ran, and ordered Massena to seize the passes at Neumarkt, an operation during the course of which, in truth, the life of more than "one human being" was sacrificed. Thence he was to advance far enough into the valkiy of the Mur to be able to cut off at St. Mv. 27] The Preliminaries of Leoben 99 Michael and Leoben all communication remaining to the enemy with the west. On April 7th, this task having been accom- pHshecl, Massena entered Leoben with his troops. Archduke Charles meanwhile had lost no time in transmit- ting Napoleon's letter to Thugut. This statesman was Uke^^dse unwiUing to enter unsupported by a military force into negotia- tions with a general who had perhaps already advanced too far into the territory of his foe. Thousands of volunteers were enhsted, the Hungarians were called upon for assistance, and preparations made for the defence of Vienna before the plenipo- tentiaries were sent by the minister to Leoben. Here, at the Chateau Gocss, were carried on the negotiations between General IMcrvcldt and Marquis Gallo, representing Austria, and Bonaparte, in which the latter made the astounding offer of the Venetian mainland in exchange for Milan and Bel- gium. The proposal made a sensation at Vienna. Importuned by both Court and nobility to make peace, unsupported by Russia, deluded by England, whence he had been led to expect a fleet in the Adriatic in addition to considerable subsidies, and convinced of Prussia's determination to extend her borders, the outlook was indeed unpromising and Thugut reluctantly yielded. The acquisition of the long-desired territory seemed in a measure to indemnify his countiy for the losses she was sustaining; there still remained to her a firm foothold on Italian soil, and at the first favourable opportunity the lost preponderance might be re- gained. But argeemcnt became more difficult when Napoleon introduced his demand for the relinquishment of i\Iodena. It was clear that his intention was to restrain Austrian influence in Italy within the Une traced by the river OgUo, or, if possible, to make the Adige the boundary of the dominion of Francis II. Thugut, on the contraiy, sought to preserve Modena to its prince and the House of Habsburg, and to establish a boundary line to the poUtical power of France which should extend from Lake Iseo along the OgUo to the Po, and then should follow the valley of the Enza, and strike the coast near Massa and Carrara, thus cutting off the peninsula from the territory of the Republic. But Austria failed to secure her point in this diplomatic contro- loo The Campaigns in Italy [1797 versy; Modena had to be yielded and remained a portion of the Repubhc. On April 18th, 1797, the compact was signed in the Eggenwald Garden at Leoben. It was merely a preliminary convention, containing indeed the principles of agreement, but capable of modification in regard to sundry points when the final treaty should be ratified. According to its secret articles Austria was to cede Milan and the Duchy of Modena to the newly- created Republic of Lombardy, while Belgium was to be given to France; Austria was, on the other hand, to acquire the mainland of Venice as far as the Oglio, besides its dependencies (Istria and Dalmatia) on the eastern shore of the Adriatic, for which Venice was to be indemnified by the bestowal of the three former papal legations, Bologna, Ferrara, and Romagna. At the very moment when Napoleon was putting his signa- ture to the contract which ended hostilities, Hoche was winning a momentous victory from the Austrians on the Rhine, which he followed up by penetrating deep into the country of the Germans. But these victories came too late. Bonaparte had rendered them fruitless, that is, provided that the Directory were willing to ratify a treaty which, as a matter of fact, he had been totally unauthorized to make. In a letter accompanying the papers he had artfully laid stress upon the merely preliminary character of the agreement, and laid at Austria's door the initiative in the detestable Venetian business which had in reality been his own work. The government, thus misled, and desirous of remain- ing upon friendly terms with the mighty General, raised no objec- tion and ratified the treaty making the one stipulation that no further steps were to be taken against Venice, inasmuch as the transaction which had been proposed was in violation of the prin- ciples that a people should have the right to determine their own future. The exhortation came too late. One week before, on the 3d of May, Napoleon had declan^d war on the Senate of the island city. He had deemed it quite unnecessary to inform the Directory that he had midertaken in Leoben to obtain the Venetian territory for Austria, and for this cause would open hostilities against the Republic of San Marco immediately upon the conclusion of the treaty. ^T. 27] Napoleon's Designs on Venice loi The pretext for this he had long been holding in readiness. In spite of his statements to the contrary, it may safely be assumed that Napoleon before invading Austria had organized in the Venetian cities also a democratic revolution against the aristocratic rule of that state. The "Patriots" rose in revolt. The unlooked-for result was that the peasantry, who were friendly to the government, turned upon the insurgents, and a number of French soldiers, who had openly taken part in the uprising, were killed. Thus in Verona there occurred a counter-revolution which cost the lives of many democrats and Frenchmen, and it was quelled only by the energetic intervention of the French garrison. Two days later there took place in the harbour of Venice a fight between a French and a Venetian war-ship in which the captain of the former was killed. Thereupon fol- lowed Napoleon's declaration of war against the Doge. A democratic uprising in the city openly supported by a French Charge d'Affaires contributed largely toward increasing the disturbance. On May 15th the "Great Council" was forced to abdicate and a provisional government was set up by the "Pa- triots," who at once disbanded such troops as the government still had at its disposal and came to an agreement with Napo- leon according to which that general, in return for a consideration of 5,000,000 francs and a number of war-ships, promised to cease hostilities and to give the Republic the protection of his arms (May 16th, 1797). How little in earnest he was with this promise of protection is shown by the fact that within a few^ days he offered to the Marquis Gallo, who had been sent by Thugut to Milan to conduct negotiations for the final treaty, to surrender to Austria the city of Venice in addition to the mainland territory, on condition that the Austrian boundary line be receded from the Oglio to the Adige (May 24th, 1797). In order to reassure the Venetians, he wrote, two days later, to the new nmnicipality: "Whatever the circumstances, I shall do all in my power to give proof of my warm desire to see your liberty confirmed and to see unhappy Italy at length take her place with glory, free and inde- pendent of all foreign powers, upon the world's stage, to resume among the great nations the rank to which she is entitled by I02 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 nature, position, and destiny. . . . Venice has the only popu- lation worthy of the blessing of liberty." Directly contradic- tory to all of these statements was his report to the Directory written on the following day, which reads: "Venice, which has been in process of decay ever since the discovery of the Cape of Good Hope and the rise of Triest and Ancona, can but with difficulty survive the blows which we have just dealt her. This is a wretched, cowardly people, entirely unfit for liberty, without land and under water; it seems but natural that they should be turned over to those to whom we are giving the mainland. We shall take all their ships, we shall despoil the arsenal, carry off all their cannon, and destroy their bank. Corfu and Ancona we will reserve for ourselves." The haughty city was to be bled ere her carcass should be delivered over to Austria. It was questionable whether the Court of Vienna, which desired above all things to acquire the three papal legations, would accept the new proposals made by Napoleon. But meanwhile affairs in Paris were assuming an aspect which of neces- sity affected Bonaparte's attitude. In these affairs he was per- sonally concerned, and in consequence they reacted upon foreign relations. The elections of April, 1797, had resulted, as was to have been foreseen, in an outcome entirely unfavourable to the Directory, giving the Moderates a majority in the Councils both of the Five Hundred and of the Ancients. A new Director was also to be appointed at this time. The choice fell upon Barthclcmy, who with Carnot, likewise a Moderate, formed a Conservative minority in opposition to Barras, Rewbcll, and Larevclliere. Consequently from this time the democratic- Jacobin element prevailed in the Directory, while the Conserva- tives and Royalists controlled the legislature. The antagonism grew fiercer from day to day and a clash was inevitable. One day the opposing majority would spring an attack on the wretched financial policy of the government, which with diffi- culty continued its existence despite a double bankruptcy; next day its dealings with jiricsts aiul 6migr6s would be arraigned, then its colonial administration, its commercial policy, and ;Et. 27] Napoleon Supports the Directory 103 finally its foreign policy, which was more and more clearly re- vealing its character of revolutionary propagandism, whose acknowledged aim was to make Europe republican. The Directory was openly accused of prosecuting an endless war because it could not maintain the troops at home. The suicide of several naval officers, who took their lives because they were unable to procure food, produced a deep impression. The proceedings in Italy were censured with especial severity, and particularly the dealings against Venice. The Directory was accused by the right wing of the opposition of declaring war without securing consent of the legislature as the Constitution demanded, and of interfering, equally unconstitutionally, in the domestic affairs of foreign states, thus systematically pre- venting the settlement of a definitive peace. Bonaparte, who felt himself personally implicated in these charges, espoused the cause of the majority of the Directory against the majority of the legislature. On July 14th, in honour of the anniversary of the storming of the Bastille, he issued a manifesto to his army which contained a formal declaration of war against the adversaries of his party. The opposition thus menaced was composed in part of royalists, and these were detested by the republican armies chiefly on account of the Emigres. "Soldiers," said he, "I see that you are profoundly affected by the misfortunes which threaten your country; but the country cannot undergo any real dangers. The same men who have made her triumphant over Europe in coalition are at hand. Mountains separate us from France, but you would clear these with the rapidity of the eagle if necessary to uphold the Constitution, to defend liberty and protect the government and republicans. Soldiers, the government keeps watch over the laws which are entrusted to its custody. The Royalists will cease to exist from the moment that they show themselves. Let us not be disquieted and let us swear by the spirits of the heroes who have died beside us in the cause of liberty, let us swear upon our new banners, implacable war to all enemies of the Republic and of the Constitution of the year III!" This summons found an echo in every garrison of his army, and in I04 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 the other armies as well, and sundry detachments affirmed their loyal devotion to the Republic in addresses to the Directory. In addition Bonaparte composed a number of memorials which, in a way as masterly as it was false, were intended to justify his course in relation to Venice. " I forewarn you," he vocifer- ates to the orators of the opposition, "and I speak in the name of 80,000 men, that the day is past when cowardly lawyers and wretched babblers sent soldiers to the guillotine!" And he was not the man to content himself with words. He sent one of his generals, Augereau, to Paris bearing the addresses of the divisions, and put him at the disposal of Barras and his two colleagues for their defence in case of need. Hardly had he arrived before he was put in command of the Army of the Interior. Besides this Napoleon rendered the three Directors another and peculiar service. In Venice one of the principal agents of the Bourbons, the Comte d'Antraigues, had fallen into Napoleon's hands, and in conversation with him the count made disclosures concering Pichegru's relations with the Bourbon Prince de Conde in 1795. Such revelations were now the more valuable since Pichegru had become one of the leaders of the majority and President of the "Five Hundred." By means of promises or threats Napoleon induced d'Antraigues to commit these statements to paper, and before long this writing found its way to Paris, where it served the three Directors as an effec- tive means and ostensible reason for a Coup d'Etat by means of which they rid themselves on September 4th, 1797 (18th Fruc- tidor), first of their two colleagues Carnot and liarthelemy and then of a considerable number of conservative deputies. The vacant places in the Directory were filled by two men of con- firmed democratic principles, Merlin de Doiiai and Frangois de Neufchateau. The attempt had been successful in every par- ticular. As justification for it Pichegru's alleged treason was made public, liut the real victor of Fructidor was Bonaparte, exactly as he had been on the 1.3th Vendemiaire. There is m truth warrantable doubt whether, in giving his support to the Directory, he had desired that affairs should assume this aspect, whether his intention was not simply to overthrow Pichegru. Mt.2s] Napoleon on the i8th Fructidor 105 It is possible that Augcreau coniproniised him more deeply than was necessary in regard to his designs. That at least would appear to be the case judging by the M^moires of Barante recently published. But in face of the accomplished fact, in order to remain master, he was obliged to lay claim to the victory for himself and his army, and this he publicly did in a bulletin issued on the 22d of September, the anniversary of the birth of the Republic. Therein occurs this passage: "Soldiers, far from your native land and victorious over Europe, chains were being prepared for you; you knew it, you spoke, the people roused itself and secured the traitors, and already they are in fetters." He was more than ever in favour with the government. Augereau, who had supposed himself the ruling power in the Coup d'Etat, though he was in reality but the undiscerning tool, was put out of the way by his appointment as Commander-in- chief of the Army of the Rhine. Hoche, the Corsican general's only rival worthy of mention, died just at this time of an acute pulmonary disease, though the report then current that his death was due to poison seemed all too probable. The Army of the Alps was united with that of Italy and Napoleon's forces thus very considerably increased. The Royalists were vanquished, the Moderates condemned to inaction, and the new Directory, which was under obligation to the General, avoided any resolute opposition to his wishes. His ambition no longer knew any bounds. Some years later he said, in con- versation with Madame de Remusat: "It has been said of me as a reproach that I facilitated the events of the 18th Fructidor. They might as well reproach me for having upheld the Revolu- tion. Advantage had to be taken of that Revolution, some profit derived from the blood which it had caused to flow. What! consent to yield unconditionally to the princes of the House of Bourbon, who would have thrown in our faces the calamities which we have suffered since their departure, and imposed silence upon us by pointing to the need which we had shown of their return! Exchange our victorious banner for that white flag w^hich had not feared to take its place amid the standards 1 06 The Campaigns in Italy [1797 of the enemy; and finally I myself be content with some millions and with some dukedom or other! * Of a surety, the part played by Monk is not a difficult one; it would have cost me less trouble than the Egyptian campaign or than the 18th Bru- maire; most certainly I should have found a way, if there had been need for it, to dethrone the Bourbons a second time, and the best advice which could have been given them would have been to rid themselves of me." How well this avowal accords with what attentive observers say of him in that same year ! One of his old friends, Sucy, the Commissioner of War, writes in August, 1797: "I know for him no halting-point other than the throne or the scaffold." And the before-mentioned Comte d'Antraigues says in a report made that September: "This man means to subjugate France and, through France, Europe. . . . Were there a king in France other than himself, he would wish to have enthroned him, and that the royal authority should rest upon the point of his own sword, from which sword he would never be separated so that he might plunge it into the heart of his sovereign should that monarch for a moment cease to be subservient to his will." Was this calumny or exaggeration? Neither one nor the other. Napoleon himself made some strange confidences to Melzi and Miot in June, 1797, before the Coup d'Etat of Fruc- tidor: "Do you suppose that I gain victories to increase the glory of the lawyers in the Directory, for Carnot, or for Barras? Have you the impression that I have any thoughts of establish- ing a Republic? What an absurd idea! A RepubUc of 30,- 000,000 souls! And with our customs and our vices? How would such a thing be possible? . . . The nation wants a chief- tain covered with glory, and cares nothing for theories of gov- * Bonaparte, like Pichegru, had been approached by agents of the Bourbons. The claimant to the throne had even written him a letter in his own hand, and in December, 1796, he was promised the title of Duke, the hereditary viceroyalty of Corsica, and the baton of a Marshal of France on condition lliat. he would declare himself for tlu> hereditary monarchy Thcsi! short -sigiited conspirators had indeed no idea that wliat they thus offered him had long ceased to be sufficient to curb Napo- leon's ambition. Mt. 28] His Characterization of the ItaHans 107 eminent, fine words, or dreams of idealists, none of which the French understand. . . ," No one questioned who was to be this chieftain, for already his outward bearing gave evidence of his independent power. He held court, like a prince, in his villa of Montebello in the vicinity of Milan. There, like a prince, he received ambassadors from Austria, Naples, and Piedmont. He even took his repasts in public with a few privileged persons, exhibiting himself to the gaze of the curious as was customary with monarchs. And like a monarch he now negotiated the final treaty of peace with Austria, accord- ing to his own designs and in no wise in accordance with the intentions of the government at Paris. The latter did indeed attempt to make Bonaparte follow the line of conduct prescribed by its democratic doctrinairism, to force him to revolutionize all Italy, and to exclude the Emperor completely. But he rejected this demand as impracticable with so much decision, and with the threat of his own abdication in case of persistence in it, that there remained to the Directory no choice but to let him follow his own inchnations. In the letters which he addressed to the Foreign Office at the capital he assumes throughout a superior and didactic tone. In one of the most noteworthy, dated October 7th, 1797, and addressed to Talleyrand, the newly-appointed Minister of Foreign Affairs, he says: "You but little know these Italians. They are not worthy that 40,000 Frenchmen should be killed for them. I see by your letters that you are acting upon a mistaken presumption; you imagine that the possession of liberty will bring about the accomplishment of great deeds by a people effeminate and superstitious, buffoons and cowards. . . . The distinguishing characteristic of our nation is to be far too rash in time of pros- perity. If, as the basis of all our dealings, we make use of true pohcy, which is nothing else than the reckoning of combinations and chances, we shall for a long time be the great nation and arbiter of Europe. More than that: we hold the balance of Europe; we will make it incline according to our wishes, and, should it be the will of fate, I see no reason why it should be impossible for us in the course of a few years to attain even to io8 The Campaigns in Italy 1797 those great results already dimly seen by the heated and enthu- siastic imagination, and which only the extremely cool, per- severing, and rational man may ever hope to reach." It was soon to be the turn of the Court of Vienna to feel this pre-eminence and superior bearing of Bonaparte. Thugut had expressed a readiness to deviate from the stipulations of the preliminary convention of April, his intention being, of course, to add to Austria's territory in Italy through the acqui- sition of the Legations. But in this he failed. Napoleon, to be sure, had wilUngly consented to the alteration of the former treaty, but only in order to reduce still further the influence of Austria. It was to gain this point that he had in May offered the city of Venice with the Adige as a boundary. Thugut had at once rejected this proposal. But in vain he prolonged the negotiations for months, evidently in the hope that a victory of the Moderates in Paris would also bring about a more con- servative foreign policy in France; in vain he sent to Udine to treat with Bonaparte, Count Louis Cobenzl, the ablest diplomat in the service of the Emperor; in September the situation was such that, in view of the isolation of Austria and the supremacy of the peace party at court, not even the terms offered at Leoben could be insisted upon, and those now proposed by their ad- versary had to be accepted. It was at the end of a series of stormy sessions that the final treaty was at length concluded. Bonaparte used all the resources of his temperament for the purpose of influencing the Austrian envoy; he flattered, he cajoled him with seductive promises, he threatened and insulted him. Once, upon a refusal on the part of Cobenzl to some pro- posal, Napoleon was seized with a veritable paroxysm of fury; snatching up a porcelain vase, he hurled it to the floor and rushed out of the room, cursing and shrieking; a scene similar to those which, in later years, he repeatedly, and not without premeditation, enacted in the presence of the envoys of foreign powers. At last, on October 17th, 1797, after two occasions upon which negotiations were on the verge of being completely broken off, the definitive treaty was signed at Passariano, near Udine, though the paper was dated Campo Formio. Belgium jEt. 28] The Treaty of Campo Formio 1 09 and the Ionian Isles were to belong to France, while Austria received the city of Venice and the mainland of that republic as far as the Adige and southward from this river the district between the Bianco Canal and the main branch of the Po. The territories of Mantua, Milan, Bergamo, Brescia, Modena, and the three Legations were collectively to constitute the Cisalpine Repubhc. The Duke of Modena was to receive the Austrian Breisgau as indemnity for his former possessions. Austria, which, in addition to the Breisgau, was obliged to surrender the county of Falkenstein and the Frickthal in the Aargau was to receive in compensation the archbishopric of Salzburg together with that portion of Bavaria lying on the right bank of the Inn, and France engaged to sustain these claims in behalf of the Emperor. In return for this Austria promised her friendly intervention in the treaty yet to be concluded with the Empire, whereby France was to obtain the long-desired Rhenish boundary-line between Basel and Andernach. The affairs of the German Empire were to be regulated at a special congress soon to assemble at Rastatt. The German princes whose lands might be encroached upon were to receive com- pensation in territory upon the right bank of the Rhine. In token of his good faith the Emperor at once put the French in possession of the commanding fortress of Mainz. The tidings that peace had been concluded brought boundless joy at Vienna among the people at large as well as at the court. Only a few clear-sighted statesmen, Thugut especially, deplored the stipulations of the treaty as a misfortune to the monarchy, and had no faith in the durabiUty of the situation thus brought about. The Emperor had consented to the diminution of the territory of the Empire and had expressed his willingness to annex to his own the domain of an ecclesiastical prince when it was precisely these ecclesiastical States of the Empire upon which the House of Habsburg most depended for its hold on the imperial crowTi. If only Austria could have gainetl the longed-for increase of power, there would have been some con- solation, but instead she had been driven inexorably backward toward the East. iio The Campaigns in Italy [1797 Napoleon, on the contrary, had every reason to contemplate his achievement with satisfaction. It is said that on the day that the treaty was signed he gave unreserved expression to his joy and showed the Austrian ambassador a charming amiability of manner which was as much at command of his talent as an actor as had been his former anger and violence. To him personally the failure to reach a conclusion through these negotiations would have entailed the undesired discomfort of a winter cam- paign in the inhospitable Alpine regions, with the possibility in the mean time that the decisive victory might be gained elsewhere by another, while their successful termination enabled him to carry out the vast designs which he had been maturing during the course of the summer — designs which, for their world-em- bracing extent and clear conception of purpose, have rarely been equalled in the mind of a human being. ©HAPTER VI EGYPT When Napoleon, under the guise of a faithful ally, concluded the treaty with the new government of Venice, his object was not merely to secure a compensation which he could dehver to Austria; he reserved to France a portion of the Venetian inheritance : the position of the ancient Republic as a power in the Orient was to descend to the French. In May, 1797, Bonaparte sent General Gentili, a French officer, with a Venetian fleet to occupy the Ionian Isles, whose population joyfully received the emissary of the illustrious general as their deliverer from the oppressive rule of the I.ion of St. Mark. He had thus taken a momentous step toward the Orient, where he saw extended a vast field for the develop- ment of French influence and his own ambition, provided that they could be made to coincide. As long before as the previous May he had insisted that France must retain Corfu. "Corfu and Zante," he afterward wrote to Talleyrand, "make us masters of the Adriatic and of the Levant. It is useless for us to attempt to sustain the Turkish Empire ; we shall see its downfall within our own times; the occupation of these four beautiful Ionian islands will put us in a position to support it or to secure a portion for ourselves." It was in accordance with this scheme that he by means of clever agents established relations for himself from the Ionian Islands with the Greeks, the Mainotes, and the Pashas of Janina. Scutari, and Bosnia. And already his far-seeing eye had discovered new objects for his activity. It had long been a part of the policy of France to cut off England's commimication with India, and to this end to secure as much foothold as possible in the Mediterranean. It was on this account that, upon the departure of the English fleet from those waters in 1796, Napoleon had had Corsica re- 1 1 2 Egypt [1797 occupied by General Gentili,* and for the same reason also, during the ensuing spring, similar proceedings were carried out against Genoa as had been instituted against Venice, and on June 5th, 1797, a treaty was concluded making France the absolute master of the "Ligurian Republic," which now received a new demo- cratic constitution. Finally, on the 16th of August, 1797, he wrote to the Directory: "The time is not far distant when we shall feel that in order to really disable England we must possess ourselves of Egypt. The Vast Ottoman Empire, which is rapidly crumbling into decay, makes it our imperative duty to take prompt measures for protecting our Eastern commerce." With a single bound his thought traverses the space which intervenes between him and the land of the Pharaohs. On the 13th of September he writes to Talleyrand: "Why should we not possess ourselves of the island of Malta? Admiral Brucys might readily anchor there and take possession of it. Four hundred knights and a regiment of five hundred men constitute the entire garrison of the city of La Vallette. The people there are much inclined toward us and much out of conceit with their knight'^, who have no means of subsistence and are dying of starvation. I had all their property in Italy confiscated on purpose. With the island of St. Pierre, which the King of Sardinia has ceded to us, Malta, Corfu, etc., we shall be masters of the whole Mediterranean. If it should prove necessary for us to give up the Cape of Good Hope when the time comes for us to make our peace with England, we must take possession of Egypt. One could start from here with 25,000 men escorted by eight or ten ships of the line or Venetian frigates. . . . Egypt does not belong to the Sultan. I should like to have you make investigations in Paris so as to let me know what the consequences of our Egyptian expedition would be to the Porte." Talleyrand eagerly entered into the projects of the General, his penetration having doubtless recognized the future master under * Napoleon accorded amnesty to the Corsicans, making exception only in the case of the heads of those families who had ranged themselves under Paoli's banner against him, particularly Pozzo di Borgo, Peraldi Bertholani, and others. Pozzo di Borgo remained henceforth his foe And implacable adversary. ^T. 28] Napoleon's Designs on Egypt 1 1 3 this exterior of brutal superiority. These schemes of Napoleon's were akin to conceptions and projects of his own. Before the receipt of Napoleon's letter, he had, in July, 1797, read a paper before the members of the National Institute, "8ur les avan- tages k rctirer des colonies nouvelles apres les r^'volutions," in which he directed attention to Egypt and claimed for Choiseul the honour of being the first to conceive the idea.* Furthermore, Magallon, the French consul at Cairo, had for a year reiterated in his reports the advantages to be gained from an Egyptian expedition. For these reasons Bonaparte's pro- posals met with approval on the part of the minister, who entered into the plan himself and furthered it, laying stress upon the importance of French supremacy on the Mediterranean and especially upon the Nile. In fact he once even claimed to the Prussian envoy that he had himself been the instigator of the enterprise. It may reasonably be questioned whether at this time Napo- leon had the intention of assuming himself the leadership of this expedition. It was quite out of keeping with his ambitious plans to undertake such an adventure in a distant land with 25,000 men, setting at stake upon an uncertain issue the glory which he had so rapidly and completely won, giving up his position of * But the idea was an older one. Leibniz had urged the same upon Louis XIV. in order to distract the attention of the French from the Rhine. In 1738 d'Argenson, the future French minister, again brought up the suggestion and counselled the piercing of the Isthmus of Suez. Since that time the French government had taken up the question a number of times. Thus in 1780 the explorer Sonnini came upon a French officer in Cairo who had been sent to study the possibility of mak- ing a conquest of Egypt and a way thence to the Indies. P'ive years later the question was again under discussion, for Emperor Joseph II. assigned Egypt to France in his plan for the division of Turkey. In 1795 and 1796 emissaries of the Republic scoured the valley of the Nile. It is, moreover, a certainty that Bonaparte concerned himself about Egypt long before 1797. He had in 1792 made the acquaintance of \'olney, who had trav- elled throughout the Orient and had published five years before his "Voyage en Syrie et Egypte." Volney had an estate near Ajaccio. In his "Considerations sur la guerre actuelle desTurcs" (1788), the idea of a French expedition to Egypt is the subject of detailed study. I 1 4 Egypt [1797 power in France and relieving the Directory at so small a price of the anxiety caused by his ambitious efforts. He did indeed later conduct the expedition, but only because compelled by circum- stances unforeseen in the autumn of 1797. For the conquest of Egypt was but a single link in the chain of projects whose final aim was disclosed in a proclamation to the fleet: "Comrades, when we shall have accomplished our task of pacifying the conti- nent we shall unite ourselves once more with you to conquer the Uberty of the seas. . . . Without you we could carry the glory of the French name but to a small corner of the continent. United with you we shall cross the seas, and the remotest regions shall behold the national glory." On the day following the con- clusion of peace with Austria he indicated the present moment, in a letter to Talleyrand, as particularly favourable to combat with Great Britain: "Let us concentrate all our activity upon the upbuilding of the navy, and let us destroy England. That accomplished, Europe is at our feet!" Even before this time the Directory had taken into consideration a landing on the Brit- ish coast and made preparations accordingly. Bonaparte favoured the idea. When on the 2d of November he was in- formed in Milan of the ratification of the Austrian treaty he was notified at the same time of his appointment as commander-in- chief of the Army of England. He at once directed fifteen demi- brigades of the Italian army to march to the seacoast, and ordered cannon cast of the calibre of those used by the English, "in order to be able, in the enemy's country, to avail one's self of English projectiles." But another matter concerned him far more deeply than these military designs. He had long ceased to be the mere military servitor of the Directory. His whole b(nng was ex- pressive of the determination to conquer for himself, if possible, a leading position and, if such a thing could be accomplished, to exercise in the government at the heart of France the same power which ho had up to this time enjoyed in foreign lands. November 17th, 1797, he left his headquarters in Milan in order to betake himself to Rastatt, where he as first French plenipotentiary was to negotiate with the ambassadors of the jEt. 28] Napoleon in Paris 1 1 ^ Emperor the treaty with the Empire. He remained but a short time in this little town in Baden, — where he occupied the same apartments put at the disposal of Villars during a previous congress, — only until Cobenzl arrived and he had signed with him the agreement concerning the surrender of Mainz, Decem- ber 1st, 1797. Then on the same evening he began his journey toward Paris, whither Barras in his capacity of chief of the Directory had bidden him and whither he was driven by his own desire of profiting by the fame he had acquired. He was received by the Directory with every outward token of amity. Fetes were given for him at the Luxembourg and at the Louvre, whose walls were adorned with the works of art brought as plunder from Italy, while theatrical performances and similar festivities were organized in his honour. Even the populace appeared to have forgotten its mistrust of the man of the 13th Vendemiaire, and saw in him only the war hero; interest and curiosity at least, if not sympathy, were every- where manifest. In the theatres the public boisterously de- manded a sight of the General upon learning that he was present; it was scarcely possible for him to elude such ovations. He was elected by the National Institute to a fife-membership in that body in the place of Camot, and from that time he appeared only in the ordinary garb of the scholar by way of demonstrating his "civism." In fact he affected a complete simpficity of manner and conduct which must have been irksome to a man so eager for glory. He lived in his wife's unpretentious house in the Rue Chantereme, which had been rechristened Rue de la Victoire in his honour; the many attentions bestowed upon him he met with studied reserve and rarely showed himself in pubfic. To his old comrade Bourrienne, who had become his confidential secretary, he said: "At Paris nothing is long remembered. If I remain inactive for any considerable time, I am lost. One celebrity crowds out another in this Babylon. They need only to see me three times at the theatre to pay no further attention to me, and I shall appear there but seldom." Upon the ob- servation of Bourrienne that he must nevertheless feel flattered to see the people throng thus about him, he replied: "Pshaw I I 1 6 Egypt [1797 They would crowd around me just as eagerly if I were on my way to the scaffold." Of all the official festivities the chief event was the splendid fete given in his honour by the Directory on the 10th of Decem- ber, 1797, at which he was to dehver to them the treaty of Campo Formio ratified by the Emperor Francis. All the dis- tinguished people and high officials in Paris were assembled that day in the great salon of the Palais de Luxembourg, which was magnificently decorated. Minister Talleyrand delivered the official address in which he lauded Napoleon's old-fashioned preference for simplicity, his predilection for the sciences, his contempt for vain splendour. " All these quaUties," said he, "are to us the surest guarantee that he will never allow himself to be led away by ambition." The audience awaited with intense interest Napoleon's reply, which was as follows: "The French people, in order to be free, had to fight against kings. To obtain a Constitution founded upon reason, it had to overcome the prejudices of eighteen centuries. The Constitution of the year III (1795) and you yourselves have vanquished all these obstacles. Religion, feudalism, and monarchy have in turn governed Europe during twenty centuries; but from the peace which you have just concluded dates the era of representative governments. Success has attended your efforts to organize this great nation whose vast territory is circumscribed by the confines which nature herself has imposed. You have done even more. The two fairest countries in Europe,* once so celebrated for the arts, the sciences, and the great men of which they were the cradle, now see with the brightest hopes the spirit of liberty rising from the tombs of their ancestors. These are two pedestals upon which destiny will rear two powerful nations. I have the honour to deliver to you the treaty signed at Campo Formio and ratified by his majesty the Emperor. . . . When the happiness of the French people shall be established upon the best organic laws, all Europe will become free." The meaning of these words was far from clear. The last phrase especially was enigmatic. Its solution was vaguely * Italy and Greece. iEr. 28] Napoleon's Political Ideas 117 divined by a few, while the remainder of his auditors exhausted themselves in conjecture. Then with this vaunted Constitu- tion of the year III France was not yet "estabUshed upon the best organic laws"? Far from it, according to Napoleon's innermost convictions. Shortly before he had written con- fidentially to Talleyrand upon this subject; the letter, dated September 19th, reads: "The organization of the French nation is then in reahty nothing more than roughly outlined. In spite of our conceit, our thousand and one pamphlets, and our verbose and endless harangues, we are very ignorant in pohtical science. We have, as yet, no definite conception of what is meant by executive, legislative, and judiciary power. Mon- tesquieu has given us misleading definitions; not that this celebrated man was not abundantly able to give us what we need, but his work, as he himself says, is only a kind of analysis of that which had existed or was then in existence; it is a sum- mary of notes made during his travels or in his reading. He fixed his eye upon the government of England and defined in a general way executive, legislative, and judiciary power. Why, indeed, should one regard as an attribute of the legislative power the right to make war or conclude peace, or the right to fix the quantity and the nature of taxfes? The English Con- stitution has very reasonably entrusted one of these attributes to the House of Commons, and this was an excellent step, be- cause the English Constitution is simply a charter of privileges, it is a black ceiling but bordered with gold. As the House of Commons is the only body which actually represents the people, it alone should have the right to determine this question of taxation; it is the only discoverable bulwark against the des- potism and insolence of courtiers. But in a government where every authority emanates from the nation, where the sovereign is the people, why class among the attributes of the legislative power things which are foreign to it? The governmental power, using the term in the broadest sense, should be considered as the true representative of the nation, and this should govern in accordance with the written constitution and organic laws. This governmental power appears to me to be subdivided natu- 1 1 8 Egypt ti^o? rally into two very distinct jurisdictions, one of which should supervise without acting, while that which we now call the executive power should be obliged to submit to the former all important measures; this, if I may be permitted the expression, would be the legislation of the executive. The first of these bodies would be in fact the great council of the nation ; it would have all that part of the administration or of the executive which according to our Constitution is entrusted to the legisla- tive power. The governmental power would thus be vested in two magistracies appointed by the people, one of them, con- sisting of a large number of men, to which no one would be eligible who had not already held some office which would have given experience in state affairs. The legislative power would in the first place make all the organic laws, and alter them, but not in the course of two or three days, as is the present practice; for, once an organic law has been made operative, according to my idea, it could not be changed without five or six months of discussion. This legislative power, without rank in the Republic, impassive, without eyes and without ears for its surroundings, would be free from ambition and we should no longer be inun- dated with a thousand laws passed for the occasion which annul themselves by their very absurdity and which make us, with three hundred folio volumes of legislative enactments, a nation without laws." These conceptions, which Napoleon calls his "Code Complet de Politique," are of the greatest possible interest. They demon- strate not only his dissatisfaction with existing circumstances, but it is noticeable also that no word escapes him relative to the nature of the real executive power; that was, and should remain for the present, his own secret. The letter, as has been said, was directed to Talleyrand , who was to show it in confidence to Sieyes, the great theorist and constitution-maker. Both of these men were as little in favour of the Constitution of that time as was Bonaparte himself. The last named was then twenty-eight years of age, and Article 134, to the effect that JJin^ctors nuist have reached the age of forty, was to him particularly obnoxious.* * According to Uu; tesiimony of Prince John of T>i("ch(cnstein, who /Et. 2s] The Fall of the Papal Government 119 It needed only a fav()ural)l('oi)portunity to bring aljout the over- throw of this obstacle to his further progress. Should such an one present itself during the winter of 1797-98 Napoleon was prepared to make a Coup d'Etat against Directory and Constitu- tion. When in the midst of the festivities of the lOth of Decem- ber a curious spectator fell from the roof of the palace to the groimd, the sad occurrence was regarded as an omen of the aj)- proaching downfall of the government. But the authorities were using every means to maintain their friendly relations with Bonaparte. The Directors consulted him upon all questions of foreign policy and accepted his recommenda- tions with a greater or less degree of readiness. Toward the end of December, 1797, there arose in the Papal States a revolt of the democratic elements of the populace under French protection, and this insurrection was forcibly suppressed by the papal troops. When upon this occasion General Duphot was killed, the Direc- tory, acting upon the counsel of Bonaparte, took advantage of this pretext to advance upon the papal government. Berthier received command from Napoleon to enter Rome, where the rule of Pius VI. was declared at an end and a republican govern- ment proclaimed, February 15th, 1798. It is improbable that it was the intention of Bonaparte that these measures should be carried out as far as the deposition of the Pope. The inference is that here the feeling in the Directory was too strong for him to resist. The Batavian Republic was at this time ruled by federalists, and, the government feeling itself incapable of meeting the hea\'y demands for money and ships imposed upon it by the alliance with France, the French envoy openly came to the aid of the democratic centralists, who rose into power January 22d, 1798, by means of a Coup d'Etat similar to that of the 18th Fructidor, and placed themselves absolutely at the disposition of the Direc- tory. Joubert, the favourite of Napoleon, received the command of the Dutch troops. But it is in respect to relations with Switzerland that Napo- saw him in Udine, he had, to be sure, even then the appearance of a man of forty. I 20 Egypt [1797 leon's influence is most clearly seen. While still in Italy he had released the ValtelUne from the dominion of theGrisons, — "since, according to the rights of nations imder the new Uberty, no people could remain subject to another," — and this territory he had incorporated in the Cisalpine Republic. The treaty with Austria had delivered into his hands the Frickthal, which belonged to the Canton of Aargau. He now conceived a desire for a thoroughfare through Valais which would facilitate communications between France and Lom- bardy. This purpose could be achieved if Switzerland could be induced to accept a place like that of the Batavian and the Cisalpine in the circle of dependent republics with which France was to surround herself as a shield against the rest of Europe. Accordingly the democratic element in Switzerland was aroused and supported in opposition to the aristocratic government of the patricians, and the same means were employed which had proved so efficacious in Holland and Venice, in Rome and Milan and Genoa. Upon the solicitation of the democrats of the Canton of Vaud for assistance from the French against the rule of Bern, the Directory willingly granted their request and charged its diplomatic agents in the chief cities throughout Switzerland to fan the flame of the insurgent movement to their utmost. Bonaparte and Rewbell had contrived with Ochs of Basel, the leader of the democratic centralists, a regular plan of revolu- tion. General Brune invaded the Bernese territory and under the guise of a liberator succeeded in separating the adversaries only to take possession of Bern, March 5th, 1798, whence he deliv- ered to the Directory the "Bernese treasure" consisting of about 25,000,000 francs * besides an immense supply of provisions and munitions of war. A burdensome treaty of alUance with France was then imposed upon the newly-established "Helvetian Re- public." Switzerland had become a French dependency. Of the money seized 3,000,000 francs passed into Napoleon's military chest to be used in defraying the expenses of the projected under- * According to Diiiidlikc^r th(^ value of tliis treasure has been greatly exaggerated. "It actually consisted of about seven millions in money and twelve millions in bonds." (Short Hist, of Switzerland, 217.) — B. ^T. 28] Napoleon Looks to the Orient i 2 1 taking against p]ngland, and, according to the statements of Madame de Stael, it was commonly believed that the general had advised this lucrative enterprise as a means to this very end. But however great the condescension whereby the Directors permitted the victorious general to take part in their deliberations, he was nevertheless without any secure official position such as this influence upon proceedings would appear to denote. Bour- rienne affirms that he demanded admittance to the Directory in spite of the Constitution, but was unable to accomplish his pur- pose. It is not impossible that there was ground for the surmises of the observant that the massing of great bodies of troops at that time was ordered less with a view to the enterprise against England than to the establishment of a dictatorship. Disa- greeable scenes took place in the Directory over this question of which something appears to have reached the public, for the Prussian envoy reports that the populace of Paris were already asking one another what the general was doing so long in the capital and why he did not set sail for England. Napoleon had thus not only failed of securing a position at the head of the government, but he was at the same time running great danger of seeing the glory of his former triumphs wane in the light of every-day existence, and of losing, by continued inaction, the popularity which he had acquired. He recognized that, for the present at least, there was no hope of a successful issue to a Coup d'Etat. Hated as the Directors were by the people, he was himself far from being beloved to such an extent as to be able to rely upon his popularity in a struggle against them. His chief concern must be to "keep his glory warm," to use his own expression. In view of the inefficiency of the French navy a landing in England seemed to him too hazardous a venture. Even later, in 1805, he again eagerly availed himself of the occa- sion furnished by the coalition to lead his forces elsewhere. He much preferred a return to his former plan of a campaign in the Orient. "I will not remain here," he said to Bourrienne, "there is nothing to be done. I see that if I stay it will be but a short time before I am done for. Everything wastes away here below. 122 Egypt [1798 I am already bereft of my glory. This little Europe has not enough to offer. The Orient is the place to go. All great repu- tations have been made there.* I mean, however, to make a tour of inspection of the northern coast in order to convince myself as to what may be ventured. If I see reason to doubt the success of a landing in England, as I fear may be the case, the Army of England will become the Army of the Orient and I shall go to Egypt." On February 8th, 1798, the proposed journey along the coast was undertaken. It was soon completed. Bonaparte easily satisfied himself of the present impracticability of the enterprise, and upon his return tried to bring the Directory to the same con- clusion. In two memorials of February 23d he demonstrates that a landing in England without having first secured the mastery of the seas would be a most difficult and daring measm^e, which, if achievable, could only be accomplished during the long nights and consequently not before the coming autumn. Meanwhile — as he explains in a later communication bearing date of April 13th — the expedition on the Mediterranean with Egypt as its destination might be undertaken which would compel the English to detach a part of their Channel fleet to send to India and the Red Sea. Meantime the forces in the northern ports of France could be increased to a considerable army, so that a landing in November or December with 40,000 men might be possible. The Directory, with a feeling of relief, at once decided in favour of the expedition to the Levant, and on the 12th of April sent to Napoleon the commission, drawn up by himself, appoint- ing him General-in-chief of the Army of the Orient. He was authorized and commissioned to take possession of Malta and Egypt, and to drive the English from their possessions as far as he was able to reach them, but particularly from the Red Sea, and he was to cut through the Isthmus of Suez in order * While still in Italy ho had spoken to Botirrionnc in a similar way: "Eviropc is nothiiiK hvit a molo-hill; it is only in the Orient that there have been f^reat empires and mighty revolutions, there where 600,000,000 people live." Mr. 28] The Egyptian Expedition 123 to assure to the French the possession of that sea. Until his return a substitute should take his place in command of the army destined to make war upon England directly, for it was a matter of course that, upon the termination of the Egyptian expedition, he should reassume command of the combined forces directed against the British. At Toulon he apostro- phized the troops of the expedition in these words: "You are one wing of the Army of England!" and in his official orders issued at the end of April he styles himself: " General-in-chief of the Army of England." The die, then, was cast. "I do not know what would have become of me," he said later to Madame de Remusat, "if I had not had the happy idea of going to Egypt." Two of the greatest minds of his age have tried to answer this question: "Had he remained in France," says Madame de Stael, "the Directory would have launched against him calumnies without number by means of all the newspapers under their control, and would have dimmed his exploits in the minds of the idle. Bonaparte would have been reduced to powder even before the thunderbolt had struck him." According to Beyle, things might have resulted even worse: "Napoleon lent himself to this project, impelled by the double fear of being forgotten or being poisoned." This is doubtless exaggeration, but in any case the Egyptian expedition seemed to have been undertaken because the Direc- tory and Bonaparte were antagonistic and yet could not attempt an encounter to decide the question of supremacy. The Direc- tory sought a means of disencumbering itself of a dangerous rival, while Bonaparte was trying to avoid the loss of all authority ; he was resolved upon increasing it by the acquisition of new glory, and to renew the combat with the Directory when a favourable moment should present. His genius at once per- ceived all the advantages offered him by the new combination, and, with characteristic energy, he proceeded to execute the mission consigned to him. He set about his preparations with a zeal such as had never before been seen in him by those who were about him, and his arrangements were made upon so vast a scale as to guarantee 1 24 Egypt [1798 the result and to incur no risk to the renown of the general in command. This was no longer the modest expedition which could easily be undertaken by 25,000 men with a few frigates. The expedition to the Orient was begun with an army of 40,000 of the best soldiers, embarked upon one of the greatest fleets which had ever been equipped by France, and which was de- signed to assure to the Republic the supremacy on the Medi- terranean. The general was accompanied by a staff of a hundred and twenty scholars, mechanicians, and engineers, among whom figured Monge and Berthollet, who were to make scientific investigations in that distant country, to prepare the way for projected colonization and to open the necessary water- ways. Talleyrand was to follow a little later to enter upon direct negotiations with the Porte and convince the Sultan that the expedition was in nowise aimed against him, but solely against the Mamelukes, who, despising his suzerainty, were governing Egypt hke independent princes. A library was selected to be carried on the expedition, and among these books were Ossian, Tasso's "Jerusalem Delivered," Homer and Virgil, Rousseau's "Nouvelle H^loise" and Goethe's "Werther." It is characteristic and interesting to note that the Bible, the Koran, and the Vedas were grouped with the works of Montes- quieu under the head of "Politics." History was prominent in the collection. Naturally Plutarch's "Lives" were there as well as the Anabasis, Arrian's "Alexander," and Raynal's "His- toire philosophique des deux Indes." The deep and lasting impression made on Napoleon by this work has already been observed. The passage referring to Egypt had doubtless been of particular interest to him. It reads: "At sight of a region situated between two seas, of which one is the gate of the Orient and the other the gate of the Occident, Alexander formed the project of establishing the seat of his empire in Egypt and of making it the centre of the world's commerce. This prince, the most enlightened of conquerors, recognized that, if there were a means of cementing the union of the conquests which he had already made and those which he proposed to himself, it would be in a country which nature seemed, so to speak, to Mr 28] Example of Alexander the Great 125 have attached to the point of junction between Africa and Asia to bind them to Europe." It would be easy to prove that the designs of the great Mace- donian now engrossed the attention of Napoleon with special vigour and tempted him to imitate, to surpass his predecessor. His imagination soared aloft, but we know how he controlled it. "I always have two strings to my bow," was a customary phrase with him. And thus in the midst of his vast concep- tions he did not overlook what lay at hand to be achieved. To Bourrienne, who asked him how long he expected to remain in Egypt, he replied: "A few months or six years, everj'thing depends upon the outcome of events." And in fact as matters then stood it was but too probable that within "a few months" a new war would break out in Europe which would of necessity recall his name to popular remembrance. For the progress made by the spirit of revolution in Italy and the republicaniza- tion of the Papal States had approached near enough to Tus- cany and Naples to appear threatening, and the probability was only too strong that Austria would extend her protection to the ruUng princes of those countries, they being related to the House of Habsburg, and thus at the same time defend her own interests. Moreover, Russia would of course resent the interference of France in the Eastern question. It would be a mistake to attribute to Bonaparte the introduction of this policy. France had begun her system of revolutionizing her neighbours long before the young general had acquired the slightest influence upon affairs.* But there can be no doubt that he now secretly advocated it in the selfish hope that the difficulties accruing to the Directory through war with a new coalition would bring that body into discredit, apparently necessitate his own return * The perspicacious Mallet du Pan wrote to ^'ienna as early as May 25th, 1796: "In all countries which they do not care to retain they will BOW the seed of republicanism, declare themselves allies of every State which will imitate the example set by France, and provoke such imita- tion in every possible way; they flatter themselves by the use of such means to achieve in a short time what has been, ever since 1792, one of the first and most important aims of the war." 1 26 Egypt tl798 to France, and elevate his power and authority to a position whence he hoped to grasp the reins of government. To this end France must be beaten in Europe, while he should be win- ning fresh laurels to his name in the Orient; such was the aim of his unpatriotic ambition. This was the occasion also for removing all the best soldiers and ablest generals. He said to his brother Joseph: "I start for the Orient with every means for achieving success; if my country needs me, if the number increases of those who think as do Talleyrand, Sieyes, and Roederer, if war breaks out and is not auspicious to France, then I shall return, surer than now of public opinion. If, on the contrary, the war is favourable to the Republic, if a new warrior hke myself should arise and gather about him the hopes of the people, well! I may perhaps still render greater service to the world, in the Orient, than he!" But while he still tarried in Paris the first indications of new complications on the Continent became apparent. At Rastatt the Austrian envoy had opposed the demand of the Directory for the cession of the entire left bank of the Rhine, and in Vienna Bemadotte, who represented France, had offended the court and incited the populace to an uprising on account of which he was obUged to leave the country. The situation looked serious. War was imminent. Napoleon hesitated and delayed his departure. If report is to be believed, his thoughts turned again for a moment to a Coup d'Etat and dictatorship. But in spite of all peace was preserved, and in the night of May 3d Napoleon left Paris to embark at Toulon, urged to departure by the anxious Directors, who preferred to feel that this ambi- tious schemer was in Africa. The preparations in the port of Toulon had been prosecuted with the greatest zeal. The actual destination of the expedition was known to but few. It is true there had been nmch talk of Egypt and the newspapers had commented upon it, but precisely for this reason no one believed in the genuineness of a venture which would place at a distance the best general in the French army at a time so critical. And yet such was really the case. On the 19th of May, 1798, the fleet weighed anchor with a part of Mr. 2S] The French Fleet Evades Nelson 1 27 the expeditionary troops on board, the Gencral-in-chicf being on the flag-ship "Orient." At the same hour the divisions of Baraguay d'Hilliers, Vaubois, iand Desaix sailed from Genoa, Ajaccio, and Civita Vecchia to join the squadron from Toulon, and the combined forces made an imposing armament of fifteen ships of the line, as many frigates, seven corvettes, and over thirty smaller war-vessels carrjang all together two thousand guns as protection to the four hundred transports conveying the ex- peditionary troops. Among the generals of division who took part in this campaign, in addition to those already mentioned, were Kleber, j\Ienou, Rey- nier, and Dugua, while among the brigadier-generals were the bearers of those names which were later to be made so glorious, Lannes, Davout, Murat, Andreossy, and others; at that time Marmont, Junot, Lefebvre and Bessieres still ornamented the rank of colonel. The chief danger to the expedition lay from the English, who had, it is true, some time before withdrawn their fleet from the Mediterranean to the Channel as a protection to their own coast against the landing of the French, but since that time the ships at Toulon had attracted their attention, and the decision had just been reached to send a squadron under Admiral Nelson to observe them. Napoleon was totally unaware of this proceed- ing. Fortunately for him, Nelson was driven by a storm from his ambush a few days before the departure of the French fleet, and returned to his hiding-place only after they had made their way out of the harbour he was watching. Doubtful whither they had gone, he sought them in Sicily and Naples, while they had already captured the first important halting-place on their jour- ney, — Malta. A year previous French agents had bribed certain of the Knights of the Order of St. John which had been in possession of the island since the time of Charles V. The Grand-master, Herr von Hompesch, was an incapable and short-sighted man, whose faculties deserted him completely on this occasion; he made no attempt at resistance to Napoleon, and on June 13th, 1798, he yielded to him the strong fortifications of La Vallette without even 128 Egypt [i7fi8 an effort to hold them until the arrival of succour from the Brit- ish. It v/as scarcely an honourable capitulation — a word which, by the way, Napoleon avoided using in the articles of rendition, in order, as he sarcastically observed, not to employ a term which would sound harshly to the ears of an Order once so celebrated for its martial valour. The property of the Knights was confiscated, while they themselves, provided with scanty pensions, were compelled to leave the island; some of them joined the army of the conqueror. The Order itself was placed under the suzerainty of Naples and under the protectorate of the Czar of Russia. In accomplishing its annihilation Bonaparte counted doubtless upon thus hastening the conflagration with which Europe was already menaced. Leaving at Malta a suitable garrison. Napoleon set sail toward the East, and while off Candia received his first intimation of the fact that he was being pursued by a powerful English squadron. This was entirely out of keeping with his designs, for not only the Egyptian expedition, but also the future invasion of England was based upon the supposition that the French fleet was to remain mistress of the Mediterranean at least until the vanquishers of the Mamelukes should be brought back to France, It was now all-important to evade the pursuing enemy and reach Alexandria with these hundreds of transport ships. On this occasion Bonaparte made it evident that if in his boyhood he had, according to his incUnation, been appointed to the marine service, he would have furnished France with a most efficient admiral. By sailing close to the southern shore of Candia he eluded the vigilance of the pursuer and thus escaped the threat- ening danger. Nelson, having failed to come upon the object of his quest in the Gulf of Naples, had decided to direct his course to Egypt. Sailing along the coast of Africa, he, in his zeal to overtake the enemy, outstripped the French and arrived ahead of them in Alexandria. Finding that roadstead empty he at once hastened away again, this time setting his helm for Syria. Immediately after his departure the French fleet arrived in Egypt, July 1st, and had time to land the expeditionary troops. While still on the high seas, on the 22d of June, the com- ^T. 28] The Mamelukes 1 29 mander-in-chicf had issued a proclamation to his soldiers pre- paring them for the task which awaited them. "Soldiers," said he to them, "you arc aljout to undertake a conquest the effects of which will be incalculable upon the situation and commerce of the world. You will deal to England the most certain and terrible blow while awaiting the hour in which you may inflict her death-stroke. We shall have some fatiguing marches to make, we shall fight a number of battles, we shall succeed in all our enterprises; fortune is with us. . . ." He admonished them to respect the religion of the Mohammedans and their muf- tis, adding: "The people whom we are about to encounter treat woman differently from what we do; but, in any country, he who violates is a monster. Pillage enriches but a few; it dis- honours us, it destroys our resources, it makes hostile to us those whom it is to our interest to have as friends. The first city to which we come was built by Alexander. We shall find at every step reminders of great deeds worthy to excite the emula- tion of the French." Many of his soldiers doubtless understood him better when in Toulon he made the promise of enough money to each of them, upon the return of the expedition, to buy six acres of land. Bonaparte, having taken Alexandria on the 2d of July, likewise addressed himself to the inhabitants of the country. In a proclamation rendered into the Arabic he represented him- self as the friend of the Sultan come to destroy his enemies the Mamelukes and to deliver the Egyptian people from their tyr- anny. He proclaimed the equality of all men before God, the same God whom he recognized in the Koran; and in order to awaken more completely the confidence of the population and counteract the precepts of the Koran which forbade submission to any nation not of the faithful, he declared that the French were true Mussulmans, and adduced in evidence the fact that they had vanquished the Pope and annihilated the Knights of Malta. All this was hardly likely to make any great impression upon the dull sensibilities of the Fellaheen. They suljmitted to the new inva- sion as to any other domination. The actual enemy with which Bonaparte had to contend was the cavalry of the Mamelukes. 130 Egypt [1798 Originally in the twelfth century only a body-guard of the Caliph, created of slaves purchased for the purpose, the Mame- lukes soon possessed themselves of the mastery of Egypt, which advantage they retained until overcome in the sixteenth century by the Ottomans, when Selim I. committed the administration of affairs of the country, as a Turkish province, to twenty-four of their chieftains. Each of these Beys commanded a considerable body of horse, and as the Turkish power began to wane the posi- tion of these Beys became more and more independent until the authority of the Sultan dwindled to a mere name. At the time when Bonaparte took up arms against them their two generals, Ibrahim Bey and Murad Bey, commanded over 8000 splendidly equipped and practised horsemen, who were dexterous in the use of sabre, lance, and firearms, but of other troops there were none. Infantry and artillery were entirely lacking, except that the small flotilla on the Nile carried a few cannon. These were cir- cumstances, coupled with the fourfold superiority in numbers of the French, to leave little room for doubt as to the issue of the campaign in favour of the invaders. The real difficulties arose from other causes. First among these was disheartening disappointment. Alex- andria fell far short of all expectations. Not more than a twelfth part remained of the metropolis of civilization to which the Macedonian hero had given his name, the rest had fallen away into ruin and dirt. And when, on July 7th, Napoleon broke camp to proceed to Cairo, choosing the more direct way across the desert instead of the longer and easier route via Rosetta and along the Nile, the suffering from hunger, thirst, and heat was so great that the artfully cherished visions of an Eastern paradise suddenly vanished. The soldiers grumbled, threatened to turn back, and reviled the scholars to whom alone they imputed the blame of the deception practised upon them. In the F(>llah villages there was no trace of civilization; grain there was in abundance, but neither mills nor ovens, and for drink there was nothing to offer but slimy cistern-water. Many of the soldiers perished with thirst, while terrible homesickness prevailed in the ranks and was the cause of frequent suicide; even the superior ^T. 28] First Encounters i 3 1 officers felt the demoralization. At length the Nile was reached at Ramanieh, but there the enemy, roving about in detached bands, began to harass the divisions, so that progress could be made only by forming hollow squares and marching thus with the cavalry in the centre. At Shebreket they came upon the bulk of the army of Murad Bey. The two flotillas on the Nile joined battle; Murad made two ineffectual attacks and then withdrew.* It was not until the Pyramids came in sight on July 19th, at Om Dinar, three miles from Cairo, that a serious engage- ment took place. With toil and hardship, marching only in the early morning hours from two to nine, the French reached Embabeh, the place where Murad had intrenched himself, and now, on the 21st of July, offered battle with sometliing over 5000 horsemen and a troop of Fellaheen against the French forces numbering five times as many as his command. It was scarcely necessary to excite the fervour of the Republican troops by pronouncing those celebrated words: "Soldiers, from the summit of these Pyramids forty centuries are looking douTi upon you!" The superiority of their numbers alone made a victory seem easy, and the longing to escape from the desert increased their ardour for battle. The issue Avas the only one possible. Bona- parte's five divisions formed at once in squares six men deep, with the cannon at the corners, the staff and baggage in the middle. Murad threw himself impetuously upon that of Desaix. Repulsed here, the Mameluke renewed his attack upon the * One example, taken from many, will serve to show the extent to which the deeds of the Army of the Orient were exaggerated by the time they reached the Directory at Paris in Napoleon's reports. Marmont, in his M^moires, mentions only four or five Mamelukes at Shebreket who with mad impetuosity rushed upon one of the squares and were cut down. There were unquestionably more than that, but in a letter written by Bonaparte to Menou, who had remained in Alexandria, the number had already increased to fifty, and in his report to the Directory, dated July 24th, 1798, it had become nothing less than a "battle at Shebreket" wh€>rein three hundred of the enemy were slain. At a later day he frankly said that a statesman nmst understand lying to perfection, and the negotiator of Udine and Passariano was a statesman. 132 Egypt [1798 divisions of Reynier and of Dugua (wherein Napoleon had taken his position), with the same lack of success. Then he galloped away. His camp at Embabeh fell after a short resistance into the hands of the conquerors, who derived from it a rich harvest. Ibrahim, who had been posted on the farther side of the Nile, at Boulak, with a portion of the Mameluke army, abandoned his position and withdrew eastward to the borders of the S}Tian desert. The battle of the Pyramids delivered Cairo into the hands of the French. On the 22d of July, Napoleon took up his headquarters in Murad's palace. Hitherto the complaints of the troops had been met with the promise of consolation for their pains in the booty which Cairo with its splendour and treasures was to afford. What they found in this city of 300,000 inhabitants proved only another disappointment. Provisions could be obtained for money, but there was no vestige of the abundance and good cheer which had been counted upon; everything, even to the deserted Mameluke quarter, bespoke only poverty and squalor. Discontent in the army increased. The many letters written home by soldiers and officers in their dejection, which were seized and published by the English, testify to the spirit of dissatisfaction which was making itself felt. Bonaparte had all he could do with punishing, appeasing, and promising, be- sides the thousand details of organization and administration, with the dispositions to be taken necessary for the reduction of the enemy, who had withdrawn only to renew the charge with fresh forces. And what added greatly to his cares was the entire lack of tidings from Europe, while from Alexandria came news of crushing disaster: on August 1st the English fleet under Nelson had reappeared on the Egyptian coast and totally overwhelmed that of the French in the roadstead of Aboukir. Bonaparte in leaving the squadron under Admiral Brueys had instructed him to convey the fleet into the old harbour of Alexandria provided it were of sufficient depth; if not, he was to occupy a secure position in the roadstead of Aboukir^ or, if ^T. 28] The Battle of the Nile 133 this should prove impossible, he was to leave the transports and sail for Corfu. Brueys found the entrance to the harbour impassable, and anchored at Aboukir in a position which he deemed strong enough to withstand attack of the enemy. In a letter to Bonaparte dated July 20th he even declared it impregnable, since he was protected on one side by the coast defences and no hostile ship could take up its position between him and the land. The error was a fatal one. On August 1st Nelson appeared with his squadron. He had until this time been seeking eagerly and excitedly, but in vain, for a trace of the enemy, and now rushed without delay upon the French ships, a large portion of the crews of which were not on board. It now became evident that Brueys' position was quite open to attack and that the EngUsh ships of the line, though fewer in number, were manoeuvred with such skill and audacious courage as to enable them in spite of everything to push between their enemy and the coast. Caught between two fires, the French vessels succumbed one after another notwithstanding all the heroism of their defenders. Brueys atoned for his mistake with his life. The "Orient" blew up with him and all his crew; the vahant warriors met their death shouting, "Vive la Repu- blique!" It was such a victory as had never before been won on the sea. Only two ships of the line and two frigates were saved by the rear-admiral, Villeneuve, in the flight. Two others had been previously towed into the harbour. Everything else was destroyed or in the hands of the enem}'. Bonaparte received the tidings on his return from a march eastward in pursuit of Ibrahim, while he at the same time entered upon negotiations with !\Iurad, though the latter were without result. He was in Marniont's tent when the news was brought to him, and at first received the message with perfect com- posure; he even began then and there to estimate its significance. In his Memoires Marmont recortls the words of his superior on this occasion. "Here we are now," said he, "cut off from the mother country. . . . We have got to be sufficient unto our- selves. Egypt was once a powerful kingdom. . . . What a point of vantage this position would be in offensive warfare 134 -^gyP^ tl798 against the English! What a point of departure for the con- quests which the possible disintegration of the Ottoman Empire may bring within our reach! We are perhaps destined to change the face of the Orient and to inscribe our names beside those recalled to our remembrance with the greatest radiancy by ancient and mediaeval history. . . . This is the hour when characters of a superior order should show themselves." These were spirited words and they did not fail of their effect. They did not, however, express the whole of the im- pression produced upon the commander of the expedition by the information just received. The loss of the fleet had been more of a blow to him than he had allowed himself to show. His intention, as we know, had been to conquer Egypt, and, having secured its possession, to return to Prance if meanwhile the fortunes of the new Continental war should have been of such a character as to enhance the value of his sword in the mind of the nation. In Bourrienne's Memoires we read: "According to what General Bonaparte said to me before receipt of the news of the 1st of August, he intended, the possession of Egypt once assured, to start again for Toulon with this fleet, which with its mission accomplished was thenceforth useless; to send thence troops and provisions of every kind to Egypt and to unite the fleet with all the forces which the government should have collected for use against England, ... to which France would then be superior. . . . The loss of the navy shattered all these schemes." * Its further consequences were even more serious; it even put in jeopardy the position of the French in Egypt. Napoleon had been in hopes that the Sultan might be de- ceived as to the character of his expedition, or at least that he * Bourrienne was at that time as little as Napoleon in a position to know that the Directory had already renounced the plan of making the project(!d invasion in the following autumn, and had sent the ships sta- tioned in the northern ports to the help of the Irish, who had revolted against England at the end of May, 1798. This enterprise entailed noth- ing hut k)sses to the French. Dispersed in separate expeditions, some of th(i ships w(!re lost, others were driven out of their course. A new concentration of the maritime forces in the north was for the present entirely out of the question. Mt. 29] Turkey Declares War i 3 5 could be prevented from interfering. This was to have been Talleyrand's task, but since the appearance of the English in the Mediterranean he had lost courage for the enterprise and transferred the office to the envoy in Constantinople. The Sultan wavered for a long time between friendship with the Republic and an alliance with Russia, which was offered him by the Czar Paul I., whose political sphere of action was likewise disturbed by the French intervention in the Orient and the seizure of Malta. Just at this critical juncture news arrived on the Bosphorus of the destruction of the French fleet and decided the question in favour of the Russian alliance. What had been counted impossible was accomplished; Turkey, wishing to defend her rights of suzerainty against the invader in Egypt and the Ionian Isles, had been won over by Russia. On Sep- tember 1st the Porte declared war against France. Bonaparte, who was now cut off from all tidings of events, did not at once learn of this turn of affairs. But he soon sus- pected it. Immediately upon his arrival in Egypt he had made offers of friendship to Achmed Pasha, Grand Vizier and Lieu- tenant-Governor of Syria, who was sumamed Jezzar, the Slaughterer, on account of his cruelty; to him Bonaparte repre- sented the object of his mission as being none other than the protection of French commercial interests against the Mame- lukes. No reply had been received to these letters. On the other hand he learned in the early part of October that the Porte had ordered the arrest of French consuls everywhere. But he still had no certain knowledge of the attitude of Turkey, and until he was definitely informed he could not think of leaving Egypt. If advices should prove of unfavourable character, the task before him would be a double one; he should have to defend his recently acquired position not only against the hos- tility of the Arab population and the forces of the Mamelukes, but also against the rightful lord of the land — the Sultan. After the defeat of his fleet at Aboukir, which naturally had made a bad impression at home, he stood in need of fresh triumphs to efface the remembrance of that disaster; the laurels which he had won in the battle of the Pyramids, even when the loss of the 136 Egypt [1798 enemy had been multiplied by ten, were insufficient to maintain his personal renown. And yet he had come to Egypt only to increase his fame while waiting for the war on the Continent to open to him a new field of action ! On the 18th of September he wrote to the Directory: "I am awaiting news from Con- stantinople ; I cannot be at home, as I promised you, by October, but the delay will be only for a few months." During this time of anxious waiting Bonaparte had oppor- tunity to convince himself that the Egyptian people submitted only with great reluctance to foreign rule and that his professed sympathy with Islam was of little avail. In October the in- habitants of Cairo revolted. The insurrection was occasioned by the rumour that the Sultan had declared war against France, that Jezzar was advancing from Syria, that the French were going to be compelled to withdraw, but were resolved first to set fire to the city. The populace assaulted the French in their houses and killed a number of them, among others twenty-five sick or wounded soldiers. The masses armed themselves and organized a revolt. Napoleon at first attempted to pacify the insurgents by the use of gentle means. When these failed he ordered the rebellious quarter surrounded and bombarded. The uprising was soon at an end. To insure himself against repetition of the offence he ordered the immediate decapitation of a number of prisoners. "That will serve as a lesson to them," he wrote to his generals. He had supposed that he could accomplish his ends with mild measures, but with these people intimidation alone was effective. The time of quiet following these terroristic measures was employed in the development of the organization of the interior. The scholars who had accompanied the expedition, with certain officers of education, such as Caffarelli and Andr^ossy, founded an "Institute," at which they read papers on the subject of cultivation of the country. These papers were published in a periodical entitled "La l)6cade I^^gyptienne," while political and local news were reported in "LeCouri'ier d'Egypte." The first session of the Institute was held on October 23d. Bonaparte himself on that occasion proposed a series of questions the study ^T. 29] Scientific Work in Egypt 137 of which was committed to different sections of the organiza- tion. The sessions were held every five days. It was here that the materials were brought together for the imposing scientific production which began to be pubUshed ten years later. This work, wherein the foundations were laid for the scientific study of Egypt in all its aspects, constitutes a title to imperishable honour for the man who made it possible by his energy and the interest which he gave to it. The best possible feeUng pre- vailed between the members of the Institute and its president. Upon a single occasion, as is reported by an officer of the expe- dition, Bonaparte got into a dispute with Berthollet and allowed his anger to overmaster him upon being repeatedly contra- dicted by the latter, whereupon the great chemist observed: "You are in the wrong, my friend, for you are getting uncivil." When upon this Desgenettes, the chief surgeon, took sides with the naturalist. Napoleon broke forth: "I can see plainly enough that an understanding exists between you all. Chemistry is the kitchen department of medicine, which is itself the science of murderers." To which Desgenettes coolly repUed: "And how do you define the art of the conqueror. Citizen General?" Since he could look for no further suppUes of money from home, Bonaparte had recourse to the wealth of the rich Arabs. One is reminded of the art of financiering as practised by Mephis- topheles in " Faust " when one hears that the French commander was continually searching for hidden treasure and in the interim ordered the manufacture of 100,000 francs in paper money. The need for money was real, for a new campaign was about to be entered upon. The tidings of the declaration of war by Turkey, which had been the cause of the Cairo revolt in October, were later sub- stantiated, but the report of the advance of Jezzar proved to have been premature. In December, 1798, Bonaparte went to Suez to make a search for traces of the old canal, and to in- vestigate into the actuahty of the miracles of Moses; there he received the information that the troops of Achmetl Pasha had made an incursion into Egypt and had established themselves in the frontier fortress of El Arish. He at once made prepara- I 38 Egypt [1799 tions for taking the offensive in Syria. The opportunity had now come for winning new victories, and he seized it with ardour. His own tranquillity of mind was contributed to by the news brought by a Frenchman who had reached Alexandria on a merchantman from Ragusa: the negotiations at Rastatt were still pending and only Naples was at war with France. This was exactly in accordance with Napoleon's wishes : to be assured that the great Continental war had not yet burst into flame and yet at the same time to realize the probability that, kindled by the contest with Naples, it would not be long before it would break out generally. It was his intention to return then to France, and of this he openly informed the Directory in a letter of February 10th, 1799, written before he set out for Syria. In the same letter he made known the plan which he was following in penetrating into Syria : he meant not only to repulse the invasion and by means of fortifications on the frontier to prevent any co-operation between the Syrian army and a second which would probably land on the Delta, but, in addition, once he had acquired possession of Syria, to take advantage of it to exercise some pressure upon Turkey. The Syrian expedition was thus designed to restore the political ascendency lost through the destruction of the fleet. Whether his designs extended still further may be inferred from the fact that on January 25th he had written to Tippo Sahib, Sultan of Mysore and sworn enemy of England, inviting him to enter into relations with himself. Toward the Shah of Persia also he had made some advances in regard to the necessary halting-placos on a march to India. Five years afterwards lie said to jMadamc tic Remusat: "In Egypt I felt myself freed from the shackles of a restricting civiUzation; I dreamed all sorts of things, and I saw means of executing all that I had dreamed. I created a religion, I saw myself on the way to Asia, mounted upon an elephant, a turban on my head, and in my hand a new Koran which I had com- posed to my own liking. I should have brought together in my undertakings the experiences of the two worlds, gathering to my own profit from the history of all countries, attacking the power of England in India, and by means of this conquest ^Et. 29] The Invasion of Palestine 139 renewing my relations with ancient Europe." His imagination followinji; in the footprints of his great predecessors was evidently inexhaustible in its projects. But in a historical narration it is not permissible to attach too great weight to such fantasies. For even when indulging in these dreams calm reason was ever at hand and ready to assert itself. He told Bourrienne in con- fidence that he should not venture upon the expedition to India unless Egypt were first made secure and he could leave 15,000 men there while pursuing his march with 30,000 more. Since these prerequisites were lacking he was obUged to content him- self with the Syrian campaign. "He himself felt keenly," observed his confidant in his M^moires, "that all these projects were too httle in accord with our means, the weakness of the government, and the distaste already evinced by the army to these deserts." The conquest of the Holy Land was undertaken with four divisions (about 13,000 men), under Kleber, Reynier, Lannes, and Bon. On February 20th the garrison at El Arish was led to capitulate, being granted the right of withdrawal without molestation, and on the 24th the advance-guard reached Pales- tine, where the troops could refresh themselves, having been driven nearly to desperation by thirst and heat and a parching wind which kept them on their march in the mitlst of a cloud of sand. Gaza soon fell into their hands, no determined resist- ance being shown by the few thousand men who were its defend- ers, and on the 4th of March the fortified city of Jaffa was invested by the French. And here was the beginning of more obstinate resistance. The French officer sent to negotiate terms with the garrison was beheaded by order of the Turkish commander of the place, and the ardour for battle on the part of the expeditionary troops was thereby goaded to reckless fury. By March 7th their batteries, consisting only of light field-pieces, had made breaches in the walls, and the fortress was at once stormed and taken. Hereupon followed a general massacre in the streets of all that fell into the hands of the victors. Of the garrison, originally 4000 men strong, 1000 had already been killed. The others retired, fighting their way, to a caravansary. Upon the appear- 1 40 Egypt [1799 ance of two of Bonaparte's aides-de-camp, the besieged Turks offered from this refuge to surrender on condition that their lives should be spared, to which condition the officers agreed without waiting to obtain further orders, to the extreme chagrin of the commander-in-chief, to whom the great number of prisoners was the cause of no small embarrassment. To send them to Egypt was impossible on account of the necessary escort; to release them would mean only to strengthen the enemy; to divide and maintain them offered difficulties no less considerable ; the French soldiers grumbled at being obhged to share their bread with the murderers of the negotiator; the generals, in a council of war held to decide the question, voted unanimously to allow that law of war to take its course which forfeits the lives of defenders of a fortress taken by assault. Bonaparte considered the question for three days before approving the decision of his officers. Finally the prisoners were taken to the beach and massacred in a body. History has condemned this horrible act, but mihtary writers have declared it justifiable.* But certainly this can apply only in so far as concerns the garrison of Jaffa, who were taken in the assault with arms in their hands after having rejected every manner of capitulation. These were, however, according to report, not the only ones who were put to the sword. In addi- tion 800 militiamen from the garrison of El Arish were murdered with them. To these the promise of unmolested withdrawal had been made, but, in the end, not kept, for fear that they should go to strengthen the enemy. If this be true, it is an abomination such as no argument of military usage can excuse. f ♦For example, Yorck, in his recently published book on "Napoleon als Feldherr " (I. 132), says : " History of a pedantic order has been shocked and horrified at this deed; from a military standpoint the question wears a very difT(!rent aspect. The welfare of his own army, and with it the possil>ility of winning a victory, must precede all other considerations in the mind of the commander. If the proceeding were necessary to the safety of his army, not only was the act in this case justified, but its repe- tition in a future war would be the same, and any convention would be powerless to make any change in the matter." t A staff-officer in th(! expeditionary army relates: "Contrary to the terms of the capitulation, the prisoners from El Arish had been dragged M. ^T. 29] The Siege of Acre 141 On the 19th of March Bonaparte encamped before Acre. The fortress differed apparently but little from those of the easily conquered El Arish and Jaffa. A superficial reconnois- sance of its works yielded a similar impression, and since the heavy artillery which had been ordered sent on from Alexandria had not yet arrived, — if, indeed, it ever should succeed in escap- ing the English cruisers, — the commander-in-chief began this siege with the same means which had proved sufficient in the former cases. But at Acre the result was to be a different one. The works were much better adapted to effectual resistance, being provided with a counterscarp behind the outer walls. In addition, the English rear-admiral, Sir Sidney Smith, was in the offing with several ships whence he furnished the fortress with provisions and means of defence, and sent to Jezzar a capable officer of engineers who conducted the defence. By a strange coincidence that officer was Picard de Phelippeaux, a fellow student of Bonaparte's at the Paris "Ecole Militaire." These two men who had sat together on the same bench at school were now opposed to one another at this moment so significant in the world's history, the Corsican in the service of France, the Frenchman as the instrument of the English. The speedy conquest of this place was very important for Bonaparte, for war had now really broken out on the Continent. In March he received from the Directory a despatch of Novem- ber 4th, 1798,* which confirmed the report that the Neapolitan along in the train of the army; Bonaparte feared that instead of going to Bagdad they would go to Jaffa or to Acre, where they would have reinforced the enemy. After the taking of Jaffa these militiamen pro- tested and became unruly. Bonaparte, said they, had no further occasion to fear their going to Jaffa, he ought to let them depart according to agreement. Still he could not make up his mind to permit this, and as he had resolved upon ridding himself of the prisoners made at JafTa. he secretly ordered those from El Arish included with the others, and had them all massacred together on the 10th of March." (Jahrbiicher fiir die Deutsche Armee und Marine, XXXVI. 141.) This account would agree with Bourrienne's statement, giving the number of the victims at about 4000, — 3000 men of the Jaffa garrison, with the 800 militiamen. * Since the battle of Aboukir, and in consequence of the constant 142 Egypt [1799 forces were about to take the field under command of Austrian generals (Mack and Sachsen), which was at the same time an indication of the renewal of hostilities on the part of Austria. Further, that an Austrian detachment had penetrated the Grisons, thus violating the neutrality of Switzerland, the ally of France. To meet these complications the Directory had ordered a levy of 200,000 men and given to General Jourdan the com- mand of the Army of the Rhine, and to Joubert that of the Army of Italy, where presumably the decisive blows were to be dealt. Bonaparte himself was to act according to circumstances and the dictation of his own judgment. The Directory not being in a position to give him any support, it would refrain also from giving him any commands or instructions. The despatch closed with the words: "Since a return to France appears to be difficult of achievement at the present juncture, three alternatives seem to offer among which you can choose: to remain in Egypt and so establish yourself as to be safe against all attacks of the Turks, — in which case, as you are aware, the fact must be taken into consideration that there are seasons there extremely calami- tous to Europeans, especially if without aid from the mother country; to penetrate into India, where, on your arrival, there is no question but that you would find men ready to unite with you to accomplish the overthrow of British domination; or, finally, to march toward Constantinople against the enemy which threatens you." This letter was accompanied by newspapers dated as late as February, which the consul at Genoa had given the courier to take with him and which told of war actually Ijroken out between France and Naples and Sardinia, and of the advance of the Russians toward Italy. Much impressed by these tidings, and disregarding the pro- cruising about of English ships, intercourse with France had been made extremely difficult, ("specially when, after Turkey's declaration of war, the Barbary States also assumed a hostile attitude and communication between Tripoli and Egypt became altogether unsafe. This despatch ]\\d reached Alexandria in safety by means of a Genoese transport-ship; nit how many letters fell into the hands of the English is evidenced by the two volumes of th(^ "Correspondence of the French Army in Egypt" which appeared in London in 1799. ^T. 29] A-ssaults Fail 14^ tests of Kl^bcr, Bonaparte, toward the end of March, 1799, ordered the storming of Acre with all possible speed. Only this "heap of stones" more to conquer, and then — covered with the glory of having outshone the crusaders — away to Europe, alone, where the Directory, as their letter shows, are undertaking a war with very Uttle confidence of success. These were his reflections. Moreover, when leaving Cairo he had an- nounced to Bourrienne that if he received in March tidings that France was at war against the coalition, he should depart at once. These tidings had reached him, and immediately he told General Dommartin in confidence that he counted upon return- ing to France with a certain number of generals and higher officers. He needed then only to acquire a httle glory before taking his departure. But Acre resisted all attempts. The assault was repulsed, and the result heightened the self-confidence of the besieged. Good artillery manned by English gunners inflicted serious losses upon the French; Albanian sharpshooters threatened the shghtest indiscretion with certain death ; Caffarelli, the excel- lent general of engineers, died of a wound received in the trenches; the besiegers were kept constantly on the alert by frequent sorties. To add to their difficulties, an army of relief organized in Damascus was hastening to the aid of the besieged and had already crossed the Jordan. Kl^ber's division, which was sent out against it, was soon surrounded by forces twenty times as many as his, and in spite of the heroism of his soldiers they were in a most critical situation. Napoleon had to go to their assist- ance, and on the IGth of April, by means of a brilliant feat of arms, he was successful in routing the enemy at the foot of Mount Tabor. Murat then drove the remainder back across the Jordan. Meanwhile the work of the besiegers had been pushed vigor- ously forward. Mines had been laid, but with insignificant results. The assault had been again and again renewed, but all in vain. Finally the point of attack was changed with no better success than before. At command of PhelippeaiLX a second "enceinte" was constructed within the fortress and the 144 ^gyP^ tl799 streets barricaded. An assault on May 8th, 1799, undertaken with unparalleled gallantry, broke upon this accumulation of defences, and only a few hundred of the most foolhardy grenadiers reached the interior of the city, where they were obliged in the end to give themselves up to the English. It was not long before pestilence began to spread in the French camp, ammunition was growing scarce, and, as if to take from Napoleon his last ray of hope of success, a Turkish squadron landed reinforcements for the besieged. When, on the 16th of May, there followed the last decisive attack upon the nearly demolished city, it miscarried, as had the others. To tarry further was now useless, indeed ruinous, especially to the personal standing of Bonaparte with his troops, whom he sacrificed without number. Two days, May 7th and 8th, had alone cost 3000 men and two generals. The army began to murmur and to contrast their unfeeling commander-in-chief with the humane Kleber, and there were individuals who even wanted the chief command transferred to the latter. Napoleon determined upon retreat to Egypt. The more improbable the conquest of Acre became, the more he had expatiated upon his far-reaching designs in case the siege were successful. Where his deeds no longti yielded the coveted glory, he had recourse to his imposing dreams. With the weapons plundered from the fortress at Acre he should arm the discontented tribes of Syria, march upon Damascus and Aleppo, proclaim the end of the tyranny of the pashas, and, with the hordes which should come to swell the ranks of his army, move upon Constantinople. "Then," said he to Bourrienne, "the Turkish Empire falls before me; I establish in the Orient a new and great empire which will assure my place with posterity, and perhaps I shall return to Paris by way of Adrianople or Vienna after having crushed the House of Austria." Here were again the visions of that imagination of which he had said in the before-mentioned conversation with Madame de R^musat that it had "died confronting Acre." That may have been, but in any case we know from his own letters written from Syria to those who had nnnained in Egypt that his efforts were to be directed toward a return to Cairo whether the fortress ^T. 29] The Retreat 145 yielded or not. For he was convinced that a TurkLsh army, which had already been seen at Rhodes, was designed to land at the Delta of the Nile, and it was clear to him that these forces must be conquered if everything were not to be lost. The unyielding claim of this immediate necessity put to flight all further dreams of advance toward Constantinople or India, or the foundation of an Oriental kingdom. And an empire might not impossibly be founded elsewhere than in Asia. On May 20th the siege was raised and the retreat begun. According to descriptions of contemporaries the latter was horrible in the extreme. The march from Acre to Jaffa is por- trayed in these words: "A consuming thirst, total lack of water, excessive heat,* a fatiguing march through scorching dunes, demoralized the men and caused all generous feeling to give place to the most cruel selfishness, the most distressing indiffer- ence. I have seen officers with amputated limbs thrown from the litters upon which they were to have been transported according to orders, even in cases where the wounded man had paid the bearers for their labour. I have seen abandoned to their fate those who had suffered amputation, the wounded together ^^dth those who were attacked by the plague or only suspected of being so. The march was illumined by torches kindled to set fire to small cities, towns, villages, hamlets, and the rich harvests with which the land was covered. The whole country was in flames. We were surrounded only by plunderers, incendiaries, and the dying. By the side of the road where they had been thrown lay men half dead, calling out with feeble voice, 'I am not sick with the plague, I am only wounded,' and to convince the passers-by many of these poor wretches could be seen reopening their wounds or inflicting new ones upon themselves. No one believed in them. . . . The sun in all its splendour under this clear sky was obscured by the smoke from our incessant conflagrations. We had at our right the sea and behind us the desert which we had created, before us the priva- * In the desert, between Syria and the Nile, the thermometer regis- tered 34° Reaumur (108° Fahr.) when exposed to the air, and 42° Reau- mur (125° Fahr.) when in contact with the ground. 14^ Egypt [1799 tions and sufferings which awaited us; such, in truth, was our situation."* Besides there were hovering all about them swarms of Nabulusians, one of whom on one occasion shot at Napoleon, who had fallen asleep upon his horse while on the march. On the 24th of May they reached Jaffa. Here yet lay those wounded during the attack on the city. The plague had asserted itself here as in the ranks of the army. Napoleon himself hastened through the wards of the hospital, calling out to the sick: "The fortifications are destroyed. Fortune was against me at Acre. I have got to return to Egypt to keep it from enemies who are about to descend upon it. The Turks will be here in a few hours; let all who feel able to get up come with us; they will be transported on litters and horses." And how about the others? There were about sixty stricken with the plague who were obliged to remain. Fable has exaggerated this visit to the hospital both in art and writing, while ill-disposed criticism has set forth as a crime his suggestion that those who must remain should be protected from the fury of the pursuing foe by administration of a narcotic which should bring about painless death. He never denied having taken this view of the situation, and at St. Helena he declared himself to his physician to be still of the opinion that the measure suggested would have been the wisest, and that under similar circumstances he should have pursued the same course toward his own son. Through Ascalon and Gaza and then for nine long days through the burning sands of the desert, the expeditionary troops, wofuUy reduced in number, dragged their weary way; a procession smaller in extent but otherwise closely resembling that awful retreat from Russia's bitter cold and ice which thir- teen years later prefaced the end of the "Fortune" of the P]m- peror of the French. Five thousand men had been sacrificed without making the shghtest impression upon the Porte. And to disperse a Turkish army there was no need for travelling that long road of suffering to Mount Tabor. Least of all had any- thing been accomplished toward the satiation of the ambition of the commander. His chief concern now was that there should * Jung: " Bonaparte et son Temps," III. 290. — B. ^T. 29] Deceptive Bulletins 147 be no avowal of the truth. While still before Acre, on the 10th of May, he had announced to the Directory that his object had been attained, the season was growing unfavourable, and Egypt demanded his presence; he should return through the desert after having demolished the fortress. In another report, of May 27th, his statement was that he might have occupied the city, but had abstained from doing so on account of the plague which, his spies, prisoners, and deserters all concurred in testifying, was raging there most frightfully. (What a pity that his spies had been so late in making this discovery!) In a war bulletin of the 16th of May he announced to the Divan of Cairo, an organization of his own creation, that he was bring- ing with him a vast number of prisoners and flags, that he had razed to the ground the palace of Jczzar, likewise the ramparts of Acre, and so bombarded the city as to leave no stone upon another; the inhabitants had all fled by way of the sea; Jezzar, who was wounded, had retired with his followers into one of the forts on the seacoast. He even went so far as to reassure his owTi soldiers with the confidently affirmed falsehood that they might have hoped in a few days to overpower the Pasha of Syria himself in his palace, but that at this season, with the possibiUty of a landing of the Turks in Egypt, the capture of Acre would not counterbalance the loss of time spent in the effort. When his secretary ventured to protest against this distortion of the actual circumstances. Napoleon silenced him with the observation that he was a simpleton who tormented himself about trifles and had no comprehension of matters of this kind. Toward the middle of June, the Syrian army, reduced it is true to only 8000 men, made its triumphal entry into the capital of Egypt. A short time afterward Bonaparte received word from Marmont in Alexandria that 100 Turkish ships had ap- peared on the 11th of July in the roadstead of Aboukir under escort of Sir Sidney Smith and had landed 18,000 men.* The * The number fluctuates between 8000 and 18,000 according as the statement be made by the EngUsh or by the French. The former is certainly too low an estimate, the latter too high in comparison with the 148 Egypt [1799 same message had evidently reached Ibrahim and Murad, whom Desaix had until now kept at a respectful distance ; for the former now again appeared on the Syrian frontier, while the latter made efforts to reach the North with some hundreds of Mame- lukes, both with the object of co-operating with the Turkish forces just landed. The latter had intrenched themselves tem- porarily upon the peninsula of Aboukir, Alexandria being fortified by the French. Bonaparte determined upon attacking them in this place and at the earliest possible moment. Murad was speedily driven toward the South, while a close watch was kept upon Ibrahim. To facihtate the concentration of the French forces, Desaix was ordered to evacuate Upper Egypt, while with all other disposable troops — numbering about 6000 men, besides a reserve of 2000 entrusted to Kleber — the commander-in-chief advanced against the enemy. It was a hastily conceived plan brilliantly exe- cuted on the plain of Aboukir, July 25th, 1799. The plan of action in this battle was characteristically Napoleonic — to unite all forces before the onslaught, make use of them all in the en- gagement, and seek to annihilate his foe ; its execution was made much easier through the defective order of battle adopted by the Turks. The success was complete. The left wing of the enemy having been surrounded and driven into the sea, the right was made to undergo the same fate. Lannes then succeeded in gaining possession of a commanding redoubt which Murat and his cavalry, with mad impetuosity, had ridden around and which constituted the strongest point of the Turkish centre. That also was now forced, and only a few remnants of the Turkish forces escaped to the fort on the apex of the little peninsula. These were reduced by starvation and forced to capitulate a week later. This time Napoleon confined himself strictly to the truth in writing to Cairo: "The staff will have acquainted you with the outcome of the battle of Aboukir; it is one of the finest I have ever witnessed. Of the army landed by the enemy not a man has escaped." number of transport-ships. More than 15,000 men were scarcely to be conveyed on 100 transport-vessels. ^T. 29] French Losses in Europe 149 In addition to this triumph but one thing more was needed to fulfil the requirements of his self-seeking ambition: to be assured that he had been correct in the second assumption upon which he had based his departure to Egypt — that the war broken out meanwhile in Europe should result disastrously to France, thus not only increasing his own personal importance, but bringing the government at Paris into discredit so that a determined soldier who knew how to conquer at this time might with the same blow easily acquire the power of the State. And the cer- tainty of this condition of affairs Napoleon obtained for himself. Since the message which had overtaken him while before Acre no other had reached him. He could not know that at the end of May, 1799, the French admiral Bruix had received orders to unite his squadron with the Spanish fleet to defeat the Eng- lish on the Mediterranean and bring home the expeditionary army from Egj'pt — an enterprise which fell through on account of the refusal of the Spanish commander to co-operate. He failed also of receiving a letter sent to him on May 26th by the Directory notifying him of Bruix's mission and recalling him to Europe.* But he heard nevertheless what he needed to know. It is almost a certainty that he received occasional tidings from his brothers by way of Tunis through the consuls of Genoa and Ancona, who were devoted to his interests. And here again chance came to his aid. Sir Sidney Smith, who now lay at * A passage from this letter signed by three of the Directors runs thus: "The extraordinary efforts just put forth by Austria and Russia, the serious and ahnost alarming turn taken by the war, necessitates to the Republic the concentration of all its forces. The Director}' has accordingly just given command to Admiral Bruix to employ all means in his power to make himself master of the Mediterranean and to bear toward Egypt for the purpose of bringing back from thence the army under your connnand. He has orders to arrange with you as to the method to be employed in effecting its embarkation and transport. It is left to your discretion, Citizen General, to decide whether you can with safety leave in Egypt a part of your forces, and you are authorized by the Direc- tor}' in this case to entrust the command to whomsoever you may judge fit. The Directory would take pleasure in seeing you at the head of the republican armies which you have up to the present time commanded with so much glorj-." 150 Egypt [1799 anchor before Alexandria and was entering into negotiations with Bonaparte in regard to the release of prisoners, took pleasure in communicating to him the late defeats suffered by the French in Italy, where indeed Scherer had been overcome in April and the Cisalpine Republic dissolved. As testimony to the truth of his assertions he sent to Bonaparte a package of the most recent newspapers, announcing in addition that he was under orders to prevent the return of the expeditionary army desired by the Directory. Nothing more was needed to determine Napoleon's immediate execution of the plan long before resolved upon. In the words with which he announced his decision to Marmont may be found the entire plan by which his actions were to be directed during the ensuing months: "I have determined upon taking my departure for France, and I count upon taking you with me. The state of affairs in Europe forces me to this momentous step; reverses have overwhelmed our armies, and Heaven knows to what point the enemy may have already advanced. Italy is lost, and the reward of so many efforts, of so much bloodshed, escapes us. And what, in truth, is the use of these incapables put at the head of affairs? There is nothing but ignorance, stupidity, or corruption amongst them. It is I, I alone, who have borne the burden and by means of constant victory given strength to this government, which without me would never have been able to lift its head and support itself. As soon as I was gone every- thing had to collapse. Do not let us wait until the destruction be complete. . . . The news of my arrival and of the destruc- tion of the Turkish army at Aboukir will be heard in France ahiiost at the same moment. My presence, in raising their spirits, will restore to the army the confidence which it lacks, and to good citizens the hope of a brighter future." His intentions were confided to but a few trusted men and concealed from most of the generals. Witli tlie utmost secrecy also were the two frigates at anchor in the harbour of Alexandria fitted out for the voyage. Sir Sidney Smith, to whom it was apparently incoiicoiva])le that the cominatidor-in-chief should return to France without this army, had left the roadstead for a short time to renew his supply of water at Cyprus. Hardly had he i .Et. 30] Napoleon's Decision to Return 151 taken his departure before Na|)()le()n profited by this new favour of fortune and made his way out to sea during the night of August 21st, accompanied by only a few devoted adherents, Lannes, Marmont, Murat, Monge, Berthollet, and a few hundred soldiers of the guard. To the gallant Kleber, whose inconsiderate frankness had made him obnoxious to Napoleon, was left, by written order, the command of the army remaining in Egypt. The fact does not appear to have been taken into considera- tion by Napoleon that honour required his continuance with the troops which had been entrusted to his leading and which had courageously shed their blood in the furtherance of his own ambitious designs. And yet it is scarcely admissible to accuse him of abandonment of the army, nor — as has even been done — of desertion. His position toward the Directory was without question exceptional. At the time of his departure for Egypt it was miderstood that he w^as to return during the autumn of 1798 to resume command of the Army of England. This was not to be the case with the entire expeditionary corps, since it was the plan also to found a colony and to organize plantations which would require perpetual protection. The letter of No- vember 4th, 1798, from the National authorities at Paris, re- ceived while besieging Acre and which has been before cited, left him entire freedom in his decisions. He himself had repeatedly and openly announced his approaching return to France, which he would certainly not have done had it been directly contra- dictory to instructions. But it is equally certain that in taking this step he was acting only out of regard for his personal ambi- tion and interests. For neither of these was anything further to be acquired in Egypt and everything to be lost. The situation of the expeditionary army must inevitably grow more and more critical, and in announcing that he left it just after a victory in the field which would long protect it from molestation his state- ments did not wholly coincide with the truth. He kept silence upon one point which he afterwards divulged at St. Helena: that he was already convinced from the moment of the loss of the fleet at Aboukir that expedition could end only in catastrophe, since any army which cannot be recruited must eventually 152 Egypt [1799 capitulate. He also prudently refrained from communicating what was revealed by the honest Kl^ber in a letter to Talleyrand : that the army, already reduced by one half, was suffering for the want of munitions and clothing; that the population of Egypt, roused by the Sultan against the Christians, was ready at any moment to rise in revolt; that an advance of new Turkish forces was threatening, and that Alexandria was almost defence- less, since the heavy artillery had been lost in the Syrian campaign and the remainder of the equipment used in fitting out Napo- leon's two frigates; finally, that the distress of the situation was aggravated by a grievous lack of money, since the arrears of pay to the troops now amounted to 4,000,000 francs, and Napoleon had left nothing but debts with not a single sou in the treasury. Much has been said of the courage shown by Napoleon in exposing himself to the dangers of a voyage upon the Mediterra- nean, infested as it was by ships of the enemy. But it may be questioned whether it would not have required greater courage to remain under such desperate circumstances. And in this courage Napoleon would not have been found wanting if his ambitious schemes had not impelled him to make this effort toward the acquisition of supreme power in France. Of these schemes the distinguishing features had long been determined upon, nor was there any lack of devoted adherents, so that even before the expedition to the Orient they had been on the point of realization by means of a Coup d'Etat. The Army of the Orient was composed almost exclusively of fervent republicans. He felt not the least pang in separating himself from it ; it suited him perhaps better to know that it would be far from France at the moment when his designs were to be executed. During the camj)aign in Italy Napoleon had already obeyed only his own impulses, regarded himself as sovereign in conquered countries, and negotiated and concluded the treaties of Leoben and Campo Formio by which France had been bound. Here in Egypt, where even more than before he acted as his own master, his spirit of domination had found new sustenance and his yearning desire to become the head of an independent government had struck deeper root than ever into his character. He could iEr. 30] Napoleon's Desire to Rule 153 scarcely think of himself any longer as without a crown. Only it seemed to him manifestly easier to pluck it from the witliered liberty-tree of the Revolution than to disinter it from the endless sands of the desert. CHAPTER VII THE COUP D'ETAT AND THE CONSULATE At that time, when everything depended upon wind and weather alone, a voyage to or from Egypt was a question of the season. From the beginning of spring until autumn it was an easy matter, driven by the constant northwest wind, to reach Alexandria from Toulon, but just so much the more difficult to make the trip in the opposite direction. It was, therefore, no favourable season for a journey to France when the two frigates, "Muiron" and "Carrere", with Bonaparte upon the former, left the Egyptian harbour. Only for the sake of eluding the vigilant watch of Sir Sidney Smith had they put to sea in August. The contrary wind compelled the two ships to give up the direct course to Toulon and to sail along the north coast of Africa. Their progress was scarcely to be designated as such. A number of times they were driven back ten miles during the day and only regained their former position by night when the breezes blew from the shore. Not less than three weeks were thus consumed by the impatient travellers before they arrived off the Carthaginian headlands, in constant anxiety of being attacked from the rear by the enemy. But the real danger began only when the wind at last turned to the advantage of the homeward bound. The narrow passage between Sicily and Tunis had to be passed, and this was guarded by an English cruiser belonging to Nelson's fleet, which was at anchor off Syracuse. Should the frigates be discovered by this vessel, it would be a very short time before the dreaded admiral would be in pursuit. Fortunately they succeeded in passing the scout at night with lights ex- tinguished, and now directed their course toward the north along the west coast of Sardinia as far as Corsica, which they 154 ^T. 30] Changes In Paris 15^ reached in the beginning of October. And here they were again detained for several days by a return of the northwest wind to the vexation of Napoleon, who was overrun in Ajaccio by cousins and godparents and every one who could claim relationship of any kind. He was totally unmoved by every- thing except the meeting with his old nurse, who hailed him eagerly as "caro figlio." He showed to his companions, not without a certain pride, the former estates of the Bonapartes, and hunted with them in the adjoining thickets. This was the last time that he ever saw his native island. As if his programme were to be literally carried out, he learned in Ajaccio that the French armies had suffered new reverses, that on June 19th a battle had been lost on the Trebbia, and on August 15th another at Novi, and that Joubert had been killed. But something else which he learned was of still greater importance to him: that the Directory had succumbed after a struggle with the legislative bodies in June (the 30th Prairial), and had been compelled to admit new members, among them Sieyes. It is well knowm that Napoleon's confidence in the abbe was great, and these tidings consequently could not but be reassiuing to him. They induced him to change his plan for the rest of the voyage. It had been his intention to hasten at once to the theatre of war in Italy, there to assume the su- preme command, and having by new victories ingratiated him- self with the people of France, as their deliverer in the hour of need, to present himself before the Directory with all the weight of his renown. This plan being now abandoned, he put forth all efforts to reach the capital. The circuitous route by way of the battle-field seemed now only a loss of time. But first of all it was indispensable to reach the shores of France, and this was to be more difficult than had been fore- seen, now that, after having passed through so many dangers, they were so near the goal. A favourable wind had at last carried them away from Corsica, and on the 8th of October tlicy were already in sight of the islands of Hyeres and sailing toward Toulon, when suddenly at sundowm an English squad- ron was made out bearing directly upon their course. The 156 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 critical moment was at hand, for the Englishmen had also observed the frigates and began to give chase. The French admiral attempted to turn back toward Corsica, but Napoleon gave orders to veer again to the north and continue in their course. He was resolved in case of necessity to throw himself into a small boat carried by the ship, and to attempt an escape to land alone. And once again was his courage rewarded by success. The English were misled in the distance by the ap- parent direction of the sails, and fancied them to be steering in a northwesterly direction. Under this mistaken impression they pressed rapidly forward. Nightfall prevented them from discovering their error until too late. The frigates escaped thus narrowly, and the following morning, October 9th, found them safely at anchor in the harbour of Fr^jus. The tidings of Bonaparte's return was spread in a moment throughout the town. At once the sea was covered with craft which, regardless of the danger of pestilence, escorted the hon- oured general to land. Here, as in Ajaccio, the question of quarantine was entirely set aside, affording no small gain in time to Napoleon, and what must have seemed to him of still greater consequence was the inference to be drawn from this enthusiastic reception that the public mind had become most favourably disposed toward himself. It is even related by Marmont that he was publicly greeted by a club-orator with the words: "Only go and beat the enemy. General, and drive him away, and then we will make you king if you so desire!" After a few hours of repose he pursued his journey without stop as far as Aix, whence he sent on a messenger to the Direc- tory to announce his arrival. Every word of his letter was carefully weighed. It opened with the statement that the General had received the communication sent by the govern- ment on November 4th of the previous year, and had concluded from it that war was about to break out on the Continent. That if he had not at once put himself at their disposal the incursion of the Turks was to blame, since they had first to be overcome before he might think of return. He should have ventured to make the voyage home whatever the circumstances Mr. 30] Napoleon's Welcome i ^j even had it been possible only " in a small boat and WTapped in a mantle." He, of course, asserted in the letter that he had left Egypt perfectly organized, nor did he fail to take precau- tions that the arrival of the courier should precede his own but by a very short interval. He travelled rapidly after leaving Aix. The journey was a veritable triumphal procession. His companions can hardly find words to describe the enthusiastic reception accorded along the entire route between Lyons and Paris. The cities vied with each other in tokens of homage to the man in whom they saw not so much the conqueror of the foreign enemy as the deliverer in time of need from intestinal dissension, the saviour from the dilemma of having to choose between anarchy and the Bourbons, the man who was to raise the country from the state of utter despondency into which it had fallen. And this feeling was not confined to the provincial towns. At the capital also the same effect was produced by the tidings of his return, in the possibility of which faith had ceased to exist. When it liccame know-n the news was greeted with a wild outbreak of joy. Since the beginning of the Revolution never had the hopes of every one been so fastened upon a single name as now when the end of political upheaval was so ardently desired. And yet this was the same people who a year and a half before had with no very great regret seen this same man sail away to take part in a dangerous adventure! What was it w'hich had brought about this rapid and complete change in the popu- lar feeling and realized the hopes of Napoleon based upon it? The answer to this question is to be found in the events which had taken place in France during his absence. These must be more carefully considered. After the Coup d'Etat of the 18th Fructidor the Directory had sought to protect itself against a recurrence of the danger of being driven from power by the conservative elements of the populace, and had for this purpose resorted to the same means b}' which the rule of the Radical minority over France had once before been made possible. It had established a tjTannical dictatorship which stopped the mouth of the oppos- 15B Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 ing press, proscribed nobility and clergy, and compelled more than 100,000 men of means to emigrate, while rendering almost valueless by means of forced loans the possessions of those who remained; it had scaled down the public debt one third, deported to the colonies political opponents, and called forth into prominence those elements which had been fright- ened away by the events of the 9th Thermidor: and this des- potic rule was expected to insure to the Directors the contin- uance of their power. In order that they and their creatures might remain in supremacy these men, Barras, Rewbell, and Larevelliere-Lepeaux crushed millions of people into timid subjection; in order to assure great revenues to themselves and their followers they ruined property throughout the country. But soon the Directory had to recognize that the Radicals, its allies of the 18th Fructidor, might become quite as dangerous opponents as the Conservatives and the Monarchists. The more quiet and peaceable elements of the population had indeed been conquered, but the sympathizers with the system of ter- rorization pushed themselves only so much the more boldly into the foreground. Although forbidden by law, numerous Jacobin clubs were organized and confederated with one another, and these by resort to the old methods of intimidation were successful in con- trolling the elections in the spring of 1798, at which a third of the Council of Five Hundred was to be chosen. The vanquished Conservatives stayed away from the polls, and the adherents of the Directory, who had separated themselves from the Jacobins, were left in a minority with their candidates. The rule of the Directory was consequently as seriously endangered now through the preponderance of infuriated menil)ers in the legislature as it had been a year Iw^fore through tliat of the Conservatives. But the Directors knew a remedy wliich might ])erhaps be of avail; it had proved efficacious in the preceding sununer and should again be made useful: this was the violation of the Constitution on the part of the government. Instead of annulling the elections and apjjointing new ones, on the ground that these were illegal iET. 30] The Plight of the Directory 159 since intimidation had been practised upon the voters, the Direc- tory induced the Five Hundred to confirm the elections of the members of the minority devoted to the existing government, and to exclude sixty Radical deputies (May 11th, 1798; 22d Flor^al). All that had been gained by this measure was that the govern- ment ceased from this moment to be sustained by either of the two great parties. The Conservatives detested it and had been its sworn enemies ever since the 18th Fructidor; since the 22d Flor^al the Jacobins had become equally antagonistic. Its exist- ence was assured only so long as the army yielded obedience to its commands. But party division began to affect the generals; Moreau, for example, was a Conservative, while Jourdan was a Jacobin; among officers and privates alike the antipathy to this government of lawyers was becoming pronounced, so that the situation of the administration was liable to become precarious if war did not soon break out on the Continent to give another direc- tion to the attention of these various dissatisfied elements. And measures had been taken which would prevent the possi- biUty of its being longer delayed. The peace-party had been overcome on the 18th Fructidor, just as it had been before on the 13th Vendemiaire. The abrupt discontinuance of negotiations with England which followed, the arrogant demands of the envoys at Rastatt, the defiant attitude of Bemadotte in Vienna, the revolts against the legitimate powers in Italy and Switzer- land, the instigation of republican propaganda in Southern Ger- many, and the encroachments in the Orient, — all these could not but lead to a new and tremendous conflagration in Europe which would give employment to all the forces of France and would prolong the rule of those in power. And first of all there arose in Russia an inexorable enemy. For the unconcealed support given by the Republic to the Poles, the occupation of the Ionian Isles, the secret alliance with the turbulent elements on the Balkan peninsula, the expedition to the Levant and particularly the seizure of Malta, whose Order of Knights had but recently put themselves under the protec- torate of the Czar, combined to make Paul I. an adversary of France and the champion of hereditary monarchy threatened i6o Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 and combated by the Republic and its agents. He concluded treaties of alliance with England and Turkey, whose hostility also had been incurred by the encroachments of the French, and urged immediate attack. England on her part induced the King of Naples as early as November, 1798, to open hostiUties against the French who were in possession of the States of the Church — a premature and hazardous attempt which failed miserably — with the result that the French forces under General Macdonald penetrated as far as Naples, compelled the flight of the king into Sicily, and founded the " Parthenopean Repubhc." This was one more step toward the complete ascendency of France in Italy, and the blow was nowhere more keenly felt than in Vienna, whose court was linked by kindred with that of Naples and had made the loan of one of its generals (Mack) to command the Neapolitan army. From the time of the departure of the French ambassador, Bemadotte, from Vienna all relations be- tween Austria and France had been broken off, nor were the conferences held at Selz between Cobenzl and Frangois de Neuf- chateau, the former Director, able to bring about their renewal. The outbreak of hostilities was no longer anything but a ques- tion of weeks, when Austria also made an agreement with Russia and a corps of Russian auxiliary troops marched into Galicia. And when the French demanded the withdrawal of these northern troops, stating that non-comphance with this requisition would be regarded as cause for war, the last hope of maintenance of peace was at an end. The Russians continued to advance, and Thugut paid not the sUghtest attention to the menaces of France. Early in March the French crossed the Rhine, the Austrians under Arch- duke Charles passed to the other side of the Lech, and on March 12th. 1799, France declared war against the power on the Danube, hostilities being at once begun. To add to the gloom of the situation the congress at Rastatt came to a tragic end: on March 28th the French envoys in taking their departure from the town were attacked by Austrian hussars and massacred with the exception of one man. It may have been through a misunderstanding of orders or it may have been due to some other motive as yet unexplained. Bt. 30] Weakness of the French Army 1 6 1 It would be reasonable to suppose that the Directory which had by its policy provoked this war would have been fully armed so as to be perfectly prepared to meet the danger. But it now became evident how disastrous was the reaction upon public affairs of the system of personal government. Under this WTetched administration the finances had at length reached a condition of total disorder, and the contributions levied in neighbouring countries did not suffice to make up the deficit. The army, upon whose ranks the government depended at all times as a last resort, stood in need of the energetic and watchful care of the banished Carnot, and its best commander tarried far away in the East. It is true that m September, 1798, the institution of conscription had been estabUshed, and according to the law all Frenchmen between the ages of twenty and twenty- five years were to serve in the army divided into five classes, but this law had been but imperfectly carried out. In Italy not more than 50,000 men could be opposed to the Austrians, and in Southern Germany not more than 40,000. The troops were ill-armed, and the commissariat in the hands of speculators who were in no wise more conscientious than the government. Besides these drawbacks a difference of opinion prevailed in the Directory as to what generals should be put in command. Among these, certain ones, Uke Joubert,had quarrelled with the govern- ment commissioners who accompanied the armies; others, such as Moreau, were too conservative ; the outcome of it was that to the old and incompetent Sch^rer had eventually to be assigned the important supreme command in Italy. The adversary came into the field far better equipped. Austria unassisted had the advantage in point of nimibers upon the three fields of operation, Suabia, Switzerland, and upper Italy; she had in Archduke Charles an able leader, and in the Russians under the valiant Suvaroff a powerful support and helper. And the result was inevitable. Jourdan, who had advanced to the Danube, was defeated at Osterach and Stockach by the Archduke before the end of March, 1799, and forced back to the Rhine; Massena, who had begun by victoriously pushing his way eastward from Switzerland, was checked at Feldkirch, 1 62 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 while Schercr was met by the Austrians under Kray at Mag- nano in the Cisalpine Republic and thrown back behind the Adda. And what Scherer had been unable to accomplish against the Austrians alone, his successor, Moreau, was still less able to do against the united Austro-Russian armies under Suvaroff. At Cassano on the Adda he underwent a decisive defeat, on April 27th, 1799, which opened to the northern conqueror the gates of Milan and Turin and caused the Cisalpine Republic to vanish. Austria again entered into possession of Lombardy, supported by a flood of conservative feeling among the population which everywhere drove the Democrats from their positions. The for- tresses alone remained in the hands of the French. Through a victory of the Archduke over Massena at Zurich on June 4th a third of Switzerland soon after fell into the hands of the Austrians. These occurrences compelled Macdonald to evacuate Naples and march toward the north, and with his departure the Parthenopean Republic was at the same time brought to an end. The only hope of recovering what had been lost now lay in Macdonald's effecting a junction of forces with those which Moreau had been able to withdraw to the Genoese Riviera and, with these rein- forcements, winning a victory. But this attempt also was doomed to failure. Even before the projected union could take place Macdonald's army was attacked by the Russians in a furious onslaught and defeated in the three days' battle on the Trebbia, June 17tli-19th. The loss of the French was severe, and they were compelled to retreat beyond the Apennines. This disaster was followed in a few weeks by the capitulation of Man- tua, for the sake of which so much blood had flowed two years before. A natural consequence of these losses in the field was a diminution of respect for the Directory throughout France. The war had, it is true, two years before secured in its position of power a most unpopular government. But then there had been a series of victories won by a general who had adopted as his own the government's policy of expansion and conquest, while now the reputation of the army was being constantly dimin- ,Et. 30] Changes in the Directory 163 ished by a succession of defeats, under commanders, moreover, in no political sympathy with the leaders of the government. It is consequently not surprising that the elections in the spring of 1799 shoidd bring to the Directory new discomfiture such as they were not able to recover from as heretofore by the use of force. It was also a sign of the general mistrust that when, in accordance with the law, one of the Directors had to retire, the man chosen to take his place was one w^ell known to have shown opposition as a member of the Convention to the Constitution of the year III, and to be ambitious of providing France with a better one; this was the abbe Sieves, the same man to whom Napoleon had confided, through Talley- rand, his ideas upon the framing of a constitution. Barras, who was entirely without principles, at once attached himself to the popular abbe, with the result that there arose, as in 1797, a minority in the Directory (Sieyes and Barras against Treilhard, LareveUiere, and Merlin), corresponding with a majority in the Chambers opposed to the existing government ; hence came new contentions. In face of the defeats abroad the majority in the Directory could no longer think of attempting a Coup d'fitat as on a former occasion; they were obliged to confront their adverearies in the legislature, who, attacking them upon their weak point, the financial disorder, succeeded in overthrowing the detested three. On June 18th, 1799 (30th Prairial), they retired, their places being filled by two pronounced Radicals (Gohier and Moulins), and a partisan of iSicyes (Roger-Ducos). Thus the party of the latter obtained a majority in the Direc- tory.* This overthrow of the government had been the work of a coalition between the two great parties making up the Five Hundred, the Radicals, all branches of which were classed together under the denomination of Jacobins, and the Moderate Republicans under the leadership of Boula}' de la Meurthe, to which party belonged Napoleon's brothers, Lucien and Joseph. This alliance was, however, at once dissolved upon the accom- * The Constitution required for the vaHdation of an act of the gov- irnment the signatures of at least three of the members of the Directory. 164 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 plishment of its object. The Moderates being now in power, since they were in the majority in the Directory (with Sieyes, Ducos, and Barras), the Jacobins joined themselves to the opposition. At first they were so upheld by the neutral mem- bers that they succeeded in enacting a forced loan to be levied upon the wealthy, and a law against the nobility who were to serve as hostages in the Royalist departments of France. Elated by these successes, they, contrary to law, reopened their club in Paris, they proposed a succession of radical measures to the effect that children should be brought up in common, that public workshops should be opened for the benefit of the poor, that the people should have the right to form federations, and demanded further the re-establishment of the old Convention and public declaration that the country was in danger, in order to introduce by this means a government similar to that of 1793; but here their allies abandoned them and they found themselves in the minority. Sieyes could now venture to close their club and to organize a system of strict surveillance, which he entrusted to a former member of the Convention, Fouche, with the title of Minister of Police. To Sieyes the essential thing now was to secure in the army a support upon which he could rely, and his first care had to be to establish his influence by means of decisive successes gained at the theatre of war. Accordingly the equipment of troops was vigorously advanced during July, and the young General Joubert put in the place of Moreau in command of the Army of Italy. Should he be victorious in his encounter with the enemy, it was more than possible that he could be made by the Director a very useful instrument for effecting a change in affairs of the interior. But Sieyes was destined to be no more fortunate than his predecessors. The reinforcements which Joubert took with him to the Genoese Riviera were insufficient to support him in withstanding the allied Austrians and Russians. He also was defeated by Suvaroff. In the l)loody battle of Novi, on the Bormida (August ir)th, 1799), the Republic lost 12,000 men, Joulx'rt his life, and Sieyes his ])r('stige. One person only profited thereby. It was the man whose /Et. 30] Basis of Napoleon's Popularity 165 name, as he had foreseen, would be recalled by every one upon the discomfiture of the French armies. "Where," the people began to ask, "was the victor of former days? Why was he not at hand? Where were the thousands he led away? Was it really better for the interests of the country that its sons should shed their blood far away upon the sands of the desert, while at home upon the scenes of former triumphs the fame of the nation was suffering disgrace?" The unseated govern- ment was accused of having "deported" the general, the radical opposition even demanded that the former Directors be brought to judgment upon this charge and inveighed against those now in power for abandoning to their fate the members of the ex- pedition.* Talleyrand was forced to resign his position as Minister of Foreign Affairs, and tried to justify himself by asserting that it was not he but his predecessor who had pro- posed the expedition to Egypt. Formerly, in 1798, when public opinion still connected Napoleon with the detested Directory, he could acquire but little popularity despite his victories; but now that he was considered to be in opposition to the govern- ment and to be as it were the victim of its self-seeking policy, he became the favourite of the people and the ideal of millions belonging to no party who desired quiet and order and a vigorous government which should put an end to the perpetual changes in the organic laws of France and to the horrible confusion of the administration, that the land might have peace and the citizens enjoy the wholesome fruits of the Revolution. To them Napoleon was not merely the tried conqueror who could defeat the enemy, but still more the man of energetic purpose who could suppress anarchy. This was the reason why his return was greeted everywhere by such boundless enthusiasm and why his popularity did not abate when it became known that in the last days of September the Russians and Austrians had been defeated in Switzerland by Massena, that the English had suffered in like manner at the hands of Brune in Holland * Lucien and Josephine did all in their power to foster the idea that the Directory had sent Napoleon upon the expedition in order to rid itself of him. 1 66 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 early in October, that the CoaUtion had been ruptured, and danger to France from every foreign foe had vanished. Napo- leon had no longer any need for fresh triumphs on the field to prepare the way for him, the cherished favourite of the people, before proceeding to extreme measures. He had not been mistaken when he had before his departure expressed to liis ])rother the conviction that he should be "surer of pubhc opinion" upon his return.* This had been lacking to him a year and a half earlier when a Coup d'Etat had been under consideration; now that this had been secured nothing should prevent him from putting his ambitious schemes into execution. When, in 1803, Napoleon was telling Madame de R^musat of his past hfe and came to the time following the Egyptian expedition, he said: "The Directory trembled at my return; I kept a careful watch upon myself; it was one of the periods in my life when I acted most skilfully. I saw the abbe Sieyes and promised to put into execution his wordy constitution; I received the leaders of the Jacobins and the agents of the Bourbons; I refused advice to no one, but I gave only such as was to the interest of my plans. I concealed myself from the people because I knew that when the time came curiosity to see me would throw them at my feet. Every one fell into my snare, and when I became the head of the State, there was not a party in all France which had not some hope based upon my buccess." Bonaparte did in fact act the part of an impartial man, but he nevertheless followed in reality a well-defined plan in his compU- cated system of dissinuilation and intrigue. His object was power, that point was settled. Only the means by which to acquire it could need consideration. The readiest way would have been to get himself elected Director. But when for the sake of appearances he sounded the presiding Director Gohier, a zealous and honest Jacobin with that political narrow-minded- ness which at one time constituted the strength of his i)arty, the latter referred him to the Constitution which excluded men under forty years of age from the Directory. This provision was but too * See page 126. iEr. 30] The Plan of the Coup d'Etat 167 well known to Napoleon. Once before it had presented itself as an obstacle in his way, and the thought had long been maturing in his mind of overthrowing this embarrassing Constitution. Nothing was more natural than that he should now join with those who were likewise planning to make an end of it. Sieyds was foremost amongst these. Since his outline of a constitution had been decUned in 1795, the abb6 had ostentatiously kept aloof from the government. Not until 1799 did he take a lead- ing position, for he beUeved the time now come for him to put an end, by means of his Constitution, to the general discontent with existing conditions and to prove himself thus the saviour of his country. And the encroachments of the Jacobins seemed about to hasten the realization of his plans. Sieyes found secret support in the moderate RepubUcans in both Chambers who styled themselves "Reformists"; among these belonged Lucien Bonaparte. An agreement was reached upon the following points: In order to strengthen the executive power the five Directors should be replaced by three Consuls elected for a term of ten years; beside these there should be a Senate with life-membership and a Chamber of Deputies eleete.l by uni\ersal suffrage. In order to have this Constitution adopted the Council of Ancients, a majority of whom had been won over, was to decree the transfer of the two legislative bodies to a place outside the capital so that the Jacobin opposition in the Council of Five Hundred should be separated fi'om their following in the suburbs. Articles 102-104 of the Constitution of the year III. conferred upon the first Council the power to take this measure. Once assembled outside of Paris the Ancients would recommend Sieyes' proposition to the Five Hundred, win over to it the neutral element among them, and finally cause the new Constitution to be sanctioned by a plebiscite. Every step in this plan was clear but one. Would the Council of Five Hundred consent without opposition to the decree of the Ancients and leave Paris ? Its refusal to comply might be a dangerous matter, the more so since Generals Jourdan, Augereau, and Bernadotte were all numbered among the Radical deputies. A soldier of reno^\Ti was needed to whom the execution of this measure could be en- 1 68 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 trusted. Sieyes had undoubtedly counted at first upon Joubert, and after his death upon Moreau, who seemed to him the right instnmient since he was devoid of all political ambition, his aspirations being entirely military; he summoned the General to Paris. But at the same time with Moreau, Bonaparte entered the capital, the former in perfect silence, the latter surrounded by the acclamations of millions; the one defeated, the other as conqueror; and Sieyes could not hesitate as to which of these soldiers he should confide the execution of his project. He had to choose Napoleon even at the risk of being overshadowed by him. Immediately upon his arrival Napoleon was made acquainted through Lucien with the contemplated reform, and expressed himself as in sympathy with it. He himself stood in need of a new Constitution in order to come into power, and Sieyes was in want of a general esteemed by the army to establish his Consti- tution. This was the pivot about which the destinies of France at that time revolved, lalleyrand, who was desirous of regain- ing favour with Napoleon, assumed the task of bringing the two men into relations, and on November 1st they met secretly at the house of Lucien. Bonaparte was not in favour of submitting the new Constitution to the Chambers at once in the form given it by Sieyes, but expressed a desire to entrust it first to a com- njission of Deputies for examination and meanwhile to have all energies bent upon obtaining the establishment of a provisional government to be composed of Sieyes, Roger-Ducos, and himself. Sieyes was obliged to consent whether or no. He recognized that his role of saving genius was at an end from the moment that his Constitution should have to undergo examination by a committee, and it was no less clear to him that in a provisional government with Bonaparte as colleague he could have no hope of obtaining the foremost place. But it was too late to with- draw.* * Aftor a dinner at which SieySs met Joseph Bonaparte and the Dep- uty Cabanis, who was in the secret, he saicl to them: "I am going to join forces with (Jeneral Bonaparte because o*" all our military men he is the most of a civilian; nevertheless I am aware of what is before me: success attained, the General will do like this to his two colleagues," whereupon Mt. 30] Generals of the Army Sounded 1 69 Sieyes and Bonaparte met again on November 6th, after a banquet given by the Chambers in honour of Moreau and Bona- parte at which the latter proposed the toast, "The unity of all Frenchmen," and at this time the Hnal arrangements were dis- cussed. The abb6 had brought with him a draft which he had already made of the decrees to be issued by the Ancients. The first convoked the Chambers at St. Cloud, the second appointed Napoleon to supreme command of all troops, and a third pro- posed him with Roger-Ducos and Sieyes as provisional Consuls. Each Chamber was to appoint a special committee to pass upon the Constitution and adjourn for three months. The action was to be taken on the 18th Brumaire (November 9th). During the ensuing days Napoleon sounded the generals and officers. Several regiments of the Paris garrison had for- merly served under him in the ItaUan army, the officers' positions in the National Guard had been for the most part of his be- stowal while General of the Army of the Interior after the 13th Vend^miaire; inclination and discipline would assure to him the fidelity of the troops who idolized the "little corporal." Of the generals only Jourdan and Augereau held themselves at a distance; Bemadotte, who, as he wrote to Lucien in 1804, might easily have roused the suburbs to opposition, yielded to the solicitations of Joseph, whose brother-in-law he had recently become; Moreau simply obeyed the man in supreme command. Possibly he took this course because he hoped, as has been affirmed, that, the illustrious general having once been made the head of the government, he should no longer have him as a rival at the head of the army; or it may have been, as he himself assured Napoleon at a later date, because he firmly believed that this audacious adventurer would be overthrown six weeks after the event.* he stepped suddenly between Joseph and Cabanis and threw them by a powerful swing of his arms into the chimney-comer and stood alone in the middle of the room. Napoleon, to whom Joseph related the scene, was much amused and laughingly exclaimed: "Long live the wittv! This augurs well." * See the letter of General Willot of October 30th, 1S09, in Boulay de la Meurthe's "Les demi^res ann^es du Due d'Enghien," p. 293. \jo Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 Meanwhile Sieyes and his confidants were taking the last steps to make sure of the Council of the Ancients. A threat- ening outbreak of the Jacobins was used as a bugbear to win over those who wavered. Those deputies who could not be counted upon were, through the connivance of the hall-inspectors, kept away from the decisive session, some being summoned at a later hour and some not at all. On November 9th (18th Brumaire), at seven o'clock in the morning, the Ancients assembled. Regnier, who had been taken into confidence, at once took the floor to make the following motion: "The Council of the Ancients, in accordance with Articles 102, 103, and 104, decrees: 1st. That the Legislature be transferred to the commune of St. Cloud, where both Councils will hold session in the two wings of the palace. 2d. That they will there assemble to-morrow, the 19th Brumaire (November 10th), at noon. All continuation of functions or deliberation is prohibited elsewhere and until that time. 3d. That General Bonaparte be charged with the execution of the present decree. He will take all the necessary measures to protect the National Republic. The general in command of the seventeenth division, the guard of the Legislative Body, the National Guards and the regular troops in Paris, in the constitutional arrondissement, and in the whole seventeenth division are put directly under his orders and are bound to recognize him as commander. Every citizen will be required to render him assistance upon demand. 4th. That General Bonaparte be summoned to appear before the Council of the Ancients to receive a copy of the present decree and to take the oath. 5th. That this decree shall be at once communicated to the Council of the Five Hundred and to the Directory. That it shall be printed and promulgated through- out the length and breadth of the Repiiblic by means of special messengers.* The motion was carried unanimously and a mani- * The Articles of the Constitution of 170.5 upon which the Ancienta r(;lied for their authority in this matter were the following: "Article 102. The Council of the Ancients may change the place of meeting of the Legislative Body. It shall, in such case, indicate another place and iEr. 30] Napoleon to the Ancients 171 festo to the nation was decided upon in like manner, announcing that the Council of the Ancients had decreed these measures in order to control the factions which wanted to tyrannize over the National Representatives and for the sake of securing peace within the country. While the Council of Ancients was thus engaged Bonaparte, surrounded by officers and generals, was awaiting at home his nomination. As soon as it had been delivered to him he mounted his horse and proceeded with a numerous retinue to the Tuileries, where he entered the hall in which sat the Council of the Ancients in order to take the required oath. Here he made a short address in his accustomed tone of command and closing with the following words: "Your wisdom has passed this decree; our arms will find a way to execute it. We are desirous of a Republic founded upon true civil liberty, upon representation of the people. And we shall have it, I swear it; I swear it in my own name and in that of my companions in arms." Of maintenance of the Constitution he said not a word; on the contrary, every syllable intimated a change in pubhc affairs. The members of the Council were none the less warm in their applause of the General, and the session was brought to a close not to be reopened before the following day at St. Cloud. When shortly afterwards the Council of the Five Hundred assembled it was met with the announcement of the decree of the First Cham- ber, and Lucien Bonaparte, who had been elevated to the presi- dency as a token of honour to his brother, at once adjourned time at which the two Councils must assemble. The decree of the Council of the Ancients in this matter shall be irrevocable. " Article 103. Upon the day that this decree is issued neither of the Councils may deliberate within the communes in which its sessions have until that time been held. Members who shall there continue their func- tions will be guilty of assault upon the safety of the Republic. "Article 104. Members of the Executive Directory who shall delay or refuse to seal, promulgate, and send out the decree for the transfer of the Legislative Body, will be guilty of the same misdemeanor." Of the right of entrusting to a general the execution or the protection of the decree there was no word in the Articles. This was the first un- lawful act, and this the managers of the Coup d'Etat cleverly shifted on to the shoulders of the representatives of the people. 172 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 the session. The activity of the Legislature had been sus- pended. Upon leaving the hall of the Ancients, Napoleon betook him- self to the garden of the Tuileries, where he passed in review the troops drawn vip there. He next issued a proclamation to the National Guard and another to the regular troops. In each he arraigned the government which had until now been in power. "For two years," said he to his soldiers, "the Republic has been badly governed. You have been in hopes that my return would put an end to so many evils; you have celebrated it with such a unanimity as to impose upon me obligations which I am about to fulfil. . . . Liberty, victory, and peace will restore to the French Republic the rank which she formerly held in Europe and which incapability or treachery alone could have caused her to lose. Long life to the Republic!" Execution followed close upon the heels of accusation. As had been arranged, Sieyes and Ducos presented their resignations as members of the Directory. It needed but to persuade Barras to do likewise to stop the wheels of government altogether, since the vaUdation of every act required the signatures of at least three Directors. Up to this day Napoleon had kept his former friend and patron in ignorance as to his real designs, and had made use of him to hold Sieyes to a certain extent in check. The time had now come to lay aside precaution, and he sent to him two of his con- fidants, Talleyrand and Bruix to demand the resignation of his ofRce. Barras announced his willingness to accede to this requisition; he was led to this decision by the power at the dis- posal of Bonaparte and by the universal contempt in which he was himself held ; his only request to the all-powerful man of the day, made through his secretary Bottot, was for a safe-conduct beyond the city. Bonaparte made use of this occasion to ex- press himself before a number of witnesses concerning the policy of the Directory. To Barras's frightened messenger he ex- claimed: "What have you done with that France which I left you so glorious? I left peace and find war! I left you victory, I find only defeat! I left you the millions of Italy, I find every- where poverty and laws that plunder! . . . What have you iEx. 30] The End of the Directory 173 done with tlic hundred thousand Frenchmen whom I knew, my companions in glory? They are dead! This state of things cannot last; before three years had passed it would lead us to despotism. We want a Republic founded on the basis of equality, of morality, of civil liberty, and of political toleration." These at least were the words in which the "Moniteur" repro- duced the speech two days afterwards. With the retirement of Barras, Moulins and Gohier became powerless. The latter had been invited by Josephine to break' fast at eight o'clock in the morning of this eventful day. Was it Bonaparte's intention to make sure of this man? Did he hope in spite of everything to win him to the support of the movement in hand? Gohier did not come. Only during the course of the forenoon did he learn of what had occurred, and hastened with Moulins to Napoleon to expostulate with him. His remon- strances were of course without avail. The two Directors returned with their mission unaccomplished to the Palace of the Luxembourg, where the Executive of the government had hitherto held its sessions. JMoreau received instructions to detain them there. The Directory had ceased to exist. All that was needed further was to get the two Comicils at St. Cloud to ratify the political change, to accept the provisional government, and to appoint the committees w^hich were to pass upon the proposed Constitution. Sieyes had advised that on the following day some twenty or thirty of the most pronounced Radicals, espe- cially Jourdan and Augereau, should be prevented from attending the session of the Five Hundred. This, however, Bonaparte declined to do ; it should not be said of him that he stood in fear of these two men. "On the whole," said he exultingly to Bourrienne that evening, "things have not gone badly to-day. Good-night; to-morrow we shall see what comes next." He did not, however, fail to take the precaution to load his pistols before going to bed. On the morrow, the 10th of November (19th Brumaire), the deputies of both Chambers assembled at noon, the appointed hour, in St, Cloud. To the .Ancients had been assigned a hall 174 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 in the second story of the palace, while the Five Hundred were to sit in the Orangery on the ground-floor. Before the opening of the session the deputies met in the park and eagerly discussed the event of the day. The Jacobin members of the Five Hundred and such of the Ancients as had been excluded on the previous day demanded explanations; others began to comprehend that assent to this momentous decree had been drawn from them under false pretences and for the purpose of making a Coup d'Etat; they had intended at the utmost to aid in effecting a change in the Executive and not at all in overthrowing the Con- stitution; their indignation waxed hot at sight of the troops which filled the courtyard. Thus began the sessions of the two Chambers. Napoleon had taken his place with his generals in the hall of the inspectors of the legislative body. Here he was kept informed, as he had arranged, of the progress of affairs in both of the assemblies. The reports were hardly of a nature to give him satisfaction. In the Council of the Ancients continual excitement pre- vailed, and the feeling grew still more intense when it became known there that three of the Directors had abdicated and that the remaining two were forcibly detained. In the Council of the Five Hundred one of the initiated had taken the floor, but he was interrupted by cries from the Radicals of ''No dictator- ship! Down with dictators!" They further proposed and carried a motion that every member should at the roll-call renew his oath to support the existing Constitution. Upon receipt of this news Napoleon could contain himself no longer. Should he allow this hostile feeling to grow, and perhaps even finally to spread among the troops, all would be lost, "This must be put a stop to," said he, suddenly jumping up, to officers of his retinue, and going at once to the hall where the Ancients were in session. He was no orator, and his words on this occa- sion seemed altogether incoherent and abrupt. They were standing on the crater of a volcano, he told them. He and his companions in arms had gladly obeyed the summons of the Council, and now he was calumniated with the charge of playing the part of a Cjosar or a Cromwell. Had he wished to destroy ^T. 30] Napoleon Before the Ancients 175 the liberty of the country ho niiglit have availed himself of fre- quent opportunities which had presented. He then spoke in a general way of the dangers threatening the Republic; "liberty and equality must be preserved," said he. "And how about the Constitution?" called a voice. This was striking Xapoleon in the most sensitive spot, and he broke forth: "The Constitution? you yourselves rendered it of no account. You violated it on the 18th Fructidor. you violated it on the 22d Floreal and on the 30th Prairial. It is appealed to by all parties, and all parties have sinned against it. It cannot afford safety to us, for no one respects it any more. Let us find the means of assuring to every one the liberty to which he is entitled and which could not be guaranteed to him by the Constitution of the Directory." Some members having demanded enlightenment concerning the threatening dangers of which he had spoken, he was unal^le to get out of the difficulty without recourse to falsehood. He declared that two of the Directors, Barras and Moulins, had proposed to him to place himself at the head of a party pur- posing to overthrow all men of liberal ideas. This was palpably nothing but an invention which irritated his adherents and put his opponents out of patience to such an extent that the presi- dent, Lemercier, was forced to call upon him to reveal the details of the plot. But Napoleon, having no exact information to impart, could only reiterate what he had said before; he declared the Constitution ineffectual, and finally turned in his helpless- ness and agitation to the soldiers who were stationed outside and who were totally unable to hear him ; he apostrophized them in flattering words and expressed to them his confidence that they would protect him in case any speaker should attempt to raise the cry of "outlaw" against him, "for," said he, "1 am accompanied by the god of war and the god of fortune ! " With these words he lost all command over what he was saying. Bourrienne, who with Berthier was standing at his side, whis- pered in his ear: "General, you no longer know what you are saying," and induced him to withdraw. The session was then brought to a close. But the most difficult task was yet before him. Napoleon 176 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 went down-stairs and presented himself at the session of the Five Hundred, where its members had meanwhile one by one taken oath to support the Constitution and were, for their part, awaiting a disclosure from the Upper Chamber as to the motive for the transfer of the Legislative Body. This communication was not forthcoming, which fact in nowise tended to increase their calmness of mind. Instead of the expected message there arrived a letter from Barras presenting his resignation and saying that he retired before the man made so glorious alike by his per- sonal renown and by the marks of confidence given him by the National Representatives. The Jacobin deputies hereupon demanded to know what circumstances could have determined the Director to resign his office. Suddenly, just at this juncture, appeared Bonaparte in the hall, unannounced and followed by four grenadiers. This was an act of flagrant dirsregard of all conventionalities. There arose at once a frightful uproar of indignation against him. "Armed men in the hall!" cried the Jacobins, and a number of Radicals rushed in uncontrollable excitement upon the intruder. Hands were laid upon him and he was pushed toward the door. In the tumult he for a moment lost consciousness. He sank into the arms of the grena- diers and was carried by them into the open air. But from within there followed him furious clamours of "Hors la loi!" "Outlaw him!" — a cry which but a few years before had meant certain death. And who knows what would have occurred if the Jacobins had quietly listened to Napoleon? A careful observer, Brink- mann the Swede, at that time resident in Paris, expresses in his recently published letters only the general verdict when he says: " Evidently they ought either to have slain the general on the spot, or to have listened to him quietly, keeping always themselves within the limits of the Constitution and of prudence ... in order to lay all the blame upon the shoulders of the aggressor." Certainly the behaviour of the Jacobins was of a kind to put them at a disadvantage if the circumstances were cleverly made use of. To no one was their mistake more promptly evident than to Lucien Bonaparte, the president of the Council, against ^T. 30] Lucien Saves the Day 177 whom their attack was now directed; the most excited demanded that he should put to vote the proscription of his brother; others demanded that Napoleon be declared not in command of the troops since the Council of the Ancients had been in nowise authorized to appoint him to that post. The desk in the middle of the hall was surrounded by members clamouring to be heard. In the midst of the uproar Lucien resigned the chair to the vice-president in order to speak from the tribune in his brother's favour. His voice, however, Avas unable to make itself heard above the din, and he sent a deputy who was in sympathy with the plot to Napoleon with the message that he was compelled to relinquish his seat and required miUtary protection. At the same time he took off his toga. Just as he was being forced by his colleagues to resume his seat appeared the soldiers sent to his assistance by Napoleon, and by them he was escorted out of the room. A number of deputies followed him. Outside in the courtyard Napoleon waited with his officers at the head of a battalion of the Garde du Corps Legislatif. Near him stood certain confidential friends. Siey^s, Ducos, and TallejTand sat in a carriage at the gate ready to save themselves by flight if affairs should assume an unfavourable aspect. Intense excitement could be recognized in every face. Before the Councils the cause of the Coup d'Etat seemed as good as lost. The question now was in regard to the troops. The outcome of the day depended upon their attitude. Lucien at once recognized this fact, and mounting a horse he addressed the battahon in a few words in which he exaggerated the tumult provoked by the Jacobin minority to the extent of making it an attack upon Napoleon's Hfe. "Frenchmen," he cried, "the President of the Council of Five Hundred declares to you that the immense majority (.f this Council is at the present moment held in terror by certain Representa- tives armed with daggers who beset the tribune threatening their colleagues with death and proposing to them the most frightful resolutions. I declare to you that these audacious brigands, inspired no doubt by the evil spirit of the English government, 178 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 have put themselves in the position of rebels toward the Council of the Ancients in demanding the outlawry of the general charged with the execution of this decree of the Council, as if we still belonged in those awful times of their reign, when that word *hors la loi' was enough to cause the fall of any head however dear to our country. ... To you warriors I entrust the duty of dehvering this majority of the Representatives of the People, so that, protected by bayonets against stilettos, we may delib- erate in peace upon the interests of the Republic. . . . You will recognize as Deputies of France only those who present them- selves with their president in your midst. As for those who will persist in remaining in the Orangery in order to vote proscrip- tions, let them be put out by force!" "And if any one offers resistance," added Napoleon, "kill, kill! Yes! follow me, follow me. I am the god of the day!" And he would have continued in this strain if Lucien had not whispered to him for heaven's sake to keep still. "Vive Bonaparte!" shouted the soldiers, but they made no attempt to move. And it was indeed no hght matter to direct the bayonet against the Na- tional Representatives. But Lucien, recognizing this fatal hesitation, seized a dagger and pointed it against his brother's breast, swearing to strike him dowii with it should he ever attempt to violate the Uberties of the French. At this the grena- diers ceased to waver. At a sign from Napoleon one division with drums beating allowed itself to be led by Murat into the hall. Upon the failure of the deputies to comply with his order to disperse, the soldiers advanced, and the legislators were forced to take flight through the windows. Nothing could more clearly show the deep gulf which sepa- rated the army from the nation than this painful scene. Con- stant absence from home had made the militia strangers to the people, and whoever commanded the soldiery could domineer recklessly over the nation. It is true that the Bonapartes had been obliged to resort to calumny and invention in order to set this force in motion against the constituted authorities; the allusions to English influence in Lucien's speech were totally without foundation; in fact the "daggers" of the deputies iET. 30] The Provisional Government 179 had been seen by no one, personal danger to the President of the Chamber did not exist, and the dagger brandished against Napoleon was an unparalleled piece of buffoonery; but the fact that such means could be successful and sufficient to decide the fate of a great nation showed to what an extent disintegra- tion had taken place. And what of the people itself? On the 18th and 19th Brumaire the Parisians quietly occupied themselves with their private affairs, totally indifferent to events which a few years before had thrilled every fibre. That for which hundreds of thousands had then risked their lives in fanatic devotion to hberty now seemed scarcely able to awaken curiosity. The Coup d'Etat once accomplished everything else was very soon reduced to order. Lucien could now describe to the Coun- cil of the Ancients the occmrences in the lower house with the same degree of partiality as had marked the account which he had given to the troops. He summoned the Ancients to pass a resolution "that the fasces of the Consuls, those glorious symbols of republican hberty of ancient times, be raised to disarm our calumniators and to give reassurance to the French people, whose universal approbation will not withhold its sanction to our labours." And the Council at once agreed upon adjourn- ment of both Chambers, upon the nomination of a provisional government of three Consuls, and upon the election of a com- mission for consideration of the new Constitution. And similar action was taken during the same night by such members of the Five Hundred as could, with no small difficulty, be assembled. The number of those present seems to have been from fifty to one hundred and twenty.* Lucien presided at this gathering, just as he had occupied the chair at the session of the whole number, in order that appearances of legality at least might be preserved. The proposed amendments to the Constitution were submitted, whereupon Boulay de la Meurthe made a long speech in justifica- tion of them, during the course of which he denounced the Con- * The last number is given by Brinkmann from the statements of im- partial eye-witnesses. Bourrienne, on the other hand, speaks of only thirty deputies. i8o Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 stitution of the year III and the poUcy of the late Directory. This "Rump Pariiament" then passed the following definitive resolutions formulated in sixteen articles: "The Directory has ceased to exist. A committee consisting of three Consuls, Sieyes, Ducos, and Bonaparte, is to constitute a provisional gov- ernment. They are clothed with all directorial power and authorized to re-establish order in public affairs, to secure domes- tic tranquillity, and to establish an honourable and lasting peace with foreign nations. The Legislative Body will adjourn until Feb- ruary 20th, 1800, after having declared sixty-two deputies, desig- nated by name, to have forfeited their seats, and after having elected a commission of twenty-five members who, in conjunction with a similar one appointed by the Ancients and the three Con- suls, shall act upon the urgent business of police and financial legislation, formulate a new representative constitution and a new civil code." The commission was hereupon elected and the decree transmitted to the Ancients and ratified by them. Finally, the three Consuls took an oath of inviolable fidelity to the sovereignty of the people, to the French Republic, to liberty, equaUty, and the representative system of government. It was long after midnight before the assemblage broke up. The Coup d'Etat had been accomplished. How correct Napoleon had been in his calculations when he risked everything on the 19th Brumaire was shown at once in the events of the ensuing days. France approved the Coup d'Etat. The fact was not to be denied. "Every previous revolution," wrote the Prussian ambassador, Sandoz-Rollin, to the govern- ment at home under date of November 13th — "every previous revolution had inspired much distrust and fear. This one, on the contrary, as I myself can testify, has cheered the spirits of every one and awakened the liveliest hopes." And the causes of this phenomenon are given us by Brinkmann in a remarkable letter of November 18th: "Never, perhaps, did a legitimate monarch find a people more devoted to his will than did liona- parte, and it would be unpardonable should this clever general fail to profit by this fact to establish a better government upon a more stable basis. It is literally true that France will accom- iET. 30] Popular Approval i 8 1 plish the impossible in order to contribute to this result, for the people, with the exception of the contemptible horde of anar- chists, is so tired, so disgusted with revolutionary horrors and follies, that all are inwardly convinced that they cannot but gain by any change. All classes of society jeer at the heroics of the demagogues, and everywhere the demand is rather for their expulsion than for the realization of their ideal dreams. Even Royalists of every shade are sincerely devoted to Bonaparte, for they suppose it to be his intention to bring back little by little the old order of things. Those unattached to any party adhere to him as the man best fitted to procure peace to France, and the most enlightened Republicans, while trembling at the danger of destruction to their system, are better satisfied that it should be one man of talent rather than a club of obscure conspirators who should gain exclusive control of public affairs." Even when it became knowTi that the accusation made against Moulins and Barras was a mere slander, that the alleged con- spiracy and the daggers of the deputies were all fabrications, the hatred felt toward the Jacobins and the yearning for a return to conditions of social order were so great that, in spite of all, in the end achieved it was forgotten that the means employed had been anything but moral. It is surprising to observe in contemporaneous accounts of the Coup d'Etat how Bonaparte is nearly always the only actor named, while Sieyes and Ducos, if mentioned at all, are spoken of only incidentally. And yet all three were formally invested with equal executive power and at first shared equally in the labour of government, strictly maintaining their equality. But at the end of a very short time Bonaparte alone was in full pos- session of the executive power. For this there were sundry causes. In the first place the people regarded him alone as their deliverer, while Sieyes and Ducos, in disfavour as former Directors, interested nobody, and, justly appreciating this fact, voluntarily kept themselves in the background. Moreover, there was among the three really only one who had had practical experience in affairs of state; that one was Napoleon, who, having governed Italy in 1797, and organized the affairs of 1 82 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 Egypt in 1798, was acquainted with all the detail of administra- tion. Finally, he alone had the unswerving desire for work and marvellous capacity for it which was needed to bring security and order out of the appalling confusion into which affairs had sunk. Ducos, appreciating his unfitness, soon withdrew alto- gether, and Sieyes, perceiving that his cherished plan of playing poUtical saviour had stranded, contented himself with elaborat- ing his Constitution in interminable discussions with both com- mittees, while abandoning to his zealous colleague the arduous labours of the ruler. Napoleon was thus left free to act as he saw fit. He chose his own ministers. Gaudin, who had acquired much experience in the administration of public revenues under the monarchy, and who had refused to accept a portfoHo under Sieyes, now wilHngly assumed the burdensome duties of Minister of Finance. Talley- rand, formerly Bishop of Autun, whose sordid avarice and irregu- lar manner of life were a reproach, but whose penetration in statecraft was unequalled, was again made Minister of Foreign Affairs. As a token of respect to the National Institute, Laplace, the great mathematician, was appointed Minister of the Interior, a position he however soon yielded to Lucien Bonaparte on account of entire lack of capacity in the management of affairs. Berthier, the skilful manager of military operations in Napo- leon's campaigns, became Minister of War, but later gave place to Carnot. Fouche retained command of the department of police, Cambaceres was given the portfolio of justice, and Forfait received that of the Navy. The Ministry having been constituted, attention was turned to the regulation of the desperate financial situation. Such was the confidence inspired by the new government that the five per cents rose from 7 to 12 after the Coup d'Etat, and to 17 within a few weeks. When thereupon Napoleon did away with the pernicious compulsory loans, capitalists became somewhat more confident. By way of compensation taxes on real estate were raised, and in order to secure the revenue thus levied, a project which had already previously been under discussion was made law reorganizing the collection of direct taxes. In every ^r. 30] Sieyes' New Constitution 183 department the Receivers General had to furnish security by means of which contributions of money the most crying needs could at least be met. That capital might be still further re- assured more than fifty Jacobin deputies, among them General Jourdan, were sentenced to deportation or imprisonment, but this sentence was afterwards commuted to police surveillance. These measures did not, it is true, themselves remedy the desper- ate financial straits of the State, but they furnished the conditions essential to the bringing about improvement. Everything depended upon whether Napoleon were confirmed legally in his ascendency in the government. He began seriously to concern himself in regard to the new Constitution. Sieyes had sought to make his draft of a Constitution accepta- ble to both committees appointed by the former Chambers. It was based on the principle that the different branches of the gov- ernment should counterbalance one another. The people was declared sovereign and universal suffrage guaranteed. But the people were not to elect their representatives directly, merely to cast their votes for candidates from among whom the legislators were to be appointed by the supreme power of the State. The five milhon adults comprising the voters of all France were to elect from their number one tenth, 500,000 men, who were to be called Notables of the Communes, eligible for communal offices; these were to elect from among their number 50,000 Notables of the Department, eligible for departmental offices; ffiially, these last were to elect one tenth of their number for Notables of France, candidates for the legislative body, and for central admin- istration offices up to that of Minister. All such as had during the last ten years held high office or been representatives were to be included in the Ust of Notables of France, and all lists were to be vaUd for ten years. From the Notables of France were to be chosen the members of two legislative bodies, one of which should discuss but not vote upon bills originating in their own assembly or proposed by the government, while the other was to vote without discussion. At the head of the State there was to be a president styled the Grand Elector. He was to enjoy an ample income, represent the Republic, sign laws and treaties 184 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 and appoint or dismiss the two chief magistrates, the Consuls, but this was to be the Umit of his functions. Of the Consuls, one was to have charge of the war department (army and foreign affairs), the other of the peace department (Ministry of the Interior). Each was to appoint his subordinates. As an out- ward check upon the government and as a guardian of the Constitution there was to be an independent body, the Constitu- tional Jury, to consist of eighty members appointed for life. They were to choose their own successors, appoint the Grand Elector and the members of the two legislative houses, and annul unconstitutional laws. In case the Grand Elector or any other high official abused his authority this Jury was empowered to appoint him a member of their own body, thus depriving him of his former office, since, as member of the Jury it was impossible for him to hold any other official position. Such were the principal features of the Constitution which Sieyes had elaborated with so much subtlety. The sovereign people was rendered powerless by the Jury, the first Chamber by the second, the power of the Consuls was neutralized through the Grand Elector, and that of the Grand Elector in his turn through the Jury. This system, however perfect theoretically, was altogether impractical. So insecure a mechanism could least of all find approval with a man Uke Bonaparte, whose dreams of rule were on the threshold of realization. He ridiculed the contrivance, characterized it to Joseph as far too "metaphysi- cal," and compelled the commission, zealously desirous of being serviceable to so powerful a man, to undertake radical changes therein. The useless Grand Elector, " this shadow of a 'roi fain^ ant,' this fatted swine," as Napoleon designated him, was at once eliminated. He was replaced by a First Consul as head of the government, charged with the execution of the law, to be elected by the Senate for a term of ten years. He was to appoint and dismiss ministers, ambassadors, councillors of State, administra- tive officials (prefects, sub-prefects, and mayors), all officers whether of the army or navy, and all judges excepting members of the "cour dc cassation" (higliest court of appeals), and the " jugcs de paix." His will should be law when pronmlgated in the ^T. 30] The Departments of Government 185 form of a decree. He was to direct in matters of diplomacy, and was to be Commander-in-chief of all military forces. He was to sign treaties and laws upon their adoption by the legisla- tive body. He was to appoint the members of a Council of State which constituted a part of the executive and which was to assist the government with its advice. At the side of the First Consul there were to be two colleagues whose powers were, however, much less extensive, since they could assist only with counsel and could exercise no influence in the appointment of State officials. It would almost seem as if they had been created to veil the omnipotence of the First Consul. In the face of a governing power thus constituted an efficient legislative body was scarcely possible. Bonaparte therefore readily agreed to the manner of election by means of the before- mentioned hsts of candidates. The legislative power was to be exercised by three bodies. Sieyes' Constitutional Jury was trans- formed into a Senate with life-membership (Senat conserva- teur), whose 80 members were to be chosen from the Notables of France. From the same list of candidates the Senate was to choose the Corps legislatif, with 300 members, and the Tribunate, with 100. No one of these bodies possessed the right of initiating legislative measures. The executive laid bills before the Tri- bunate ; the latter debated questions thus brought before it, but could vote only as to whether certain of its members designated for that purpose should speak for or against the measure before the Corps legislatif. The members of this last body, on the other hand, did not debate the question, but voted at once after hearing the Tribunes. In a letter to Talleyrand already quoted Napoleon had spoken of a legislature "impassive, without eyes and without ears for its surroundings." Such an one had now been found. In the same letter the Council of State was also designated as one of the two branches of the executive. Now for the first time could it be seen who was to constitute the other branch. It became suddenly apparent that the real authority was to rest in his hands and his alone.* Other provisions of the Constitution concerned the judicial * See page 118. 1 86 Coup d'Etat and Consulate [1799 and financial regulations, especially the court of appeals ("cour de cassation "), whose members were to be elected by the Senate, as were also those of the exchequer ("cour des comptes "). The yearly salaries of the dignitaries were then fixed. That of the First Consul was to be 500,000 francs, while his colleagues were to receive 150,000. All three were to have residences in the Tuileries. Senators were to receive 25,000 francs, the Tribunes 15,000, and members of the Corps legislatif 10,000. To this modified form of the proposed Constitution the fifty members of the Commission had on the whole given their approval with but little opposition. It remained only to elect the three chief magistrates whose names were to appear in the Constitution of the year VIII. All naturally were agreed upon Napoleon for First Consul. Sieyes having declined to serve in the capacity of one of the other Consuls, the choice fell upon Cambaceres and Lebrun. The former, who had befriended and patronized Napoleon in Paris in the days before the 13th Vendemiaire, was an eminent jurist, though decidedly inchned toward a life of ease. The latter was a financier of like ability who contributed to the new regime the benefit of his wide experience acquired under the monarchy. To Sieyes was accorded the sinecure of the presi- dency of the Senate with a handsome income besides a great estate in the vicinity of Paris, a price gladly paid by Napoleon to relieve himself of the abbe. Ducos was made a Senator. With these appointments the Committee of Fifty completed its task in a night session of December 12th. Nothing was now lacking but its sanction by the sovereign, that is to say by the people of France, as was clearly expressed in the Constitution. Upon this absolute reliance could be placed. The more the new statute differed from those which had during the last ten years led to the overthrow of order at home and to a state of war abroad, the more favourably would it be received. Napoleon might safely venture, without waiting for the vote of the people, to fill the i)laces created for the representatives of the nation. Sieyes and Ducos in company with Cambaceres and Lebrun chose thirty- one Senators according to their discretion, or rather that of Bonaparte, and these thirty-one selected colleagues sufficient iEr. 30] "The Revolution is at an End" 187 to bring their number up to sixty, wliich was for the present to be its hmit. Their ranks being filled, the Senate proceeded at once to the appointment of the Tribunes and the members of the Corps l^gislatif, while Napoleon appointed the members of the new Council of State, which held its first session on December 25th. A new government having many positions to bestow always finds many adherents among the ambitious, the enter- prising, and the covetous — a power w^hich Napoleon well under- stood making use of to establish his rule. And from this time forth he was master of France. The manifesto of December 15th, 1799, in which the Consular Constitution was presented to the people of France for its ratifi- cation, closed with these words: "Citizens, the Revolution is estabUshed upon the principles wliich were its origin. It is at an end." That was the question. CHAPTER VIII WAR AND PEACE No, the Revolution was not at an end. Napoleon might ac- quire an unlimited dictatorial power over France, he might render the representatives of the nation a blind, impassive instrument of his will, he might finally destroy the Republic and set up in its stead his own absolute sovereignty, still the Revolution had not reached its end. It had but undergone a change of form, a metamorphosis such as would be described chemically as an allo- tropic state of the Revolution resulting from the decomposi- tion of the Directory. For two of its most essential principles were retained by the Consulate: that of equality at home and that of extension in all directions abroad. Civil and social inequality, the barriers separating classes and circles, had been set aside by the Revolution, and these were not restored by the Consulate. "Liberty" had been far too often misused by the people in the ten years of their supremacy to be valued highly now; "Fraternity" had become a hated word owing to the many deeds of violence committed in its name; "Equality" alone was still held in respect, and Napoleon was correct in his repeated assertions that the French cared far less for pohtical liberty than for equality, a point which the Bour- bons were too blind to recognize.* It was, to be sure, only the equality of all under one superior, but at least it was but one. This man had himself learned its value at the time when, through * In 1804, shortly before he became Emperor, he remarked to Mme. de R^musat: "One must needs have regard for people's vanity; the plain- ness of the Republic bored you people. What began the revolution? Vanity. What will put a stop to it? Vanity. Liberty is a pretext. Equality is the hobljy. The people are pleased to have a man who has risen from the ranks for king." i88 iEx. 30] The Spirit of Conquest 189 it, the way was opened before him, a young heutenant without a future, for the possible reahzation of his vast designs; and again when, through it, he, a man of ordinary family, obtained the hand of a lady belonging to the nobihty ; finally, when it had enabled him with no other claim than that of merit to become the ruler over a great nation. The second revolutionary principle retained by the Consulate was that of conquest. Many historians have represented the striving for universal dominion as due entirely to Napoleonic ambition. Whether seeing therein a new and glorious proof of the grandeiu" of his genius, or condemning him for his criminal and insatiable greed, wTiters have concurred in imputing this tendency to him personally and in placing the responsibility for it upon his shoulders alone. But this view of the situation is hardly to be accepted, for ever since the year 1792 the revolu- tionary holders of power in France had pursued this course toward universal dominion. It was indeed at first intended that this should be the universal dominion of revolutionary ideas only, of the rights of man which they styled "universal." But when these ideas met with material resistance put forth by the old States, the opposition was overcome by armies consisting of hundreds of thousands of enthusiasts for these principles which pressed forward deep into foreign territory, calling the peo- ple to hberty and to resistance against hereditary rule. As Mo- hammed propagated his rehgion with the aid of the sword, and as the religious parties of the sixteenth century took up arms for their faith, so now did the believers in the new political dogma rush upon the neighbouring countries to convert while conquer- ing. And when the question arose whether acquisitions made in war were to be retained m time of peace, it was decided by no ideal considerations, but by material need: the only hope of re- lieving the financial distress in France was by drawing upon the resources of these neighbours either by means of downright an- nexation or by creating a fringe of dependent republics on the borders of France and transferring to them a portion of the State's burden. It has already been seen how this motive of self-preservation determined the revolutionary government in 190 War and Peace [1799 1795 to incorporate Belgium.* Some one at that time having offered a prize for the best answer to the question whether it would be advantageous or prejudicial to France to extend her borders as far as the Rhine, he was officially denounced in the "Moniteur" as suspected of high treason. Thus had the Revolu- tionary theory of the liberation of nations become in practice the conquest of nations. Conquests were no longer made in order to give hberty: liberty was now declared only in order to faciUtate conquest. "When the Committee of Public Safety pro- poses peace," wrote Mallet du Pan in October, 1795, "this word must be understood to mean submission. Its invariable inten- tion is to compel every State laying down its arms before France to become her ally, that is to say, her tributary and her imitator. Such princes of secondary rank who hope to escape this fate by means of treaties or capitulations strangely misapprehend the character of this Revolution." As will be seen, this system is identical with that pursued by Napoleon up to the year 1812.t The greatest antagonist to the extension of the boundaries of France was now, as it had been in the time of Louis XIV., Eng- land. Should France stick to that poUcy to which she had been forced by the ideal purpose of the Revolution and to which she had been obUged to hold on account of material need, the con- sequence would be that Great Britain must also keep to her system of opposition by means of her ships upon the ocean and through her allies upon the Continent. For this reason, if reports of that time are to be believed, there was in France, as early as the summer of 1796, a clearly defined intention not only to land an army in the British Islands, but also to annihilate that country by closing to her commerce the ports of all Europe; Napoleon's * See page 75. tin August, 1801, the Prussian Envoy, Lucchesini wrote to Berlin: "Whatever advantages may accrue to the French government from ex- changing the anarchy of the Directory for the Consuhir authority, there will be no change in foreign policy. The same ambitious plans and the same arbitrary coimoctions will prevail, and if General Bonaparte is as well qualified for administration as he is to deal with enemies without and within, he is still too much of a conqueror to give France and, through her, Europe lasting peace." i Mt.30] Napoleon's Policy Prefigured 191 "Continental System" was therefore also prefigured at this time. Even Bonaparte's Eastern plans had been evolved before his time by the rulers at Paris. At the same time that the descent upon England was planned, long before Bonaparte had turned his mind upon imitating Alexander the Great, the Directory was concerning itself about the source of Britain's wealth, India. Mallet du Pan wTites in a report dated July 3d, 1796: "The incendiary activity of the Directory no longer knows any bounds. It is rousing Persia to rebellion, working up Con- stantinople, and peopling Hindostan with its emissaries." In a similar way the policy towards Germany afterward pursued by Napoleon may be found mapped out in all its details during the last ten years of the century. The idea of the secularization of the German ecclesiastical principaUties originated with the Girond- ists, and in 1795 Sieyes was the author of a memorial containing a scheme for the indemnification and aggrandizement of the secular principalities at the expense of the ecclesiastical, a plan which, with slight alteration, was actually put into practice in 1803. The suggestion of the confederation of Rhenish princes under French protection which in 1806 became a reality will also be found to have had its origin in the diplomacy of the Directory of 1798, as was Hkewise the case with the design of driving back Prussia and Austria as far toward the East as possible in order to bring under French control the mouths of the Weser and Elbe and cut them off from English commerce. In a report to the Directory sent by Sieyes from Berhn in July, 1798, he says plainly that the German coast of the North Sea is "for France the most important portion of the earth's surface in view of the fact that by means of it the Directory may at its will close to English commerce all the markets and all the ports of the Continent from Gibraltar as far as Holstein or even to the North Cape." It is evident that the Revolution had determined upon ex- tending its influence and power to the furthest confines of the Continent. This intention was, to be sure, without system or method, — just as in the legislation of the interior one law was heaped upon another without regard to order or relation, — and it needed a man of extraordinary perspicacity and practical 192 War and Peace [1799 insight to apply both system and method to this vague purpose. And here begins Bonaparte's direct participation in the policy of the Revolution. Up to this time he had been merely its dis- ciple and advocate, as far as its interests coincided with his own, and except for the latter he recognized none. Neither his inter- ests nor his ambition knew any bounds. Once master of France he would satisfy them by letting things take their course, and before him would open up the prospect of a universal empire such as perhaps no power on the globe had ever founded. He was like a swimmer whose destination is the river's mouth: he needs but to throw himself into the current to reach it. Even at the time when with Robespierre the younger he was considering the plan of offensive warfare against Italy he had begun to de- velop a policy of his own founded upon that of revolutionary conquest, and this had matured so that it could not now be aban- doned without danger to himself and to the power which he had acquired. History shows us monarchs whose lives are tragedies. But there are also nations whose story is a tragedy, where for cen- turies the people suffer and pine as the result of a single great crime, and the anguish is not lessened by the fact that it is shared by miUions. France gives us an example of such a natioii. Nothing can be more affecting than the fate of this people, so full of enthusiasm for the real good of humanity, overtaken in the course of a few years by all that was glaringly contradictory to humane feeling; yearning for peace, and condemned to long decades of warfare involving untold sacrifice. Immediately upon the overthrow of Robespierre's Reign of Terror the people had begun to clamour for peace with the rest of the world; this cry was repeated when the Convention was succeeded by the Direc- tory; and again when Sicyes took his place in the government the same hope centred in his name. Now that Bonaparte had siezed the rudder, the nation, so often disappointed, turned its gaze once more in hope upon him. Was it to be again in vain? It has been asserted that by accepting certain restrictions Napoleon might have concluded peace at once in 1800. This is,, 1 JEt.so] Difficulties in the Way of Peace 193 however, improbable. For since the Director}' liad become accus- tomed to making the "hberated" countries bear a portion of the state burdens and to having the contributions levied in hostile territory figure as a permanent item in the budget, it had in- dolently avoided the arduous and tedious labour of remedying the disorder in the finances. Napoleon's energy had brought about an amelioration, but in the few months of his rule notliing more could be done than merely to lay the foundation for his reforms. Capital was still withheld, the rate of interest was still very high, the revenue collected was still not much exceeding that of pre- ceding years, and many arbitrary measures had to be resorted to in order to procure funds. Consequently, if the State was to continue in existence, it was unavoidable to draw for the present upon the alHes for contributions together with the money ex- torted from conquered foes. To conclude peace at this time would have meant nothing less than the rehnquishment of wealthy Holland, Switzerland, the conquered German territory beyond the Rhine, the Riviera, Malta, Egypt, and above all, the possibility of levying contributions ; it would have meant to draw back within the narrow confines of a land whose resources were to a great extent exhausted or at least still inaccessible, where the disbanded army would only increase the starving populatior, and where the contrast between the misery of the poor and the wealth of unscrupulous upstarts who had taken advantage of the financial embarrassment to enrich themselves would have probably led to social revolution and civil war. Moreover, not all Frenchmen demanding peace meant thereby peace at any price or based upon the reverses of the preceding year, but upon terms dictated by new and glorious victories promised by the mere name of Bonaparte. One of the missions undertaken by the consuls on the 19th Brumaire was that of concluding an honourable peace. Barante says in his "Souvenirs": "There prevailed everywhere a desire for improvement and for national glory." Added to this there was in the army especially a crav- ing for war and victory by means of which its reputation might be retrieved. It was in response to this desire that Bonaparte, on the first day of the Coup d'Etat, had spoken 194 War and Peace [1799 to the soldiers not only of liberty and of peace, but also of victory.* Finally, and this was the essential point, the First Consul himself stood in need of war in order to strengthen and maintain the power which he had so boldly assumed, according to the time- honoured method of securing obedience from the parties at home by employing abroad the forces of the State; he stood in need of war in order to acquire new personal glory and fame, and to silence the whispers about disaster at Acre and the whole futile expedition to the Orient ; he stood in need of war, moreover, to satisfy his measureless ambition, which aimed at the acquisition of supremacy over all Europe in the same way that he had ac- quired it over France. It was therefore only a matter of form when, on the 25th of December, 1799, he addressed letters to the King of England and to the Emperor Francis in which, without making any definite propositions, he simply expressed his desire for peace. Such advances of course could not be considered. England was holding Malta and Egypt in a state of blockade, and the fall of these two French positions was only a question of weeks; both of these acquisitions were of far too great importance to British interests for Pitt to give them up. He declined to enter into any negotiations for peace. Austria had indeed quarrelled with Russia. After the victories of the allied forces in Italy Thugut was not to be satisfied with regaining the former Austrian terri- tory of Lombardy, but wanted also the three Legations and Pied- mont, a purpose which was suspected by his Russian neighbour and to which Suvaroff opposed resistance upon his own au- thority. Thugut succeeded in procuring from the Court of St. Petersburg an order for this capable general to take command in Switzerland, while Archduke Charles, then stationed there, was forced against his own better judgment to pass over into South- ern Germany. During the marches entailed by these changes of location Mass6na su(;ceeded in defeating a corps of Russians at Zurich and by means of this victory in regaining posses- sion of the whole of Switzerland. Suvaroff returned to Russia, * See page 172. iET. 30] Austria's Conditions 19^ Austria was now absolute mistress of the situation in Upper Italy with the exception of Genoa, where the remnants of the French armies were collected, and this supremacy she hoped to maintain. Hence when Napoleon's letter reached Vienna Thugut also was unready to accede to its vague propositions of peace. He de- manded first of all assurance upon the question as to "whether the First Consul would return to the actual causes of the war so as to prevent for all time their recurrence; whether he would abandon the very source of that mistaken poUcy, fatal to France herself and threatening the existence of the other powers; whether there existed any difference between the overtures of the new government and those of its predecessors; and, finally, whether General Bonaparte would bring the French public to recognize the general principles of international law which alone can bind nations together and teach them reciprocal respect for peace and independence." On February 28th Talleyrand answered by proposing to negotiate on the basis of the treaty of Campo Formio, that monument of French offensive poUcy. Thugut knew then what might be counted upon. How little Napoleon meant by his offers of peace is shown by the fact that on the very day on which those letters were dated he addressed the French soldiers in these w'ords: "You are the same men who conquered Holland, the Rhine and Italy, and dic- tated terms of peace under the walls of astonished Vienna. Sol- diers ! it is no longer your frontiers which you are called upon to defend; you are now to invade the territoiy of the enemy." To the army of Italy, posted on the Riviera and which had just been placed under the command of Mass^na, he addressed a procla- mation in which the star\dng soldiers were consoled ^\^th the prospect of victories soon to follow, exactly as he had done in 1796.* In short, war was from the very first a foregone conclu- * In this second manifesto Bonaparte displayed in its full perfection his incomparable skill in dealing with the common soldier. A demi- brigade had given evidence of discouragement: "Are they then all dead," he exclaimed, "those brave hearts of Castiglione, of Rivoli, and of Neu- markt? They would have died rather than desert their flags, and they would have recalled their younger comrades to honour and duty. Sol- diers I you say that your rations are not issued to you with regularity. 196 War and Peace [I800 sion with Bonaparte, and his only object in writing to the two sovereigns was to make the French people believe that it was he who desired peace, and the enemy who was forcing war upon him.* But in order to make headway against the foreign enemy, those at home must first be overcome. La Vendee was still in revolt, but just at this time the favourable outcome of the cam- paign in Holland set at Hberty a magnificent army of 30,000 men, which Napoleon further reinforced in order to give weight to a manifesto calling upon the insurgents to lay down their arms, offering full amnesty to those who obeyed, but threatening with annihilation all who continued in resistance to the law. The inhabitants of Vendee were taken entirely by surprise in this proceeding, coming from a man of whom they had scarcely any knowledge except as the conqueror of Toulon and the confidant of Robespierre. They were still further amazed when they saw this man compelling respect to the Catholic religion and setting the priests at liberty. The success of the manifesto was com- plete. Among all the bands in La Vendee, only three ventured to resist and they were forced to capitulate. By February, 1800, the province had been quieted and the Army of the West was appointed a new destination. As for the rest of the French forces, the 120,000 men com- manded by Moreau in Switzerland were equal in number to the Austrians in Suabia under command of the brave but otherwise incapable Kray, Archduke Charles having retired from the chief command, sick and wounded by Thugut's arbitrary proceedings. What would you have done if you had found yourselves, like the 4th and 22d Hght infantry and the 18th and the 32d of the line, in the midst of the desert, without bread or water, with horse or mule meat as your only food? 'Victory will give us bread,' said they; but you^ — you desert your standards! " etc. * There is in existence a communication from Talleyrand to the First Consul of precisely this time (the first weeks of the jear 1800), in which he says: "It is always assuming a good position at the beginning of a campaign to manifest a warm desire for peace and to make every attempt toward its re-establishement. If the result of the campaign is favourable, one has acquired the right to show severity; if disastrous, one need not bear the reprf)ach of having brought it on." (Bailleu, " Preussen und Frankreich, 179&-1807," I. 522.) /ivr. 30] Why Napoleon Took the Field 197 In Italy, however, Massena had but 30,000 men with which to oppose the 80,000 Austrians under Melas, a general who had dis- tinguished himself the year before at Novi by deciding the battle in favour of the Austrians; he was old, feeble, conscientious, but very deUberate. In order to counterbalance the enemy's superior- ity of numbers the First Consul gave secret' orders in January, 1800, to Berthier, the Minister of War, to assemble a reserve army of 50,000-60,000 men, using as a nucleus the above-mentioned Army of the West. His plan for the ensuing campaign was mas- terly: Moreau was at the earliest possible moment to cross the Rhine at Schaffhausen, engage Kray in Germany, and force the Austrians back, while ^lass^na was to hold Melas before Genoa, retreating to that city fighting every inch of the ground. Bona- parte himself meanwhile designed to cross the Swiss Alps with the reserve army, penetrate into Lombardy and there cut off communication between Vienna and the Austrian army, which he hoped to surprise; the decisive blow would then be struck or the Austrians forced to capitulate. In pursuing this course he was, without the least doubt, carrying out hidden ends in addition to his acknowledged aim, which was to inflict defeats upon the enemy and obtain advantageous terms of peace. He was unwiUing that France should owe that peace to Moreau, who, by a reinforcement of his army, would have been enabled, undoubtedly, to prevail over Austria. Nor was he perhaps willing that this honour should fall to Mass^na. Peace must be the gift of Bonaparte himself alone. This is the reason why the head of the government determined, to the great surprise of every one, to take the field ; this was doubtless his motive in being so conciliatory toward the insurgents of Vendue, in order to have done with them and be able to take to his own use the troops of which he stood in need ; it was for the same reason again that Moreau was instructed to send into Upper Italy by way of Switzer- land one of the corps of his army for his reinforcement at the risk of reducing the Army of Germany to a number inferior to that of the enemy.* * Before deciding upon this course, Napoleon had planned to allow things to take their own course in Italy, to unite the reserve army with 198 War and Peace [I800 Of all these designs and preparations no inkling had reached Vienna. There the Austrians had elaborated their own plan: Melas was as promptly as possible to clear the Riviera of the French and then to direct a detached corps into Switzerland from the south, while Kray should attack Moreau's position from the north. The order to carry out this plan was communi- cated to Melas on the 24th of February, and its execution might have been begun in the early part of March, before Napoleon had come to any agreement with Moreau in regard to the detail of the campaign. It would then have been possible to shut Mas- sena up in Genoa by the end of the month before his reinforce- ments could reach him, and compel him to surrender at latest in the beginning of May; this accomplished, it would have been pos- sible to turn northward with a considerable force where he might perhaps have encountered Napoleon's reserve army while still on the march. As it was, however, Melas, after long delay, did not begin the contest until the beginning of April, and did not succeed until the 21st in driving Massena into Genoa, and then he wasted precious time in pursuing a French corps sent to the relief of Massena. As a matter of fact the middle of May found Melas with 30,000 men just across the French frontier on the Var, while his subordinate Ott was still besieging Genoa with 24,000 men. and to the north 17,000 men in sundry detachments were scattered among the valleys of the Alpine foot-hills. No situation of affairs could have been more favourable to Napoleon. And he stood in need of such conditions for his audacious under- taking. The equipment of the new French army had been excessively delayed by the lack of the commonest necessities arising from the mismanagement of the previous year. Moreau did not for a long time make his attack. Time was pressing, for Mass6na that under Moroau, and, assuming command himself, with these superior forces to surround Kray's loft wing, cut it off from comnmnication and march at once upon Vienna — a mancKUvn^ which he was five years later, in 1805, to execute with brilliancy. That he renounced this plan is due to the fact that Moreau with his excessive military ambition would not serve in a subordinate capacity and that, at that time, Bonaparte still had reasons for using tact in dealing with him. .Et. 30] Crossing the Alps 199 could hold the enemy in check for but a few weeks. Accordingly Bonaparte determined to venture, without waiting for Moreau to take the offensive, upon taking up his march through Lausanne and over the Great Saint-Bernard to the Dora Baltea with but 32,000 men. Moreau was to send one corps as soon as practicable across the Saint-Gothard to the aid of Bonaparte. On the 14th of May the first columns climbed the pass, drawing behind them the cannon in troughs or cases matle of hollowed logs, under the difficulties entailed by such a manoeuvre, but with favourable weather and without serious accident. On the 22d of May the last detachment had crossed the heights. The irruption of an entire army at this point had been least of all expected by the Austrians, and their defences were insignificant. The impreg- nable Fort Bard alone made difficulties. "There the Consul took many a pinch of snuff," relates one of his grenadiers who later became Captain Coignet; "he had much to do with all his great genius." But eventually this obstacle also was overcome. The infantry and cavalry passed beyond the fort by means of a cir- cuitous route, while the cannon with wheels wrapped in straw were conveyed past, under cover of the night, by the direct road, which had been spread with manure. During the last days of May a small band of the enemy was put to flight, Ivrea taken, and Napoleon's advance upon Milan begun. His entry into that city was made on the 2d of June. The venture had succeeded. M6las had been advised too late of the invasion of the French; he now sought to collect all available forces at Turin in order to maintain communication with Austria while conducting his re- treat through Alessandria, Piacenza, and Mantua. But in this design also he was to fail. He got no farther than Alessandria, in the vicinity of which the decisive blow was struck. In the first two weeks of May Moreau had defeated the Aus- trians at Stockach, Engen, and Moeskirch, driving them back as far as Uhn, and he w'as thence in a position to send to Napoleon the desired auxiliaiy corps. These reinforcements reached the army of reserves during the first days of Jime, bringing the aggre- gate number to ten divisions (about 60,000 men). Always bear- ing in mind his purpose of cutting off the retreat of the enemy, 200 War and Peace [isoo Napoleon now advanced with five of these divisions, making his way across the Po between Pa via and Piacenza, and, after a suc- cessful encounter with Ott, who had finally taken Genoa, arrived June 12th at Tortona, a httle town in the neighbourhood of Mon- tebello. These troops were commanded by Lannes, Victor, and Desaix, who had just arrived from Egypt. Three other divisions were sent by the Consul to the Ticino and toward Piedmont to prevent the escape of Melas toward the north; two more were set to guard the Adda and the left bank of the Po. Having encountered no serious resistance on the march from Piacenza to Tortona and beyond, Napoleon was uncertain what direction Melas would take, knowing him to be then in Alessandria. He did not credit his antagonist with capacity for the bold resolu- tion of facing the French army and cutting his way through. Pride had led him to esteem hghtly the souls as well as the minds of his adversaries. The Scrivia and Bormida rivers run parallel to each other northward to the Po; on the one lies Tortona, on the other, a few miles west, the fortress of Alessandria. The two towns are connected by the highway running from Turin by way of Asti to Piacenza and the east; between Tortona and Alessandria, but nearer to the latter, is situated the village of Marengo. A road running south from Tortona is joined at Novi by one running southeast from Alessandria; they form, united, the way to Genoa. The two corps under Lannes and Victor had advanced as far as Marengo, when Bonaparte, failing to encounter the Austrians in the open country, finally concluded that the enemy must have turned toward Novi in order to avoid him and secure a strong position near Genoa, where he could avail himself of the resources of the English fleet. In order to get light upon this question Bonaparte sent Desaix on June 13th with a division in the direc- tion of Novi. He himself remained with another division and the Consular Guard in the vicinity of Tortona.* The army was thus cut up into three detached parts. Should Melas now attack with his 30,000 well-concentrated men, the issue might readily * TheOiiard luiinborod at that tiiuo 1200 men, every one of whom must have been through four campaigns. /Et. 30] Marengo 201 prove fatal to the French. And the following morning was to display the danger in this disposition. During the forenoon of that day, June the 14th, the Austrian general crossed the Bormida and pressed forward in the direction of Tortona. At Marengo he came upon Lannes and ^^ictor, drove them back and out of the village, and after a struggle of six hours' duration compelled them by his superiority of numbers to give way. Napoleon now real- ized that the decisive battle was to be fought out on this occasion and that he had made an egregious blunder. He at once de- spatched an ordnance officer to Desaix commanding his return, and himself hastened to the field with his Guards and reserve division, where he succeeded in the early afternoon hours in stem- ming the tide of battle. But the conflict had not raged long before the French again began to give way and the retreat threat- ened to become a stampede. Napoleon sat by the roadside in nervous excitement, beating up with his riding-whip the dust through which his defeated troops fled past him. In vain he called to the soldiers to stand and hold out since the reserves were coming. It was but an empty promise. About 7000 men were already killed or wounded, and Desaix, the only remaining hope, was still beyond reach. There could be no question but that the battle had been won by the Austrians. Rejoicing in their victory, with shouldered arms, they marched, formed in an immense column, behind the fleeing French on the road that their valour had opened to them. Melas himself, slightly wounded, had already yielded the command to a subordinate and had ridden back to Alessandria. All at once appears Desaix with his division of fresh men, and these dash impetuously upon the dismayed Austrians; Napoleon makes one more attempt to im- pose a check upon the retreat, and is rewarded with success. Kellermann the younger, cheered by the sight of approaching help, turned about with his dragoons and made a furious charge upon the pursuing foe, who wavered, fell back, and finally took to flight in their turn. The pursuers became the pursued. The battle lost to the French at five o'clock was retrieved by seven. It had been lost by Bonaparte, as must be conceded by any im- partial judge; the victory was due to the gallant Desaix. Hear- 202 War and Peace [isoo ing the roar of cannon, he had halted to await new orders. It was due to this that he was overtaken by Napoleon's messenger and was able to reach the scene of battle before it was too late. But at the opening of the assault which was to save the day Desaix was cut down by a shot from the enemy, and the victor's laurel wreathed a brow cold in death. Napoleon was for a long time unable to reconcile himself to the thought that he had been surprised on this occasion and that the battle had been won without his assistance. He repeatedly attempted by means of official reports on the battle to exalt the purely fictitious deeds of the commander-in-chief above the real services of Desaix and Kellermann. Even as late as 1805 he tried, through Berthier, to establish these claims, and he had almost convinced the nation of their validity until the concur- rent testimony of eye-witnesses proved his assertions to be false. But even if the victory gained at Marengo on June 14th, 1800, were not of his achieving, it was nevertheless he who had directed the whole campaign which had brought the foe into such precarious circumstances, and he justly reaped the benefit of its results. This battle was, according to the expression of one of the deepest thinkers of that time, "the baptism of Napo- leon's personal power." The Austrians had lost more than 9000 men ; a renewal of attack was not to be thought of. Melas asked for an armistice and the right of withdrawal without molestation, and on June 15th a convention was signed grant- ing both requests upon condition that he retire with his troops beyond the Mincio and surrender to Napoleon all the country west of that river. The fruit of all the victories gained in 1799 had been lost in a single day. The Cisalpine and Ligurian Republics were again set up, and in Tuscany and Ancona alone were Austrian garrisons for the time being permitted. After the battle Napoleon left Massena in command of the army and went to Milan for the purpose of reaping pecuniary advantage first of all from the result of the war. The Cis- alpine Republic was compelled to furnish two million francs a month and Piedmont a million and a half; })ublic domains and property of the Church were confiscated and sold; the support JEt. 30] The Results of the Victory 203 of the army was as a matter of course imposed upon the country. Moreau, who had meanwhile advanced further iiilo Germany and occupied Munich, was ordered to levy contributions also, and Southern Germany was in like manner compeUed to main- tain the hostile army and pay in addition 40,000,000 francs. The financial object of the campaign had thus been attained, but the advantages which Napoleon himself derived were of no small importance. His position in France was now firmly established. That such had not previously been the case is proved by letters and comments written at the time. WHiat was to be the consequence if he lost his Hfe in Italy or even in case he were defeated was a question secretly discussed in Talleyrand's house by Sieyes, Camot, Lafayette, Fouch^, and others. The question became a burning one when the report, though entirely unfounded, was circulated in Paris that he had suffered a defeat. They were still wavering between Camot and Lafayette in their choice for the next First Consul, when tidings of the victory at Marengo arrived and interrupted the consultation. Bonaparte was aware of what was taking place during his absence, and this fact unquestionably had no Uttle influence in determining him to leave the theatre of war as early as June. Early in July he was again in Paris with the fixed intention not to leave the capital again for a long time, but rather to take advantage of the success at Marengo to bring about a speedy conclusion of peace. This he was determined to accompUsh at whatever cost, for thus alone could he claim success and the glory of having secured for the nation the peace so ardently desired. He had addressed while at Milan a second letter to the Emperor Francis proposing a conclusion of peace and again offering to treat upon the basis of the treaty of Campo Formio. But in Vienna they had not yet reached the point of having to accept such unfavourable propositions. Moreover, Austria had shortly before bound herself, in return for considerable sub- sidies from the British government, not to conclude a separate peace with France before the following Februar}', but she was not without hopes that Bonaparte would depart from these 204 War and Peace [isoo conditions and make proposals to which England also could be brought to accede. It was with these considerations in mind that the Emperor's reply to the First Consul was composed. General Count Joseph de St. Julien, who had just come from Italy, had been the bearer of Bonaparte's letter to the Emperor, and he was now entrusted with the delivery of the reply. Not finding the Consul in Milan the Count followed him to Paris. Here the messenger was made by Napoleon the object of a special intrigue. Talleyrand was appointed to persuade the Count that he was entrusted by the Emperor with full powers to negotiate for peace, and that failure to make use of these powers would lead to immediate renewal of war. St. Julien was completely taken in, and within a week the vain and stupid envoy was led to sign preliminaries which, entirely contrary to the spirit of the Emperor's letter, accepted as a basis the stipulations of Campo Formio and not only totally ignored all claims on the part of England, but even closed to her all Austrian ports. Had Napoleon really supposed that his purpose could be accomphshed at so sUght a cost? Whatever may have been his hopes, this end was not to be reached for the present, though when once attained it was but so much the more assured. The Austrian court declined to ratify the preliminaries and put forth all its powers toward the equipment of troops for the continuance of the war. New troops were levied, and Kray, who had proved himself incompetent, was replaced by Arch- duke John, an extremely young man, who relates in his Me- moirs that he had but recently learned to saddle a horse. His instructions were to follow implicitly the directions of Lauer, his chief of staff, and thus he had to assume the responsibility for all that officer's monstrous blunders. In Italy Melas gave place to Bellegarde, a general far less competent than himself. These changes had so little improved the condition of the Aus- trian armies that toward the end of September Emperor Francis was obliged to ask for an extension of the truce concluded with Moreau in July. According to instructions Moreau granted this request on condition of Austria's surrender of three of her Mt. 31] Futile Negotiations 205 most important fortresses (Philipsburg, Ulm, and Ingolstadt), and the withdrawal of her troops beyond the Inn. Napoleon had been beyond measure exasperated at the refusal of the Austrians to accept his preUminaries, and it was with the utmost difficulty that Talleyrand was able to calm him. Only the strong personal interest which he now had in a speedy conclu- sion of peace led him to consent to the presence of an Austrian diplomat at Paris for the purpose of negotiating new conditions of peace. Cobenzl, who had shown much skill in the negotia- tions at Passariano in 1797, was sent as the ambassador to France, but here he was most unfortunate in his efforts. Hith- erto his talent had been able to adjust itself to circumstances, but the sudden revolution of conditions brought about by the fortunes of war was more than he could grasp ; he persisted in demands which no longer corresponded with the actual relations of the powers, and renounced them only when Napoleon had already resolved upon a continuance of the war. The great contrast between revolutionary and conservative diplomacy was here again exempUfied : Cobenzl, who was bound by Austria's agreement with Great Britain, demanded that an English diplo- mat should take part in the negotiation; Bonaparte, on the contrary, insisted upon a separate agreement with Austria so as to isolate England from her alhes and close to her the Con- tinental ports, so that he might meet her alone in combat. Cobenzl was not altogether disincUned to consent to such an arrangement provided that France pay a sufficiently high price, more especially in Italy. Ancient Austria and new France had met face to face; each was pursuing a policy of conquest, and neither could be successful without excluding the other. A solution of the problem seemed possible only in the total subju- gation of one of the parties. Napoleon, who was perfectly in- formed as to the situation of the Austrian forces, resolved upon bringing about the crisis, and at the end of November, 1800, he declared the armistice at an end. Although Cobenzl still carried on negotiations with Joseph Bonaparte at Lun^ville on the French frontier, the questions at issue were decided elsewhere. When hostiUties were resumed the French were posted on 2o6 War and Peace [isoo the Isar, while the Austrians occupied an advantageous position on the further side of the broad Inn. Had they understood making use of their advantage they might at least have kept their opponents occupied longer than would have been agreeable to the chief ruler on the Seine. On the 1st of December, just as Moreau was making preparations for the difficult task of effect- ing a crossing of the stream behind which the enemy lay en- sconced, his left wing was suddenly attacked and thrown back while on the march toward the Inn, It seemed beyond belief that the enemy should have abandoned their strong position, and yet such was the case. Moreau at once profited by the advantage so unexpectedly offered him, united the centre with the left wing at Hohenlinden, and now in his turn awaited the enemy while occupying a strong position. The onslaught of the Austrians was sustained by Moreau in front, while two of his divisions under command of Richepanse circumvented them and attacked them from the rear. Taken by surprise, the Austrians sought safety in flight, the Archduke barely escaping capture. The battle of Hohenfinden (December 3d, 1800) had been won by the French, the way to Vienna lay open before them. On the 25th of December Moreau signed an armistice at Steyer which was to lead to definite peace. On the 26th General Brune, who had succeeded Mass^na in com- mand of the Army of Italy, advanced from the south across the Mincio and a few days later across the Adige. Austria, with her policy of conquest and extension, had been vanquished. At Luneville the success attending the French arms had speedily made itself felt. Cobenzl had at last agreed to treat separately, he was even ready to sign for the German Empire as well, and was desirous of coming to an understanding with France in regard to a partition of Italy between France and Austria in accordance with a proposal of Joseph Bonaparte; but the events on the field put an end to all these agreements. Austria's diplomacy, like her army, was driven back relent- lessly from one position to another: in November Cobenzl had still clung to the Oglio as the boundary of Austrian territory in Italy, by December he had already receded to the Mincio, and -Et. 31] The Peace of Luneville 207 in January he could make claims only as far as to the Adigc. When finally the definitive treaty of peace was signed, Febru- ary 9th, 1801, it contained stipulations which not only de- stroyed Austria's plans of conquest, but were even detrimental to her position as one of the Great Powers, while to France the result of the treaty was to be the confirmation of her revolu- tionary system of territorial expansion. The stipulations of the treaty of Campo Formio were therein estabUshed and in certain respects made still more severe. In Italy the Grand- duke of Tuscany, whose house was allied to that of Habsburg, was deprived of his estates. Compensation was to be made him in German territory, just as the Breisgau had been assigned to the Duke of Modena by the treaty of Campo Formio. Aus- tria's last foothold in Central Italy was thus taken from her, and the entire peninsula surrendered to French influence. Moreover, that influence was now beginning to make itself felt in Germany also. As had been agreed upon in Rastatt, the Rhine throughout its course was to form the boundary line of France, and all temporal princes losing territory on the left bank were to receive indemnification in ecclesiastical domains on the right of the stream. The old scheme of secularization had thus been resumed, and Austria, whose power in Germany rested mainly on the ecclesiastical princes, had been constrained to sanction it. Napoleon had in the treaty secured to himself the right of superintending its execution, and French inter- vention in Germany was thus conceded by the head of the Empire. Provision for compensation to Austria by means of Bavarian territory as far as the Inn had been made in the treaty of Campo Formio, but of this there was now no further thought. Austria, thus defeated in Italy and threatened in Germany, must perforce reUnquish all hope of conquest such as had ani- mated Joseph II. Thugut, the representative of Austria's policy of extension, was deprived of his office upon the demand of Napoleon. On the 6th of March the Reichstag ratified the treaty for the Empire. This peace of Luneville was not, however, due exclusively to success in arms. It was at the same time the result of clever 2o8 War and Peace [isoi diplomatic action. While the armies were yet in the field Napoleon had contrived to widen the breach existing in the coalition, and had succeeded not only in wholly separating Russia from Austria, but even in winning the good-will of the Czar for France. Prior to the last campaign Napoleon had offered to release about 7000 Russians captured in the last battles at Zurich and in Holland, and these he now fitted out with new clothing and equipments, and in addition offered the Czar the possession of the island of Malta. Paul, who regarded the mighty general as the subduer of the detested Revolution, was delighted and now became as much prejudiced in favour of Napoleon as he had been shortly before against the Directory.* The Consul had weighed carefully the conse- quences of this step. Malta could no longer be provided with supplies, and consequently could be held but a little while longer against the English besiegers. If the fortress capitulated, his offer of it to the Czar would be throwing the apple of dis- cord between the two alHes. And this was precisely the out- come. When, on the 5th of September, 1800, the French garrison at Lavallette surrendered and the Enghsh took pos- session of the island without regard for the rights of the Grand Master, the Czar abandoned his allies and seized upon all British ships lying in Russian harbours. He even proceeded to join with Sweden, Denmark, and Prussia in a " league of armed neu- trality " against England's arbitrary proceedings on the seas. Napoleon's policy was never so successful as when dealing with a state represented by an absolute sovereign; some years later he played the same game with Alexander I., and with hke suc- cess as rewarded his present transactions with the father of that monarch. The annihilation of EngUsh maritime supremacy was the object upon which were now concentrated all the efforts of * Without further confirmation it must still remain questionable whether Napoleon actually wrote to Paul I., Jis has recently been asserted by Lalanne (" Les derniers jours du Consulat, " p. 4 f .), promising the res- toration of the Bourbons and demanding only an Italian principality for himself. Mt. 31] Isolating England and Austria 209 French policy. From this time approaches were of necessity made toward the United States of America, with which ever since the Directory France had for mercantile reasons been upon a footing bordering upon warfare. To this state of affairs the First Consul put an end. Upon receipt of the tidings of the death of General Washington in December, 1799, he showed respect by ordering the French army to assume the badge of mourning, and a short time afterwards, September 30th, 1800, a treaty was signed at Morfontaine recognizing the absolute independence of the neutral flag. In the same way in which he sought to win allies to his cause against England by land and by sea he w^as endeavouring to gain confederates on the Continent against Austria. Inrnie- diately after the Coup d'Etat Napoleon had sent to Berlin his aide-de-camp Duroc, in whom he had absolute confidence. His mission was to induce the Prussian cabinet to assume armed intervention in order to compel Austria to accept the conditions imposed upon her by France, and in particular the cession of the left bank of the Rhine. Frederick William III., who had been King of Prussia since 1797, while unwilling to accept exactly this role, consented at least to remain neutral and came to an agreement with Napoleon whereby he was to assist in bringing about relations between France and Russia and to consent to French acquisition of the Rhine boundarj^ receiving in return the promise from France that Austria should by the terms of the treaty of peace make no accessions of territory in Germany, that is to say, that she should not obtain an inch of Bavarian soil. Jealousy w^as accordingly the force which moved both of these nations to take sides with Napoleon : jealousy on Russia's part concerning accessions to Austria in Italy, jealousy on the part of Prussia of Austria's making gains in Germany. Their consent to the results obtained by the Revolutionary poUcy of conquest strengthened the power of the First Consul and enabled him to compel Austria to greater sacrifices than he could have demanded without this support. French supremacy on the Continent had received confirmation at the hands of the Great Powers themselves. 2IO War and Peace [isoi Napoleon at once profited by these successes to establish definitely the sphere of action of the country over which he ruled. His attention was turned first of all to Italy, where the Cisalpine and Ligurian Republics were again recognized and guaranteed. The former had been very considerably increased by the annexation of Modena and the Legations; in both, French statesmen stood at the head of the government; both remained mere dependencies of France, and the will of the First Consul was supreme there as in France. Between these two countries lay Piedmont, whose destiny or that of its king had not yet been decided, with the exception of vSavoy, which had been incor- porated into France; but of its eventual fate no one felt the least doubt. Napoleon took advantage of the acquisition of Tuscany to place Spain under obligations to himself and thus gain a directing hand in the management of her policy. After the battle of Marengo he had succeeded in driving out of office in Madrid a ministry hostile to France. Affairs were then placed in the hands of Godoy, the paramour of the queen, who had received the title of "Prince of the Peace." This man was ambitious of power and friendly to the interests of France. Napoleon's object was attained October 1st, 1800, through the treaty of San Ildefonso, by which Tuscany, under the name of Ejngdom of Etruria, was promised to the queen's daughter, who had married the Bourbon Prince of Parma. The trans- action was completed by the signature of the Peace of Lune- ville, and on the 21st of March, 1801, Spain declared herself ready not only to cede to France Parma and its dependency Elba, and to give up Louisiana, but, what was to Napoleon of greater importance, to constrain Portugal to sever its alliance with Groat Britain and to close its ports to all English ships. A Spanish army reinforced by a French auxiliary corps was despatched across the Portuguese frontier, and on the 6th of June, 1801, John VL was forced to sign the treaty of Badajoz, which closed all Portuguese harbours to the English, and by a special convention, September 29th, he was bound to pay France twenty million francs. In Italy there yet remained Rome and Naples to be dealt jEt. 31] Naples and the Papal States 2 i i with. In the time of the Directory these two states had each been made a repubUc. Were these to be re-estabhshcd? Napo- leon followed, it is tnie, the course of development which France was undergoing, but always with the stamp of his own indi- viduality and according to his own judgment. He was far too practical to act simply according to the theories of the "Idea- logues," whom he openly ridiculed. It is clear, moreover, that as an autocratic ruler the preservation of the repubUcan form of government was of no great moment to him. And he ac- complished his purpose without setting up the republics again. During the recent war Russia had made special intercession for Naples, and, out of regard for his newly won friend, the First Consul was obliged to be lenient with the royal liouse of the Two SiciUes. On March 18th, 1801, he concluded with Ferdinand IV. the Peace of Florence, wherein the king agreed to the evacua- tion of the Papal States, which had been occupied by Neapolitan troops during the war, ceded to France his rights to the island of Elba and the principality of Piombino, besides binding him- self to what we recognize as the two essential points of the policy of conquest pursued by the Consul: to close his ports to English ships, and to maintain at his own expense a corps of French soldiers in and about Taranto. Nor did the States of the Church vacated by the Neapolitans come again under the administration of French functionaries. It was in this that Napoleon differed most essentially from his predecessors in authority. He was by no means religiously in- clined and far removed from holding any positive reUef. Among the writings of his youth figures one, composed no doubt in imitation of Voltaire, entitled "Un Parallele entre Apollonius de Tyane et Jesus-Christ," in which the result of the comparison is in favour of the Greek philosopher.* But this in no wise pre- * When in 1802 Lucien reminded him of this dissertation Napoleon ordered him not to speak of it inasmuch as, in case it were known of, his whole work of religious pacification might be thereby compromised. This was not among the writings of his youth which Napoleon himself con- signed to tlie flames. This had been borrowed by Fr6ron and never returned. (Lucien, M^moires, II. 114.) 212 War and Peace [isoi vented his recognizing to the full the political significance of the Papacy. It has been seen how in 1797 he allowed the States of the Church to exist contrary to the wishes of the Directory. He was actuated to this poUcy by the fact that during the pre- vious year by far the greater proportion of the French people had already openly professed faith again in the Catholic religion. "The people of France have become Roman Cathohc again," wrote General Clarke to Napoleon in December, 1796, " and we have perhaps reached the point of needing the Pope himself to compel the support of the Revolution by the priests and through them by the country districts, which they have succeeded in getting again under their control. . . . Would not the attempt to overthrow him just at this time be incurring the danger of cutting off forever from our government a multitude of French- men who are devoted to the Pope and whom we might retain? " Napoleon was so entirely convinced of the justice of these observations that even at that time after the peace of February, 1797, he tried to induce the Pope to exhort the priests to obedi- ence to the laws of the State. These plans were interrupted by the events of the 18th Fructidor. The reason for his present attitude toward Rome in 1800 was likewise to be found in the situation of affairs in the interior of France. Everywhere, in Paris as well as in the provinces, crowds flocked to the churches presided over by priests who had refused to take the oath of allegiance to the laws of the State, while those of the State Church priesthood remained empty. The significance of this Napoleon rightly appreciated. A great part of the general hatred toward the Directory arose from the antipathy they had shown toward satisfying the rehgious wants of the people. He was determined to be the object of no such hatred. Moreover, he needed to come to an understanding with Rome in order to bring about a definite pacification of La Vend6e. He resolved upon making a compact with the Pope. To Pius VII., who had been elected in Venice, March 13tii, 1800, he made the j^roposition, soon after the battle of Marengo, of assuring the continued existence of the States of the Church, — divested, indeed, of the Legations, — on condition that the Holy Father would lend his aid to the establishment of /Et. 31] The Concordat 213 an acceptable peace between Church and State m France. Pius VII. accepted these terms with alacrity and sent his Secretary of State, Cardinal Consalvi, to Paris, where, on the 15th of July, 1801, a concordat was signed. This abolished the religious laws of 1790 (new divisions of dioceses, election of bishops and priests by parishes, abolition of celibacy), and recognized the Pope as head of the Church; and accorded him the right to confirm the bishops nominated by the First Consul; on the other hand the alienation of the Church property was accepted by the See of Rome, the old maxim of the GaUican Church was acknowledged that the Church exists in the State, and not the State within the Church, and the agreement made that dignitaries of the Church should receive their remuneration, like officials of the State, at the hands of the government. In restoring the States of the Church to Pius VII. Napoleon made no sacrifice, but rather secured through this means a marked advantage to himself. All-powerful as he now was in Italy, the Pope, as a secular prince, would of necessity assume a position of dependence toward him, and he thus attained a result which Kaunitz, Joseph II., and Thugut, with their schemes of conquest in the Apennine peninsula, had striven for in vain. Referring on one occasion at St. Helena to his attitude toward Rome at this time, he expressed himself in these remarkable words: "Ca- tholicism preserved the Pope for me, and with my influence and our armies in Italy I did not despair of acquiring sooner or later, by one means or another, the control of this Pope, and then how vast would be my influence! What a lever I should have with which to move the rest of the world ! " Thus had Napoleon estabUshed his sway in western Europe after the conclusion of peace at Lun^ville. Holland, Portugal, and Italy furnished their quota toward reimbursement of the French treasury; everywhere, extending far into German territory, French troops were sustained at the expense of neighbouring and dependent countries ; from Holland to Sicily the ports were closed to ships and products of the powerful enemy across the Channel. In the Channel itself the First Consul collected a flotilla in order to keep the EngUsh in ceaseless fear of a descent of the French 214 War and Peace [isoi army. And in fact there came a moment in which the crushing of this antagonist also seemed no distant possibiUty. The allied powers, Denmark, Sweden, and Russia, took up arms against Eng- land, and the Czar Paul I. was so far carried away by his visionary ardour as to project an expedition which was to march by way of Khiva and Herat to India, there to strike the common enemy a death-blow. Napoleon's visions of universal supremacy took on more definite shape than ever before. Was not the French army yet in Egypt, whence it might with profit aid and support this Russian expedition against the Punjab? But this dream was destined to last only for a moment. During the night of March 23d, 1801, the Czar fell a victim to a palace revolution. His despotic arrogance had degenerated into insupportable cruelty toward those nearest to him. His son, Alexander I., succeeded him on the throne of Russia. It is said that upon the arrival of this news, which reached Paris on the 17th of April, Napoleon was thrown into a state of genuine despair. His magnificent schemes were all overthrown for the present, for it soon became known that Alexander had released all the English ships which had been seized in Russian ports and that he renounced all claim to the office of Grand Master of the Knights of St. John, that is to say, to possession of the island of Malta. Thus by a single blow Napoleon saw deferred into the remote future the fulfilment of those aims which had seemed so near through the friendship of one who was, it is true, partially demented, and was forced to content himself for the time being with advantages less brilliant than those upon which he had counted. It so happened that, even before the unlooked-for death of the Czar, Pitt had, for reasons connected with the domestic pohtics of the kingdom, retired, March 14th, 1801, from the leadership of the British government. The peace-loving Adding- ton succeeded him as prime minister and at once made overtures to Napoleon. Were these to be rejected? The French people were clamouring daily more loudly foi- peace, and their demand was no longer to be overlooked. The pubHc was aware of England's proposition, and the First Consul could no long(M- justify his ^T. 32] Manoeuvres toward a Peace 2 1 5 policy of war, as he had done in the preceding year, by alleging Great Britain's unwillingness to treat. He accordingly accepted England's proposal, although solely for the purpose of taking the utmost advantage of his opponent's disincUnation for war. In the course of her long contest on the seas England had made a number of valuable acquisitions. The Antilles, with the excep- tion of Guadeloupe, and the factories at PondichoiTy and Chander- nagore in India had been taken by her from the French, while Holland had been compelled to give up Ceylon and the Cape of Good Hope, and Spain had yielded Trinidad to her superior forces. In the Mediterranean Malta and Minorca had already fallen into her hands, and apparently the time was not far distant when Egypt also must be reckoned among the conquests of Great Britain. Relying upon the friendship of the "neutral" powers, Napoleon thought himself strong enough to compel England to give up all of these acquisitions. But a sudden end was put to all such aspirations on the part of Napoleon by the arrival of tidings of the death of the Czar, followed shortly by word from Egypt that General Menou, who had succeeded to the command of the army in Egypt upon the assassination of Kleber, had been defeated before Alexandria and driven back into the city. Upon learning of this the English showed themselves again less dis- posed to obtain peace at a sacrifice. Negotiations were broken off and each party strove to get the advantage of the other by means of military or diplomatic successes. England prosecuted every possible means for bringing about a reconciliation with the new Czar, and sent a corps of troops to Egypt which was there to join forces with the Turks in order to compel the French to capitulate. Napoleon on his part urged upon Spain the con- quest of Portugal with a view to acquiring thus a territory which might be given to England as compensation for terms of peace of the most favourable character, just as he had delivered Venice to Austria in 1797. He further sought to secure to France the good-will of Alexander I. by sending to St. Petersburg his aide- de-camp Duroc, a man in whom he felt unlimited confidence. In the midst of these conflicting interests it was England which was successful. In Egypt Cairo was surrendered in June, 2i6 War and Peace [isoi and with its fall the capitulation of Alexandria was assured. On the Peninsula, too, the hopes of France were blasted, for there Spain concluded with Portugal the separate peace aheady mentioned guaranteeing independence to the latter country. It was now Napoleon who made the proposal to resume nego- tiations. To this England was not ill-disposed, for Nelson, who had but a short time before compelled Denmark to retire from the league of neutral powers, had been repulsed in an attack on the French Channel fleet. Concessions were made upon both sides, and op. the 1st of October, 1801, preliminaries were signed at London according to the terms of which England was to retain of aU her recent conquests only Trinidad, which had been taken from Spain, and Ceylon, which had belonged to Holland; the islands and ports of the Mediterranean were to be evacuated by her, and Malta was to be restored to the Knights of the Order of St. John. The French, on the other hand, pledged themselves to restore Egypt to Turkey, to guar- antee the integrity of Portugal, and to withdraw their troops from the kingdom of Naples. England might perhaps have obtained more favourable terms had the signing of the treaty been delayed, for but a short time after this event the tidings reached Europe that Menou had been obhged to surrender Alexandria to the combined forces of England and Turkey. This capitulation put an end to French occupation of Egypt and to one of the most glorious of Napoleon's dreams. For he never returned to a scheme of which he had made so unequivocal a failure. He was now definitively thrown back upon the Continent of Europe for the working out of his plans. It was, however, a triumph of no mean order, when England, which for a century had contested with her whole might every encroachment made by France upon the Continent as a direct detriment to her interests, was com- pelled to acquiesce at a time when Napoleon had far surpassed Louis XIV. in his most ambitious designs. France and Russia, October 8th, 1801, signed a treaty of peace which contained the important stipulation that the two States bound themselves not to tolerate secret agitations of ^T. 32] The Peace of Amiens 2 1 7 the (Emigres against their country. In this manner Napoleon renounced for the time being all support of the Poles, and the Czar that of the Bourbons (article 3). Three days later, in a secret compact which determined for Europe its immediate future and so was of equal importance with the treaty with England, these two powers engaged to regulate in common the compensations to be made to the German princes, and in the same way to decide the Italian question together so far as it was not already determined through the treaties of peace with Rome, Austria, and Naples. At the same time — October 9th, 1801 — an agreement was signed between France and Turkey according to which all previous compacts between the two countries were made valid. Finally, a treaty full of promise to the Elector had been signed with Bavaria a short time before, and with it the last armed foe had been appeased. The cry of Peace ! rang out through the length and breadth of the land. All the nations rejoiced to see the end of a struggle which had become unendurable. To his fame as a hero of war Napoleon had added that of cstablisher of peace, and to him was accorded both at home and abroad an esteem without parallel — in France, where the people saw the hopes fulfilled which they had founded on him on his return, and in other countries, where the governments of the old States welcomed him as the subduer of the Revolution and cherished the firm expectation that, content wath what had been acquired, he would by his power insure tranquillity to Europe. "This is no ordinary peace," said the English prime minister, Addington, "it is the actual reconciliation of the two foremost nations of the world." And Fox, having met Napoleon in Paris, returned to London full of enthusiasm for the great man. But even at that time there were far-seeing statesmen who felt less confident of this desirable outcome. When on the 27th of March, 1802, the Treaty of Amiens confirmed the terms of the preliminaries signed between France and England in the preceding October, the acclamations of joy with which the news was received were disturbed by the warning voices of the members of the opposi- tion in Parliament with the reminder that "We have sane- 2 1 8 War and Peace [1802 tioned the possession of Italy by France and at the same time her supremacy over the Continent." Indeed, Napoleon him- self but half concealed his ambitious designs. But a few weeks after the battle of Marengo he said to the Prussian envoy at Paris: "I desire peace for the sake of establishing securely the existing government of France as well as for the sake of saving the world from chaos." And these words were no empty figure of speech. Their true meaning is to be gathered from a semi- official pamphlet published in 1801 and entitled "De I'Etat de la France a la fin de I'an VIII." Hauterive was its author, one of the most excellent of the officials in the Department of Foreign Affairs and Talleyrand's right-hand man. The follow- ing principles were therein advocated : At the time of the break- ing out of the Revolution the political system of Europe had long since been impaired and was no longer worthy of being maintained; the war between France and the other powers was nothing but a consequence of this condition. France, victorious in this contest, had undertaken to establish in the place of the discarded system of the balance of power a new system of federation, and this purpose had been already partially accomplished. By reason of her military and financial resources as well as on account of her principles of government France was destined to become security for peace and prosperity, to be the director of this new European confederacy, and it was to the interest of all the other powers to yield themselves with full confidence to her guidance. Such, in plain terms, was the political programme of the new France. At bottom it did not differ from that of the Revolu- tionary government, its predecessor. But if it had been the design of the Convention to create a federation of republics in Europe und(?r French leadership, Napoleon's object was far less concerned with the giving of freedom to the nations than with securing the submission of their rulers to the hegemony of the State governed by himself. In his criticism of Hauterive's pamphlet, Gentz, the famous publicist and a man of genius, showed his discrimination by calling certain facts to the atten- tion of the statesmen of the old system in 1801 in the following JEt. 32] The Question of the Future 2 1 9 words: "\\nieii it is said that France has extended her Ijouiida- ries in all directions through her conquests, that her old in- violable territory has been surrounded by new defences, and that her influence upon all neighbouring countries has been increased to forniida]:)le proportions, the truth has been but partially stated. The actual fact is this: France in her present condition recognizes no boundaries whatsoever; all neigh- bouring States are now in fact, even if not nominally, her de- pendencies and property, or may become such upon the first convenient occasion whenever it may seem desirable to the men placed at the head of the government." No, the peace now prevailing over Europe was not a reconcihation of the peoples such as short-sighted ministers had been deluded into calling it, this was but a halting-place on the road to universal domin- ion along which Napoleon unremittingly advanced, impelled by revolutionary tradition as well as by personal ambition. But in case he had determined to abide by revolutionary policy in relation to other countries, the question arises, the most important perhaps of any to the historian of those timesi to what extent might and must this policy affect the govern- mental and social conditions of these other countries and nations of Europe whose organization differed so materially from that of the new France? The revolutionary armies had carried but little into foreign countries during the last few years of the eighteenth century beyond riot and disorder, for in France itself nothing else existed. Were the armies of Napoleon to introduce nothing better wherever they should penetrate? That depended upon whether he were really successful in restoring lasting conditions of order in the interior, in selecting from the chaos of revolution- ary legislation such laws as were salutary, thus fulfilling the second great hope which the nation had builded upon him at the time of his return. This task he took upon himself, and he accomphshed it, not for the sake of making the French people happy, — he never loved them enough for that,* — but in order ♦See a most interesting scene in the "M^moires de Mme. de R^musat," I. 246, and the observation of Mme. de Stael (Considerations, II. 199).' " He despised the nation whose approbation he coveted." \ ±20 War and Peace [isol to create a secure foundation for the structure of his world-empire. For this purpose, and for this purpose only, should France herself become strong, powerful, and rich, for under these circumstances alone would she be equal to making the sacrifices demanded by his ambition. Neither he nor France could indeed foresee at the beginning of the revolutionary monarchy that these sacrifices made for the sake of an experiment which shaped the history of the world would in the end cost the fives of a miUion men and yet fail of attaining the object sought. It must be confessed that his predecessors in power, the Convention and the Directory, had sent almost as great a number of Frenchmen to their death without even procuring in compensation order and prosperity to the country. This at least Napoleon wholly accompfished. GHAPTER IX THE NEW FRANCE AND HER SOVEREIGN The great work of reorganizing France was carried through by Napoleon with the aid of a large number of talented and ex- perienced assistants, some of whom, as members of the Council of State, discussed the new measures and formulated them into decrees and laws, while others in the capacity of ministers and director-generals carried them into effect with precision after they had been passed by the Chambers. The Council of State, which has continued to exist in France up to the present day, furnished the First Consul with an exact portrayal of the condi- tion of affairs within the country; it put at his disposal the wealth of experience acquired by gifted men not only during the event- ful ten years of the Revolution, but also, before that time, in the employ of the royal government; it enabled him to make use of the practical intelhgence of men w^hose fitness for service of the State had been developed in the free atmosphere of the Revolu- tion as fully as the mihtary genius of Hoche and of Bonaparte. It is to these first Councillors of State, such men as Boulay de la Meurthe, Roederer, Chaptal. Berlier, Duchatel. Defermon, Du- fresne, Fourcroy, Cretet, Barb^-Marbois, Regnault de Saint- Jean- d'Ang^ly.to whom honour is due for having accomplished the final regulation of French finances, the reform in internal administra- tion, the codification of the laws, the establishment of perma- nent institutions for worship and education, — in short, for having brought together all the valuable material from which arose under the eye of the most skilful of architects the commodious edifice of modern France. In their pohtical past these collaborators of Napoleon's differed widely from one another. The Royalists were represented among them by Dufresne, the Girondists by Defermon, Radical members of the Convention by Fourcroy X2I 222 The New France and Her Sovereign [isoo and Berlier, Moderates of the time of the Directory by Regnaud and Roederer, and exiles of the 18th Fructidor by Portahs and Barbe-Marbois. Napoleon had purposely chosen his men from different parties so that his reforms might not appear to be the work of any par- ticular faction. They were divided into Commissions of Finance, Justice, War, the Na\^, and the Interior. The First Consul pre- sided at their deliberations, and such was the capacity of his intel- lect that he could enter into all the detail of affairs without be- coming confused and was, on the contrary, ready at any moment to judge of the matter under discussion in its entirety from the point of view of the sovereign. The second task of the public administration, the execution of the laws and decrees passed by the Council of State, was in- cumbent upon the ministers, and their measures were likewise as much under the supervision and control of Bonaparte as were the dehberations and resolutions of the Council of State. The names of the men to whom he entrusted the seven existing port- folios when taking up the reins of government have already been given, and here also the men were selected with a like regard to diversity of political faith. He said one day to his brother Joseph: "Where is the revolutionary who will lack confidence in a state of affairs in which Fouche is Minister of Pohce? and where is the nobleman, if he has remained a Frenchman, who will not hope to find his wants provided for in a country where a Ferigord, a former bishop of Autun, is in power? I am protected on the left by one and on the right by the other. I mean that my gov- ernment shall unite all Frenchmen It is a broad road in which all may find room." To certain of the ministries Napoleon asso- ciated "directions generales," an institution still cxi.stent in the administrative organization of France. These "directions" in- cluded bridges and roads, public instruction, worship, the treas- ury, customs, registration fees, domains, the liquidation of the public debt, and sundry others from among which independent ministries were soon created. Official communication between the First Consul and his ministers was made through the Secretary of State. This im- ^T. 30] Internal Administration 223 portant office had been filled ever since 1799 by the faithful and capable Maret, who continued to execute his functions in that position almost up to the end of the Napoleonic rule. He was without an equal in his ability for giving immediate form and expression to the thoughts hurriedly let fall by his master and for following intelligently his hasty dictation. Maret was in reaUty a Cabinet Minister kept at the level of a clerk by the con- summate superiority of Napoleon. It is from the office of the Secretary of State that there issued those innumerable letters addressed to all sorts of officials and persons which make up to- day the many quarto volumes of Napoleon's correspondence and bear \\dtness to the indefatigable acti\aty of master and servants. The laws and ordinances with the execution of which the ministers were charged were transmitted by them to newly cre- ated subordinate officials, by whom they were introduced into the "departments." On February 17th, 1800, the law was pro- mulgated which forms to-day the basis of French administrative apparatus. According to its provisions in every " department " the chief administrative officer is a prefect, in every "Ar- rondissement " a sub-prefect, in every "Commune" a mayor, — all three classes being appointed by the Chief Magis- trate and subordinated to the Minister of the Interior. During the Revolution the government of the provinces had rested in the hands of elective councils, a system which had led not only to partiaUty and to irregularities of many kinds, but even to do\\'nright disobedience to the central authority, with the result that the Constitution of 1795 establishing the Directory totally abolished the autonomous municipalities. Napoleon now re- estabUshed these communal authorities; the officers, however, were not to be elective. The chief official of the commune was to be the mayor, aj^pointed and paid by tlie State, while the members of the municipal council assisting him, who were advisers merely without votes, were to be appointed by the prefect from the list of notables. In like manner the sub-prefect had his district council and the prefect his general council, both appointed by the First Consul to regulate the direct taxes to be levied in the depart- ment, to make appropriations, and to bring to the attention of 224 The New France and Her Sovereign [I800 the government the needs and interests of their jurisdictions. It was a system of rigid centrahzation which gave to the man placed at the head of government boundless influence upon the smallest details of the communal administration. It was, as Napoleon himself said, a hierarchy of "First Consuls in minia- ture," a bureaucracy resembling that established under Richelieu and Louis XIV., but with this distinctive difference, that its mechanism was not hampered and impeded either by the privi- leges and local tariffs of the provinces, nor by reason of the ex- ceptional conditions of privileged classes and corporations; more- over, it did not govern a people filled with theoretical aspirations toward liberty, but one which had through practical experience grown heartily tired of it and who longed more than anything for the opportunity to live in tranquillity. Early in March, 1800, the first prefects were appointed, being selected, just as the ministers and Councillors of State had been, with care to avoid maldng one poUtical party more promi- nent than another; the royalist Count La Rochefoucauld figures beside the arch-Jacobin De Bry and the Girondist Doulcet de Pontecoulant. There was no lack of work for all. During the year 1800 there were still no taxes collected and the amount of revenue due from the departments was scarcely known. The State was indebted to the lowest of its servants for half a year's salary; some among them even died of starvation. In the open country the most appalUng insecurity prevailed. The highroads, fallen into disrepair, were the lurking-place of numer- ous bands of robbers, who pursued their calling up to the very outskirts of Paris, and whose misdeeds form the chief subject of report on the part of the officials. In a single department, that of Vaucluse, not less than ninety cases of highway robbery and murder were committed within the year 1801. Many communities were driven by terror into making common cause with the brigands and affording them refuge. In the cities the state of affairs was not in the slightest degree better than in the country. Speaking of what was to be seen in Toulon, a Councillor of State writes: "No poUce in the city, no street- lamps, every night stores broken into and robbed, no pave- ^T. 30] The Restoration of Prosperity 225 ments, no cleanliness, no safety, no town taxes, no bread at the hospitals." Only with the greatest difficulty could the new government fulfil its most important duty, of protecting the Ufe and property of citizens. Special tribunals were estab- lished in February, 1801, and these with the aid of the "gen- darmerie," now reorganized by Napoleon, soon purged the land of the bands of criminals which had infested it. This police force had already undergone a reform in the time of the Directory, but its effectiveness was vastly increased and its zeal for duty greatly stimulated by being put under the com- mand of a general of merit and experience. By 1802 cases of murder or highway robbery had already become rare. A law of February 17th, 1800, provided for the security of towns by instituting a commission of police in every commune of more than 5000 inhabitants and poUce "directions" in all such as included more than 100,000 souls. By a decree of July 1st, 1800, a prefect of police was established in Paris who had charge of both the political detectives and the city poUce force. Measures having thus been taken to insure protection to the Ufe and property of citizens, the next step to be considered must be toward promoting or rather laying the foundations of general prosperity, for there was none at the time. The arbitrary financial legislation of the revolutionary governments, incessant war, which had put an end to all export trade, and the unstable paper-money system had combined to ruin in- dustry and traffic. The manufacturer in Paris who had for- merly employed from sixty to eighty workmen now contented himself with ten. The lace-making industry, once so flourishing in the North, the linen industry in Brittany, and the celebrated paper manufactory in the department of Charente were all practically annihilated, and the number of silk-manufacturing concerns at Lyons had diminished by one half. In Marseilles the amount of sales per month no longer equalled what it had been per week before the Revolution began. The harbours, more especially those on the ocean, had become choked with sand, their defences had fallen to ruin, the inhabitants were starving. Such business as continued to be carried on at all 2 26 The New France and Her Sovereign [isoo was done at the Stock Exchange, where the vast and constantly fluctuating difference between real and fictitious values was a temptation to gambling or to speculation in army suppUes, whereby the contractors and the officers whom they had bribed were enriched at the expense of the soldiers who were being driven to want and death by the unscrupulous conduct of the government. Only a complete reform of the admiiiistration of finances could secure respect for the government, money for its treasury and national credit, all of which were essential to any scheme for improving in a radical way the position of the substantial people of the country. It is an exceedingly interesting historical study to see how France, almost overwhelmed during the rule of the Convention and Directory by a sea of worthless paper money, worked its way out in spite of everything and returned to normal economic conditions and a regulated standard of values. In order to re-establish the national credit, which had been exhausted through the innumerable debts contracted by the royal govern- ment, the revolutionary authorities declared the estates of the clergy and of the nobles who had emigrated to be the property of the nation, and issued notes or "assignats" based on these lands as currency. But in consequence of the general feeling of uncertainty the value of real estate decreased and the prop- erty became for the most part unsalable; the war, which in the intoxication of untried liberty had been declared against all Europe, consumed immense sums, and eventually the assignats, of which more and more were continually being issued, became worthless. In 1795 a louis d'or rose in value from 24 francs to 1800, and in February, 1796, to 8137 francs in assignats, so that a livre in gold was worth almost 340 hvres in paper. The Directory had recourse to arbitrary enactments. The 24 billions of assignats in circulation wore called in towards the end of March, 1796, and the holders received in exchange but one thirtieth of their face value in so-called "mandats tcrritoriaux." These, however, were in turn nothing more than orders upon the national lands and, in spite of their enforced circulation, they fell at the end of a few weeks to one twentieth of their JEt.so] The Public Debt 227 nominal value, and in the following year to one hundredth. When finally the government was compelled to repeal the act forcing the people to accept them as currency, they disappeared entirely from circulation. They had only served to enable certain speculators to purchase from the Directory during the course of a year the larger part of the government lands, so that the State lost in this way most of its domains, having received in return in ready money scarcely one hundredth part of their value, which amounted to several bilUons. Sordid usurers, unscrupulous speculators, and a vast number of small con- tractors — estimated to number not less than 1.200,000 — had thus acquired the estates of monasteries and of ancient families of rank, a change of ownership so rapid and so complete as to be unequalled cither before that time or even in the nineteenth century, in spite of its rapid economic and social changes. The original intention had been to pay the public debt of France with the proceeds of the sale of State property, but this, under existing circumstances, could no longer be thought of. In 1793 the Convention had already been obliged to decree that the outstanding public debt should be entered in the "Great Book of the public debt" as a consolidated fund irredeemable beyond the payment of 5% annual interest. In 1797 the annual interest had risen to over 250 million francs, of which, however, only one fourth was paid in cash, the remainder being in bonds upon the national estates, whicli had been added to by the confiscation of the Belgian monasteries. But the burden remained nevertheless far too heavy, and the Directory sought relief by retaining only one third of the national debt in the "Great Book," the other two thirds being paid to the creditors in land bonds. But since these bonds fell with the credit of the government to ^% of their face value before the end of the year 1798, the reduction of the debt had been in fact simple bank- ruptcy whereby the creditors of France were robbed of two thirds of their claims. But even the remaining so-called "con- solidated "' thinl was not paid in specie, but again in bonds. Under such conditions no further confidence in the govern- ment could exist among the solid men of the busmess world. 228 The New France and Her Sovereign [isoo The people replied by a refusal to pay taxes. The Directory resorted to forced loans. In 1800 the arrears had reached the sum of 1100 millions. To reduce to order such a state of affairs required an iron determination.* But in the course of this single year a remedy was found for the most serious of these abuses, and provisions were made which prevented the possibility of a return to such conditions. On November 24th, 1799, "direc- tions (boards of managers) of direct taxes" were established in every " department " such as are still in operation at the present time. Further, the assessment of taxes, which had hitherto varied from year to year, was now regulated upon fixed prin- ciples. "There is no real security of possession," said Napo- leon, "except in a country where the rate of taxation does not vary every year." An exact survey of all real estate in France was another matter to which he turned his attention. In Sep- tember, 1801. were appointed a "direction g^n^rale" of the cus- toms and of the registration of landed property; the reorganized bureau of forestry in a single year almost doubled the revenue obtained during the preceding twelve months. The revenues and income from public property being at length regulated and entrusted to the management of the Minister of Finance, the department of expenses and of the national debt under- went a similar reform and was committed in 1801 to the care of a special "treasury department," at the head of which was ♦Reference has already been made to the first steps taken by Gaudin. the new Minister of Finance To enable the State to continue its existence during the first year of his administration he was obliged to make use of the old system of expensive loans and extortion of funds from adjacent countries Seventy millions were practically repudiated, as he simply forbade the payment of the orders on the revenue which the Directory had issued to contractors, except within a given time and at their value in specie or short-time bills It was important above all to regulate and assure the position of the landholders With this end in view the Constitution of the year VIII had solemnly guaranteed to holders of national estates, no matter how obtained, the ownership of those lands (articles 93, 91), Other measures to be taken belonged to the province of financial policy. iET. 30] The Bank of France 229 placed the Councillor of State Barb^-Marbois.* To this de- partment was submitted the control of the sinking fund (caisse d'amortissement), which had been since July, 1801, under the management of MoUien, a most capable man. It was this institution doubtless which did more than anything else toward raising the national credit. The Consulate had inherited from the Directory a residue of unsold national domains worth 400 millions. Instead of squandering these resources as his prede- cessors in power had done, Napoleon sought to make them more profitable. He assigned 90 millions to the sinking fund to be gradually disposed of, the proceeds being used to redeem state bonds so that they should continue to circulate at 50, to which point they had risen after the treaty of Lun^ville. Napoleon could then issue new bonds at this rate of exchange and thus discharge floating debts and arrears of interest from former years. A further 120 milUons of this national property were dedicated with their proceeds to the administration of Public Instruction, while 40 millions were to go to the support of disabled soldiers, thus relieving the budget. The victorious outcome of the war made it possible to leave the greater part of the army to subsist on foreign territory, which also aided to hghten the burden which the state had to bear. In order to promote industry and trade the Bank of France was established on the 18th of January, 1800, with a capital of 30 miUions, the state holding shares for 5 millions which had been taken from the security furnished by the Treasury officials. The Bank was given the privilege of issuing notes up to a certain amount; in return it bound itself to put its capital at the dis- position of the Treasury. Ordinances were passed also regu- lating the affairs of the stock exchange, re-establishing the chambers of commerce suppressed by the Revolution, pro\'iding for frequent national expositions, etc. With confidence and good-will on the part of the people it would now be possible to * This division of the administration of finances between two ministers was maintained until 1815. Napoleon attempted to justify this course by saying that a single minister offered him no such security. WTiere there were two, each acted as a constant check upon the other. 230 The New France and Her Sovereign [I800 restore equilibrium to the finances and, tliis accomplished, the lost credit of France would soon be recovered. The govern- ment having done all in its power to bring tliis about, the people no longer hesitated to do their share. Taxes were promptly paid in, and the financial undertakings of the government again met with the support of the substantial business men. Progress in this direction was marked after the signing of the peace of Amiens, which seemed to mean the dawn of a new era of uni- versal peace. But this entire organism would have been without lasting value if the rights and duties of individuals toward one another had not at the same time been definitely determined and made known to every one. The demand was imperative for a code clearly and precisely setting forth the law of the land, wliich the Revolution had completely changed. Up to 1789 there had been no uniformity of law in France. The North was governed principally by the customary law (coutmnes) formulated in the sixteenth century, while in the South the Roman law (droit ecrit) prevailed; in addition there were numerous local laws. Even before the Revolution the Chancellor Maupeou had pointed out the necessity for a reform of the judicial system and a codification and simplification of these manifold forms of law. But the Revolution, which followed with its ruling principle of "Equal rights for all," made an end of the diversity in French jurisprudence. A new national civil code was prom- ised in the Constitution of 1791; in that of 1793 the promise was renewed and extended to include a code of criminal law to be likewise national, but in 1799 neither promise had yet been fulfilled, and in the night session of November 10th, in which Napoleon was invested with the supreme power, the two commissions were again instructed to formulate a code. And now at last through the strong will of a single man was accom- plished what had been fruitlessly attcmpt(^(l by the many. On the 12th of August, 1800, Napoleon appointed a committee consisting of three eminent jurists, Tronchet, Bigot de Preame- neu, and Portalis (of the Council of the Ancients), with Male- ville as secretary, to draw up a civil code. These men appor- iEx. 32] The Civil Code 231 tioned the work among themselves and, taking as a basis a sclieme which Cambac6res had at one time laid before the Con- vention, by the end of four months had finished the task. The proposed code was then deliberated upon in the Council of State, where it was revised by the jurists Boulay de la Muerthe, Berlier, Abrial, and the Consuls Cambaceres and Lebrun (former secre- tary to the Chancellor Maupeou), Napoleon himself frequently taking part in the discussion and settUng disputed points. Those who were present bear witness to his penetrating observa- tions and clear ideas, though these at times betrayed a point of view quite foreign to the jurist. The laws restricting the grounds for divorce and placing parents under obligation to support their children are with sundry others said to have been due to him. Before the end of the year 1801 the Code had already been presented in three parts to the Council of State for discussion. The ordinances of the Chancellor d'Aguesseau enacted between 1737 and 1750 were found to contain many things of value which were incorporated among the new laws; the ancient "Coutumes" and the Roman law were also drawn upon so far as they did not confhct with the Revolutionary principle of EquaUty, for this spirit was dominant throughout the whole of this monumental work. The Revolution had abohshed hereditary nobility, the civil code did not re-establish it; in the laws concerning inheritance it had set up as a principle that children of different age and sex should enjoy equal rights, and this also was approved by the civil code; the Revolution had granted, though not without hesitation, all rights of citizenship to the Jews, and these were confirmed without reserve by the civil code; it had introduced for all classes and for all religions registration of civil status [births, marriages, etc.], and civil marriage, both of which innovations were retained by the civil code; it had declared the marriage relation capable of dissolu- tion, and the civil code abode by this decision. But whereas the National Assembly and the Convention had elaborated only certain portions of the laws governing individuals, the Consulate carried the work much farther and formulated a system of laws em- 232 The New France and Her Sovereign [isoi bracing the whole civil life of the people. The merit for this belongs indisputably to the First Consul of France, and the book in which the laws of the land are inscribed is accordingly rightfully named the "Code Napoleon." The three parts of the civil code, adopted in turn by the Council of State, were, on the 21st of March, 1804, incorporated together into a single body of laws. The codification of criminal law, of laws of procedure and of commerce was likewise undertaken, and the value of the result of these labours, so extensive that their branches cannot even be enumerated here, is proven by the wide circle into which they have been adopted.* For these books of the law were not to benefit France alone: wherever the power of Napoleon extended the new laws were carried with it, and when, later, a time came when the French people were driven back within their former boundaries, their laws remained a testimony to the former great- ness of their country. Up to the present day the "Code Napo- leon" is still in force in Rhenish Prussia, Rhenish Bavaria, Rhenish Hesse, and, with slight modifications, in the Grand Duchy of Ba- den, in Holland, Belgium, Italy, etc. It is only within a very few years that the French method of procedure in criminal cases, public and oral with the assistance of a jury, has ceased to prevail in the Prussian provinces on the Rhine. To this day the "Code de Commerce " is in force in Belgium and Italy, in Greece and the principahties on the Danube, and has served as a model in almost every land where laws of commerce have been framed. With these codes of law the principles of equality upon which they were based were also carried into foreign countries, where they exerted a civilizing and refining influence which was within a short time to change the face of the world in s])ite of all reaction against them. Who would deny the greatness of the man whose powerful hand brought into being and controlled such a lever! * The (U'lilx'ijdions concerning the "Code pc^nal" and the "Code d'in- struction cniiiinelle" were begun in March, ISOl, and bronglit to com- pletion in 1810. The "Code de procedure civih;" was drafted in 1802, .submitted to the "Corps legislatil" in 180(), " and put into operation in 1807. The "Code de Cbmmerce" was elaborated between 1801 and 1807, and was put in force in 1808. Mr. 32] Education ^32 The rights and welfare of the existing generation provided for, Napoleon turned his attention to the education and training of the next. In the matter of pubhc histruction, just as had been the case in all other branches of the administration, the Revolution, in seeking to better the condition of things, had abolished what was useless and had laid down excellent principles without having been able to establish much that was solid or durable. Its axiom of Equality had already been applied to the question of public instruction in the Constitution of the year 1791, in which the provision is made that "A system of public instruc- tion shall be created and organized which shall be open to all citizens and shall be gratuitous in respect to those branches which are indispensable to all men." But in spite of excellent recommendations submitted by Talleyrand and Condorcet, much time elapsed before a general statute was passed. Not until October, 1795, was there a law providing for primary schools in each commune, central schools in the departments, and special schools preparing for ten different professions. But even in 1800 the primary schools were but rare, there was a scarcity of both scholars and teachers, and the Comicillor of State when making report of these conditions proposed outright that the parish priest should be charged with the giving of instruction where such schools existed. At the central schools, where there were neither examinations nor diplomas, owing to the tempes- tuous spirit of the times, the mathematical and technical courses alone found a meagre following, the others remained entirely unattended. The same was true of the professional schools. The important creations of the Convention dating from 1794 could not gain Ufe and vigour in these agitated times. The " Poly- technic School" counted but few pupils; the "Normal School," for the training of teachers, existed for less than a year; the "Medical School" amounted to Uttle more than the faculty of former times and was still awaiting reorganization; the "Con- servatoire des arts et metiers," an institution due to suggestion by the philosopher Descartes in the seventeenth century, which was intended for the instruction of working men by means of observation, remained totally neglected up to the last days of the 234 The New France and Her Sovereign [I801 Directory. And here again the task remained to the Consulate of elaborating the plans as well as of building up the institution. The month of December, 1799, already witnessed the estab- lishment of a special sub-department for Arts and Sciences in the Department of the Interior, and this developed two years later into the "Direction generale de I'Instruction publique." May 1st, 1802, a new statute concerning pubhc instruction was promulgated: primary schools were to be established in every country parish under supervision of the sub-prefect, the teachers to be appointed by the mayor; in the capitals of the depart- ments there were to be secondary schools under supervision of the prefect, permission being at the same time granted to private persons to open and maintain schools subject to the approval of the government; further, there were to be 32 "Lycees " with classical and scientific instruction to which the better scholars of the secondary schools should be promoted and from which one fifth of the students upon completion of the course should be admitted into the upper schools for special instruction.* In- spectors were appointed to supervise the entire system of public instruction, and in order to put the new system at once into active operation the government granted no less than 6400 free scholarships, of which 2400 were awarded to the sons of meritorious government officials and military men. Success crowned the work. Within two to three years later 4500 elemen- tary schools were in operation with more than 750 secondary schools, counting 50,000 pupils, and 45 Lycees.f In issuing these decrees Napoleon's object had not been so much the disinterested advancement of knowledge as to train up for himself passably educated and completely docile subjects * Of Ihese special or professional schools the statute of May 1st, 1802, recognized nine: 1. Law; 2. Medicine; 3 Physical and Natural Sciences; 4. Mechanical and Chemical Technology; 5. Pure Mathematics; G. Geog- raphy, History, and Political Economy; 7. Graphic Arts; 8. Astronomy: 0. Music and Composition. t The first Consul did not prohil)it, as did the Revolutionary gov- ernments, the clerical schools. The clergy established elementary and secondary schools, and the girls' schools were generally conducted by Sisters. ^T. 32] The Legion of Honour 235 whose education need not be carried to a point whence they might presume to make unreserved criticism of his adminis- tration of the government. When in 1802 Fourcroy, the Direc- tor-General of PubUc Instruction, submitted to liim an elaborate plan of education, Napoleon rejected it as being fai* too compre- hensive with the observation: "A httle Latin and mathematics is all that is needed." And yet, on the other hand, he was never found wanting in respect toward scholarship or its representa- tives. He took delight in associating with great artists as well as with learned men, and never ceased to confer honours and dig- nities upon those who had won his esteem by their talents or scientific attainments. As early as 1800 of the sixty senators seventeen were members of the Institute, and when on Alay 19th, 1802, the Legion of Honour was established for the purpose of recognizing service to the State whether military or civil, it was the naturalist Lacepede who was appointed by Napoleon "High Chancellor" of the new order.* It ill accorded with this system of combining and centralizing all the forces of the State that one portion of the nation should be still debarred by law from returning to their native land. Those who were thus excluded were partly those emigres who had left France of their o^ti free-will at the beginning of the Revolution, and partly those who had fled a little later because of the terrorist measures and threats of the Radicals in power. Even under the Directory the law had been re-enacted which made return punishable with death. That no possible doubt might remain as to the strength and security of his new govern- * According to the statute of 1802 the members of the Legion were compelled among other things to swear on their honour to combat every attempt to restore the feudal regime with its attributes and titles. The decoration of the order was exceedingly distasteful to the pronounced Repulilicans, some of whom made complaint to Napoleon. "I challenge you," he replied, "to show me a Republic, whether ancient or modem, in which such marks of distinction have not had their place. They are indeed gewgaws (hochets), but it is with gewgaws that men are led." It was at this same period that he said to Madame de Renmsat: "The fact is that it is very convenient to govern the French people by appealing to their vanity." 236 The New France and Her Sovereign [I801 ment Napoleon repealed this law of proscription. The only difficulty lay in the fact that the property of the emigres had in the meanwhile been confiscated and sold by the State, and the purchasers saw cause for alarm concerning their possessions in the return of the former owners. The new Constitution, as has been already stated, not only guaranteed the ownership of these estates to their purchasers, but for this very reason for- bade the return of the emigres. But in spite of all the First Consul advanced step by step to the reaUzation of his design. In March, 1800, an edict appeared, in the first place, closing the list of Emigres and empowering the government to strike from it the names of those who would request it and renounce all claim upon their former possessions. This was followed by making vast numbers of erasures from the list, — Constitutionalists of 1789, thousands of banished priests, etc. Finally, after the conclusion of peace with foreign powers in April, 1802, a general amnesty was granted, always with the underetanding, however, that present owners of national domains would be protected in their rights. Scarcely had this law been promulgated when the ban- ished families began to flock back to France. Not less than forty thousand of them returned at this time. Thanks to this measure and to the Concordat, which put an end to schism within the country, the reorganization of France was practically com- pleted. But this task had not been accomplished without consid- erable resistance. The autocratic character of Napoleon's government became daily more pronounced and stirred up ad- versaries both within the Chambers and without. These showed themselves first among the Liberal Constitutionalists, who, under the leadership of Benjamin Constant, the intimate friend of Madame de Stael, arrayed themselves, in society as well as in the Tribunate, in opposition to the tendency toward absolutism shown by the First Consul. But since, while oppos- ing this, they at the same time attacked his beneficial and neces- sary constructive work, such as the financial and judicial laws, their opposition only served to confirm him in the course which he was pursuing. The implacable Jacobins and Terrorists took -^^T. 32] An Attempt at Assassination 237 the same position, and in tlioir secret meetings, as Fouch6 learned through his agents, did not shrink even from the idea of assassinating Bonaparte. This plot, according to the testi- mony of the Prussian ambassador, failed only because of lack of funds with which to stir up the populace. And finally the opposition was augmented by the stiff Royalists, who had re- mained loyal through everything to Louis XVIII. and hated Napoleon because they saw in him the principal obstacle to the realization of their hopes. They were led by the inde- fatigable Georges Cadoudal, a leader of the Vendeans who lived abroad; they were encouraged in their resistance by subsidies from England. Their representatives in Paris were young Hyde de Neu'^dUe and Andigne. Hardly two months after the Coup d'Etat Bonaparte had said to them: "There is no further hope for the Bourbons. Range yourselves under my banner," he added, hoping to persuade them; "my government is to be the government of youth and of talent. Would you blush to wear the uniform worn by Bonaparte?" But these allurements were all in vain. Among the Royalists there were men who did not hesitate at the most extreme measures, and they proceeded to carry into execution what had been only planned by the Jacobins. On the evening of December 24th, 1800, as the First Consul was being driven to the opera, he narrowly escaped being killed by the explosion of an infernal machine, consisting of a barrel filled with gunpowder, bullets, and fireworks, which was set off in the little rue St. Nicaise and which killed several passers-by, but left him uninjured. This crime was at first supposed to be the work of the Radicals, and, with the assent of the Senate and of the Council of State, Napoleon ordered one hundred and thirty of them sentenced to deportation, one of the most distressing penalties. The real perpetrators of the deed were not discovered until later when most of them had already made good their escape, and only two could be brought to execution. The Terrorists were none the less carried off to the colonies, for, as Fouch6 observed: "It was not only a ques- tion of punishment for the past, but above all of insuring social order." A certain number of Radicals were deported without 238 The New France and Her Sovereign [isoi trial, among others three generals who made no attempt to con- ceal their Republican sentiments and who were said to have tried to stir up the army against the First Consul. Napoleon had thus become an arbitrary ruler. His ar- bitrary acts had already begun when in January, 1800, he sup- pressed no less than sixty out of the seventy-three political news- papers published at that time and forbade the establishment of any new ones.* It was an arbitrary act, again, by which he defended himself against the opposition in the Tribunate in 1802. When that body rejected certain provisions of the "Code civile," in the elaboration of which Napoleon had himself participated, his first impulse had been to attempt a "Coup d'Etat " in view of the fact that the government had not the right to dissolve the Chambers; Cambaceres, however, succeeded in persuading him to resort to a less direct way of accomphshing his ends and to save appearances by means of a seemingly con- stitutional expedient. Article 38 of the Constitution of the year VIII provided that, beginning with the year 1802, one fifth of the membership of the Tribunate and the Corps Legis- latif should be annually renewed. The time appointed for this renewal had now come. Since the Constitution did not defi- nitely prescribe the manner in which this should be accom- plished, it was decided not to follow the logical and ordinary method of deciding by lot what members should yield their * This decree was but a poor return on the part of Napoleon to those newspapers which four years before had received his instructions, as he took his departure for the campaign in Italy — "to write about him and about nothing but him," — and which had as a matter of fact contributed in no small degree to his glory. This was however only the first step towards the actual re-establishment of the censorship which took place three years later. A decree of September, 1803, runs thus: "In order to secure liberty of the press (!) no bookseller shall henceforth offer for sale any work without its having first been submitted to a Commission of Revision, who will return it if it be found to contain no ground for censure." A similar regulation applied to new theatrical representations. The First Consul was encovnaged in the adoption of these measures toward the newspapers by the attitude of the public, which, intent upon securing internal peace, was not exactly averse to seeing a rigorous course pursued in regard to a disputatious and frequently corrupt press. I ^T. 32] Consul for Life 239 positions, but to prevail upon the Senate to designate not only who should constitute the incoming fifth, but also who should step out- The Senate, threatened with the dreaded wrath of Napoleon, obeyed, and Tribunate and Corps L^gislatif were purged in January, 1S02, of the obnoxious element, consisting of such men as Benjamin Constant, Chdnier, Chazal, and Daunou. Their places were filled by entirely docile persons who voted without protest in favour of all the bills which had been so fiercely contested by their predecessors; nor did they offer any opposition to other bills which had not before been submitted for consideration, such as the enactments in regard to the ^mi- gr^s, the Concordat, and the Legion of Honour. The brothers of the First Consul attempted on one occasion to convince him that opposition was a necessity and cited England in support of their argument, whereat he replied: "For my part I have never yet seen the advantages of opposition of any kind. Whatever its nature, it serves only to lessen respect for the authority in power in the minds of the people. Let some one else come and govern in my place, and if he does not attempt as I do to put a stop to idle talk, he will see what happens to him. I tell you ab- solute unity of power is indispensable to good government." But Napoleon had still greater demands to make from the new Chambers. The power which he wielded was far from extensive enough to satisfy him. It ill accorded with his vast designs that he should, in conformity to the constitution, hold authority for only ten years. And therefore he hated the Con- stitution of 1799 just as he had for a similar reason hated that of 1795. He yearned to rule over France and rule as other sovereigns ruled over their dominions, not bound and humiUated by a petty paragraph which confined his haughty ambition within a period which could be calculated to a minute. But the more passionately he fostered this design the more carefully he concealed his purpose, until toward the end of March, 1802, definitive peace with England had been concluded, when, sus- tained by his popularity, now greater than ever, he could with safety allow something of it to be divined. But the majority of the Senate showed how little they comprehended the situa- 240 The New France and Her Sovereign [I802 tion by their proposal, in recognition of the great services ren- dered by the head of the government to the State/ to continue his term as First Consul for another ten years. Napoleon was exasperated. He was on the point of flying into a passion and declining their proffer, when Cambaceres — or Lucien according to other authorities — again had an expedient to suggest: an appeal to the nation. He therefore replied to the Senators that he could not accept this offer without again consulting the people which had in former times clothed him with the supreme power. The question, however, as put by him to popular vote differed widely from the vote of the Senate, for it was formulated in these words: "Shall Napoleon Bonaparte be made Consul for life, and shall he be given the right to appoint his successor? " And again his calculations proved correct. Three and a half millions of "ayes" against a few thousand "noes," such was the nation's response. Then the Senate recognized the course which it was called upon to pursue. It hastened to convey the thanks of the nation to the object of its choice, and two days later, by the Senatus consultum of August 4th, 1802, it very considerably increased the power in the hands of the First Consul. Henceforward he had exclusive right to pardon malefactors, to ratify treaties with foreign powers, and to ap- point senators. The significance of this last prerogative will be perceived when the importance which the Senate itself had acquired is taken into consideration. It could, by means of special decrees (Senatus consulta), interpret, amend, or totally suspend the Constitution, suspend the court of assizes within certain departments, dissolve both Chambers, and reverse the judgments of the courts when they were held to endanger the safety of the State, — all of these at a nod from the man who now governed France as absolute master. A monarchy had been established, not indeed such as Napoleon desired it to be, that is to say, under the form of a hereditary power, but nevertheless established, and for the time being he was obliged to content himself with this result.* "I am henceforth," said Napoleon, * The French did not apparently hesitate to accept even the name with the new arrangement, for it was as a Republican Monarchy that the I Mr. 32] Source of Napoleon's Strength 241 "upon the same level witli other sovereigns, for, when all is said and done, they hold their power only for hfe. It is not right that the authority of a man who directs the policy of all Europe should be precarious, or even seem so." When, two years later, he places the Imperial crown France upon his head, it is only the outward sign of a power now already in his hands. That which made possible this decisive step toward his abso- lute sovereignty was the same element which had been Bona- parte's secret ally on the 18th Brumaire — non-partisan pubUc opmion. All its sympathies were with the man who had put an end to anarchy, who had established order and prosperity and made peace with all the world. And it was above all to this last consideration that his popularity was due.* But little did the French know the man to whose unlimited power they were committing the destiny of their country! He was no man of peace. He did indeed at the cost of indefatigable labour and unparalleled energy restore to France her lost vigour and power, but this was done with no thought of peace, but solely as preparation for a conflict in which the victor's reward was to be a dominion extending far beyond the borders of France. new system was designated early in the year 1803 by the "Journal de Paris," the official organ of the government. * Article II of the Senatus consultum of August 4th, 1802, is expressed in these words: "A statue of Peace bearing in one hand the laurels of victory and in the other the decree of the Senate shall bear witness to posterity of the gratitude of the Nation." CHAPTER X THE LAST YEARS OF THE CONSULATE. THE EMPEROR The general peace of 1802 brought France prosperity and respect. Innumerable foreigners journeyed to Paris to visit the places immortalized by the Revolution and to see the great man who had calmed the tempestuous waters. The centre of the world appeared to be removed to the banks of the Seine, where a well-regulated manner of Hfe with its work and its social enjoy- ment had become the rule. These were no longer the days of mad intoxication such as those early in the reign of the Direc- tory, when every one rejoiced to have escaped the horrors through which he had passed and yet awaited the morrow with un- certainty and dread. Excitement had given way to moderate and peaceful enjoyment; instead of bold speculation for disrepu- table gains, there were steady activity and honest earnings. Greater security than ever before was felt under the new gov- ernment by the moderate law-abiding citizen, the same element which Napoleon had on the 13th Vendemiaire so mercilessly mown down with grape-shot that, according to his statements, gloomy visions of the scene still continually haunted his dreams. The unjust deportation of Jacobin deputies also carried convic- tion — as it had been intended to do — that the man who had been in control since the 18th Brumaire had no longer any- thing in common with the general commanding the forces of the Convention in 1795. Adherents to the royal cause had returned home in great numbers and had to some extent again come into possession of their property. The so-called " nouveaux riches," who had become owners of extensive tracts of state property through speculation and stock-jobbing, gradually came to feel secure in their possessions as Napoleon was seen to depart more ftnd more widely from the role played by Monk. To one ele- 242 JEt. 33] Reaction 243 ment, accordingly, personal power in Napoleon's hands seemed desirable as security against further Revolutionary excesses, while to another it seemed equally so as a guarantee against the return of the Bourbons, the aim of all being to make it possible for labour and enjoyment to continue undisturbed. In the face of such material forces and interests what mat- tered it that a certain number of miyielding republicans be- moaned the loss of their unrestrained political liberty, or that the haughty nobility of the faubourg Saint-Germain should prefer to become subjects of a legitimate sovereign rather than of an ill-bred upstart? The great body of the people had wearied of poUtical questions and gladly submitted to the tyranny of the new government which had re-established order and vouched for its continuance. The period of the Consulate is characterized by the absolute confidence placed in the man who had van- quished the foes of France both without and within her borders. Unlimited power in the hands of one individual was now as much in popular favour as the " Liberty, Equahty, and Frater- nity " of all had been a short time before. In reliance upon this feeling the new monarch of France might safely venture very far. It was only that he finally ventured too far that brought him to ruin before his death. To any one who had left Paris at the beginning of the Consular period and who, Uke the Comicillor of State Miot de Melito, returned thither at the end of a few years, the changes which had meanwhile taken place were astounding. The last traces of Revolutionary times had every^vhere disap- peared. In the place of the half-military, half-civil costume which facliion had imposed toward the end of the century, the mode of dress prevailing during the "ancien regime", had been resumed ; instead of the sabre was worn the sword of ceremony, and boots had given way to stockings with buckled shoes. The returned aristocrats alone retained the garb of equality, the dress coat and trousers, as evidence of their impoverishment. Men no longer addressed one another as "Citoyen," but as "Monsieur," and m 1803 the official almanac even expUcitly enjoined the use of the title "Madame" in place of "Citoyenne." Although the Revolutionary calendar was still in use, the Decadi had already 244 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 been replaced by the Sunday of old, and no one — least of all the First Consul — failed of attending mass on that day. The names of the streets had again been changed to those which they had bome before the days of the Republic, the "Palais EgaUte " had again become the "Palais Royal," the "Place de la Revolution" was again known as "Place Louis XV." In fashionable litera- ture the names of the foremost representatives of enUghtened France, Voltaire and Rousseau, were repudiated because they were regarded as having been through their writings originators of the Revolutionary movement. But it was in what immediately surrounded Napoleon that the change was most striking. The Tuileries, which he had occupied since January, 1800, as the residence of the chief magistrate, had been transformed into the palace of a sovereign. There a rigid etiquette was enforced and everything was regulated ac- cording to the rules of a court. Woman, to whom the democracy had conceded no political rights, was now given her place : Jose- phine had her days for giving audience just as her husband did. Everything, with the exception of the words "Consul " and "Re- public," was monarchical and centred in a single dominating per- sonality. In this court, where the usages of the old monarchy had been restored by command, and where aristocrats schooled in the ways of the world were preferably installed as officials of the palace, there was indeed much to recall the sudden elevation of its sovereign. People were to be seen there who, according to Talleyrand's sarcastic comment, did not understand walking on waxed floors; officers with awkward wives of obscure origin and lacking in every grace; generals, better drilled than bred, obeying with awe and servility capricious behests resulting from a mixture of calculation and nervousness in a man who made it a principle to stimulate zeal by means of fear. Napoleon was tolerant of no contradiction in his despotism, as indeed he refused to feel himself restricted in any respect even by such rules of conduct as all the world was agreed in accepting. "I am no ordinary man," said he, "and laws of pro- priety and morals are not aj)plicable to me." It is said that he Mr. 33] Napoleon's Inner Nature 245 even carried to such an extent his disregard of what was sacred to others that he was by his own wife taxed with incestuoas re- lations with his sisters. In his nature he still remained gloomy and morose as he had been in earlier years. His successes had not made a happy man of the dreamer. There was at this time a tinge of sadness in his character which in later years developed into a surly ill-humour. "I am not fitted for taking pleasure," he was accustomed to say, and from what is known of his modes of diversion the truth of these words is fully corroborated. Madame de Remusat, who had since 1802 filled the office of lady in waiting to Josephine, writes thus of him: "I have seen him go into transports at the murmur of the wind, and talk with en- thusiasm of the roaring of the sea; tempted at times to think nocturnal apparitions not altogether beyond credence, he was in fact inclined toward entertaining certain superstitions. When he left his council-chamber to pass the evening in the drawing- room of Madame Bonaparte, he would take the notion sometimes to have the candles veiled with white gauze and, having enjoined profound silence, would amuse himself with relating or listening to stories of ghosts and apparitions; at another time he would listen to slow, sweet music executed by Italian singers to the sole accompaniment of a small number of instruments softly played. He would then be seen to sink into a re very which was respected by all, no one daring to make a motion nor to stir from his place. Upon coming out of this state, which appeared to serve as a sort of relaxation to him, he was usually more serene and affable." Ever since the attempt had been made upon his life Bona- parte shut himself off more and more thoroughly from the out- side world. It was only during the review of troops in the court of the Tuileries that it was possible to approach him and present petitions. "Wlienever he rode out through the city he was always escorted by a large force of mounted guards, and his regular visit to the theatre called forth a special detail of police for whose accommodation even the first set of side-scenes opposite the Consular box were pressed into service. Out at Malmaison the walks throughout the park were constantly 246 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 patrolled by a competent force of men, and at no time did the First Consul return to Paris until after the police had searched the streets through which he had to pass. He was filled with a profound mistrust of every one. At times even his ministers were denied access to him; under such circumstances some young aide-de-camp was made the bearer of his commands to them. Since every action of his own was the outcome of calculation, he was always trying to scent out motives and designs in the con- duct of others. Nothing seemed to him so trustworthy as the maxim of Macchiavelli, that in dealing with friends one must always bear in mind that they may become enemies. Entirely devoid of magnanimity himself, he ascribed nobility of purpose to no one. When, upon one occasion, a lost watch was returned to Bourrienne his secretary, Napoleon was so impressed by this act of integrity that he freed the finder from military duty and interested himself in the welfare of his family. In regard to veracity his ideas did not differ from those which he held con- cerning honesty. It was not always advantageous, he thought, to tell the truth. He used to relate with pleasure his uncle's prediction " that he would some day govern the world because he was in the habit of lying on all occasions." With his estimate of mankind it is therefore not strange that he did not rely solely upon the faithfulness of the official police, but established in addi- tion, particularly after Fouche was deprived of his office of Minis- ter of Police in 1802, a number of secret police agencies under the direction of his most devoted generals: Duroc, Savary, Davout, Moncey, Junot, and others, who were expected to keep watch upon each other. It was Josephine, the aristocrat by birth, who formed the link connecting the nobility of France with the court of the First Consul. Through her and her former relations witli people of rank many a family of ancient name now became recon- ciled with the existing order of things and allied their interests with those of the new regime. On the other hand the brothers of the Consul, J()soi)h and Lucicn, were distinguished by certain republican tendencies which were, however, not deep-rooted enough to prevent their being eventually overcome by the S.i\ 33] Napoleon's Family 247 resolute determination of the new Caesar. Such at least was the case with Joseph. Lucien, who as ambassador to the court of Madrid had acquired a large fortune, had a falUng-out with Napoleon because he persisted in contracting a marriage with the daughter of a tradesman instead of with the widowed Queen of Etruria, and refused to procure a divorce in spite of his broth- er's protests, a course which eventually brought about his ban- ishment from France. At a later date he was pleased to make a display of his democratic principles, although there is little room for doubt that in 1801 he indulged the hope of being made a king. The third brother, Louis, through Josephine's influence had been brought January 3d, 1802, to marry her daughter, the beautiful Hortense Bcauharnais. The union, unwiUingly en- tered upon by both parties, was no happy one and brought to a culmination the hostility existing between the two families, Bonaparte and Beauhamais, The cause of this discord lay in Josephine's steriUty, which gave to Napoleon's stepchildren an importance resented by the Bonapartes and which was a hindrance in the path of their ambition. The fact has been established that the brothers and sisters of the Consul, par- ticularly Lucien, began even at this time to talk of a divorce, and that Josephine, in her fear of being abandoned, even es- poused the cause of the Bourbons.* Jerome, Napoleon's youngest brother, was leading at this time rather a frivolous life in the United States, where he married the beautiful EUza- beth Patterson of Baltimore, whom he, at the command of his superior, subsequently abandoned in Europe. He had been appointed by his brother to a position of importance in the navy, but he was to momit still higher. Of the sisters of the all-powerful Consul the eldest, EUsa, had been married in 1797 to Pascal Bacciochi, an Italian nobleman and an officer in the French army, to whom in 1803 was given the command of Fort * See Jung, " Lucien Bonaparte et ses M^moires," II. 67, the letter written by Lucien from Madrid under date of April 4th, 1801, to Napoleon in which he alludes to the Infanta Isabella, whom the Queen of Spain was desirous of marrying " to the future lord of the world-monarchy." 248 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 Saint- Jean in Marseilles. She was a woman of fine intellectual ability, and with the aid of her brother Lucien assembled about her in Paris a circle of distinguished men of letters, among whom were Fontanes and Chateaubriand, whom she recommended to the notice of Napoleon and for whom she obtained his favour. The beautiful but frivolous Pauline had married General Leclerc, who with thousands of his fellow countrymen died, stricken with yellow fever, in San Domingo. Wlien, in 1803, she returned to France, her hand was at once asked in marriage by the Prince Borghese. The ambitious Caroline, married in 1800 to Murat, the cavalry general, to whom she was intellectually far supe- rior, was one of the most ardent of those who were intrigu- ing against the Beauharnais family. Napoleon's mother, Laetitia Bonaparte, now lived in her own palace at the Capital, basking in the splendour of her son, not, however, as an experi- enced woman, relying so implicitly upon her good fortune as to fail to improve such a favourable opportunity for the acqui- sition of considerable funds against a possible evil day. She had remained precisely the same woman as in former years, even to retaining her Corsican dialect, a point which Napoleon keenly resented, since it was his will that nothing should act as a reminder of his foreign origin.* A kinsman who proved more useful was found in his uncle Fesch, the former abbe and more recently War Commissary to the Army of Italy. After having made his peace with the Church, an ecclesiastical mem- ber of the family was of no little value to the Consul. Fesch must needs resume the discarded cassock, and soon after the conclusion of the Concordat he was appointed Archbishop of Lyons and Cardinal. Such was the court of the man who, to use his own words, directed the political course of Europe. Nor was this state- ment an exaggeration. Direct it he did in reality, ready to crush out by force of arms any sign of resistance wherever it appeared. He had concluded tlie general treaty of peace be- * His alien hirth was a source of real mortification to him. "To put it in plain terms," said he to liis brothers, "I am very sorry to have been born a Corsican." (Jung, " Lucien Bonaparte," etc.) Mr. 33] The Outlook for Permanent Peace 249 cause this step was necessary to the furtherance of his own interests; to maintain it was in keeping neither with the revo- lutionary system which he had made his own nor with his own inchnations. There has been handed down from a reUable source the report of a conversation which he held with a Coun- cillor of State shortly before he was invested with the Consular power for life. The Councillor having expressed the opinion that the maintenance of peace in Europe was above all necessary to the welfare of France, the Consul rephed by asking whether he did not, then, believe in the enmity of the Powers who had signed the treaty of peace. The Comicillor was obliged to ac- knowledge that England, Austria, and the others would doubtless remain hostile to France in the future as they had been in the past. "Well, then," said Napoleon, "what are the conse- quences? If these Powers are continually going to cherish war in their hearts so that it must break out some day, then the sooner it comes to that the better, for every day helps to dissi- pate in them the recollection of their last defeats, while it tends to diminish at home the prestige of our last victories. All the advantage in delay is accordingly on their side.* Bear in mind that a First Consul is not like one of these kings by the grace of God who look upon their State as a heritage. Ancient usages are to them an advantage and a support, while to us, on the con- trary, they are a hindrance. The French government of to-day bears no resemblance to anything which surrounds it. Hated by its neighbours, compelled to hold in restraint within its do- main sundry classes of evil-disposed persons, in order to preserve an imposing appearance in the face of so many enemies it stands in need of brilliant deeds and consequently of war. France must be first or utterly fail. I will tolerate peace if our neigh- * How correct were these obsers'ations may be seen by the recently published despatch sent by the English ambassador Whitworth on the 1st of December, 1802. "Every added year of peace," so it runs, "while enfeebling the Consular government, will give strength and courage to those whose aim and interest it is to overthrow it As a matter of fact in maintaining peace we are keeping up a state of war against this govern- ment which is more decisive and more deleterious in itself than open hostilities," 250 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 hours know how to keep it, but if they compel me to take up arms again before they become unserviceable through neglect or long disuse I shall regard it as to our advantage, . . . There is always a spirit of hostility existing between ancient mon- archies and a newly-formed republic. . . . Situated as we are, I regard every peace as a brief truce and the ten years of my consulship as destined to be an uninterrupted warfare." * To any one reading with attention these utterances spoken during the summer of 1802 — ^whether the words are exactly quoted or no — it will be clear that Napoleon was determined upon carrying out by force of arms the programme for the hegemony of France formulated by Hauterive in 1801. But was this after all the ultimate aim to which he aspired? Was it really his only concern, as he asseverated, to procure this hegemony for the French government, or did he have a purpose deeper than might be disclosed to a member of the French Council of State? Perhaps he had already at this time con- ceived in secret the idea which he imparted two years later to a circle of intimate friends: "Europe cannot be at rest except under the rule of a single head who will have kings for his offi- cers, who will distribute his kingdoms to lieutenants, making of one King of Italy, of a second King of Bavaria, of a third Land- amman of Switzerland, of a fourth Stadholder of Holland, each having his position in the Imperial household with title of Chief Cup-bearer, Grand Master of the Pantry, Grand Master of the Horse, Grand Master of the Hounds, etc. It may be objected that this plan is nothing but an imitation of the con- stitution of the German Empire, and that there is nothing novel in the idea; but there is nothing in existence which is absolutely new, pohtical institutions only revolve in a circle, and it is often necessary to return to what has been already tried." It is plain that he was no true Frenchman at heart, fond as he was of representing himself as such, especially during the years of the Consulate. Had he been what he pretended he would have been content with securing for France the leading position * Miot de M61ito, M6moires, II. 226. ^T. 32] Changes in the Vassal States 25 1 among the Powers. But that was precisely wherein he failed the nation which had put its trust in him. Possessing no spark of French patriotism or of ambition for France, from the time when he had been forced to give up his httle native country he had recognized no national limits to his ambition, gigantic in truth, since it embraced the whole world, and yet at the same time infinitesimally small, since it was to serve only to satisfy the inordinate passion for glory on the part of a single indi- vidual.* To any one so resolved upon war there can be no difficulty in bringing it about without appearing a direct ag- gressor. And indeed Napoleon's conquests hi time of peace were most efficacious in preparing the way for war, and finally even brought about the outbreak. In the later months of the year 1801, when the preUminaries concluded with England and the treaty with Russia had estab- fished universal peace, Bonaparte had already begun with inde- fatigable activity to take advantage of the need felt by all the nations of Europe for a time of recuperation, and to make the acquisitions necessary to his system. For, as a result of the recent strife, the temporary exhaustion felt by the Powers had made possible the turning of the balance of power in favour of the conqueror. It behooved him above all to bring those countries lying within the sphere of French authority more directly under his control by means of their internal organization ; for, being for the most part furnished with strictly repubUcan constitutions modelled upon that of France in the time of the Directory, they, with their continual changes of party government, were not always to be rehed upon. It was therefore essential to modify * According to Lucien, to conquer Europe for his own sake and not for that of France had already been determined upon by Napoleon in 1802. Referring to that year, Lucien says in his M^moires (Edition Jung, II. 165); "I am not one of those who have believed and who persist in belie\nng that my brother Napoleon made war contrary to his choice at any time in his career. I was too well acquainted with what he thought at bottom, particularly at the time of which I speak. And, to be quite candid, his designs, which were far more ambitious than patriotic and which made war a personal necessity to him at that time, were revealed to me almost without attempt at disguise." 252 The Last Years of the Consulate [I801 these constitutions to correspond with the new one which France had adopted in 1799. This was at once put into operation in Holland. With the concurrence of the ambassador of the Batavian Repubhc a new constitution was elaborated in Paris according to which the five Directors were superseded by a President bearing the ancient title of Grand Pensionary, while the two Chambers gave place to a legislative body of deputies with limited powers. This new constitution was forced upon the Dutch people by its own Direc- tory, which had been bribed by France and which was most forcibly supported by French troops (October 17th, 1801). At the plebiscite which was then held 50,000 of the people voted against the change; the remainder held their peace. This silence was construed by Napoleon to mean acquiescence, and the new constitution was announced the free act of the Batavian people. This was done as a matter of form in order to satisfy the demands of Article 11 in the Treaty of Luneville, which read: "The con- tracting parties mutually guarantee the independence of the said Republics (Batavia, Helvetia, Cisalpine, Liguria), their inhab- itants being vested with the power to adopt whatever form of government shall to them seem good." In the Cisalpine Republic matters stood exactly as they had in Holland. Here also was still in force a republican constitu- tion similar to that of France under the Directory, and here also the power was made to pass entirely out of the hands of the Councils into those of a single executive body, which was far easier to direct from Paris than had been the fluctuating mass of parties in the Chambers. In September, 1801, Napoleon had already conferred with certain men in Lombardy who were in his confidence; the next step was to arrange for the elaboration of a constitution according to his directions, which duty he assigned to Maret. The result of these labours was sent to Milan in order that it might there be secretly deliberated upon. According to it a single President was in this case also to be put at the head of the government. The authorities in Milan consented to every- thing, asking only that Napoleon would do them the favour to appoint the proper persons to the offices of State. And again m: Mr. 33] The Italian Republic 253 the First Consul tried to conform with the provisions of the before- mentioned Article in the Treaty of Lun<§ville by inviting to Lyons the most prominent representatives of the three classes into which the people were divided according to the constitu- tion — the landowners, the scholars, and the tradespeople (pos- sidenti, dotti, commercianti). At this place and with the con- currence of these deputies men were assigned to the principal offices with the exception of a single one, that of the Presidency- This Napoleon was reserving for himself. Talleyrand had been charged with the arrangements for bringing this about. The wily minister made use of the occasion of a review of the returned Egyptian troops, which attracted most of the strangers outside the city, to assemble the few deputies who had remained, — pos- sibly a third of the whole number, — when a trial vote was cast. The choice fell upon Melzi d'Eril, whereupon Talleyrand gave the Italians to understand that a far better selection might be made. They grasped his meaning and resolved upon offering the Presi- dency to Napoleon, while Melzi should be vice-president. On the 26th of January, 1802, the First Consul declared himself ready to accept this position. His first official act was to change the name "Cisalpine Repubhc " to the " Italian Republic " — a clever stroke, for already many hearts had been fired wdth enthusiasm by the words of Alfieri: "Itaha virtuosa, magnanima, libera et una." The name was taken to signify a complete programme of national unity and independence. And who was better fitted to make this dream a reality than the victor of Marengo? But this was after all nothing but a decoy. Napoleon's real designs were most clearly shown by the fate which overtook Piedmont. Tliis country lay at the portals of France and formed a sort of bridge leading to the Republic of Lombardy. The French had occupied it ever shice their last victory over the Aus- trians, and had not evacuated it after the conclusion of the Treaty of Luneville. During the Ufetime of Paul I. of Russia, who had drawn his sword among other things in defence of the legitimate rights of the Kng of Sardina, Napoleon contented himself with simple occupation of the territory in order to avoid giving offence to his new-found friend. Hardly had the Czar breathed his last, 254 The Last Years of the Consulate [I8O2 however, before Gen. Jourdan — the Jacobin of the 18th Bru- maire and now the docile tool of the new monarch — was forth- with commissioned to proclaim to the Piedmontese that their country was to form a French mihtary division and to be por- tioned off into six prefectures. This was exactly the procedure of the Convention in former days when it set about the annexa- tion of German possessions along the Rhine. For the formal incorporation of Piedmont the First Consul waited until the definitive peace with England should be concluded. During the negotiations leading to that end his plenipotentiaries received the strictest injunctions to tolerate no interference of any kind on the part of Great Britain in Continental questions, and actu- ally so absolute was England's need of a time of respite how- ever short that this sacrifice was made to it; the Treaty of Amiens contained no word in behalf of Victor Amadeus, King of Sardinia. As soon as all had been made safe in that quarter Napoleon proceeded without delay to take formal possession of the coveted territory. On September 4th a Senatus consultum dated at Paris declared Piedmont a French province with six departments, of which one was to bear the glorious name of Marengo. At the Court of Vienna the greatest consternation prevailed at this rapid extension of French authority in Italy. Count Ludwig Cobenzl, the successor of Thugut as Minister of Foreign Affairs, writes at this time to the Austrian ambassador at Paris: "How may any portions of Italy, not now belonging to France, hope to escape her domination? More rapid and devastating in times of peace than in war, where are the ravages of this torrent to cease? " * It was to be a long while before the course of "this torrent " would be arrested. To the south of Piedmont was the Ligurian Repubhc, territory of the old ducal city of Genoa. The Constitution here again was out of date, and on the 26th of June, 1802, a draft of a constitution prepared in Paris was delivered to the Genoese by the French ambassador Salicetti, the same person whose name is associated with Napoleon in his youth. This * Archives of Vienna. ^T. 33] Elba Annexed to France 255 constitution was gratefully accepted by the government while announcing to the people of Genoa that "it was meet that he who changed the face of all Europe should also give a new form to the Ligurian Republic." Even before this time, in December, 1801, the little Republic of Lucca had been provided from the Tuilerics with a constitution placing at the head a Gonfalonier who, like the Dutch President, was to hold office for a brief period lest he should acquire lasting importance, the real ruler being the political agent of France. No less dependent upon France was the kingdom of Tuscany-Etruria, where Napoleon appointed his generals Clarke and Murat as guardians to the incapable young king, after whose death, in 1803, they continued in like office to the queen, while even the details of the military organization were determined upon in Paris. Finally, in August, 1802, when the British had withdrawn from it, the island of Elba, relinquished by Spain, was declared a French province. For the sake of making it appear in this case also as if he proceeded according to the will of the people, the Consul summoned to Paris a delegation from Porto Ferrajo, which on its arrival at the capital was sumptuously entertained by the Minister of the Interior, while to each of its members was presented a purse of several thousand francs, whereupon these gentlemen expressed in a speech ready prepared for the occasion the gratification felt by their country- men at being united with France. Thus by midsummer of 1802 the whole of Upper Italy as far as Austrian Venetia had come to be directly or indirectly imder the sceptre of France. Piedmont alone was insufficient to furnish uninterrupted and adequate communication with these territories. During the course of the last campaign Napoleon had learned the value of communication by way of the Swiss Alps, and, with his mind always intent upon the renewal of hostilities, he determined upon securing these per- manently for himself. He accordingly demanded of the Re- pubfic of Helvetia the reUnquishment of the district of Valais through which ran the highway over the Simplon, for wlilch he proposed to give in exchange the Frickthal, ceded to him by the Emperor Francis in the Treaty of Lun^ville. But the in- 256 The Last Years of the Consulate [1S02 habitants of Valais were averse to any scheme of incorporation with France, and Napoleon was discreet enough not to insist upon it. He never hesitated to employ roundabout means to reach an end when it proved unattainable by the more direct way. So he contented himself for the time being with seeing Valais separated from Switzerland and formed into a repubhc by itself with a president of its own (August 30th, 1802). Actual independence was here entirely out of the question, for by Article 2 of its constitution the entire republic was at the outset put under the "protection " of the French and Italian RepubUcs, while Article 7 exempted the government from the duty of guarding its passes, and Article 9 directly forbade the inhabit- ants to open any roadway leading beyond the country without the consent of France. The rest of Switzerland was moreover quite as much imder the supremacy of its western neighbour. As far back as the time of the Directory Helvetia had already been indispensable as a connecting link between French an- nexations in Italy and those along the Rhine, and if Napoleon was to maintain the offensive position of the Revolution, — and in this he had no choice, — he could not give up his supremacy in this mountain country. For this reason it was generally supposed in Europe at the time of the Consulate that he would place himself at the head of the government here as he had done in Lombardy, and it is asserted that such was for a time his in- tention. But in the way of carrying out such a programme there were two obstacles, — first, the Treaty of Luneville guaranteeing to Switzerland its nomhial independence, and second, an ad- monition from Russia to the First Consul requesting him to respect the independence of his neighbours and thereby help to dissipate the apprehensions of Europe. Any design which Na- poleon may have entertained of securing the presidency of Switz- erland for himself was promptly given up, but in the withdrawal of his troops which followed he nevertheless insured his own power in the country by stirring up into open warfare the dissen- sion which existed between the Federalists of the aristocratic party and the liberal Centralists, affording him the opportunity of appearing on the scene as a party concerned and armed ^T. 33] Switzerland 257 mediator.* The Old-Federalists had already asked aid from England and Austria, and a British agent had already reached Berne with a view to operating here against French influence, when Napoleon suddenly intervened. At his command 30,000 men under Gen. Ncy were again marched into the country, and a delegation of fifty deputies of Switzerland summoned to meet the Consul in Paris, where they were granted an "Act of Media- tion." In this the aspirations of both parties were taken into consideration; it was acceptable to the Federalists, since it granted to every canton its own constitution, and to the Lib- erals because it upheld the principle of equaUty among all citi- zens. A diet composed of representatives of all the cantons and presided over by a Landamman was to regulate the foreign affairs of the State (February 19th, 1803). f By this clever artifice the First Consul obtained his much-desired end, for throughout the entire course of his rule in France Svatzerland remained at peace within and, while inaccessible to all ap- proaches from other powers, was absolutely submissive to the influence of France. The spread of Napoleon's power found, as has been seen, no great obstacle in the Alps, one of the natural boundaries of France. Was the second of those boundaries, the Rhine, destined to be held in any greater respect? After the Treaty of Luneville as after that of Campo Formio there yet remained unsettled the question of indemnity to those German princes who had lost to France a part or the whole of their lands along the left bank of the Rhine. After Campo Formio the Congress of Rastatt was empowered to solve * As early as April 30th, 1801, he had submitted to delegates of both parties a rough draft of a constitution intended to give satisfaction to both, but they had been unable to come to an agreement upon the sub- ject. t Jomini in his account, "Precis politique et militaire des campagnes de 1812 k 1814," II. 224, says that "the 'Act of Mediation' was the work of the best heads of Switzerland and not that of the First Consul." This statement is correct to this extent, that Napoleon instructed Haute- rive, Director of Foreign Affairs, to submit to him the result of the propo- sitions made by both parties. 258 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 this problem, when renewed war deprived its decisions of vahdity. This question was now taken up again. It had been deter- mined in Rastatt that the secular princes who had suffered these losses should receive compensation in the shape of ecclesias- tical territories lying on the right bank of the Rhine. This was confirmed by the Treaty of Luneville. Napoleon's motive in this was exactly that of the Revolution, which had done away in France with the political significance of mortmain and which carried across the boundary into Germany the principle of universal secularization of Church property. There was in Germany a class of ecclesiastical and consequently non-heredi- tary princes who were moved by no interest of family to try, like the secular princes, to obtain all possible independence and sovereignty for their houses. They had for that reason always been firm supporters of the feudal empire, and their Catholic faith had retained them as partisans of Austria and its ruHng house. Now, should these principalities be subdivided among the secular, that is to say the dynastic. States, the old imperial constitution would be shaken, the Empire would lose its stan ch- est adherents, the tendency to disintegration would prevail, and, as a result of this subversion of the order of things, there would, at the best, arise a confederation in place of the Empire. The only possibility of maintaining the Constitution of the Em- pire lay in preserving to the princes of the Church all property not needed to indemnify those princes who had been deprived of their lands ; but it would fall inevitably if all of the ecclesias- tical principaUties were secularized. The Revolutionary govern- ments of France had each adopted as a principle the necessity for the secularization of all. In the year 1795, when for a moment a general treaty of peace was under consideration in Paris, this project was brought by Sieyes before the Convention Com- mittee of Public Safety, his proposal being the complete dis- memberment of German ecclesiastical principalities for the benefit of secular princes, and this scheme was doubtless sub- mitted at a later date to the consideration of Napoleon and his ministers.* The famous abbd had in those earlier days * How important a part in foreign politics during the Consulate and iEr. 33] The Secularizations in Germany 259 established the principle that the ruling German powers, Prussia and Austria, should be kept at the greatest possible distance from the Rhine, while along the river there should be tolerated only States of secondary importance. Against encroachments from the two other powers these States would be protected by France, to which country they would be faithful adherents. But to such a plan, according to Sieyes, the ecclesiastical prin- cipalities were not adapted, since they as elective principalities without dynastic interests furnished no guarantee of permanent alliance. Consequently they ought to be secularized, as had already been done with some of their number at the time of the Peace of WestphaUa. And while this was the view of the situation taken by France, that of the two ruling German powers was not directly opposed to it. In so far as Prussia was concerned, the secularization which had been a part of the Treaty of Westphalia had very consid- erably strengthened the power of Brandenburg, and the great- ness of this State in the past accordingly rested upon the very principle which was now being promulgated by the Revolution, Moreover, the House of Brandenburg was just then interested in seeing indemnified on German soil the ejected hereditary Stadtholder of Holland, who was a relative. Austria, on the other hand, in demanding for herself in the Treaty of Campo Formio an ecclesiastical principality, — the Archbishopric of Salzburg, — had already conceded to France the right to assist her in acquiring it.* Later, in the Treaty of Lun^ville, a stipula- tion was made to the effect that the Grand Duke of Tuscany also was to receive compensation in Germany for his loss of tenitory, for which purpose Salzburg was again set aside with Berchtesgaden. The fact was that in Vienna the interests of Austria outweighed those of the German Empire, as had once before been the case, under Joseph H., when the scheme had the Empire is to be a.scribed directly to Sieves is a question which -will be more closely examined later. * Article 5. The French Republic will use its good offices to enable His Majesty the Emperor to acquire for Germany the Archbishopric of Salzburg, etc. 26o The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 arisen for the general secularization of the ecclesiastical princi- palities of Germany. Consequently neither of the great Ger- man powers was opposed on principle to this solution of the problem — a fact of decisive importance. Another of equal weight was that the question had ceased to be such as to in- volve Germany alone. By this policy of assigning German territory to princes not themselves German, — such astheStadt- holder of Holland and the Grand Duke of Tuscany, — and record- ing the agreements in international treaties, German questions of indemnification had become the common concern of all Eu- rope. It is therefore not surprising that France, which had won for herself the first place among the nations, should assume in this case the predominant part, and that the question should be decided, not at the Imperial Diet at Ratisbon,but at theTui- leries. The various German dynasties at once hastened to open direct negotiations with the First Consul. Then followed a scene of courting and enlisting the good-will of Talleyrand and his officials, a buying and selling of favour and protection, a disgraceful driving of bargains in which the glory of the Empire and honour of the nation were sacrificed on account of a few scraps of land. At length, on the 20th of May, 1802, a separate treaty was concluded between France and Wiirtemberg by which the latter was promised a considerable increase of terri- tory from ecclesiastical sources; the House of Wiirtemberg being related to that of Russia, it was hoped that the assent of Alexander I. would thus be obtained to the whole transaction. Three days later followed a similar treaty with Prussia which awarded likewise to Frederick William III. extensive "indem- nification" taken from Church possessions.* On the 24th of the same month a treaty with Bavaria was signed at Paris, which was soon followed by settlements with Baden and Hesse. Upon the strength of these agreements there was devised in Paris a comprehensive scheme of general secularization which left undisturbed only the single Archbishopric of Mainz. To * The ecclesiastical territ()ri(>s named in this treaty are Ilildesheim, Paderborn, Eichsfeld, Essen, Werden, and Quedlinburg, all of which were already mentioned as the share of Prussia in Sieyds' project of 1795. ^Et. 33] The German Empire Undermined 261 this on June 3d, 1802, Napoleon obtained Russia's consent with her promise to assist France in securing its adoption at the Imperial Diet at Ratisbon. Austria had purposely been kept in ignorance of these pro- ceedings. Her ambassador at Paris first learned through the "Moniteur " of the fact of the agreement with Russia and of the scheme for indemnification. Emperor Francis protested, not because as Head of the Empire it was his duty to protect its con- stitution and honour against foreign intrusion, but because the portion of the spoils accruing to Prussia was too large and that to Austria too small. But it was in vain that his troops were sent to occupy the territory of the bishopric of Passau, which had been allotted to Bavaria. The German princes had, for once, made common cause with France, and Napoleon's categori- cal summons forced the Austrian Court to yield. Further, the Austrians were forced to accept with such grace as they could the dispositions according to which the Grand Duke received in exchange for Tuscany not only Salzburg and Berchtesgaden, but Brixen, Trient, and a portion of the bishopric of Eichstadt as well, while, as a return for these losses, the Austrians were compelled by a treaty with France dated December 26th, 1802, to confirm all the changes made in Upper Italy. Meanwhile the Diet at Ratisbon had been brought to accept the scheme for indemni- fication presented by France and Russia; it was ratified Feb- ruary 25th, 1803, by formal enactment. The temporal power of the German princes of the Church had ceased to exist; the founda- tions upon which rested the ancient constitution of the Empire had been demolished. Thus had the nations beyond the Rhine also been made to feel Napoleon's political power, while the small neighbouring Ger- man States, particularly those in the south, had been brought into a certain attitude of dependence toward his government. In the diplomatic campaign which he had been carrying on against Aastria Napoleon had come off victorious at every point; the power on the Danube had been completely isolated, its conclu- sive defeat being marked by the treaty of December, 1802. If his persecution of the conquered power now ceased, the cause lay 262 The Last Years of the Consulate II802 solely in the fact of new developments in another quarter demand- ing his attention. The treaty with England signed at Amiens had, it is true, brought about a condition of affairs making it possible for arms to be cast aside for a moment, but it had given no promise of lasting peace. There were voices, as has before been observed, raised in the British Parliament emphatically denouncing the abandonment of Italy to Napoleon, thereby giving him the mas- tery over the Continent. While the preUminaries of peace of October, 1801, were greeted with rejoicing by the English people exhausted by the long and expensive war, the ratification of the same in March, 1802, met with far less enthusiasm. And for good reason ; for the expectations of the English of being able to make use of the cessation of hostiUties for the benefit of their com- merce proved by the end of a few months to be but an illusion. Napoleon had not only refused to accede to the renewal of the Treaty of Commerce of 1786, but, in order to protect French in- dustry, by the imposition of high duties he had practically closed to English goods the ports of France and of her dependent States, Italy and Holland. Thus it was that manufacturers and merchants on the British side of the Channel had come to desire war, which would at least be less prejudicial to their interests than this peace which was working their ruin. And what if the First Consul were to be successful in extending still further the French federative system, thereby restricting to a yet greater degree England's commercial sphere on the Continent? In 1798 he had menaced her colonial existence with his Egyptian expedition, and now his attitude was equally threatening toward her industries. And now, as had then been the case, it was a matter of life or death to the island nation. Further extension on the part of her rival must be prevented and her utmost endeavours put forth to lessen the ascendency of France. Napoleon was himself convinced of the probability of a rup- ture with England, to judge at least ])y what he said to the Austrian ambassador as early as May, 1802; but so absolute did he take to be England's need of peace, since she had intervened iEi. ;«] Napoleon's Colonial Policy 263 in favour of neither Italy nor Holland when the treaty \a as drawn up, that he counted nevertheless upon a somewhat longer season of peace in that quarter. In any case he began to put into oper- ation a comprehensive economic experiment which could suc- ceed only under that supposition. This was nothing else than a vast colonial scheme which, while it was to have San Domingo as its principal base, was also to include the Antilles and the American territory of Louisiana, which had been ceded to France by Spain. Obstacles to this plan presented themselves on both sides of the Atlantic. At the time of the last war a remarkably intelligent negro, on the island of San Domingo, Toussaint Louverture by name, had distinguished himself in his leadership of the negroes, op- posing so determined a resistance to the Enghsh that they had been obliged to withdraw. He had then assumed authority and founded a severe but excellent government. According to the Constitution with which he provided the island, the suzerainty of France was to be maintained as strictly nominal, while he him- self, as president for life, should rule independently. (Evidently Napoleon had already made disciples.) Under this government San Domingo flourished. Its coloured inhabitants, though freed from slavery, were nevertheless kept at work by the authority of their president; commerce released from restriction, brought rich returns to the country. But all this was utterly irreconcil- able with the colonial scheme which Napoleon was meditating and of which Talleyrand was perhaps the instigator. The Consti- tution was accorduigly rejected by the First Consul, who sent his brother-in-law, Leclerc, with an army of 25,000 men to the island to re-establish its commercial dependence upon France. This army, it may incidentally be remarked, which was assigned by Napoleon to operate at such a distance in a noxious climate, was selected, doubtless not without design, from those bodies of troops which had been under the command of Moreau in the recent war and who were among the most faithful adherents of his cause and of the republican system. Leclerc, like Richepanse, who had been sent to Martinique, was under orders to re-estabUsh slavery among the negroes; Toussaint, at the head of his people. 264 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 resisted, and it was only at the expense of extraordinary courage and perseverance on the part of the French that he was at length forced to surrender on condition of amnesty to himself and his followers. But the expedition proved nevertheless a failure. Every day hundreds of brave soldiers were carried off by yellow fever, so that in July, 1802, after seven months upon the island; Leclerc had only 8000 men left under his command. He feared a new onslaught on the part of Toussaint, who had retained his rank as general, and recommended to Napoleon that the redoubt- able leader of the San Domingans be summoned to France and there kept in confinement. This was done, and toward the close of March, 1803, Toussaint ended his days in the fortress of Joux, a victim to the harsh climate and to ill treatment by his custodians. But on the other side of the ocean Leclerc also died, smitten by yellow fever, nor, in spite of considerable reinforce- ments, was his successor able to re-establish French supremacy in the island, so that before the end of the year 1803 the French were obliged to abandon it altogether. The second of the bases of operation in Napoleon's colonial scheme came, likewise, to naught, for the United States of America entered a threatening protest against the expansion of French influence in Louisiana. And now, in addition, peace with England was on the point of rup- ture earlier than Napoleon had counted upon, robbing his scheme of that most essential consideration, safety of traffic upon the ^ea. During the course of the year 1802, while France was engaged in the San Domingo enterprise, public opinion in England had taken a more and more pronounced attitude against France, and so marked had this feeling become that finally even the peace- loving ministry of Addington was compelled to yield to the pres- sure. The stipulations of the Treaty of Amiens had not yet all been fulfilled ; an important pledge yet remained in British keep- ing — the island of Malta, that highly-prized halting-place on the route to India. In view of the encroachments of France upon the Continent England had delayed tlie fulfilment of her com- pact to restore the island to the Knights of St. John, and now rather regarded its possession as a desirable compensation for iEr. 33] Threatening England 265 Napoleon's expansion. The situation was aggravated by the scathing attacks of EngUsh newspapers upon the ruler of France, and by the fact that when he demanded a cessation of this journalistic persecution, the London government waived respon- sibiUty, referring him to the legalized freedom of the press in Eng- land. It was a time of suspense in which the hostiUty of feeling on both sides increased from day to day. But Napoleon did not long remain undecided. His next step was to threaten. Should this foreign power be intimidated by threats he would derive this advantage, that his prestige in France and in Europe would be enhanced by just so much ; but in case England really meant war, the colonial scheme must of course be given up, in which case, however, there opened up the alluring prospect — since England would not remain without alHes — of a profitable war upon the Continent, a prospect which, as has been seen, was continually kept in mind by the First Consul.* A pretext was found in the autumn of 1802, when England made complaint of a violation of the neutrality of Switzerland through the entry into that country of the French army under Ney. Hereupon Napoleon dictated to his Minister of Foreign Affairs instructions for the guidance of the French amba.ssador. Otto, in London, and these reveal in the germ his entire future policy. In regard to Switzerland, the matter was to be con- sidered closed. The establishment of British hirelings in the Alps would not be tolerated by him. In case war were threatened upon the further side of the Channel the question would arise of what sort it was to be. A mere naval warfare would be of little advantage to England on account of the paucity of spoils. It would, it is true, blockade the French ports, but it would at the same time bring about a counter blockade, since, upon the outbreak of hostilities, all the coast from Hanover to Taranto would be guarded by French troops. And what if the First Consul were to assemble the fiat-boats of Flanders and Holland, thus providing means of transport for a hundred * Napoleon had already announced to the Austrian ambassador in May, 1802, that a rupture with England would necessarily involve war upon the Continent. 266 The Last Years of the Consulate [I802 thousand men with which to keep England in a perpetual state of alarm over an always possible, and indeed even probable, invasion? If, on the other hand, the London Cabinet should conclude to rekindle war on the Continent, Napoleon would thereby simply be compelled to proceed to the conquest of all Europe. "The First Consul is but thirty-three years of age," concludes this document, " up to this time he has destroyed none but states of secondary rank. Who knows, if he were forced to it, what length of time he would require to change once more the face of Europe and to resuscitate the Western Empire ? " (Octo- ber 23d, 1802.) It was but a feeble echo of this strain which was transmitted by the ambassador in London, and, for the time being, peace was preserved. Talleyrand and the other ministers as well as Na- poleon's brothers were unreservedly in favour of the avoidance of open warfare. The Consul alone, irritated by the continued refusal to evacuate Malta and the defiant tone of the English press, allowed himself to be impelled to war. He now definitely gave up his colonial plans and himself sought to precipitate matters. He ordered copied in the Moniteur a report made by General Sebastiani, whom he had sent on a secret mission to Egypt. This report was to the effect that the British had failed as yet to evacuate Alexandria; also that, while existing hostili- ties continued there between the Turks and Mamelukes, 6000 French soldiers would be sufficient to reconquer the country. If this report was published with a view to exasperating Eng- land, no doubt could remain as to its having accomplished its purpose.* The prospect of seeing the route to India again im- perilled was intolerable to the English, and any thought of re- nouncing the possession of Malta was from now on out of the question with them. But Napoleon carried matters yet further. In the annual * Sebastiani himself bears witness that this was the intention, for he recounts somewhat later that after his report had been read the Consul exclaimed; "Well, we shall see whether that is not enough to drive John Bull to fight. As for me, I have no dread of war." (M6moires de Lucien, II 165.) Mt. 331 The Beginning of Hostilities 267 report which he submitted to the legislative body hi February, 1803, the subject discussed was the conflict between the two parties into which the English were divided, those in favour of peace as opposed to those who were hostile to France. A half -million of soldiers, said he, must be kept in readiness by France against the possibility of victory to the second of these parties. England alone, however, — so the report went on, — was not sufficient to cope with France. British national pride was touched to the quick by this new insult. George III. promptly offered an ultimatvuii requiring, among other things, the indemnification of the King of Sardinia and the evacuation of Holland and Switzerland on the part of France. These terms w^ere rejected. Toward the middle of ^lay, 1803, the ambassa- dors of both countries were recalled. War w^as declared. Hostilities had meanwhile already begun. For weeks before that time England had given chase to all French merchantmen who had ventured out relying upon peace, and Napoleon made returns by putting under arrest all such Englishmen as were living in France. Soon after British squadrons were sent to blockade the French ports, whereupon Napoleon began to carry out to the letter the plan of campaign which he had mapped out in his instructions to Otto. It consisted, as has been seen, chiefly in three acts : the first being to blockade England in her turn by making inaccessible to her ships the coast of the Con- tinent "from Hanover to Taranto," all of which should be guarded by French troops; the second step was to threaten an invasion by the gathering of an expeditionary" army on the Channel; and third, in case the British power should be success- ful in kindling a war on the Continent in which her allies should be opposed to France, it was his purpose to make the Con- tinent tributary to himself as far as the weapons of France could be made to carry. This programme was further accen- tuated by the order now issued by the Consul reviving the cele- l^Tation of the birthday of the Maid of Orleans for the sake of nourishing the spirit of jingoism toward the ancient enemy of France. Before the month of May had expired a French army corps 268 The Last Years of the Consulate [i803 was marched into Hanover, which territory belonged to the King of England, and the troops of the Elector without much show of resistance capitulated. By means of this occu- pation the ships of the enemy were debarred from the mouths of the Weser and Elbe rivers, thus closing to British trade the most important avenues of communication with Northern Germany. The consequences soon became evident. "You have dealt England a fatal blow," writes Napoleon to General Mortier; "many houses have become bankrupt." He admon- ishes him to be personally watchful to prevent any possible British consignment of merchandise finding entrance. Soon after this, in June, a second army corps under command of Gouvion Saint-Cyr penetrated into the kingdom of Naples and, contrary to the terms of the treaty, occupied the ports of Taranto, Brindisi, and Otranto. The two extremes of the cordon being thus made secure, all that remained between was now closely and inseparably attached to the policy of France. First in turn came the Ba- tavian Republic. It was compelled by treaty to provide sus- tenance for French troops to the number of 18,000 men and to hold in readiness for service a force of 16,000; in addi- tion, five ships of the line and a hundred sloops carrying cannon were to be furnished for the naval war. In return Napoleon guaranteed to the republic the integrity of its territory, and prom- ised to restore to it any colonies which might be lost during the course of the war and (circumstances permitting) with the addition of Ceylon (June 25th, 1803). Switzerland was the next to pledge herself in favour of France. An offensive and defensive alliance with her powerful neighbour imposed upon her the obligation to raise an army of 16,000 men, which was to be increased to 28,000 in case France were attacked; that is to say, that a large proportion of the military force of the nation was put at the service of a totally foreign interest. Finally Spain and Portugal also were induced to enter the league. With Spain it had become a question of no slight significance. When, in the spring of 1803, Napoleon (l(>finitely renounced his colonial enterprise, he came to the conclusion that Louisiana, which liad Mt. 34] Napoleon Sells Louisiana 269 been acquired from Charles IV., would prove to him nothing but a burden. The territory was coveted by the United States, and Napoleon now offered to sell it to that country. The offer was accepted, and for the sum of 80,000,000 francs Louisiana became a part of the United States. But Spain in her treaties with France had reserved to her- self the privilege of reclaiming Louisiana, and Napoleon's vio- lation of the agreement aroused such intense excitement at Madrid that Godoy, the Prince of Peace, considered for a time the advisability of opposing resistance to this neighbour, espe- cially in view of the fact that, instead of the 25 ships and 28,000 men which the Court of Madrid had agreed in 1796 to hold in readiness for the service of France in the event of war, the Consul now demanded vast subsidies of money, 6,000,000 francs a month, enforcing his requisition by means of an army gathered at Bordeaux. But Bonaparte would accept of no gainsaying. He made complaints to the king concerning the Prince of Peace, not even forbearing to make allusion to the scandalous relations existing between the latter and the queen. The expedient proved effectual. The minister humbled himself, and on October 19th, 1803, the treaty was concluded according to the wishes of Na- poleon. Spain was thus ranged among the enemies of England and forced to undergo the experience of having war declared against her by the British Cabinet in the year 1804. Naturally Portugal could not remain unaffected by all that was thus taking place, and she was compelled to purchase neutrality by the payment to France of 1,000,000 francs a month. Li February, 1804, Genoa also was put under obligation to furnish 6000 sailors to her powerful neighbour for use in his naval warfare. While the Consul in these ways prepared the "blockade" of England, he was assembling on the coast of the Channel near Boulogne an imposing army, which he thoroughly equipped and exercised — whether as mere demonstration or with a view to actual occasion — in what was requisite to accomplish with success the transit across the Chaimel. Flat transport-boats were built in great number, and the field-soldiers practised in 270 The Last Years of the Consulate [1803 the duties of the sailor. It was a gigantic apparatus which was here displayed for the consternation of John Bull. But it was not to be brought immediately into action. The enemy from without was, unfortunately for him, not the only one against which Napoleon had to do battle. In the interior of the country arose another enemy which was not to be subdued with army and navy. Against this foe he now turned. In this case also he was destined to conquer, and, with his genius for making everything contribute to his end, his prostrate antagonist was made to serve but as a stepping-stone to new greatness. After the death-blow had been dealt to the Jacobin party in the decree of proscription issued in 1801, there remained but two political factions who followed with irreconcilable vindictiveness the existing system of personal government and its representa- tive: there were, first, the Moderate Republicans, the citizens of the 13th Vendemiaire, who recognized General Moreau as their leader; and, second, the Ultra-Royalists who had been driven out of the country and who regarded the capitulation of Vendue in 1800 as only a truce which they were determined to disregard at the first favourable opportunity. The last-named had their headquarters in England, their head being Charles d'Artois, the brother of the executed monarch, Louis XVI., while among their most active agents were Pichegru and Dumouriez. These two parties had remained quiescent during the continuance of peace, but, now that war had again broken out, they had imbibed fresh hope. There even arose at this time a kind of coalition between them, although this was only of an outward character. Pichegru went to l*aris and mad(^ advances to Moreau. To the latter, who was indispensabk; to the accomplishment of their purpose, was to be accorded a temporary position of power, that he might then play the part of the English General Monk and prepare for the Bourbons a way of return to their native land. The conspiracy was based upon the supposition that it was going to be possible to do away with Napoleon. This time he was to be more surely dealt with than had been the case on that Christmas evening in the rue Saint-Nicaise when the infernal machine failed to accom- plish its purpose. To carry out this plan for assassination, Mt. 34] The Royalist Plot 27 1 Georges Cadoudal, a leader among the Veiidcaiis, came secretly to Paris and put himself there at the head of trusted partisans whom the many years of civil war had transformed into veritable political bandits. The plan was for a sufficient number of them openly to assail the First Consul when he drove through the streets surrounded by his body-guard, to seize him and — so it was asserted in the " Moniteur " — to kill him and, with his death, overthrow the government. Certain English ministers were initiated into the plan, and sanctioned it at least in so far as it went toward bringing about the dowTifall of their hated enemy.* But Napoleon received warning in time to avert the threatening danger. His London agents had revealed the plot to him before any one of the conspirators had so much as set foot upon French soil. One by one, then, as they reached the country they were put under arrest and the whole extent of the conspiracy ascer- tained, though not without application of coercive measures. Moreau, also, was taken into custody. At the end of a pro- longed trial Cadoudal, with a number of his assistants, was sen- tenced and shot; Pichegru was discovered strangled in his prison cell; Moreau, whose collusion with Pichegru could be proven, — though there was no evidence of any understanding with Cadou- dal, — was sentenced to two years' imprisonment, but, though judgment had already been pronounced. Napoleon insisted upon a revision of the case, and the penalty was changed to banish- ment to America. But the essential point lay in the fact that the cause of the Bourbons was apparently compromised, and that Moreau, the only dangerous rival to the First Consul, lost his influence in the army as a consequence of his connection, however slight, with the conspirators, while Napoleon's popu- larity with the non-partisan mass of the people was onl)^ the further increased by the danger which had threatened him. But he himself undid no small part of this favourable im- pression through an act which defies all attempt at justification. Cadoudal had asserted during the course of his trial that the royal princes of France were cognizant of the projected assault, and * On the character and degree of the complicity of the English govern- ment see Rose, " Life of Napoleon I.," I. 416-17. — B. 272 The Last Years of the Consulate [i804 that they had been intending to be present when it was perpe- trated. Artois was the person thus denoted, he having as a mat- ter of fact been party to the scheme with the declared intention of being present in Paris. From this of com^se it was clear that certain members of the House of Bourbon were abettors to the crime; but this was not true of all, not, for instance, of the Con- des, who disapproved of the conspiracy and had refused all par- ticipation in it. To this branch of the Bourbons belonged the young Prince d'Enghien, the last scion of his line. Love for his cousin, Charlotte de Rohan, had drawn him to Ettenheim in the grand duchy of Baden, which modest town still belonged to the diocese of the Cardinal de Rohan and had served as residence for him and his niece since he had been ejected by the Revolution from Strasburg. Here the prince was secretly married to the lady of his choice, and here he lived upon a pension granted to him by England, it being his desire, now that war was about to begin, to show his gratitude either by fighting in the ranks of the English or by doing service upon the Continent in some such way as by organizing a corps of volunteers from among the discon- tented elements always to be met with in Alsace and neighbour- ing garrisons. His offer was, however, refused by the British government, and Enghien had to content himself with remain- ing inactive in his exile. It so chanced that England was just at this time secretly sending out agents into Switzerland as well as into Southern Germany, in the effort to stir up feeling against France, and of these machinations exaggerated reports were car- ried to Paris. One of these rumours now associated the name of the young prince with these emissaries, among whom it was claimed that the feared and hated emigre Dumouricz had been discovered. From this Napoleon concluded that Enghien also could not be entirely unconcerned in the conspiracy against his person, and conceived the idea of taking him into custody, since he had been unable to get possession of the Comte d' Artois. It was of little consequence to Napoleon that, in order to carry out this scheme, it would be necessary to invade foreign territory and violate the law of nations. On the 15th of March General Ordener crossed the Rhine with a few hundred dragoons, laid JET.B4] The Due d'Enghien 273 hold of the prince, who was just making ready to start on a hunt- ing excursion, and carried him off to Strasburg, whence he was at once conducted to Paris by a competcn4: escort. While he was yet on the way the ultimate fate of the prisoner was being deliberated upon in privy council. Napoleon ex- pressed the opinion that he should be tried before a court-mar- tial; Cambac<5res advised against this course, while Lebrun, when questioned, made an evasive reply; Talleyrand and Fouch6, however, counselled strongly in its favour, and the First Consul accordingly decided upon it, although there was no difficulty in convincing himself from the prince's papers that he stood in no sort of relationship to the conspirators, while the hated "Du- mouriez" turned out to be a person of verj^ small consequence by the name of "Thumery." These revelations did not, how- ever, change Napoleon's decision, for he was determined upon sacrificing one of the Bourbons for the sake of t peared to be a matter of course, — but as to whether the imperial dignity should be made hereditary in his family, there were but two thousand five hundred "noes" against three million five hundred "ayes." * France had thus declared itself in favour of the hereditabihty and permanence of the Revolutionary Monarchy with all its consequences. Now the most momentous of these conse- quences was war. In the constitution of the year 1804 the most striking feature is the distinction made between "Empire" * These were the figures given in the " Moniteur." A detail not ^^-ithout interest is the fact that from among two hundred Paris lawj-ers only three voted "yes." 282 The Last Years of the Consulate [1804 and "Etat" (Empire and State), \^^lat constituted the State of France was well recognized; the Revolution had marked out its boundaries with the Alps, the Rhine, and the Pyrenees. But what was the extent of the Napoleonic Empire? Where were its boundaries? Had it, indeed, any? This uncertainty was an earnest of war instead of that peace which was so ardently desired. As long as the Empire shall last it will contmue to be at war, and when it ceases to be vic- torious, it wiU disappear. Wlien the time came for selecting the design for the new seal of state the committee in charge proposed as a heraldic device a "lion in repose." These words Napoleon crossed off with heavy strokes and scrawled hastily above them: "an eagle in flight." i CHAPTER XI THE WAR OF 1805 But a few weeks after his elevation to the imperial dignity Napoleon betook himself to the camp at Boulogne,, there to distribute crosses of the Legion of Honour to officers and soldiers who had distinguished themselves in the recent war. The same insignia were used in decorating the common soldier as the officer who commanded him, a most remarkably judicious measure, observing the Revolutionary principle of equaUty and at the same time flattering the ambition of the lowUest. To appreciate the pride which was engendered by this popular decoration, held as it was in respect by the whole nation, one should read the narrative of Captain Coignet, who received the cross as a simple trooper. From henceforth this feeling of pride crowded out every other sentiment in the army. To the enthusiasm for liberty which had animated the soldiers of Revolutionary times now succeeded the love of glory and the striving to distinguish oneself and to be distinguished. The commanders, Ukewise, became as amenable to Napoleon's will as were the rank and file of the army. Now was the time when he first spoke to them of the ' ' Empire of Europe " of which the various countries were to fall to his generals as fiefs, bringing before their eyes glorious prospects of magnificence and riches. It depended only upon them whether they would help him and themselves to obtain all this. And they needed no further urging. It was thus that the republican army became impe- riaUzed, and faithful to the spirit of imperialism does it remain as long as a single ray of glory rests upon the "Little Corporal." Said Joseph Bonaparte at this time, speaking to the Pnissian ambassador: "It is this great train of forces, always kept in the hope of advancing at the sound of his voice and in his footsteps 2S3 284 The War of 1805 [1804 to the acquisition of fresh laurels and further riches, which constitutes the real power and security of my brother." The army on the northern coast, one of the finest and best ever at Napoleon's disposal, was placed under the command of Marshals Bemadotte (who occupied Hanover), Ney, Soult, Davout, Augereau and the General of Division Marmont. The infantry was unceasingly practised in sea-service on the fiat- boats, and everything appeared to indicate that England was to be made to suffer in her own territory for the serious losses which she had inflicted, since the reopening of hostilities, upon the commerce of France and Holland and their colonies. There were officers in the army who regarded the enterprise as ex- tremely hazardous, while others, on the contrary, considered it practicable; the latter, according to Marmont, constituting the greater number. The crucial question, however, yet re- mains as to whether Napoleon planned actually to make the expedition across the Channel, or whether, in accordance with the instructions forwarded to Otto in October, 1802, it was his intention merely to keep England "in constant fear" of an in- vasion. The latter presumption is not lacking in support of a weighty character. It has already been seen how gladly he avoided this enterprise in 1798 on account of the innumerable difficulties involved. These difficulties were doubtless yet before his eyes. He said on one occasion to his brother Joseph that he had no thought of conducting the expedition in person, but was intending to entrust it to Ney, who was, moreover, not to be sent to England, but to Ireland. The most complete un- certainty prevails in his letters concerning the time which would be required for making the passage. When Fulton sub- mitted to him his project for a steamboat which would have made him indcpondont of wind and weather and assured his superiority to the English upon the sea, their own element, his response was simply to dismiss the inventor as a "charlatan" without investigation of the matter. Finally he asserted in later years that there had never been any serious intention of making the invasion. Further, the observations noted down by keen-sighted persons of his time — Madame de llemusat, Miot ^T. 33] The Projected Invasion of England 285 de Melito, General Hulot, and the diplomatists Lucchesini and Mettemich — contain more than one passage indicating doubt as to whether this project, announced with so much rhetorical pomp and devised with all possible care, ever had been in- tended for actual execution. In any case the outcome of it was that action was postponed from the autumn of 1803 to the spring of 1804, and then again to the following autumn, being destined even then to non-fulfilment.* But even thus a double purpose had been accomplished. In the first place the steps taken had been really successful in arousing the fears of the English. An army of volunteers had been organized and drilled at great expense for a war of defence; the coast was fortified and a large part of the British fleet held inactive in the Channel. In the second place it had been pos- sible for Napoleon, under pretext of this invasion, to assemble a powerful army which might, if occasion offered, be put to use on the Continent. In January, 1805, at a session of the Council of State in which the budget was under discussion the Emperor made the following statement: "For two years France has been making the greatest sacrifices which could be asked of her, and she has borne up under them. A general war upon the Continent would demand no more. I have the strongest army, the most complete military organization, and I am now placed just as I should need to be if war were to break out on the Continent. But in order, in times of peace, to be able to assemble such forces, — to have 20,000 artillery horses and entire baggage trains, — some pretext must be found for creating and assembling them without allowing the Continental powers to take alarm. Such a pretext was furnished by this projected invasion of Eng- land. I am well aware that to maintain all these artillery horses in time of peace is to throw thirty millions to the dogs ; but to- day I have twenty days advantage of all my enemies, and I * Lucchesini, for instance, writes, May 17th, 1804: "I cannot often enough repeat the statement that, with circumstances as they at present are, the secret desire of the First Consul is for a Continental war. It re- lieves his honour from being compromised by all the ado that has been made in announcing this invasion. 286 The War of 1805 [1803 could be a month in the field before Austria would have bought artillery horses. I should not have been able to say this to you two years ago, and yet that was even then my sole aim." * Such, then, were the military preparations made for the Con- tinental war so long planned by Napoleon, but the diplomatic proceedings have yet to be considered. Napoleon's first poUtical steps taken after the outbreak of hostilities with England were distinctly offensive in nature. The occupation of the German Electorate of Hanover implied at bottom a violation of peace with the German Empire, and, had that Empire not been at the point of dissolution, this act would in itself have sufficed to bring about open warfare. But under these circumstances the head of the German Empire had become indifferent to such attacks as were not aimed directly at Austria. In Prussia, to be sure, the Minister, Haugwitz, had advised that the Prussian troops forestall the French in the occupation of Hanover, but the other councillors of the cabinet and Queen Louise were op- posed to this step, while Frederick William III. himself declared that not until a Prussian subject had been killed on Prussian soil would he depart from his neutrahty. There was indeed Btill a German Empire, but a German policy had long ceased to exist. But the occupation of Naples was destined to entail more serious consequences than that of Hanover. This affected Russia, and that in more than one respect. In the first place the Consul had pledged himself, in the secret treaty of October 11th, 1801, to leave unmolested the kingdom of Queen Caroline, and this agreement he had now violated. In the second place the occu- pation of Taranto put a check not only upon the English on the islanrl of Malta, but also upon the Russian troops on the island of Corfu, where they had been stationed since the war of 1799. Finally, the French position on the Adriatic was of special signi- ficance, since it favoured the plans which Napoleon cherished in regard to the Orient, these being diametrically opposed to those of the Empire of the Czars. And here again the policy was * Miot de Melito, who heard the Emperor make this speech, quotes the above in his M^moires (II. 258). .Et. 34] Napoleon and Russia 287 nothing else than the continuance^ of that of tlie Director)', whose secret alliances with the factious elements of the Balkan Peninsula were instrumental in precipitating the last war with Russia. Already the diplomatists were making announcement in their reports of Napoleon's designs in regard to the Morea, nor were they mistaken hi their surmises, for we have, for in- stance, his letter of February 21st, 1803, to Decrds, the Minister of the Navy, in which he commissions the latter to fit out a ship ■with arms and munitions for the rebellious SuUots as well as for the inhabitants of the Peloponnesus who were at war with the Turks. At Ragusa, whose Senate had established relations with Bonaparte during the course of the campaign in Italy and had since remained entirely devoted to him, the French Consul, Bruyere, had been commissioned to bribe the Bishop of Monte- negro to deliver into the hands of the French the mountains and the Gulf of Cattaro, a scheme which was discovered by Austria in June, 1803, and reported at St. Petersburg. There Alexander had resumed the policy of Catharine II. which aimed not only to conquer Constantinople, but had other aspirations equally high, her ambition having been to establish an ascendant position on the Mediterranean. The Czar was much offended at these machinations of Napoleon's, and the effects soon became appar- ent. The Consul had no wish to break wdth the Czar; on the contrary, he had counted from the outset upon Alexander's pre- serving a neutral attitude and had chosen him as arbiter in his quarrel with England. But the Czar, wishing to remam en- tirely unhampered, had refused that office and had instead proffered his services as mediator. Yet the conditions which he proposed at Paris and London in August, 1803, already clearly indicate a prejudice on his part against France. He did indeed demand that England should evacuate ]\Ialta, in exchange for which that country should receive the island of Lampcdusa, but on the other hand, according to his proposition, France was at the same time to evacuate Hanover, Switzerland, and Upper and Lower Italy, retaining only Piedmont, for which the French were, however, at last to indemnify the former king. Such a programme was clearly designed with a view to resistance against 288 The War of 1805 [1804 the encroachments of Napoleon. He refused the acceptance of these terms, whereupon Markoff, the Russian ambassador, left Paris. The rupture between the two powers had taken place.* At the first sign of troubled relations with France, Russia had taken steps toward winning Austria and Prussia to her cause, but at first without success. Prussia remained neutral for reasons already given, and it was not until the following year, May 24th, 1804, that she consented to form a defensive aUiance with the Czar, to be in force only in case Napoleon should at- tempt to extend his power beyond Hanover or directly attack Prussia, Frederick William then directed his efforts in Paris to prevent either of these contingencies, and he received satis- factory assurances there, Jime 1st, 1804. Austria, on the other hand, had been too much weakened by the recent war to think so soon of taking up arms again. Although Russia's change of policy was welcomed with lively satisfaction in Vienna, the Austrians were determined not to be led into assuming an offensive attitude toward France, but were, on the contrary, ready to make advances toward Napoleon and to yield more than he required in order to make certain of leaving him no pretext for hostile action. At the very opening of hos- tilities between England and France Francis II. had closed his ports to ships of both nations, a measure particularly disadvan- tageous to the English. To Madame de Stael, the enemy of * Although the real cause of the breach has for years been known, one nevertheless frequently meets in the most recent books with the assertion that the animosity of Alexander I. toward the Corsican was due to his indignation at the execution of Enghien. Now in the Memoirs just published of Prince Adam Czartoryski, Russian Minister of Foreign Affairs in the year 1804, there is a document clearly setting forth Russia's Oriental policy of that time: "The body of the territory of Turkey in Europe should be divided into small states with local governments all united in a federation over which Russia might be assured of decisive and legal influence through the title of Emperor or Protector of the Slavs and of the Orient which should be conferred upon His Imperial Majesty. . . . Austria, in case it should be necessary to procure her assent, might be appeased with Croatia, a part of Bosnia and Wallachia, Belgrade, Ragusa, etc. Russia would have Moldavia, Cattaro, Corfu, and, above all, Constantinople and the Dardanelles with the neighbouring ports, giving us the ascendency there." ^T. 35] The Creation of the Empire of Austria 289 Napoleon, was refused permission to reside in Austria. The same precaution was taken in respect to the Due d'Enghien, who, in the winter of 1803—4, wished to travel to England by way of Vienna. Books were forbidden in which the ruler of France was attacked. The wearing of Bourbon orders was prohibited to French 6migr^s, and approach within a limit of fifty miles of the French and Swiss boundaries was interdicted to them. When the princes of South Germany had begun to incor- porate the knights of the Empire and the latter sought protec- tion of Austria and actually obtained a re-enforcement of Imperial troops on the Austrian frontier France categorically demanded the abrogation of that measure, and to this the Cabi- net of Vienna at once acceded. Again, when the territory of the German Empire was trespassed upon in the arrest of Enghien. the Emperor Francis, at the instigation of Russia, made at first some feeble remonstrance, but, when it was learned in \''ienna that the execution of the Prince had taken place, the court con- tented itself with sapng that public policy sometimes imposed "harsh necessities," and declared the affair to be one in which France alone was concerned. Even Napoleon's title of Em- peror was cheerfully acknowledged, though on condition that Napoleon should hi return sanction the Empire of Austria, newly constituted August 10th, 1804, pronounce it upon an equality with France, and yield precedence to Emperor Francis II. as head of the German Empire. After some hesitation Napoleon consented to these terms. No one knew as well as he for how short a time existence was yet to be vouchsafed to the German Empire, and, as if to show how small a value was to be attached to this formal concession, he betook himself just at this time — September, 1804 — by way of Belgium to Aix-la-Chapelle, to hold court in the old imperial palace of Charlemagne among his Gennan subjects and to receive their homage. Did it not seem like an insult to Austria to demand of her sovereign, who yet wore the crown of the Carolingians, that the document in which he recognized the new French Empire should be sent to precisely this place? But Austria was ready to make this con- cession also for the sake of peace, and promptly at the time 290 The War of 1805 [ism appointed her ambassador made his appearance at Aix-la- Chapclle. Against such comphance all the pressure which could be brought to bear by Russia and England was futile. It was in vain that Friedrich Gentz again called attention to the revo- lutionary and subjugating character of French policy and showed that the Empire itself was nothing but the Revolution again under another form. For, said he. it was not in oppo- sition to the revolutionary powers that Napoleon had reached his new dignity, but thanks alone to their aid. He had not commissioned the army to proclaim him Emperor, but had fomided his elevation upon the popular sovereignty of the Revolution, so that it was nothing else than giving sanction to the Revolution to accord recognition to the new Empire. The most determined resistance must be opposed to it, and, above all, Austria and Prussia must stand and act together. But to this view of matters the authorities in Vienna could not, for the time being, be aroused. They would be content if France only did not interfere with interests specifically Austrian. The occu- pation of Hanover might, so far as they were concerned, make difficulties for Prussia; they had no objection to seeing their ancient adversary put to some trouble; and if Russia's schemes in regard to the Orient were deranged, that was, after all, notliing to the disadvantage of Austria. But the calm of neutrality was to be vouchsafed for a short time only to the Court of Vienna. Soon after his elevation to the Imperial throne Napoleon made direct assault upon the sphere of Austrian interests, and just at the point indeed where that power had always been most vulnerable — in Italy. Austria still owned territory in the northern part of the penin- sula, and every new encroachment there was a threat to her pos- sessions. Meanwhile the following events had taken place. In May, 1804. the new Emperor of the French had already said to the Charge d'Affaires of the Italian Republic that it was not fitting that he should at the same time be Emperor and Presi dent of a Republic, and in case he were to continue to assure to this Republic the benefit of his rule the Consulta of Milan might yET. 35] The Treaty between Austria and Russia 29 1 consider the matter and suljniit to liini its proposals. The Aus- trian ambassador had been apprised by Melzi in Milan of this new development, and the question was now debated in Vienna as to what designs Napoleon had upon Italy. It soon be- came clear that here also the aim was to establish a hereditary monarchy by means of which Italy was to be bound perma- nently and more closely than ever to France. But this was directly contrary to Austria's designs, since she was determined on no account to yield forever the hope of regaining her ascen- dency on the peninsula. In the treaty of peace with France of December; 1802, she had, it is true, recognized Napoleon's presi- dency for life, but that did not preclude the possibility of car- rying out these plans for the future, while the establishment of a Bonaparte dynasty in Italy would put a definite end to any such prospects. So thoroughly disquieted were the Aus- trian authorities over this matter that Cobenzl even declared that the future fate of the Republic was the touchstone whereby Napoleon's real intentions might be discovered; should he do away with the independence of Lombardy he would proceed to make all Italy tributary to himself, nor rest content until he had extended his sway over North and South Germany and conquered the Morea and Egypt. It was this danger which now roused Austria from her lethargy and led her to draw closer to Russia, whose support in case of need would be indispensable. November 6th, 1S04, the two powers concluded a treaty which was. however, purely defensive in character and was to come into force only in case France were to be guilty of making further encroachments whether in Germany, in Italy, or in the Orient but wliich, in case of victory to the allies, was to assure extension of the Austrian bomidary to the Adda and the return of the Archdukes to Tuscany and Modena as well as the re-estab- lishment of the kingdom of Piedmont. The question of the Papal Legations which had been so much disputed was left to agreement between the two contracting parties. To guard against sudden invasion the Austrian garrisons in Venetia were re-enfoiced on the pretext of establishing a sanitary cordon. While the eastern powers were thus arming themselves against 292 The War of 1805 [I804 further encroachments on the part of France, Pope Pius VII, was making preparations in Rome for the journey to Paris for the coronation of Napoleon. This ceremony had seemed neces- sary to the Emperor in order to lend glory and splendour in the eyes of the world to his self-imposed dignity. Only under pro- test and after prolonged controversy in regard to the form of oath to be administered had the vicar of Christ at length con- sented to undertake the arduous winter journey in order to anoint him who had but shortly before been accounted guilty of a bloody crime. His decision was doubtless influenced by two contrary emotions, fear and hope: fear of bringing upon himself by refusal the wrath of the mighty potentate, and of being thus eventually despoiled of the States of the Church; and hope of obtaining new possessions, perhaps regaining the long-desired Legations, and having Europe see how the most powerful of her rulers, the adherent of the Koran in 1798, would bend his knee before the Bishop of Rome. Nor was the Pope alone in his decision, for the majority of the College of Car- dinals, and with them the gifted Secretary of State, Consalvi, were in favour of the journey's being undertaken, and before the end of November, 1804, the Pope arrived in Paris. But here he at once became aware that every token of subordination, even to the most trifling details, was being carefully avoided by Na- poleon.* In one matter only did he yield submission. Jo- sephine, who had long been in dread of a separation, had re- vealed to the Pope that she had been united with her husband by civil marriage only and obtained from the Holy Father his promise that he would make the coronation conditional upon the previous consummation of a religious marriage. The Em- press hoped thus to bind her husband irrevocably to herself, a * Savary relates in his "M^moires " that in the drive with the Pope from Fontainebleau to the capital the Emperor even took the seat of honour in the carriage, and this assertion has been accepted by Lanfrey and repeated in his biography. Other authorities, however, make state- hients to the contrary. Consalvi in his "M^moires" makes complaint only in a general way of "little inconsiderate acts " on Napoleon's part toward his guest which were intended to remove from his mind any illu- sions which he might entertain in regard to his own superiority of position. .^^T. 35] Napoleon Crowned by the Pope 293 hope later doomed to disappointment. For the time being, however, she was in so far successful that the church marriage was solemnized in secret by Fesch on the day before the coro- nation of the Imperial couple, which took place December 2d in the cathedral of Notre-Dame. It was observed that Napo- leon kept the Pope awaiting his appearance, and that instead of allowing the pontiff to place the crown of golden laurel upon the imperial brow, as had been arranged, the candidate himself seized the diadem and set it upon his head before Pius could reach it. Not even in this formahty would he yield pre-emi- nence to any one. The Pope recognized that his hopes had been but vain. The role which he had been called upon to play in Paris had been detrimental rather than advantageous to his prestige. This indeed he did accomplish: that the French bishops, who had sworn fidelity to the Civil Constitution and were therefore classed as heretics, were brought to return to the fold of the Roman primate ; but of his other demands there was granted and assured only one, and that of very secondary importance: the re-establishment of the Gregorian Calendar ■with the understanding that, beginning with January 1st, 1806, the Revolutionary Calendar should be abandoned. The saints of the Church and their festal days again obtained recognition and honour in France. To this Napoleon had no objections. Was not his owti precursor and ideal, Charlemagne, also of their number? And now that the papal benediction had consummated the estabUshment of the Empire the Itahan question had also in its turn to come up for solution. The Itahans were well content that the Republic should remain in the form of a kingdom imder French dominion, but they protested against further pajTnent of tribute and demanded assurance that the territory of the state should not suffer diminution and that French officials should be superseded by natives of the country. It had been Napoleon's original plan to turn over this vassal kingdom to one of his brothers. Joseph or Louis, but both refused the dignity, behig unwilling to renounce their claims upon the throne of France; these two men, who but ten years before had been 294 The War of 1805 [isos at a loss where to look for daily bread, now spumed a crown. Exasperated at this unlooked-for opposition to his wishes, the Emperor determined upon himself assuming the title of King of Italy and entrusting to a viceroy the government in his stead. This post was to be occupied by Eugene Beauhamais, who, to- gether with Murat, was now raised to the rank of Prince of the Empire and Grand Dignitary of France. This project was dis- closed to a body of Italian delegates who had come to Paris, whereupon they, on March 5th, 1805, officially and formally offered the crown to Napoleon. On the following day he an- nounced to the Senate that he accepted the office, and on May 26th crowned himself in the cathedral of Milan with the iron crown of Lombardy as King of Italy. He is alleged to have pronounced at that time in a strikingly menacing tone the ancient formula: "God has bestowed it upon me; woe to him who shall lay hands upon it! " That which had been so much dreaded in Vienna had thus come to pass; for no doubt existed in the mind of any one there but that Napoleon meant by "Italy" something quite different from the territory comprised within the Hmits of the Cisalpine Republic. Henceforth he proceeded in a manner more than ever disregardful of every Austrian interest. Hardly more than a few weeks had elapsed after the coronation in Milan before he conferred upon his sisters the territories of Piombino and Lucca, and introduced into Parma and Piacenza the French code of laws, finally arousing the greatest excitement through- out Europe by taking away the independence of the Ligurian Republic through the simple process of incorporating with France the land and city of Genoa. All of these acts were in direct con- flict with the treaty of December 26th, 1802. to which Austria had been forced to submit, while the erection of the kingdom of Italy and its union with France was in addition a flagrant violation of the Peace Convention of Luneville, which had ex- pressly provided that the territories of Austria and France should remain separated from one another by intermediary states. From this time Francis II. trembled not only for the influence which he had hoped to regain in Italy, but for what .ivr. 351 The Coalition of 1805 295 had been left of his possessions there, — for Venice. And indeed tidings were soon brought from Milan to the intent that Napo- leon was planning the acquisition of that territory also, and proposed to offer Servia and Bosnia to Austria in compensa- tion. As an offset to the sanitary cordon established by Aus- tria, Napoleon posted two armies, each numbering 30,000 men, at Verona and Alessandria, and they, under the guise of manoeu- vres, rehearsed again the battles of Castiglione and Marengo. To an Austrian general who came to present salutations Napo- leon made answer by alluding to the Austro-Russian alliance, adding that he had no dread of war, kno\ving how it should be carried on. Wliile Napoleon was thus challenging Austria in Italy, Russia and England were most actively engaged in endeavours to force Emperor Francis into declaring war. In England Addington's peace-loving ministry had been forced to give place during the preceding year, 1804, to that of Pitt with its aggressive policy, the first act of which was to organize a coali- tion against France. It was not long before the British Cabinet had established an understanding with Sweden, where reigned Gustavus IV., one of Napoleon's bitterest foes, and this step was soon followed by a treaty of alliance with Russia, dated April 11th, 1805, which had as its basis a general uprising of the Continental States against the dominion of the Corsican. It was part of the project to induce Prussia and Austria to enter the coalition. But all attempts to persuade Prussia ended in failure. Frederick William felt peace to be sufficiently assured to Northern Germany by the defensive treaty entered into on May 24th of the preceding year; he refused to make attack upon France; indeed, under the influence of Hardenbcrg, he allowed himself to become involved with Napoleon in negotia- tions having for their object the acquisition of Hanover. With Austria, however, the efforts were successful. It was certainly no sUght demand upon this power to change from the attitude of defence which she had hitherto assumed to one of aggression against Napoleon. For at that time the Austrian army num- bered hardly more than 40,000 men imder arms without a single 296 The War of 1 805 [I805 battery completely equipped with horses, to say nothing of the deplorable state of the finances. Archduke Charles, the only veteran commander at the disposal of the government, had, just at this critical time, instituted a radical reform of the army requiring for its execution a series of years of peace, and he advised strenuously against war with a man whose superiority on the field he acknowledged mthout reserve. But England and Russia made every effort to quiet these scruples, the former by offers of large financial support, and the latter by promises of re-enforcement to the Austrian forces from the Russian army and of securing the co-operation of Prussia even should it prove possible only through coercion. But, in spite of all, the two powers were unable to persuade Austria to the decisive step until Pitt had declared that the English subsidies were avail- able only for the expenses of a war which should be begun before the termination of the year 1805, and Alexander I. threatened to withdraw from the project entirely in case there were any further hesitation. It was a sort of diplomatic surprise which placed the Austrian Cabinet where it must choose between the two alternatives of regaining, by aid of a coalition of the great Powers, its former possessions and status in Italy, including possibly even a part of Bavaria, and, in case Prussia continued to withstand the advances of the Powers, Silesia likewise, — or of losing this powerful support and being exposed entirely alone to the attacks of Napoleon. Under such constraint, on July 7th, 1805, Francis II. resolved upon entering the coalition, and gave orders for the mobilization of the army. General Mack, who was regarded as a genius in matters of organization, and who, in opposition to Archduke Charles, was convinced of the practicability of putting the Austrian army in marching order within the allotted time, now received commission to accom- plish this feat. War on the Continent, then, was no longer a matter of doubt. This outcome was satisfactory to England, as relieving her of the fear of French invasion; it was equally so to Russia as a means of turning Napoleon's attention from the Orient; and France was about to engage in a conflict ardently desired by her sovereign as an excuse for abandoning the haz- -Et. 35] England or Austria? 297 ardous project of invasion in favour of certain triumph else- where, while Austria had nothing to lead her to take part beyond her sanguine hopes of victory and of territorial acquisitions. England's negotiations with the Powers on the Continent had remained no secret to Napoleon. To avoid the appearance of being the aggressor in the coming war he had addressed a letter in January, 1805, to George III., exhorting him to the maintenance of peace, which in contents and purpose closely resembled that former document by means of which he had so dexterously brought about the war of 1800.* The reply was to the effect that England must first come to agreement with the Continental Powers with which she was maintaining confidential relations. This was equivalent to open acknowl- edgment of the project of a coalition. Moreover, in February Pitt had demanded and received from Parliament the sum of five and a half million pounds sterling for secret purposes; this was a subsidy for Austria's assistance. Napoleon might there- fore feel assured that the Continent was making preparations for resistance against him. In spite of this, it was, according to his correspondence, his intention to make a descent upon Eng- land in the middle of August with the combined Spanish and French fleets. Or was this only artifice, with the intention, perhaps, of keeping England in suspense up to the last possible moment and of lulUng to rest the uneasiness of Austria? That remains to be seen. On July 16th the Emperor issued orders to Admiral Villeneuve to join forces with the Spanish squadron at Ferrol, to assemble with these the squadrons at Rochefort and Brest, and under favourable conditions — Nelson having been lured away to the West Indies — to make his appearance in the Channel. This letter contains a very remarkable postcript: the Admiral, in case of change in the situation through unforeseen contin- gencies, was rather to return to Cadiz. f * See page 194. t The passage reads literally: "If, in consequence of battles sustained. of considerable separation of ships, or of other contingencies which ha\ c not been foreseen, your situation should be considerably altered, ... in 298 The War of 1805 [isos On July 20th Berthier received instructions to prepare for embarkation a part of the army at Boulogne for use in any exigency. But, strange as it may appear, it was at just about this time that Napoleon began systematically to force the war with Austria. By August 2d Lucchesini, the Prussian ambassa- dor, announced to the home authorities that French newspapers were filled with affronts toward Austria and Russia, and that the Emperor — as he had long surmised — appeared to be incit- ing the Continental war. This conjecture proved correct, for on the following day Napoleon instructed his ambassador in Vienna to demand of Francis II. that he should withdraw to their cantonments in Bohemia and Hungary the troops garri- soning Venice and the Tyrol. Failure to comply would be re- garded as an indication that he was not desirous of remaining at peace with France. This summons was repeated some days later, couched in more pressing terms, and again on August 13th, in the most peremptory manner possible. On that same day Napoleon wrote to Talleyrand that he was determined upon attacking Austria, and upon being in Vienna before November, in order to advance thence against the Russians, when he should be satisfied with nothing less than compliance on the part of the Austrian government with a demand to disband the army. He must have assurance on this subject within two weeks, or else — and this was to be imparted by the minister to the Aus- trian ambassador — Emperor Francis should not celebrate the Christmas festival in Vienna.* The fortnight's respite allowed to the Austrian Cabinet this case, which with God's help will not arise, it is our wish that, after having raised the blockade of our squadrons at Rochefort and Ferrol, you should come to anchor preferably in the port of Cadiz." * In this letter is to be found amongst other statements the following: "The explanations made by Monsieur de La Rochefoucauld [the French ambassador at the Austrian court] in Vienna, and my first conmiunication [of the 3d instant] have opened this question; the connnunication which I sent you shortly afterwards [of the 7th instant] has continued this question, and tliis which I send you to-day [of the 13th instant] should close it. You know ttiat it is one of my principles to pursue the same course as the poets do to prepare a dramatic conclusion. Impetuosity does not lead to the desired end." ^T. 36] The Blow Strikes Austria 299 paasod, but \'illcneuve did not make his appearance in the Channel. He had in fact found in his way the obstacleB which had been anticipated, and had supposed himself authorized to turn back to Cadiz. Napoleon pretended the utmost wrath at this conduct on the part of his admiral. As a matter of fact it could not have caused surprise and must on the contrary have been a source of satisfaction to him. On the very next day after the arrival of N'illeneuve's despatches, August 23d, he charged Talleyrand to prepare the manifesto declaring war against Austria. In it he was to take as key-note the allegation that Emperor Francis had thrown his troops into Italy and the Tyrol just at the moment when the French forces were being embarked for the invasion of England. That was, to be sure, absolute falsehood, for the Austrian preparations dated from months previous and had also been observed by Napoleon for that length of time, W'hile the embarkation of the army at Bou- logne was not carried out until August, — the last orders dating from the 20th to the 22d. Moreover, he had been negotiating with Prussia as early as the middle of July to arrange to have the troops of Frederick William relieve his owti in the occupa- tion of Hanover, which is evidence in itself that he was even at that time counting upon the march toward the east. These facts tempt one to think that this whole proceeding of em- barkation was nothing but a pretext for the sake of giving some apparent basis to his accusation against Austria, and of being able to say in his manifesto that the course pursued by Vienna had hindered him in his great undertaking against England and compelled him to carry the war into Austria.* On the evening of August 27th the Emperor signed the official marching orders directing the steps of the entire army toward tlie east. Three days earlier, on the 24th, Marmont had already received secret commands to proceed by forced * Later, in ISll, he went through the same manneuvre when he wrote to Decres, the Minister of the Navy, in these words: "It is even my inten- tion to embark 20,000 men upon the vessels, frigates, and transports of these two squadrons, and to keep them thus embarked for a month or six weeks, so that the menace may be real." See also, in regard to 1805, Piou des Loches, "Mes Campagnes," p. 137. ^oo The War of 1805 [I805 marches to Mainz. The camp at Boulogne was broken up. The Continental war had begun. Down to the most recent times the statements of General Daru have been recounted and beheved, according to which the idea of a Continental war was first conceived by Napoleon after the arrival of the despatches from Villeneuve and the plan of campaign dictated extemporaneously at a single stroke as if moved by sudden inspiration. That forms a part of the Napo- leonic legend. The war had been for years foreseen and the manner of its execution of course maturely weighed and resolved upon. But even in this case Napoleon's foresight and calcula- tion are none the less amazing. For events were to prove him correct in his reckoning: November, 1805, actually did find him in the heart of Austria, and his opponent did not, as a matter of fact, celebrate the Christmas festival in his capital. There has probably never been another man who understood measuring with such precision his own forces against those of the rest of the world. People have thought that they saw in this something preternatural. But Napoleon formed no exception to the rest of humanity. It was only that in him certain human attri- butes were developed to an extraordinary degree which lent to his personality something surpassingly great, even gigantic. He could still see clearly when the sight of others was dim^ and what was to most people mere chaos presented itself to his eye in clear and distinct outlines. General Rapp recounts in his Memoires a characteristic occurrence. One day Cardinal Fesch wished to make some expostulations in regard to the policy which the Emperor was pursuing. Hardly had he uttered a couple of words, however, when Napoleon led him to the win- dow and asked him: "Do you sec that star?" It was broad daylight. "No," replied the Cardinal. "Very well, then; so long as I remain the only one who can perceive it will I go my way and permit no manner of comment." Thus with a firm and steady hand, generally without others suspecting his designs, did he trace out his course into the future. While the French army was advancing toward the Rhino as quietly as possible under forced marches such as had until then ^T. 30] The Austrian Plan of Campaign 301 been unheard of even under Napoleon's Icadcrsliij), AitPtria was also making preparations for the contest, and on September 3d, 1805, issued a declaration of war agauist France. On the same day Cobenzl, the minister, informed the French ambassador that Austria was assembling her forces "in order to aid in estab- lishing in Europe a state of affairs conformable to the treaties which France had broken in violation of international law. ' ' On September 8th the troops of Emperor Francis crossed the Inn. It would be natural to suppose that Austria would have in- formed herself exactly by this time in regard to the strength of the Boulogne army, and have concluded that it would take the most direct route, so that Germany would be made the principal field of operations. But such was not the case. Instead of this Italy was the point always kept in mind in Vienna even from the military standpoint. A plan of campaign sketched by Arch- duke Charles had been adopted as early as July for the guidance of the Austrian forces, and according to this three armies were to be stationed in Italy, in the TjtoI, and on the Inn, and opera- tions were to be begun by the strongest of these, the one in Italy. This army, under the command of Archduke Charles, was to establish itself securely in Lombardy, while the German army, having effected a junction with the Russians, was to advance into Southern Germany, and the third, under Archduke John, through Switzerland. In particular it was decided to press forwartl as rapidly as possible through Bavaria and be- yond the lUer, so as to carry the war into foreign territory and to make sure of the troops of Elector ]\Iaximilian Joseph of Bavaria, who was friendly to France. No engagement, how- ever, was to be ventured before the arrival of the Russians, but rather, if necessity demanded, the army was to retreat behind the Inn. According to the mihtary convention between these two powers the Russians were to set forth toward Austria in three distinct armies and in such manner that the van of the first, numbering something over 50,000 men, should reach the Inn on October 16th. At the decisive point, therefore, the forces were insufficient on account of their separation. Archduke John, w^ho had taken part in the deliberations, says in his j\Ie- 302 The War of 1805 [isoo moirs: "Austria counted upon the Russian auxiliary troops already on the march, and, though knowing perfectly at what time they were to be looked for on the Inn, failed to take pre- cautions in the intervening time during which her active and indefatigable adversary might appear with his mobile and well- equipped forces." This was perhaps a cardinal blunder, but another of equal importance was committed in failing to appoint to the command of the German army the general who had for- merly on several occasions defeated the French on German soil — in sending Archduke Charles to Italy, while Mack, as Quarter- master General to the Emperor, was to conduct operations at the point of critical interest. The young Archduke Ferdinand of Modena-Breisgau was with the army solely as representative of Francis II. and under instructions to submit without reserva- tion to such dispositions as should seem good to Mack. The last-named was well known to Napoleon; an irresolute char- acter, puffed up with conceit, who considered liimself vastly the superior of any adversary and who now, on account of his skill as an organizer, possessed the unlimited confidence of his sov- ereign. It was after the Neapolitan campaign of 1799, when Mack had been sent to Paris as prisoner of war, that Napoleon had made his acquaintance and expressed himself in regard to him to Bourrienne in these words: " Mack is one of the most mediocre men that I have ever seen in my life; presumptuous and vainglorious, he thinks himself efficient in every respect It would please me to have him sent some day as opponent to one of our good generals ; that would be something worth seeing. He is self-important and that leaves nothing more to be said. Unquestionably he is one of the most incapable men in exist- ence. To add to this he is usually imlucky." And now this insignificant creature stood opposed to the all-powerful com- mander himself. Mack proceeded on the assumption that the French would leave a strong army behind on the shores of the Channel to protect the country against an invasion of the l^^nglisli, while another army would have to be left within the country itself to prevent a threatening revolutionary movement; Napoleon would therefore .t:t. 36] Bavaria Sides with Napoleon 303 not bo able to appear in Germany with any very consiclerable forces, nor before the arrival of the Russians upon the scene of action.* Relying upon this supposition, Mack hurried for- ward with troops hastily collected, poorly equipped, and defi- cient in numbers, to take advantage of the possibility of invad- ing France before the forces of the enemy should be concen- trated. Moreover, following Napoleon's example, he had re- solved upon supplying the armies by means of requisitions, a step which from the outset produced tremendous confusion. The course of wisdom would have been to await behind the Inn the coming up of the Russians, but, his desire of securing the aid of the Elector's troops being allowed to override all other considerations, he pressed on into Bavaria, where his hopes w^ere after all doomed to disappointment. For the Elector Maxi- milian Joseph, though bound by ties of kinship to Russia, was more firmly linked by his interests to the cause of France and, after some wavering, allowed himself to be won over by the latter. He ordered his troops to retire before the Austrians, concluded an aUiance with Napoleon, whose army then in passing through absorbed that of Bavaria. This step shattered the plans of the Austrians, but Mack hastened onward nevertheless, hoping to gain the bank of the lUer and fortify it, since he assumed that the enemy would advance through the Black Forest. When, on September 19th, Archduke Ferdinand came to take command, he found the bulk of his army, about 60,000 men strong, on the march between the Inn and Munich, while trust- worthy information announced to him that Napoleon had set out from Boulogne with the entire army of the coast, amounting to 150,000 men, and might appear on the Iller by October 10th. This was radically different from all that Mack had assumed. Under these conditions the Austrians by advancing farther would involve the risk of being still more widely separated * The English did as a matter of fact phin a descent upon Quibeion and asked for the Austrian General Radetzky as head of the general staff The unfounded report of a revolt against Napoleon in France had long been spread abroad by their agents. According to Radetzky's M^moires, recently published, this was one of the causes which induced Mack's premature advance into Germany. 304 The War of 1805 [i805 from the allies who were following them, and thus overpowered in their isolated condition. This fact was promptly recognized by the Archduke, who ordered the army to halt. But Mack in- duced Emperor Francis, who was just then for a short time with the troops, to order the command to halt recalled, and in the last week of September the principal force of the army was actually assembled on the Iller, so as to rely upon Ulm as a support if the enemy should advance by way of Stuttgart, or upon Memmingen in case he should come by Strasburg and through the Black Forest. He counted particularly upon Ulm, which place had, upon his recommendation, been surrounded in 1796 with new defences. It never crossed his mind, however, that, should the French troops stationed in Hanover and Hol- land but march southward, his line of retreat must inevitably be endangered. At the same time that the Austrians were gathering on the Iller, the principal body of Napoleon's army was crossing the Rhine between Kehl and Mannheim. They had marched by night as well as by day almost without sound. To give tidings of its movements was strictly forbidden to the newspapers. It consisted of five divisions of cavalry commanded by Murat and five army corps under orders of Ney, Lannes, Soult, and Da- vout. Two other corps, under Marmont and Bemadotte, ad- vanced from the north toward Wiirzburg. A seventh, under Augereau, constituted the reserve in Alsace. Auxiliary troops furnished by Southern Germany increased the size of the army by 28,000 men. All told Napoleon had at his command more than 200,000 warriors, a splendid and imjiosing army upon which he never wearied of congratulating himself. The com- manders of the various corps were for the most part no older than himself, and Davout even a year his junior, while Mar- mont was but thirty-one years of age; but all were experienced soldiers and completely devoted to the man who was their leader. The "Italian Army," cut off as it was from the "Grand Army," was exp(^cted to carry on its operations alone inider the com- mand of Massena. Hardly had the Emperor learned, by means of the field tele- -Et. 36] Mack's Delusion 305 graph and excellent Bpios, that Mack was marching upon Ulm while the Russians were still far from reaching the Inn, when he determined upon passing to the left of the Black Forest and crossing the Danube below Ulm, so as to thrust himself between the Austrians and their allies and defeat each of them sepa- rately. Murat with the cavalry reserve was commissioned to confirm Mack in his illusions by demonstrations in the Black Forest, making it apparent that the French were coming from that quarter and masking the advance of the four corps along the left bank of the Danube. This mancEUvre was carried out with the utmost precision. On October 7th Davout, Soult, Lannes, and Ney reached the Danube, their corps forming a line reaching from Heidenheim to Ottingen, while Bernadotte had followed the direct road from Wiirzburg to IngoLstadt through the Prussian principality of Ansbach, Marmont being stationed a little to the west at Neuburg. Two days later the army had crossed the river and now advanced from the east upon Ulm. Bernadotte and Davout alone remained ])ehind to keep watch upon the Russians, who were, moreover, not yet in sight. To prevent the possibility of the enemy escaping into the Tyrol Soult was ordered to seize Memmingen with his corps. Of these movements Mack did not remain in ignorance. He was kept informed of them by Schulmeister, a spy serving both of the contestants and who acquired a certain notoriety during the Napoleonic wars. But, instead of realizing that the French army was bent upon his capture. Mack deluded himself with "nothing but a dream," — as he himself later denominated the hisane notion, — that Napoleon was on the retreat toward France, whither he had been recalled by the danger of revolution and the fear of an invasion of the British.* The Austrian * The opinion, frequently expressed, that Schuhneister misled Mack into the supposition that the enemy was retreating into France has been proved erroneous. French discontent with Napoleon was in Austrian governmental circles a fixed idea having important political consequences. (Cobenzl to Kutusoff, October 12th, 1805, in Angeli, " Ulm und Austerlitz," Militiirzeitung, 1878, p. 302.) Schulmeister's reports were correct. It was not until Mack sent him to Stuttgart " to gather information concerning the revolt of the French against their Emperor " that this 306 The War of 1805 [I805 troops, thought he, could do no better under such circum- stances than to remain concentrated at Ulm, whence they could harass and pursue the flank of the French as they hurried past. The idea was in itself an absurdity; for him, Mack, to pursue Napoleon, and that with an army which had in its haste been obliged to forego all that was most essential; which through forced marches and countermarches had lost almost all power of endurance and possessed only a feeble reserve artillery with entirely insufficient ammunition, and among whose regiments there were several which marched absolutely barefoot and had at their disposal nothing but the cartridges in their pouches! It was in vain that Archduke Ferdinand, who appreciated the distress and danger incurred, opposed this foolhardy project; in vain that all the generals of inferior rank protested against it; Mack obstinately persisted in maintaining that the French army was in retreat. Meanwhile the various French corps, like the fingers of a grasping hand, were encompassing the enemy; they threw back into Ulm every advanced division, and finally bombarded the city and called upon it to surrender. The victory gained by Ney at Elchingen on October 14th effectively contributed to this result. It was with the utmost difficulty that the Arch- duke, acting upon his own responsibility, succeeded in cutting his way out with two battahons and eleven squadrons by way of Goppingen to Nordlingen and thence into Bohemia. Not until then did Mack rouse from his dream. On October 16th he declared himself ready to enter upon negotiations, and on the 17th they were concluded. If within a week — so read the terms — there arrive no relief, the army at Ulm shall be prisoners of war with the exception of the officers, who shall be allowed to go free upon parole ; an entrance shall be opened to the French, enabling them to station a l^rigade in the fortress. But, as if this ignominy were still not sufficient, Mack, in an interview with Napoleon, allowed himself to be persuaded into agreeing that the capitulation should take effect as early as October 20th, wary man gave up the cause of Austria as lost and thenceforth served Napoleon alone. ^T. 36] The Surrender of Ulm 307 On that day three Austrian corps, still numbering 23,000 men, laid down their arms before the enemy. "The shame which overwhelms us," wrote the Austrian Captain de L'Ort in his journal, "the mire which clings to us, leaves spots which can never be cleansed. While the battalions were defiling past to lay down their arms, Napoleon, in the simplest garb, sur- rounded by his marshals adorned with gold and embroideries, conversed with Mack and several of our generals whom he called to himself after they had filed past. The Emperor, in the uni- form of a common soldier, wearing a gray cloak scorched at elbows and skirts, a hat without any distinctive mark crushed down upon his head, his arms crossed behind his back and warm- ing himself at a camp-fire, talked with vivacity and presented an aspect of good-nature." He had won an almost bloodless victory. "I have accomplished what I set out to do," he had written on the preceding day to Josephine, "I have destroyed the Austrian army by means of marches alone." And, in fact, except for the corps of Kienmayer, which was advancing along the Inn, the re-enforcements which had draw7i near from the Tyrol but had now again withdrawn thither, and for the small detachment with which the Archduke had made his escape, Austria had lost all her forces upon the scene of operations north of the Alps.* Naturally the catastrophe at Ulm had its reactionary effect upon the other army divisions. Archduke Charles found him- self compelled to abandon his secure position behind the Adige in order to withdraw his troops from Italy with the least possible loss. A successful encounter with Massdna at Caldiero on October 30th and 31st enabled him to make an orderly retreat, even though not without considerable losses, and to effect a junc- * Mack made an attempt later to justify himself. He endeavoured to lay the blame upon the conduct of the Archduke, upon that of his generals, or tlie violation of the Ansbach territory on the part of the French. But investigation soon disclosed the frailty of these subter- fuges and recognized in him alone the culprit. He was deprived of rank and honours and sentenced to two years' imprisonment. History has since that time wholly and unreservedly confirmed this judgment of condemnation. 308 The War of 1805 [i805 tion at Marburg on November 20th with Archduke John, whose continuance in the Tyrol had Hkewise become impossible. The fate of Mack had thus overthrown the entire Austrian plan of campaign: from his attitude of offence Emperor Francis had been reduced to that of defence, and his remaining hopes now depended solely upon the Russians, since Archduke Charles was three times as far away from the capital as was the enemy, and want of supplies necessitated his approach to the Hun- garian frontiers. It was a hard fate to be obliged to rely upon foreign troops for defence. Moreover, the alhance with Russia had already ceased to be of a very deep-seated nature, since Alexander at heart resented Austria's aspirations toward domi- nation in Italy as much as ever Paul I. had condemned them. Still for the present the common danger continued to hold the allies closely bound to one another. But almost at the same moment that the coalition against France received so rude a blow upon the Continent, it gained upon the seas a victory which must remain forever memorable. Villeneuve had remained with the combined French and Span- ish fleets ever since August in Cadiz, followed unremittingly by Napoleon's resentment. Writing to the Minister of the Navy after his departure from Boulogne, the Emperor said of the Ad- miral: "Villeneuve is a wretch who ought to be ignominiously dismissed; lacking all gift at combination, without courage and without general interest, he would sacrifice everything to save himself." It is easy to recognize now how far from genuine was this wrath and how glad the Emperor was, in secret, to be at last rid of the project of invasion. To his hard heart it was not a matter of the slightest importance that his selection of a scapegoat should be an innocent man. To the admiral, whom he ought to have discharged if his guilt had really been so great, he now gave orders to sail from Cadiz toward Naples to the support of Saint-Cyr, and to attack the English on the way at any time when he should have the advantage in point of num- ber of ships. Villeneuve represented in reply that his squad- ron was in the worst of condition, that the Spanish ships in particular were manned chiefly by sailors who had never been .Et. 36] The Battle of Trafalgar 309 through a naval mancEuvrc, leaving the chances in battle very much against him. All quite without avail. He had to set sail and to prepare forthwith for combat, since Nelson confronted him almost immediately after leaving port with but twenty-seven ships of the line to oppose to Villeneuve's thirty-three. The British vessels were, to be sure, admirably equipped through- out and manned by experienced seamen under command of the admiral of greatest genius belonging to the foremost seafaring nation in the world. The result was inevitable. Nelson departed somewhat from the usual form of attack, a fact which did not escape Villeneuve, but with his inferior material he was unable to meet the blow, and thus was lost to Napoleon the naval battle at Cape Trafalgar on October 21st, 1805. Of the French ships eighteen fell into the hands of the enemy, eleven fled back to Cadiz, while the remaining four beat out to sea and were eventually captured like the first. More than seven thousand Frenchmen fell in this furious battle, the English losing hardly a third as many, though among them was one man who more than equalled a fleet in value — Nelson himself. Villeneuve did not long survive him. Tormented and crushed by the wrath of his sovereign, — who could not forgive the admiral for the error which he had himself committed, — life became insupportable, and he committed suicide upon his return from captivity. It is said that the Emperor would never allow the 21st of October to be recalled to his mind, and that the victims of this disaster never received any but ungracious recognition at his hands. And it must be admitted that at Trafalgar more had been decided than the outcome of a battle. The fate of an entire continent hung upon the fact that henceforth British supremacy on the seas was incontestable and a direct invasion of England was therefore scarcely to be regarded as a possibility. This circumstance overclouded the success at Ulm. New victories would have to be won to re-establish the glory of the Empire. But Napoleon, knowing as yet nothing of the defeat and loss of his fleet, hastened to pursue the Russians, who had indeed reached the Inn and there united themselves with Kien- mayer's corps, but upon hearing the fate of Mack had at once 3IO The War of 1805 [i805 begun a retreat. It was his hope that these forces of the enemy would make a stand against him on the Traun or on the Enns, whence, having beaten them, he would proceed in triumph straight toward the capital and there dictate terms of peace. But Kutusoff, the leader of the Russians, whom Emperor Fran- cis had appointed general-in- chief of the combined army, sought before all else to retire where he could effect a junction with the second Russian army advancing under Buxhoewden; he was not to be overtaken, and eventually slipped across the bridge at Krems to the left bank of the Danube, whence he pro- ceeded in a northeasterly direction toward Briinn by way of Znaim. Murat with his cavalry had pressed the most closely on the heels of the enemy, being unremittingly urged to haste by his brother-in-law. But he now drew down upon himself bitter reproaches for hastening on to Vienna instead of following up the foe upon the other bank of the river. From the convent of Melk Napoleon wrote him on November 11th: "You received orders to follow close upon the Russians. ... I try in vain to find an explanation of your conduct. . . . You have lost me two days and have thought only of the vainglory of entering Vienna. But no glory is to be gained where no danger is." The Emperor saw at once that this course had imperilled an unprotected division marching on the farther side of the river under command of Mortier, which as a matter of fact came near being wiped out by the Russians on that very day near Diirrn- stein. It made no amends for this reverse that at the same time Davout near Leoben came upon an Austrian corps com- manded by Merveldt which had separated from Kutusoff at Steyer in order to protect the approaches to the Alps, and forced it into a retreat which soon became a flight toward Graz. But in spite of all Nai)olcon found means of turning the new situation to account. If Murat was now on the march to Vienna, he must make sure there of the passages across the river and thence make his way, followed by two army corps, northwest- ward toward Znaim, there to cut off from Kutusoff the way into Moravia. Since haste was a prime consideration, much de- ix'iidcd upon preventing the Vieimese from destroying the Tabor Mr. 36] Murat's Trick 3 1 i bridge. To the accomplishment of this task Murat showed himself fully equal. On the 13th he entered the city and marched directly through it to the bridge which spanned the arm of the river in three divisions. The garrison, under command of a Prince of Auersperg, was drawn up on the opposite bank with orders upon the first approach of the French to set fire instantly to the arches, which had been covered in advance with inflammable materials. But ]\Iurat succeeded in deluding the Austrian commander into the l)eliof that negotiations for a suspension of hostilities had been concluded, offering an imme- diate prospect of peace. Auersperg and his oflicers, with the exception of Kienmayer, believed these assurances the more readily as General Bertrand pledged his word of honour as to their truth. The bridge was not fired, the French passed over it, and the Austrian General barely got his troops away along the road to Briinn. The statements made by Murat were nothing but a trick. It was true that Emperor Francis had opened negotiations on November 3d, but these had come to naught in view of the demands of Napoleon, which had been nothing less than the cession of Venetia, the Tyrol, and Upper Austria, and the hopes of the Austrians again depended solely upon Kutusoff's effect- ing a junction with the second column and then striking a decisive blow with the combined forces which should compel the enemy to give way. To Napoleon, on the other hand, everything depended upon getting the Russians between two fires. One part of the French army were in pursuit of them, while ]\Iurat operated against their right flank with the corps of Davout and Lannes. It seemed for a time as if this plan were going to be successful and that the decisive moment was at hand. Kutusoff, who clearly rec- ognized his situation, had retreated by forced marches, but in consequence his troops were in urgent need of some days of rest. He was, it is tnie, far in advance of the French who were pur- suing him, but he was notwithstanding in inmiinent danger from the corps advancing from the south. This must at all hazards be evaded. For this purpose Bagration, one of Kutusoff's 312 The War of 1805 [I805 generals, was detailed with some thousands of men to intercept and detain Murat on the road by which he was advancing, and so protect the repose and further advance of the main army. To the north of Hollabrunn, Murat, who had with him at the time only a part of Lannes' corps, came upon the enemy and, thinking himself confronted by the bulk of the hostile forces, did not venture to attack until re-enforced. To gain the time necessary for the remainder of the corps to come up he made pretence of proposing an armistice, and to this Kutusoff, to whom nothing could have been more opportune, consented, though purposely delaying his reply. A document was there- upon drawn up according to which the Russian pledged himself — with no less fraudulent intention — to march out of Austria as soon as Napoleon should have ratified the treaty. The Russian had thus gained the days of respite needed by the army. When the tidings reached Napoleon at Schonbrunn he was beside himself with rage at this successful stratagem on the part of the enemy which had enabled liim, by leaving Ba- gration behind, to escape to the north, where at Porlitz, near Briinn, he efTected a junction with the Viennese garrison and another at Wischau with the second Russian army. It was no consolation that on November 16th Bagration was overcome by Murat with a force greatly superior in number to the Rus- sians, who were thereby forced to retreat. The name of Holla- brunn was not to be inscribed on the Arc de Triomphe in Paris. Napoleon had not accomplished his purpose. Kutusoff had escaped and might now, protected by the cannon of Olmiitz, safely await re-enforcements, which had been already brought within no very considerable distance by General Essen, while a force of 45.000 men under General Bennigscn was advancing from Breslau. In Bohemia Archduke Ferdinand had assem- bled a corps which formed in a manner the right wing of the Russo- Austrian position. Archduke Charles was marching toward Marburg with the intention of reaching Vienna by way of Konncnd and Raab. Moreover, the })()litical situation of the allies had also changed materially for the better. Prussia Alt. 3G] Prussia Leans towards the Coalition 3 1 3 seemed at last convinced in spite of all. The absolute disre- gard of formalities on the part of the French before marching through the territory of Ansbach had suddenly changed the feeling of Frederick WilUam III. The neutrality upon which he prided himself as the supreme achievement of his pohtical course had been violated and his self-esteem thereby much injured. He now assented to Riussia's urgent petition for pas- sage for her troops, and allowed himself to be persuaded by Emperor Alexander, who came to Berlin toward the end of October, not indeed into immediate participation in the war, — from that he was held back by Hardenberg, — but at least into making a compromise according to the terms of which Prussia was to demand of Napoleon the liberation of Naples, Holland, and Switzerland, the disunion of the Italian and French crowns, and the indemnification of the King of Sardinia, — in short, the restriction of the French system of expansion, — and, in case of refusal, to enter the coalition with a contribution of 180,000 men (November 3d, 1805). Count Haugwitz was despatched to lay the matter before Napoleon. He was given until the middle of December to decide the question, the Prussian army standing equipped ready at any moment to take part in the conflict. The convention had this great advantage for the Russians now at war, that, in case of being beaten in Moravia, they could retreat into Silesia and there be supported by an army of about 50,000 men. As will be readily seen. Napoleon's situation was by no means favourable. He had hoped to dictate terms of peace in Vienna, and now instead he had been obliged to extend his line of operations far beyond what he had purposed and to detach many of his troops to serve as protection to his flanks. Ney had marched toward the Tyrol, Marmont toward Styria, Da- vout toward the Hungarian frontiers, and Bernadotte toward Bohemia, so that there now remained at his immediate disposal only the corps of Murat, Lannes, and Soult. Fully appreciatmg the situation in wliich he thus found himself, he learned just at this time of Prussia's sudden change of policy and of the defeat at Trafalgar, and reaUzed that his most earnest efforts must now 314 The War of 1805 [I805 be directed toward finding some relief from these accumulated difficulties through division among his enemies. In spite of the refusal of Francis II. to conclude peace on the before-mentioned conditions, Napoleon had not broken off all relations with the headqviarters of his opponent, and after the seizure of Vienna had even addressed himself once more to the Emperor of Austria with such result that the Austrian diplomat Stadion came accompanied by General Gyulai to the French headquarters at Briinn with a view to entering upon negotiations. They were commissioned to act in conjunction mth Haugwitz, the Prus- sian negotiator, who now approached with intentional slowness. It is a matter of profoundest interest to study the way in which Napoleon set to work to prevent this co-operation. His first step was to send the Austrian ambassadors to Talleyrand at Vienna under pretence that he was himself about to repair thither; meanwhile he issued orders to have Haugwitz detained at Iglau and at the same time sent his adjutant-general, Savary, to Alexander I., who had now joined the Russian army, to ask for an armistice and a parley, in which — as he intimated to the adjutant of the Czar — he purposed to surrender Turkey to Russia. Should Alexander consent to the proposed terms and conclude peace, Austria might be harassed to the uttermost; should he not, a new basis would of course have to be found upon which to treat with Austria. The latter alternative was the outcome of his diplomacy. The Czar remained firm, and on November 30th Napoleon directed Talleyrand in writing to cease to demand from Austria the whole of Venetia and the Tyrol, but merely the districts of Legnano and Verona for the kingdom of Italy, and Augsburg, Eichstiidt, the Breisgau, and Ortenau for his South German allies. But Stadion also remained immovable, at least he would not enter upon nego- tiations without the co-operation of Haugwitz. The latter had, however, received from his king oral instructions to preserve peace whatever the circumstances, and having observed in Briinn preparations for an early encounter between the armies, was evidently determined to learn the outcome before commit- ting himself and was not to be coerced into premature action. Mt. 36] The Russian Advance 3 1 ^ Beyond saying to Talleyrand, in convcrRation with him on December Ist, that hiw sovereign ardently desired peace and was ready to make contribution toward its re-establishment, he would give no indication of his mission. But while Napoleon thus vainly strove to improve his situ- ation, the adversary himself took steps which helped him out of his pretlicament. With his reduced forces Napoleon had not dared to follow up the Russians beyond Briinn and attack them in their secure position protected by a stronghold. What had been, however, beyond his most sanguine hopes now took place: the Russians came to him. To their misfortune the Czar had set himself at the head of his troops, and this young prince, devoured by ambition, was urgently desirous of winning the glory of having defeated a Bonaparte in the field. His plan was to take the offensive in spite of the fact that the only rational course lay in standing upon the defensive until the arrival of the re-enforcements, the nearer approach of the Archdukes. and until Prussia should be ready to take part in the action. There were indeed at the headquarters of the allies many who uttered warnings, but there were also numbers who advised the step. Kutusoff was in favour of further delay, but nevertheless too truly a courtier to offer decided opposition to the washes of his sovereign; glad to be relieved of the responsibility, he gave his acquiescence to Alexander's project. Among those fore- most in promoting the same was the Austrian Colonel WejTother, who had been assigned to the Czar as chief-of-staff — a second Mack in point of immoderate ambition and self-conceit. He had already on a former occasion as adviser of Wurmser and Alvinczy found himself confronted by Napoleon during the Italian campaign, and later he had occupied toward Suvaroff the position which he now filled toward Alexander. It was Weyrother's proposition to advance against the enemy, over- power his right flank, and cut off his communication with Vienna. This scheme might possibly have met with success at a later day with Archduke Charles near at hand. Its execution was now, to say the least, premature. Wcyrother, however, insisted upon a decision and, in secret with Alexander, elaborated a plan 2i6 The War of 1805 [I805 of battle, Emperor Francis — who was also with the army — being kept in complete ignorance of it all. For Napoleon, on the other hand, nothing could be more im- portant than to defeat the allies at the earliest possible moment, — before the Russian re-enforcements should arrive, before Archduke Charles should advance farther north, and before Prussia, as he now also began to fear, should decide upon taking active measures.* He was therefore all the more astonished to learn that the foe was advancing to meet his wishes. When he heard through a deserter on November 27th of the forward march of the Russians he was at first completely incredulous. S^gur relates in his "Memoirs" that "to Berthier this seemed so improbable that he gave orders for the arrest of the bearer of the tidings, but his story was almost immediately confirmed by advices from Marshal Soult, who had been attacked at Auster- htz." Napoleon at once gave orders for his advance-guard to retire with all haste before the enemy, in order to infuse into the latter a yet greater degree of confidence, while he took up his position on both sides of the highway between Briinn and Auster- litz, his army extending southerly to Sokolnitz and Tilnitz. He next drew to himself all available troops; Davout and Ber- nadotte were summoned, and by December 1st the latter had already reached the convent of Raigern.f Napoleon then pro- ceeded to mark out his plan of battle also. The movement of the enemy against his right wing had not long remained unob- served by him, and it was upon this that he based his scheme of * "Bonaparte's interests demanded that no time should be lost; ours, that time should be gained. He had every occasion for venturing a decisive battle; we, for avoiding the same. Your Imperial Majesty will recall that I, at the time, repeatedly made representations to that effect and im- parted them also to every one who would listen to me. The right course was to wear out the enemy by means of skirmishes, always keeping the bulk of the army beyond his reach; to conquer Hungary and establish connections with the Archduke." (Czartoryski to Emperor Alexander, April, 1806.) t " If you are about to give battle," .said Napoleon once at about this time, "a.ssemble all your forces, omitting none whatever; a single bat- talion sometimes decides the day." jet. 36] Austerlitz 3 1 7 action. As he said to his gonoralfi, this which ho was roRolvod to gain was to be no ordinary battle, but a decisive action which should not permit of the enemy's withdrawing and gathering anew; for every orderly retreat of the Russians which left them in fighting trim, since it did not improve his own situation, might prove ruinous to him. For this reason he refrained from occupying the secure position which offered itself on the plateau of Pratzen, but left that to the enemy, even inviting attack upon his right wing by advancing it and exposing its flank in order to confirm Alexander in his purpose to surround it and thus induce him to make a wide circuit involving the weakening of his centre ; this enfeebled centre was then to be broken through and the battle thus decided. It was therefore \v\ih boundless satisfaction that on December 1st he saw the Russians already making actual dispositions for executing this flank movement. "That is a wretched move!" exclaimed he to those about him, trembling with joy and clapping his hands. "They are walking into the trap! They are delivering themselves over! Before to-morrow evening this army is mine!" And of a truth, on December 2d, the "sun of Austerhtz" witnessed before its setting the destruction of the allied armies. The attack upon their centre, stripped of all cavalry, had been undertaken with great vigour by Soult and had proved completely successful. The hostile line was broken, the left wing entirely severed and put to rout, the right thrown back upon Austerlitz. The Rus- sians had suffered the loss of about 20,000 men, and the Austrian corps under Liechtenstein in the neighbourhood of 6000. The former, cut off from their Hne of retreat toward Olmiitz and hav- ing parted with all artillery, munitions, and baggage, moved in confusion along the road toward Coding and Holitsch. "Neither regiments nor army corps existed any longer in the army of the allies," says Czartoryski, "there remained only hordes of men going off in disorder, marauding as they went and thus increas- ing still further the desolation of the country. In the villages as we passed along was to be heard notliing but the confused cries of people seeking in drink forgetfuhiess of their mis- fortunes." 31 8 The War of 1805 [i805 One of the most brilliant of victories* had been won for France. "Soldiers," said the victor, addressing his troops, " I am satisfied with you! In the battle of Austeriitz you have justi- fied all my expectations of your intrepidity ; you have adorned your eagles with immortal glory. . . . Soldiers, when the im- perial crown was placed upon my head by the people of France I relied upon you for preserving to it always that refulgent glory which alone could give it value in my sight. . . . When every- thing shall have been accomplished necessary to the assurance of happiness and prosperity to our country I will lead you back to France; there you will be the object of my most tender care. My people will look upon you with joy, and it will be enough for any one of you to say, ' I was at the battle of Austeriitz,' to draw forth the reply, ' Here is a brave man. ' " Napoleon had been wholly correct in saying that the victory of December 2d was to be no "ordinary" one. The result of the battle was to bring peace. Shortly before, as has been seen, he had been driven by his dangerous position to modify his demands in proposing terms of peace. The situation of affairs was now totally changed. On December 3d Napoleon was already writing to Talleyrand at Vienna: "All negotiations have become null and void, since it is evident that they were nothing but a stratagem intended to lull me to sleep. Say to * Military writers are wont to date from Austeriitz a new epoch in the history of warfare. Jomini said that the great field-battles of our day date from 180.5. A recent historian of the Napoleonic wars carries out the idea thus: "In this first of the Napoleonic battles are at once recog- nizable all those characteristics which distinguish more modern battles from those of the period of Frederick the Great. In the latter the entire army was set in motion as a whole and could and must remain throughout the course of the battle within the grasp of the commander, capable of manoeuvring according to his wishes. Were its close relations broken up at any point, its cause was lost. In modern battle the centre may be broken through while victory is carried off by the encompassing wings; one wing may be annihilated while the other crushes the enemy; indeed in a well-conducted battle some such success is always yielded to the enemy upon some portion of the field, in order to be able to bring to bear a superior force at the point selected for administering the decisive blow." Yorck von Wartenburg, "Napoleon als Feldherr," I. 241. m.y. 36] Negotiations for Peace 3 1 9 Monsieur de Stadion that I have not been duped by their arti- fice, that it was for that reason that I sent them l)ack from Briinn, and that now that the battle is lost the conditions can no longer remain what they were." At the headquarters of the allies it was agreed upon that Emperor Francis should ask for a conference with the conqueror and demand an armistice. The request was granted, and on December 4th the interview took place at Nasiedlowitz on the highroad between Austerlitz, where Napoleon had taken up his residence, and Holitsch, whither the allied monarchs had retired. Much that is false has been circulated in regard to this meet- ing. The Emperor of the French conducted himself in a manner by no means brusque and discourteous, as has been narrated, but was on the contrary most affable and gracious. He was prepared to grant the desired suspension of hostilities in case the Russians would at once return homeward. The question of peace was also discussed. Were Russia willing to conclude peace at once \\4thout delay in company with Austria, — though with the proviso that its territor}^ should be closed to the Brit- ish, — Austria should be released from any cession of lands what- soever; but should Russia choose another course, a separate agreement would necessitate to Austria the surrender of \'enetia to the kingdom of Italy and of the Tyrol to Bavaria. The latter condition, — in regard to the Tyrol, — at the earnest en- treaty of Francis, Napoleon consented to set aside. Upon his return from the conference the Emperor of Austria at once acquainted his ally with the demands made by the victor, at the same time assuring him that he was ready to continue the struggle if Russia would stand by him. But to that Alexander was in no ■s\'ise to be persuaded. Inconsiderate as he had been in bringing about the danger, he was just as Httle inclined to take upon himself the consequences of his folly. But neither was he willing to make peace under the conditions offered, since English commerce was nothing less than a vital question to Russia. There remained then nothing but for him to place in safety the fragments of his army. The answer which he sent to Emperor Francis was that Austria might no longer count 320 The War of 1805 [I805 upon him, and on December 6th he took his departure. On the same day the armistice between France and Austria was signed.* In the negotiations for peace Austria had now, besides her own forces, only the friendly offices of Prussia to count upon. But these also were to be denied her. Napoleon had taken the precaution to have inserted in the instrument regulating the armistice a clause to the effect that while the treaty should be in force no foreign troops should set foot upon Austrian soil, and then forthwith proceeded to enter into negotiations with Haugwitz alone. If now Haugwitz remained faithful to his secret orders to maintain peace with France, nothing could be done with the ultimatum which he was charged to tender to Napoleon. On the other hand, Napoleon was now no longer will- ing to allow Prussia to maintain a neutral position, but de- manded that she should form a close offensive and defensive alHance with himself. According to this proposal Frederick William would be bound to surrender to France the part of the duchy of Cleves situated on the right bank of the Rhine, the fortress of Wesel, and the principality of Neufchatel, and to Bavaria the margraviate of Ansbach ; he might retain Hanover, already occupied by his troops; the British were to be denied access to its shores; further, he was to recognize the "kingdom of Bavaria" in the extent to which it should attain through Austrian concessions. This compact was signed by Haugwitz on December 15th, 1805, and thenceforth Austria had lost her Prussian support. She was now given up defenceless and alone to the will of the conqueror. * Even in the most recent publications one meets with the statement that immediately after the battle Austria drew away from Russia, whereas in point of fact it was the Czar who left liis ally in the lurch. This is testified to even by authorities emanating from the Russian camp, such, for instance, as J. de Maistre and Czartoryski. The bold reproach which was later made by the Russians in official form against the Austrians — that they had not fought bravely at Austerlitz — met with cutting irony from Napoleon in the " Moniteur." " Those who saw the battle-field," said he therein, "will testify that at the spot where the chief collision took place the ground was covered with Austrians, while at other points it was covered only with Russian knapsacks." Mt.Z6] Negotiations with Austria 321 The question now was whether Napoleon himself desired to bring about peace at once, or whether he would profit by favourable circumstances to continue the war against Austria, subduing her still further with a view to puting an end forever to her power. In his military surroundings there was no lack of voices, notably that of the self-seeking Murat, who coun- selled taking the latter course. Talleyrand, on the contrary, was emphatically of the other opinion. He was an avaricious man, certain of rich pecuniary returns in case of an agreement being brought about, and he skilfully persuaded the Emperor to decide upon terminating a war which he had, moreover, advised against from the outset. "It is to the interest of France," said he to Napoleon, "that I want to sacrifice the interests of your generals, in regard to which I feel not the sUghtest concern. Reflect that you lower yourself in taking the same ground as they, and that you are too great to be merely a soldier," These words produced the desired effect, and Napoleon declared him- self ready to conclude peace. The negotiations were allowed to proceed, but now he would no longer consider the imposition of less rigorous conditions. When Prince Johann Liechtenstein, the new negotiator of the Austrian Emperor, arrived in Briinn Napoleon had ceased to be satisfied with his former exaction of the ItaHan territory of Venice, but now required Venice with the same extent in which it had been ceded to Austria in 1797, that is to say, including Istria and Dalmatia. Shortly after he repudiated the promise which he had made to Francis II. on the Austerlitz highway, and demanded the Tyrol for Bavaria. This was followed within a short time by further requirements — the district of the Inn and Austria's consent to the dispossession of the Royal House of Naples. Before the great battle Napoleon would have contented himself with a war indemnity of five mil- Uon gulden ($2,000,000); fifty million francs ($9,500,000) was his present demand, from which he was with difficulty persuaded to abate ten millions. "Every hour witnesses the birth of new exactions," wrote Liechtenstein from Pressburg, where he had been negotiating with Talleyrand ever since December 20th. Per- plexity and discouragement prevailed at Holitsch, where Em- 322 The War of 1805 [i805 peror Francis awaited the outcome. In his despair he even considered for a time taking up arms again.* But Archduke Charles was most strenuous in his advice against such a course, having been convinced ever since the capitulation at Ulm that Austria could have no hope of success except by means of the pen, and Francis yielded to his representations. Cobenzl, the Minister, who was singled out by public opinion as the obstacle to agreement with the enemy, was compelled to resign his oftice and was succeeded by Count Stadion. Soon afterwards, on December 26th, the treaty of peace was signed at Pressburg.f Before its ratification Archduke Charles was commissioned to make efforts in a personal interview with Napoleon to obtain more moderate terms. The conference took place, but was productive of no result, and on New Year's Day, 1806, the * Napoleon declared at a later date, in conversation with the Bavarian Minister Montgelas, that his army, "weakened by its victories, was very unfavourably located, between the fortress of Ohniitz — which it was hardly possible to besiege in winter-time with the hostile army close at hand — and the Austrian capital, populous, ill disposed, and difficult to control; that thereafter its dispositions seemed unsafe and badly sup- ported, all the more so because Russia, still hostile, might at any moment order an advance of her forces; and finally, that, though Prussia had indeed signed a treaty, it had not yet been ratified, and through its rela- tions with the two emperors that power might have prepared for him embarrassments of the worst order. It was, therefore, when the cir- cumstances were rightly considered, a matter for self-congratulation that the Austrian court offered so little steadfast opposition and so eagerly desired the termination of the war. (Montgelas, " Denkwiirdigkeiten " (1887), p. 124.) Radetzky also bears witness in his Recollections that at the time Vienna was in a ferment. t Recent Austrian historians have named December 27th as the date of signature to this instrument, but this is inexplicable. The following passage from Napoleon's letter of December 25th, 1805, to Talleyrand directing the Minister to sign the treaty on the following day, may be quoted for its illustration of Napoleon's character: "Finally — should it be impossible to append your signature at once — wait and sign it upon New Year's Day; for I have niy prejudices and am very glad that the peace should date from the renewal of the Gregorian calendar, which betokens, I hope, as much good fortune to my reign as it has enjoyed under the old one [i e., the Revolutionary calendar]. To sum up : sign to-morrow if you can, or else on the first day of the year." ^T. 36] The Treaty of Pressburg 323 monarch of Austria sot his name to one of the most onerous treaties which that power has ever concluded. P^mperor Francis dehvered back all that he had received in the Treaty of Campo Formio as belonging to Venice, both the Italian territory and all its dependencies, and Venice, Istria, Dalmatia, and Cattaro were united with the kingdom of Italy. It was only with great re- luctance that Napoleon left to him Trieste, which, according to Joseph Bonaparte, he had intended to use as a base in a new undertaking against Egypt and India. Austria, furthermore, gave her assent to all the changes and establishments in Pied- mont, Genoa, Parma, Lucca, and Piombino, and acknowledged as kings the Electors of Bavaria and Wiirtemberg, to the former of whom she gave up the Tyrol with Vorarlberg, Brixen, Trent, Passau, Eichstadt, Burgau, and Lindau, besides counties and possessions of lesser importance; while to the latter she relinquished five cities on the Danube with their territories, the counties of Hohenberg and Nellenburg and a part of the Breisgau. Baden received another portion of the Breisgau, the Ortenau, the city of Constance, and the island of Mainau. The King of Bavaria was to surrender Wiirzburg to the Archduke Elector of Salzburg, who was in his turn to pass on this terri- tory to Austria. The Austrian Power was thus crowded out of Italy and Germany, while the French sphere of action now extended at the south as far as the Balkan Peninsula; Austria had been compelled to give up about 23,000 square miles of territory, more than two and a half million souls, and nearly fourteen mil- Uon gulden of annual income, and for this enormous loss she received compensation amounting to almost nothing. In re- gard to this point, indeed, Talleyrand was not of the same mind as his lord. He had interceded in behalf of Austria and written to Napoleon even at the opening of the campaign: "At the present day the Turks are no longer formidable, they have themselves everything to fear. But the Russians have taken their place; Austria is still the chief bulwark which Europe has to oppose to them, and it is against themtliatwe ought now to fortify her." He proposed later, during the course of the 324 The War of 1805 [isos negotiations, to indemnify the power at Vienna with Moldavia, Wallachia, Bessarabia, and Northern Bulgaria. But his propo- sition was not received with favour, either by the Austrians — who rightly foresaw in it only a cause of dispute and wrangUng with Russia, and were at the same time not yet ready to give up definitely their position as one of the Great Powers of Central Europe — or by Napoleon, whose plans included the curbing of the power of the Czars also at some future day beneath his own sceptre. This was the great gulf separating him from Talleyrand, as from all patriotic Frenchmen: they desired, of course, a strong, national, predominating France, but at the same time admitted the existence of a system of counterbalanc- ing powers, while the Emperor saw in all Europe nothing but his own personal domain. In France the Revolution was ex- tinguished and no one had any further sjrmpathy with its spirit of conquest; but in Europe this spirit was yet ahve, em- bodied in a single man, to be sure, but this man, with mighty power, arrogated to himself dominion over the entire Continent. I CHAPTER XII NAPOLEONIC CREATIONS. BREACH WITH PRUSSIA The battle fought on December 2d, 1805, is one of the four pre-eminently decisive in effect upon the career of Napoleon as a monarch. Marengo had secured to him his control over France, Austerlitz established his ascendency in Europe; the work of Austerlitz was undone at Leipzig, and what Marengo had given was finally lost at Waterloo. For a moment his entire scheme of personal dominion throughout the world had wavered in the balance in Moravia. For the most important effect of the successfully conducted retreat of the Russians was to put in question Napoleon's prestige with his army, upon whom alone he might depend for the realization of his dream. The masterly manoeuvres at Ulm, the surprise of Vienna, and the seizure of the bridges of the Danube were regarded as mere premises lack- ing a conclusion, and in the army voices were already raised in criticism. Then came the victory, thrust upon the Corsican by the astounding foolhardincss of his adversary, which re- moved the danger which had threatened his standing among his troops. Nor was the army alone in feeling this effect; throughout the French people public opinion was again, by this victory, turned to the Emperor's favour. No war had ever been more unpopular in France than this. The rigidly enforced conscrip- tion had been endured with ill-concealed impatience, and a serious financial crisis following close upon it had reawakened the scarcely laid doubt as to whether the prevailing system and the man who represented it really gave promise of abiding pro- tection to material interests; the expedition against San Do- mingo began to be recalled as a very expensive venture which had cost 50,000 men and 60,000,000 francs; the loss to com- 325 326 Napoleonic Creations [isoe merce with the East consequent upon the naval war was com- puted, as also the deficit resulting to France through the rapid occupation of the colonies by Englishmen; even the most zeal- ous champions of the Napoleonic system were not wholly averse to entertaining the thought of Joseph in the seat of power should Napoleon lose his life in battle. But every such consideration was put to flight when word was received of the sudden victory and peace so soon after extorted. The French as a people were far too proud, too vain, not to lay claim to a man who gave commands to monarchs, who made and immade kings, and through whom the name of France had been exalted beyond any point ever reached under any of her former rulers. Ac- cording to the testimony of an eye-witness: "The French, trans- ported by the tidings of such a victory, leaving nothing to be desired since it terminated the war, were again fired with en- thusiasm and there was no need for encouragement to popular rejoicing. The nation identified itself once more with its suc- cessful army. This moment I regard as the culmination of Bonaparte's prosperity, for the mighty deeds of their monarch were at this time approved and adopted by the greater part of the people." Napoleon was extolled by the national pubhc bodies in most extravagant terms. According to them his renown had overshadowed all other immortal names, and admi- ration and wonder could but blush to remember previous objects of regard, etc. The French people while thus acclaiming the conqueror were acting under a twofold delusion. In the first place they did not suspect that this continental war had been long planned by the Emperor, the campaign carefully devised, and the crisis brought about by his own machinations, but believed the statements published by his obedient creatures, that he had been the party threatened and attacked and that his people could not enough admire the ready art with wliich he had been able to make a defence against the conspiracy of all Europe. The second error of the French peopk^ consistetl in regarding Napoleon as their P^mperor who vanciuishcd the enemy in order to insure glory, prosperity, and peace to the country to the left of the Rhine, ^T. 36] Naples 327 while he had in rcahty long since ceased to be the Emperor of France except in name. To those acquainted with Napoleon's Bccret intentions before the campaign it will be no matter of surprise that he made use of his victories to advance interests quite unrelated to the exaltation of the power of the French state or the diminution of that of Austria, interests entirely incomprehensible except from the standpoint of one aspiring to establish an empire not limited by the Gallic boundary-lines. During the negotiations with the Austrian envoys, upon one occasion before the battle of Austerlitz, the kingdom of Naples had come under discussion. After that event the sub- ject was not again touched upon. Napoleon now considered himself strong enough to carry out his intentions throughout all Italy without the consent of the Court of Vienna. Hardly had the signatures been appended to the treaty of peace at Pressburg when he announced on the day following — and, char- acteristically enough, in a mere military order issued to the army — that the Bourbon dynasty in the kingdom of Naples had ceased to reign. The pretext for this step had, it must be acknowledged, been furnished by the Neapolitan court itself. Pressed by both EngUsh and Russians, Queen Caroline had de- termined upon risking all to gain all and, setting aside the prom- ise made to France in August to remain neutral, opened the port of her capital to Russian and British troops. This had taken place in the midst of the war, and hence Napoleon's course in sending Massena with a large body of troops across the Nea- pohtan frontier was capable of justification according to the laws of war. The outcome of it was that the effects of the victory of Austerlitz made themselves felt here as elsewhere, for the Czar, still crushed by his defeat, recalled his troops from Naples to Corfu, and the English, following his example, also evacuated the port and sailed for Sicily, leaving to the mercy of the exas- perated foe those whose fate had been confidingly put in their keeping. No answer was received to the letter in which the queen made submission to the Emperor imploring his clemency, and in the middle of February, ISOG, Joseph Bonaparte, wlu) had put in an appearance with the army, took, as Imperial Vice- 328 Napoleonic Creations [I8O6 roy, immediate possession of the capital whence the legitimate reigning family had shortly before taken flight. Only a few weeks later, before the end of March, and the Bourbon troops which offered resistance on the peninsula had been overcome and Sicily alone was left under dominion of Caroline and the English. On March 30th. 1806, Napoleon apprised the Senate by letter of his determination to set his brother Joseph upon the throne as monarch of Naples and Sicily. This meant, as the letter itself implied, that the kingdom would henceforth be in- cluded within the sphere of Napoleonic power, since it expressly stated that the new king of the Two Sicilies should remain a Grand Dignitary of France. In view of this the law providing that the two crowns, the French and the Neapolitan, should never be united upon one head might as well never have existed.* Together with this decree there were submitted to the Senate several others concerning Italy. One of these dealt with the question of incorporating the Venetian territory with the king- dom of Italy. Another had as its object the assignment of the principality of Guastalla to the Princess Borghese and her hus- band. Still others disclosed an entirely new and special pur- pose on the part of the head of the State. Napoleon, that is to say, proposed to found within the limits of the newly-con- quered Venetian territory twelve titular duchies: Dalmatia, Istria, Friuli, Cadore. Belluno, Conegliano, Treviso, Feltre, Bassano, Vicenza, Padua, and Rovigo, and four similar ones in the kingdom of Naples: Gaeta, Otranto, Taranto, and Reggio, one in the principality of Lucca, and three in Parma and Pia- cenza. One fifteenth part of the revenue from these lands was to serve as endowment to the incumbent. Besides these Napo- leon reserved to himself domains in Venetia amounting in value to 30,000,000 francs, and in Lucca amovmting to 4,000,000, and in addition 1,200,000 francs annual tribute to be furnished by * Louis Bonaparte and Murat, Iho I<]niperor's brother-in-law, likewise retained their French dignities upon becoming European monarchs at this time; that is to sav, they remained subjects of him who bore the title of Emperor of the French. iEx. 30] The Situation ut the Pope 329 the kingdom of Italy and 1,000,000 by Naples. These titled estates and these funds were intended for use as rewards for conspicuous acts of service. The recipients of these favours — and who these were to be will shortly appear — acquired thereby, it is true, no prerogatives of any kind, but title and revenue were assured to the heirs in direct male line. This new feudal system had little more than the name in common with the ancient and obsolete one and should not be confused with it. Of especial significance, however, was the international element in it, for, according to it, citizens of one state could be trans- ferred with their claims to another, French marshals and offi- cials might acquire a legitimate share in state revenues of Italy, and but little later in those of Poland and Germany also — an additional proof that Napoleon's idea of an empire had long since been extended beyontl the boimdaries of France. Madame de Remusat, speaking in her "Memoires" of the new nobiUty, pauses to remark: "Our country came before long to seem to Napoleon nothing more than a great province of the empire which he had resolved upon bringing into submission to him- self." But in nothing did this imperial design disclose itself more clearly than in Napoleon's conduct toward the Pope. After the expulsion from Naples of the legitimate Royal House the entire Italian peninsula had become subject to the will of the conqueror with the exception of the States of the Church. It soon became evident, however, that herein also the rule was to be carried out, and all misgivings on that score received but too speedy confirmation in the bestowal of the Neapolitan principalities of Ponte Corvo and Benevento upon the French dignitaries Bernadotte and Talleyrand, without regard to the suzerainty of the Pope. It yet remained to be seen whether Pius would consent to play a role like that of Joseph Bona- parte as vassal king under Napoleon. Acceptance of this ar- rangement would mean possible continuation of the temporal power of the Pope, rejection, supposably its sacrifice to the design of the great potentate for a world empire. That the Pope could not be counted upon as a docile tool in the hands of 330 Napoleonic Creations [I8O6 the Corsican had already been shown in the recent war when Pius, demanding for himself unconditional neutrality, had raised a protest against the French, who, disregarding his atti- tude, occupied Ancona on their way toward Naples. Far from submitting quietly to such abuse, he had publicly affirmed that as the father of all believers, to observe political impartiality was his duty. In addition to these acts of contumacy Pius, adducing the decisions of the Coimcil of Trent, had refused in June, 1805, Napoleon's request to dissolve the marriage of his youngest brother Jerome with Miss Patterson, an American. Such perversity on the part of the pontiff exasperated the Emperor, who considered himself, in contrast with his republican predecessors, to have made sufficient conciliatory advances. After his victory over the coalition he had the statement pro- mulgated at Rome that he had occupied Ancona because the military forces of the Papal See would have been insufficient to hold the port against the English or the Turks, — i.e., against Protestants and Infidels, — and because he. Napoleon, regarded himself as protector of the Church. Notwithstanding all this, Pius still refused to comprehend and, with mirufflcd suavity, requested the return of the Legations as compensation for his good offices at the time of the coronation. And this time Na- poleon spoke in terms quite unmistakable. Writing February 13th, 1806, he says: "All Italy is to be subject to my law. I shall in no wise interfere with the independence of the Papal See, but upon condition that yoiir Holiness shall show toward myself in things temporal the same respect which I observe toward your Holiness in things spiritual. . . . Your Holiness is sovereign of Rome, but I am its emperor." And to Fesch, who was now his representative at the Papal court, he gave orders to demand the expulsion of all subjects of England, Russia, Sweden, and Sardinia, and the closing of the port of Rome to ships of these nations, adding that Joseph had instruc- tions to uphold him by force of arms. The Roman pontiff was, moreover, to trouble himself no further with political affairs, since his protection had been assumed by Napoleon against the whole world. "Say to him," he continues, "that my eyes are JEr.^G] Holland 331 open and that I do not allow myself tf» ])C imposed upon ex- cept in so far as 1 desire; say to him that I am Charlemagne, the Sword of the Church, their Emperor, and that I propose to be treated as such." Among those surrounding Joseph at this time was Miot de Melito, who says that Napoleon spoke freely in his correspondence with his brother in regard to his real intentions. He had thoughts of going to Rome in order to have himself crowned as Emperor of the West, which would imply the entire relinquishment of temporal power on the part of the Pope, who would have to be satisfied with the chief spiritual authority alone and a few million francs income as compensation. This scheme had been confidentially revealed in Rome, but the cardinals had declared against it and were resolved rather to die than to live under such conditions. The strictest secrecy was maintained about the whole matter. Only to the second letter above mentioned did Pius reply to the effect that Napoleon was indeed Emperor of the French but in nowise Roman Emperor, and that any such close relation with himself as he demanded would deprive the Papal See of its authority in other countries. One concession, however, was made to the oppressor: Consalvi, the Pope's Sec- retary of State, having been indicated by Napoleon as the mov- ing spirit in the resistance to him, was deposed from his office. Relations remained strained and eventually resulted in com- plete rupture. For the present, however, the Emperor turned his attention to the extension of his system in another direc- tion. Holland was now the objective point. This state, having once come within the sphere of French influence, had been obliged to undergo the same changes in its constitution as France itself. Eventually, as has been seen, the Batavian Republic had been established there with a sort of consular constitution having a Grand Pensionary at its head. Ever since June, 1808, this government had sided with Napoleon in times of war. Two years from that date, while the main army was fighting under Napoleon in the east, his brother Louis was given the task of defending the country against the English and Swedes, 332 Napoleonic Creations [I8O6 No engagement took place, the battle of Austerlitz making it unnecessary, and Louis returned to Paris to the disgust of his imperial brother, who was planning to set him also upon a throne and had fixed upon that of Holland as best adapted to his purpose. In January, 1805, it had already been rumoured at The Hague that the French Emperor was intending to set up a monarchy again in Holland. Louis, to whom the idea of becoming a king in Holland was as little attractive as that of mounting a throne in Italy, was unwilling to give encourage- ment to such reports by remaining in the country. But with Napoleon objections of that kind on the part of his brothers were no longer allowed to stand in the way of his designs. The banishment of Lucien served as a warning to the perverse; the choice lay between exile and implicit obedience. Like Joseph, Louis ended by choosing obedience and declared him- self ready to assume the crown of Holland. As for the Dutch, scant regard was vouchsafed to their preferences. One who feels himself sufficiently superior to laws and treaties to treat them with disdain has no need for anything more than a pretext for proceeding as he thinks fit. The Grand Pensionary Schimmel- penninck, having discovered what was being plotted in Paris, sent thither a deputation of Dutch notables with Admiral Ver- huell at their head to avert the threatened danger. On March 14th, 1806, Napoleon wrote to Talleyrand in regard to the matter: "I saw M. H. Verhuel this evening. Here, in a couple of words, is what I have reduced the question to : Holland is without executive power, she must have such, I will give her Prince Louis. A compact shall be made according to which the religion of the country shall be respected ; the prince will retain his own and each part of the nation will retain its own. The present constitution will remain in force, with the only differ- ence that in place of a Grand Pensionary there will be a king. Indeed there is nothing to prevent giving him the title of Stadt- holder. ... In all foreign relations, in the government of the colonies, and in all affairs of state th(^ acts will be in the name of the stadtholder or king. Make me a draft of this scheme and send a clever person to The Hague to attend to this business. . . . I 1 iEr. 30] Louis Bonaparte King of Holland 333 'Ihis is a matter upon which my mind is made up — either that or incorporation with France. The arguments to be brought to bear with the Dutch a e that otherwise I will not see that a single one of the colonies lost to I^igland is restored to them when peace is made. On the other hand, if my terms are accepted, I will not only assist them to regain all the colonies, but even give them to understand that I will add Friesland besides. As you see, not a moment is to be lost." It was useless for the deputies to refer to the treaty of 1803, in which Napoleon had solemnly promised them the reacquisition of the colonies in return for their support of him during the war, to say nothing of Ceylon, which under favourable circumstances he was also going to procure for them. It availed nothing to adduce the treaty of 1795 with its first article reading: "The French Re- public recognizes the Republic of the United Provinces as a free and independent power and guarantees to it that liberty and independence." Napoleon was not to be moved, and when the negotiations at The Hague began to drag, since the people were absolutely opposed to the idea of a monarchy, he threatened them with measures so severe that they at length yielded to his wishes. The same people which in former times had laid waste its own country in order to save it from the cupidity of Louis XIV. now complied without resistance. Tlie Dutch Council of State authorized the Grand Pensionary to sign a treaty with France according to which Louis Bonaparte became king of Holland (May 24th, 1806), and on June 5th a deputation an- nounced at the Tuileries that "after mature deliberation" it had been decided that for the future a constitutional monarchy was best adapted to the needs of the country, and that the mis- sion of the deputation was to beseech the prince to found such an one. To this solemn address the Emperor replied in words no less impressive, and Europe counted one more amongst her list of kings. After the audience, it is true, Napoleon threw aside the mask and called upon his little nephew, Louis's son, to recite to the Empress and the ladies of the court the fable about "The frogs who desired a king." After all did the people of these nations deserve anything better than the mockery of ^34 Napoleonic Creations [isoe this .solitary upstart who belonged to none of them and yet had Biibjugated them all? Nor were the Germans to be spared the ignominy of being counted among the nations tributary to the Corsican. In his correspondence with the Pope there is frequent reference to Germany, and its perusal leaves the impression that the writer did not regard himself as other than lord of that nation also. In his letter of February 13th, 1806, for instance, he blames the advisers of the head of the Church as the cause of Germany's persistence in religious anarchy. "If your Holiness," he pro- ceeds, ''would recall to mind what I said in Paris, rehgion in Germany would be organized and not in its present wretched condition." This is a part of the same letter in which Napo- leon declared himself to be Emperor of Rome, Emperor of the West, and Charlemagne, who likewise had held sway over Frankish, Italian, and German lands. And in point of fact did matters not stand very much as he thus claimed? In 1805 the princes of Southern Germany, as if feudal vassals, had followed the call to arms of this foreigner who promised them protection and profit and who led them against their own imperial sover- eign, who was no longer in a position to extend such protection and whose aim was rather toward the weakening than upbuild- ing of the secular states of the Empire. Upon the re-establish- ment of peace Napoleon rewarded his German adherents with enlargement of their borders, elevation of rank as princes, and the conferring of "sovereignty." The 14th article of the Treaty of Pressburg ran as follows: "Their Majesties the Kings of Bavaria and Wiirtemberg and His Serene Highness the Elector of Eaden will enjoy complete sovereignty over the territories ceded to them, as also over their former states, including all rights proceeding therefrom and which have been guaranteed to them by His Majesty the Emperor of the French, King of Italy, in like maimer as similar privileges are enjoyed by His Majesty the Emperor of Germany and Austria and His Majesty the King of Prussia in respect to their German lands. His Majesty the Emperor of Germany and Austria pledges himself not to hinder, either as Emperor or Estate of the Empire, the I JEt.3c>] Alliances with German Princes 335 cxccvitidii of clocreet; wliich they may have mado or may make in consequence." Certainly from that side everythhig had been made safe. But so nmch the more felt was the pressure soon brought to bear by the overpowering authority proceeding from the west. When, in February, 1806, the King of Bavaria ven- tured modestly to make objections to having his troops detailed from Germany to join the French army in Italy, he met with the humihating response that he need not flatter himself that Ba- varia had been elevated to a kingdom out of consideration for himself, this change having been made solely as a result of the French system. Accordingly what in respect to Austria was designated as "sovereignty" was shown in respect to France to be nothing else than vassalage. But in order to secure permanency to these conditions and to make certain of the fidelity of his German adherents Napo- leon resolved upon two measures. The first consisted in uniting with his own the famiUes of the South German princes. As early as 1804, soon after his coronation as Emperor, he had meditated estabUshing a relationship with the ancient reigning houses of Germany, and had at that time proposed at the Elec- toral Court a marriage between his stepson Eugene and the Princess Augusta of Bavaria. Indeed it appears from the re- cently published Memoirs of the Bavarian Minister Montgelas that he had already at this time taken steps in Munich to- ward bringing about an offensive and defensive alliance, and had held out to Maximilian Joseph hopes of elevation to the dignity of king in case of the consummation of this marriage, upon which it is evident that Josephine had set her heart. This proposal was at the time neither accepted nor rejected by the Elector, and decision of the question merely postponed. But immediately after the opening of negotiations at Pressburg Napoleon returned to the subject. The Elector might hideed still hesitate, but he could no longer refuse, and on January 14th, 1806, the marriage of the Viceroy took place. The same princess had been before this time sought in marriage by the hereditary Prince of Baden; he was now promised the hand of Josephine's niece, Stephanie, who, however, accepted this engagement only 336 Napoleonic Creations [I8O6 with reluctance, being loath to leave Paris, where, according to report, she was on terms of intimacy with the Emperor.* And BO also with the third court of South Germany. Ever since October, 1805, a family alliance had been meditated and agreed upon : Jerome was to marry Katharine, the only daughter of Frederick, King of Wiirtemberg, a project which was car- ried out in 1807, the bridegroom having meanwhile himself been made a king. The second method of subjecting Western Germany per- manently to his will was suggested to Napoleon by the designs of the governments preceding his own. This was to consist in uniting the southern and middle German states in a special league independent of Prussia and Austria, and in subordinat- ing this league by treaty to the control of France. This was a French idea of long standing, having been formulated in the seventeenth century and later adopted by the Revolution. In the correspondence between Talleyrand and Sieyes in 1798 there is frequent reference to the advisability of founding a third German state of this kind, the control of which should remain in the hands of France. Later, after Napoleon had divided up the German ecclesiastical states according to his own good pleasure, he took up this scheme with Talleyrand. Both then had irter- views in Mainz with the Archbishop, Dalberg, the only one of the clerical electors who had escaped the general secularization. "They represented to him," wrote the Bavarian Minister Edels- heim to the Russian ambassador in Vienna, "that, since France could not tolerate constant encroachments from Austria and Prussia upon the possessions of the other German princes and states, it was an urgent necessity that a firm and imposing con- federation should be formed against enterprises of that nature, a confederation to be composed of all the states of the Empire, exclusive of the two powers already mentioned, and to be able in case of need to furnish 150,000 men. Should the princes be so blind to their own interests as to be unable to come to an agreement in the matter, Napoleon would make over to the * Indeed until our own day the belief has survived that Kaspar Hauser, the my.sterious foundling of Nuremberg, was her son and Napoleon's. ^T. 30] The Confederation of the Rhine 337 Elector of Bavaria tho on tiro country lying botwoon the Rhine and Austria, since ho would rather deal with three powers than with these small and good-for-nothing states powerless through their disunion." Now. whatsoever else may be made a matter of reproach to these "small and good-for-nothing stat<^s," it cannot be said that their princes were "blind to their own interests." Ac- cordingly when the victor of Austerlitz renewed his proposition somewhat later he found Little Germany quite ready to accede to his demands. Indeed it did not wait for advances to be made. In April 1806. Dalberg addressed a memorial to Napo- leon which serves in a measure to explain to us the latter's allu- sions in his letters to Pius VII. "The worthy German nation," this document reads, "groans in the misery of political and religious anarchy, be thou Sire, the restorer of her constitu- tion." And what did Dalberg mean by this? Religious an- archy was to be dispelled through the establishment of a na- tional German church of which he was to be the head, and he actually succeeded in furthering this plan so far as to induce Napoleon to write to Fesch at Rome that if the Pope did not yield the religious affairs of Germany would be regulated with Dalberg as primate. As for temporal affairs, the Electoral Arch-Chancellor de- sired, as he wrote to the French ambassador Hedouville. "that the Western Empire should Uve again in the Emperor Napoleon such as it had been under Charlemagne, composed of Italy, France, and Germany." For the time being, at least. Napoleon himself could desire nothing more. He appointed to Talley- rand and Labesnardiere the task of preparing the draft of a federal constitution, and had it signed on July 12th, 1806. by the ambassadors of the different states party to it. And now, just as had been the case four years previous, German emis- saries courted favour and consideration at the hands of the minister, offering unstinted gold to obtain the promulgation of a political existence to which honour was a stranger. In this all did not meet with success. For when the document came to be signed it was discovered that a long array of principalities 338 Napoleonic Creations [I8O6 and dukedoms, hitherto subject only to the German Empire, had been absorbed into the territories of the princes of the Confederation and made subservient to them, — had been me- diatized, — that is to say, a foreign ruler, without a shadow of right and acting purely according to preference, had done away with a number of political units in Germany for the benefit of others whose submission to his will he thereby purchased. Among the most highly favoured were Bavaria, Wiirtemberg, and the new "grand duchy" of Baden, Nassau, Hesse-Darm- stadt, and Dalberg.now "Prince Primate," to whom fell the city and territory of Frankfort on the Main. In addition to these the Confederation included several smaller princes who. through bribery or other means, had protected themselves against medi- atization. Among these were Arenberg, Liechtenstein, Salm, Hohenzollem and Von der Leyen. The Elector of Hesse did not join the Confederation. In his place a new sovereign was appointed: the Duke, or rather now "Grand Duke," of Cleves and Berg, those strips of land which had been ceded by Prussia and Bavaria in the preceding year and which had been trans- ferred by Napoleon in March, 1806, to his brother-in-law Murat. In the first two articles of the Act of Confederation these princes declared that they were separated wholly and forever from the Holy Roman Empire of the German nation, that they thereby formed a special alliance under the name of the Confederation of the Rhine, and should recognize no further claim upon them- selves put forth by the ancient imperial power; that they were independent of foreign powers with the sole exception of France, whose Emperor, as Protector of the Confederation, was to de- termine upon the admission of new members to the same, to appoint the Prince Primate, and direct the equipment of the troops of the Confederation. Each of the princes had a speci- fied quota of troops to furnish: Bavaria 30,000, Wiirtemberg 12,000. Baden 8000, Darmstadt 4000, Berg 5000, and Nassau, together with the rcnnaining small states, 4000 men — forces over which Napoleon from that time assumed absolute control and made use of in all his wars, for, as set forth in Article 35, an alliance between the French Empire and the states of the Con- ^T. 36] Dissolution of the Old German Empire 3 39 federation of the Rhine had boon entered into according to which "every Continental war involving any one of the parties to the treaty became at once common to all the others." The miUtary forces of the conqueror had thus been increased by an army and the territory under his political authority enlarged to the extent of fifty thousand square miles with eight millions of souls. On August 1st, 1806, the official communication of the Constitution of the Confederation was made to the Diet of Ratisbon by the Confederation and its Protector with the declaration that the old Empire was to be regarded as no longer existing. The question now was as to what attitude the two great German powers would assume toward this new order of things. Austria's monarch was still Emperor of Germany, and the dissolution of the Empire had been resolved upon entirely with- out his foreknowledge. To this empty title, to be sure, no im- portance had for a long time been attached in Vienna, not since 1802, when foreign influence had made itself felt in German affairs and, with the help of the Germans themselves, had become paramount in the poUtics of the Empire. The defence of Italy had been undertaken with zeal, but there would have been much greater reluctance to entering upon a war for the benefit of Germany. Moreover, in the Treaty of Pressburg, — particularly in the before-mentioned Article 14, — the abdica- tion of the German Emperor had already been indirectly an- noimced. and such delay as was occasioned at the Court of Vi- enna was due to the hope of securing compensation of some kind for the renunciation of the imperial diadem. But Napoleon had no thought of purchasing. His method was to demand categorically of ^"incent, the Austrian ambassador to Paris, that his master should resign without further ado and recognize the Confederation of the Rhine. Without even awaiting the arrival in Paris of the delegate from Vienna sent to negotiate in the matter the official act was signed at the French capital and the Austrian cabinet thus confronted with an accom- plished fact. Francis 11. had no choice but to deliver through his envoy at Ratisbon a note bearing the date August 6th, 340 Napoleonic Creations [isoe 1806, to the intent that he regarded as dissolved the ties which had until then united him with the German Empire, and that he resigned his crown. The old German Empire was no more. In this interview with Vincent Napoleon had assumed a severe and threatening tone and intimated that his army was standing in readiness to enforce his demands at any moment by overrunning Austria. Nor were such words without founda- tion in fact, for the victorious host had not by any means re- turned to France, nor even so much as completely evacuated Austria, for a powerful garrison was maintained within the fron- tier fortress of Braunau. This last fact was the result of circum- stances involving all Europe. It has been seen to what a degree the ire of Russia had been roused against Napoleon through the intrigues of the French in the Adriatic and Ionian seas, where Russia had schemes of her own. Anxiety in regard to Napoleon's intentions in the East was further aroused at the Russian court by his demand that Dalmatia and Cattaro should be included with Istria in the territory promised to him in the Treaty of Pressburg. This led to Russia's withdrawal from Naples in order to establish herself more securely at Corfu and thus be prepared to close the Balkan Peninsula against French influence, and, with the same end in view, a Russian squadron cruising in the Adriatic received orders to occupy the Gulf of Cattaro. It was urged that the time appointed for delivering the same to the French was passed and that the coast therefore was now to be regarded as belonging, not to Austria but to France, that is, to the enemy, whereupon the Austrian commander promptly relinquished the place to the Russians. At this Napoleon was fairly beside himself with rage, and, insist- ing upon his treaty with the Court of Vienna, he demanded of the latter that it should drive out the enemy in order to deliver to him the Gulf, threatening to retain his troops in Braunau until after this should be accomplished. All appeals made by Austria to Russia to induce her to give up the Gulf were unavailing; nothing but evasions were to be extorted from St. Petersburg. Napoleon, however, carried out meanwhile to the letter his -SiT. 36] The Situation of Prussia 341 threat of maintaining troops in Southern Germany, a fact which hastened in no small degree the accomplishment of his project for a confederation of the states of the Rhine. The true importance of this military occupation of South- em Germany lay in the fact that through it not Austria alone, but also the state of the Hohenzollerns, the second great power in Germany, was held in check. When last mentioned Prussia was in a predicament. The narrow-minded determination of its sovereign to preserve the peace with Napoleon, coupled with circumstances resulting from the battle of Austerlitz, had com- pelled Haugwitz to sign the Treaty of Alliance at Schonbrunn, December 15th, 1805. This outcome was not without its draw- backs. For one thing the covenant binding her to an ofTensive and defensive alliance with Napoleon made Prussia appear quite too thoroughly a partisan of France, a circumstance which could not but be prejudicial to her standing as a Euro- pean power; furthermore, through the immediate transfer of Hanover to Prussian administration entanglements with Eng- land must inevitably follow. To avoid these difficulties Haug- witz, upon his return, himself proposed to the king that he should not ratify the treaty exactly according to its original wording, but in a somewhat altered form. In place of "offensive and defensive alliance" the word "alliance" alone was substituted, while it arranged that Hanover should be delivered to Prussia only upon the cessation of hostilities between France and Eng- land, being meanwhile merely occupied by Prussian troops. The aim was thus to make sure of the Guelph Electorate with- out becoming involved in a European war on its account. With the document thus modified Haugwitz took his departure for Paris, and such misgivings as to its reception by Napoleon as had been harboured at home by Minister Hardenberg were dispelled by the arrival just at this time — about January 20th, 1806 — of a lettter from Talleyrand to Laforet, the French am- bassador at Berlin, telling of the readiness of the Emperor to come to an agreement with Prussia. Actuated by these wel- come tidings he even went so far as to advise disarmament, a proposal which was so promptly carried into effect that before 342 Napoleonic Creations [isoe the end of January the greater part of the Prussian army had actually been disbanded. But affairs had meanwhile taken an unexpected turn in Paris. Far from being ready to accept the emendations made at Berlin, Napoleon was determined upon having Prussia absolutely upon his side in order to make her weight felt in the approaching negotiations with England. For this reason he not only re- jected the treaty in its altered form, but declared as null and void the agreement of December 15th, since it had not been ratified within the stipulated time. In its place he forced upon the envoy another document which contained, indeed, no allu- sion to an "offensive and defensive alliance, " but imposed con- ditions far harder than those of the Treaty of Schonbrunn: Prussia had now to cede Valengin in addition to Neufchatel, and to renounce all claim to compensation for Ansbach, which had been turned over to Bavaria; furthermore, she was to recognize and to defend just as before the integrity of Turkey, to take im- mediate possession of Hanover, and to close to England the ports on the North Sea, the mouths of the rivers flowing there- into, and the port of Liibeck. Disaster was plainly written on the very face of such a document, for if the defence of Turkey was more than likely to provoke a quarrel with Russia, the closing of these ports must inevitably mean war with England. Yet in spite of all Haugwitz affixed his signature to this treaty on February 15th, 1806, nor did Frederick William refuse to ratify it. With his army upon a footing of peace and the French troops stationed in Southern Germany no choice was open to him.* * An Austrian officer, travelling at that time upon a secret mission in Southern Germany, writes from Munich. March 31st 1806 "Moreover, the truly admirable position held by the French army in respect to Prussia seems not to have been accorded sufhcient attention. With his army so extended that the two extremes touched Austerlitz at one end and Bregenz at the other, lionaparte withdrew his forces from Austria in columns by a flank movement All of a sudden, through Augereau's move [upon Frankfort], the army was placed in a threatening attitude, having Frankfort as its centre with the Upper Palatinate and the Weser at the extreme ends and leaving it in possession of all streams and heights ^T. 36] The Death of Pitt 343 And now followed the result to which all these events had been leading. Prussia's occupation of Hanover had been ac- cepted at the outset by England without any token of hostility, but the closing of the ports of the Elbe, Weser, and Ems engen- dered the wildest excitement. At once, early in April, 1S06, without A\aiting for a formal declaration of war, the British ministers, certain of the absolute concurrence of Parliament, sequestrated all Prussian merchant-vessels lying in her ports, — there were some hundreds of them, — and gave chase to those upon the open sea. This alone involved a loss of many millions to Prussia, without taking into account the vastly more grievous loss which must inevitably be sustained by Silesian commerce as a result of the closing of the northern seaports. All this calamity for the sake of Hanover, the possession of which was after all not so sure a thing as had been assumed by those in Berlin who favoured the idea of an alliance with France. What would happen if, for instance, England and France should come to a reconciliation? Would Napoleon, out of consid eration for Prussia, be deterred from returning the Electorate if the question of peace depended upon it? And indeed indi- cations all pointed to some such adjustment of differences. The victories of the Emperor had not unnaturally awakened a feeling of deep uneasiness in London. It was with true heavi- ness of heart that Pitt witnessed the peace made with Austria, the Russians returning home, and the disintegration of the coalition which, at bottom, had been of his making. Ailing as he was in body, he completely succumbed to these un- expected blows, and died January 23d, 1806. Shortly before his end, as his glance chanced to fall upon a map of Europe, he gave orders to roll it up, since there would be no occasion to use it during the course of the next ten years. It was as a true prophet that this man of genius quitted the scene. There was from which Prussia could be intimidated. Berlin, it was reckoned, could be reached in ten marches, and they counted upon but one battle between Wiirtemberg and Breslau. Prussia, whose attention was kept occupied with negotiations during all these manoeuvres, awoke too late to a realization of her situation and was compelled to subscribe to all conditions imposed upon her." ^44 Napoleonic Creations [isoe in the Grenville ministry, which succeeded that of Pitt, an element friendly to France, led by Fox, the Minister of Foreign Affairs. This man has already been noticed as an enthusiastic admirer of the hero of the 18th of Brumaire. He now made approaches to the government at Paris in a manner smacking of the romantic, by giving information of a conspiracy against the life of the Emperor, which, although apparently nothing more than a concoction of his own brain, was received graciously by Napoleon, who was well pleased to accept the pretext as genuine and made a courteous reply. Shortly afterwards Lord Seymour, Earl of Yarmouth, one of the Englishmen arrested in Paris at the opening of the war, was commissioned by the London cabinet to open negotiations with Talleyrand. By June, 1806, these had been entered upon. It was scarcely feasible to withhold Malta from the victor of Trafalgar if he were to be asked to give back the conquests he had made, and Napoleon's minister made a direct offer of the island to the Englishman, proffering in addition — as though no treaty of alliance between Prussia and France had ever existed — the return of Hanover to its hereditary sovereign. The possession of Sicily, moreover, was to remain in the hands of its Bourbon king, provided England would acknowledge Joseph's sovereignty at Naples. Of all this no word reached Berlin for some time. Never- theless the king could not overcome his distrust of an ally who imposed upon him conditions so hard. He turned to Russia for countenance and support. Duke Charles of Brunswick was despatched on a secret mission to St. Petersburg, there to obtain above all else a promise from Alexander L to respect the integrity of Turkey, lest in the end Prussia be driven to making war against him. But such an assurance was not to be gained. So much progress only was made toward an understanding between them that the two sovereigns exchanged declarations according to which the Czar promised to use all his powers to preserve the state of Prussia independent and inviolable, while Frederick William bound himself not to make war against Russia if perchance hostilities should arise in consequence of an attack upon Turkey by France (July Ist, 1806). The surest /Et. 36] Negotiations with Russia 345 guarantee of tranquillity to Prussia would indeed have lain in the establishment of peace between France and Russia, and for a time it seemed as if this were to be the actual outcome. Alex- ander, having heard of negotiations between Napoleon and Eng- land, was determined, in case they should result in reconciUation, not to be left alone to sustain the war against the formidable Emperor. For this reason the Russian ambassador Oubril now betook himself to Paris, and there indeed, on July 20th, 1806, concluded a separate treaty according to the terms of which Russia was to relinquish Cattaro and withdraw to the Ionian Islands, in return for which France was to evacuate Germany within three months and also release the recently occupied Rc- pubhc of Ragusa. Both parties acknowledged the independ- ence and integrity of the Porte. King Ferdinand was to receive the Balearic Islands as compensation for his former kingdom of Naples and Sicily. To this treaty, which reminds one of that which Count St. Julien was once inveigled into signing, there was lacking nothing but the signature of the Czar. But with neither Russia nor England was peace to follow in spite of all these negotiations. For scarcely had the Russian envoy arrived in Paris, as a preliminary to the establishment of amicable relations, when Napoleon began to retract, one after the other, every concession he had made to England and finally insisted upon the cession of Sicily to Joseph. The effect of this was to disconcert Fox, and when the Constitution of the Confederation of the Rhine became fully known, giving France ascendency upon the Continent and at the same time surrendering further territory to French commerce, he gradually withdrew altogether from the agreement, and the negotiations were at length brought to a close without result. His death also followed shortly after, and with him disappeared almost the last man across the Channel upon whom Napoleon could count as disposed toward reconciliation. From thenceforth he was never to find another in all Great Britain. It was just at this time, too, that the war party in Russ^ia regained the ascendency. Alexander, who did not relish the idea of having his hands tied in the Orient nor of being beguiled 34^ Napoleonic Creations [isoe out of the possession of Cattaro, refused his sanction to the treaty signed by Oubril.* Moreover, a deep impression had been made upon him in learning of the disruption of the ancient German Empire, of which he had been pleased to regard himself as the guarantor. He had it announced in Paris that he would conclude the treaty of peace only upon condition that France would renounce all claim upon Dalmatia and Albania, restore Sicily to King Ferdinand, and finally indemnify the King of Sardinia for the loss of Piedmont. He was perfectly aware that Napoleon would never consent to such terms, and it was with the same breath that he gave orders to mobilize the army and push it forward to the Prussian frontier. During all the time that these changes were taking place in the political situation of the Great Powers, Prussia had been bending in sorrow and anguish beneath the yoke of her alliance with France. It is said that after the signing of the compact tears were more than once seen in the eyes of the king. Had not certain possessions been given in exchange for uncertain? The relinquished districts, such as Ansbach, had been forthwith occupied by the French, and yet to this insatiable ally even these promised to be insufficient. In the immediate vicinity of the new duchy of Berg there were three abbeys to which there were rich coal-fields appertaining; these had fallen by inheritance to Prussia in 1802 and no longer belonged to Cleves * In the negotiations between Oubril and the French it is noticeable that he definitely refused to treat for peace in conjunction with England. It was in vain that the British ambassador used his persuasions; he was acting under orders. It is even yet not entirely clear to what cause should be ascribed this determination on the part of the Czar. No mis- take, however, will be made in assuming that Russia was unwilling to reveal to England her posture of attack in regard to Turkey. Certain it is that Paget, the English ambassador at Vienna, "upon his knees" entreated Count Raaumoffsky, the representative of Russia, to evacuate the Gulf of Cattaro, and all to no avail. (Martens, "Recueil des traitds et conventions conclus par la Russie a\ec les puissances etrangeres," II. .W4.) Oubril Icarnod to his cost how thoroughly the Czar was resolved upon keeping this port, for, having allowed himself to be cajoled in Paris into promising its reliiKiuishmenl, he lost favour with his prince and waa deprived of his office and dignities. iEr. 36] Prussia Reduced to Desperation 347 except in the matter of provincial representation. In npitc of this fact, Joachim I.^as Murat was now called — simply or- dered his troops to occupy these territories, and was brought to evacuate them only by dint of positive reclamation by the Prussian government. Essen, the property of one of these ab- beys, formed the connecting link between Clcves and the Prus- Bian county of I\Iark. Now Napoleon's policy aimed likewise at the acquisition of this county, since it was essential to his plans to strengthen Murat's jurisdiction in order to estabUsh a firm foothold for himself in Northern Germany such as he had already obtained in the south. With this in view the French ambassador in Berhn received explicit instructions to incite Prussia to open warfare with Sweden in order to take from her Swedish Pomerania. while Prussia herself should relinquish the county of Mark to the Duke of Berg. It was with difficulty that the court at Berlin was able to resist these demands. To add to his other offences Napoleon did not give up to his brother- in-law the fortress of Wesel belonging to Cleves and situated on the right bank of the Rhine, but — in direct violation of the Treaty of Paris — occupied it w^ith his own troops in order to secure also a military point of support in the north. At the conduct of France in this matter, taken with the vexatious tone adopted by her in the documents which were interchanged, fears began to make themselves felt in Prussia that Napoleon was but seeking a pretext for brlngmg about a rupture of the peace in order to extend his power beyond the Prussian boundaries. By the beginning of July the question was already under consideration whether it were not best to make miUtary preparation against such a contingency. Tid- ings arriving from Southern Germany ill calculated to calm such fears seemed to confirm the advisability of being in readiness. Napoleon himself assumed the task of aimouncing in Berlin the founding of the Confederation of the Rhme, only seeking to moderate the impression which such tidings must create by proposing that Frederick William III. establish a similar league on his own account in the north. Hardly, however, had this sug- gestion been taken into consideration in Berlin, before it had to 34^ Napoleonic Creations [isoe be rejected again; for, late in July, Lucchesini sent word from Paris that Lord Yarmouth had confided to him that the Em- peror was about to restore Hanover to England. Hanover! without which Prussia could have no hope of holding a position of importance in Northern Germany, for the possession of which she had made such tremendous sacrifice of territory, possessions, and esteem, and of which Napoleon had but just asseverated that he had no thoughts of denying her ! Was there then any re- spect in which reliance could be placed on Napoleon? Moreover, other alarming reports began to pour in from all sides. From Westphalia General Bliicher sent notification that the French were being re-enforced in Wesel and on the Lippe, a fact which could have but one signification — an attempt to take the Mark and Westphalia from Prussia for Murat. From Ratisbon and Munich news came that French troops had occupied Wiirz- burg, and tidings from everywhere agreed that they were ad- vancing upon Saxony and Prussia. What was to be believed of all this? Could these reports actually be true? And why not? In their weakness the people could not but feel wholly at the mercy of this power advancing totally regardless of cause or right, and, as if in a fever, the one thought prevailing was but to escape in some way from this helpless condition. Even Haugwitz advised — as he had before done in 1803 — to arm and prepare for war, and this time — feehng himself injured and deceived in the conduct of France — the king yielded. Lucche- sini's despatch had reached Berlin on August 6th; four days later Frederick William wrote to the Czar asking his support and saying that Napoleon had offered Hanover to England without equivalent, and this to all intents and purposes meant that he had resolved upon annihilating Prussia. For, should the Emperor actually deprive the state of the Electorate, he must be prepared to see Prussia's king at the head of all his other enemies in the next war, and so, in order to avert this danger. Napoleon intended to avail himself of so favourable an opportunity as the present to destroy him singly. On August 9th orders to mobilize the army were issued in Berlin, and the French ambassador was notified that preparations were behig made 2ET.37] Did Napoleon Want War ? 349 for war because various measures taken by Napoleon must be regarded as aimed against Prussia; for even were they nothing more than demonstrations, the necessity was nevertheless laid upon the country of making a counter-display lest, as had occurred on a previous occasion — in February — it be forced to suffer under the constraint of such demonstrations. And was Prussia justified in these forebodings? Did Napo- leon really want war? Yes and no. He wanted war because it constituted part of his system. Ever since the time of the Directory the revolutionary policy had been planned upon the idea of some day crowding Prussia, as also Austria, as far as possible toward the east. Of Napoleon particularly it is said that he had borne a grudge against Frederick WilHam III. ever since the latter's equivocal attitude in the previous year, and that, in February, 1806, the King of Bavaria had already been led by Napoleon to entertain hopes of Bayreuth, although it was certain that Prussia would be no more willing to part with it without a struggle than with Hanover. But it is quite an- other question whether it was Napoleon's plan to make war just then in the summer of 1806 against the principal power of Northern Germany. It would seem, indeed, rather unUkely that he had any such intention. True, his army was maintain- ing in Germany an attitude of offence toward Prussia also, but its location there — aside from the financial importance of sus- taining troops at foreign cost — was on account of Austria. After the consent of Francis II. to the formation of the Confed- eration of the Rhine, followed by the conclusion of the treaty with Oubril involving in its conditions the evacuation of Ger- many by the French, Napoleon really made preparations for \\athdrawing his troops. On August 17th he WTote to Talley- rand and Berthier in regard to the matter and instructed the latter to send home the Austrian prisoners of war. Hearing just at this time of the mobilization of the Prussian army, he simply laughed at it as the outcome of an unjustifiable alarm. Even as late as August 26th he wrote to Berthier at Mimich; "The Berlin cabinet is seized with a panic of fear. It imagines that in our treaty with Russia there are clauses which will de- 350 Napoleonic Creations [I8O6 prive Prussia of several provinces. To that must be attributed the absurd mihtary preparations which it is making and to which no attention should be paid, it being my vmfeigned pur- pose to recall my troops to France." But a week later the question had taken a totally different turn. News had arrived from St. Petersburg that the Czar refused to accept the treaty of July 20th, and at this the preparations suddenly assumed a new meaning in Napoleon's estimation, since, from the coinci- dence of the two facts, he concluded that there must be an understanding between Russia and Prussia, especially as, simul- taneously with the Russian courier, there arrived General Knobelsdorff from Berlin demanding in the name of his sov- ereign the evacuation of Germany. It was further assumed in Paris that England also had given up all thought of making peace with France, so that it is not astonishing that Napoleon should infer the existence of a new coalition similar to that of the preceding year, except that in this Austria was replaced by Prussia. Under this supposition — which was moreover a mistaken one— he at once countermanded the marching orders issued to the army in Germany and refused to Knobelsdorff the fulfilment of Frederick William's request so long as the Prussian army should remain upon a footing of war. Prussia must begin by laying down its arms. With his cold, clear glance the French Emperor surveyed the whole situation. He saw but two possibilities before him, and these he submitted to his ambassador at Berlin in a letter of September 12th, 1806, in which he wrote: "Either Prussia has taken up arms simply from fear, — in which case, since there no longer exists any cause for alarm, the troops will be dis- banded, especially as they occasion great expense, — or else Prussia has meant so to place herself for the time being that agreements which she has already made or proposes to make with Russia, England, and Sweden shall come to light. In the latter case the policy of the Emperor demands that he should take advantage of the favourable time of year to reach Berlin before the Swedes and Russians, to scatter the Prussian army as he has scattered the Austrians, to attack his enemies before ^T. 37] Public Feeling in Germany 351 thoy can unite, and ovorcoino tlioin sin«i;ly. Tlio quostion reduces itself, then, to these two conditions; it admits of no third. ' Possibihties,' 'probabilities,' 'persuasions,' 'inmost convictions' are in the eyes of His Majesty nothing more than idle fancies by which he does not allow himself to be misled. If perchance . . . any hypothesis besides those mentioned might be admitted, it could only be this, that the same Provi- dence which has always hitherto guided the Emperor has decreed that Berlin shall fall beneath his blow on the anniver- sary of the day upon which he entered Vienna." Everything now depended upon whether the King of Prussia would accede to the demanrls of the Corsican. He had in reality taken up arms '' from fear," but the same fear with- held him now from laying them down again. And besides this fear was concern for the position of the state as a power which seemed to be threatened in Hanover, so recently acquired; concern for the honour and majesty of the throne; and, finally, respect for a popular sentim(>nt demanding resistance to France, which now for the first time made itself plainly felt. For there was no denying that among the German people there was growing up a reaction of the nation against Napoleon's system of international conquest. Through the absolute arbitra- riness with which the Emperor had cast off the republican forms of the Revolution he had made himself enemies of the democrats of Southern Germany, those who, even at the time of the Direc- torj', had been full of enthusiasm about the "liberating" policy of France; his despotism and boundless ambition had exas- perated those who valued the independence of their nation, who clung to their hereditary dynasties, and who regarded with disfavour their diminution. To be sure, besides those who were so opposed to Napoleon there were millions who, destitute of politi- cal sentiment of any kind, lived only for material gain and en- joyment, and would therefore prefer slavish tranquillity under the iron hand of the foreign power to the struggle for inde- pendence and freedom of action; and then again there were serious-minded men in whom the principle of equality had en- gendered sympathy with France, who saw their ideal in the 352 Napoleonic Creations [18O6 cosmopolitan union of the nations however brought about, and who therefore felt no antipathy to Napoleon, regarding him as the instrument through whom this was to be accomplished. But it was against just such as the last-mentioned that some of Germany's best thinkers now entered the arena in the early part of the year 1806 : Schleiermacher, with his sermons upon the value of nationality ; Fichte, with his speeches addressed to German warriors; Ernst Moritz Arndt, with his book on "The Spirit of the Tmies" and his crushing denunciation of the Cor- sican's ambition for universal dominion. Thus it was in the north. In the south appeared pamphlets and fugitive com- positions deploring unreservedly the contemptible attitude of the nation. For it was felt to be ignominious and disgraceful that, in spite of the conclusion of peace, Napoleon should leave his army as a matter of course to domineer and support itself upon German soil. The French Emperor was aware of this new popular movement and did not underestimate it. but he hoped by means of a solitary example of inexorable severity to par- alyze it at a blow. Consequently he instructed Berthier to proceed according to martial law against the Nuremberg pub- lishers of these political libels, that is to say, to summon them before a military tribunal and have them shot at the expiration of twenty-four hours. As he wrote to the Major-General, August 5th, 1806, "the sentence will mean that wherever there is an army, it being the duty of the commmander to provide for its safety, such and such individuals convicted of having tried to excite the inhabitants of Suabia against the French army are condemned to death." This might, perhaps, have been reasonable in time of war and in a hostile land, but here, in the midst of peace and in the country of an ally, such a pro- ceeding was nothing else than absolute barbarity. It was not to be long ere a victim was found. One of the pamphlets, en- titled "Germany in her Deep Al^asement, " had been written by one Yelin of Ansbach and was not at all an incendiary docu- ment. A Nuremberg bookseller, Palm, had published and cir- culated it and was now on that account arrested and, declining to save himself by flight, was shot in Braunau on August 25th, JEt. 37] The Prussian Patriotic Party 353 1806, A tempest of indignation and despair s\vei)t over all Germany. What the execution of d'Engliien had been to the nobility the murder of Palm now was to the people. It was this occurrence more than any other which fostered the German hatred of the French, so that Frederick Gentz in writing from Saxony to Starhemberg, the Austrian diplomat, could say: "The war is to be a national war to the full intent of the word; within a short time all Germany will be taking part in it. The recent crimes of the French, and most of all that one of which the news has just filled all minds with horror, have incensed the nation to such a degree that, following upon the first success scored by the Prussians, a repetition of the Sicilian Vespers will every- where be seen." Even the leading circles of Berlin could not shut themselves away from these floods of popular feehng. Opposed to the "Frenchmen," — as the peace-loving adherents of a neutral policy had been dubbed, — there had existed here for several years a "war party" which had counselled a close defensive alliance with Austria in 1804 and had been unreservedly in favour of joining the coalition in the following year. The hour of triumph had finally arrived to these advocates of resistance, who numbered among them such men as Stein, the Minister of Finance, Generals Bliicher, Riichel, and Pfull, the scholars Jo- hannes von Miillcr and Alexander von Humboldt, with many others. Indeed, even at court, among those nearest to the king, the party counted its supporters: Queen Louise, the Prin- cesses William and Radziwill, Princes Louis Ferdinand, William, Henry, and the Prince of Orange — all acknowledged adherence to it and urged that the state should rise warlike in self-defence rather than continue to sink peacefully into decay. But that which produced the deepest impression upon the mind of the tranquillity-loving king was the fact that, especially in tl.e army, a feeling of positive antipathy to France was making itself evident, taking in some cases the form of serious deliberation and in others that of arrogant presumption; it turbulently de- manded the dismissal of Haugwitz and idolized Harden berg, who had drawn upon himself the hatred of Napoleon, even in 354 Napoleonic Creations [I806 some cases overstepping the bounds of discipline. This had been hitherto unheard of in the Prussian army, and so overcame Frederick William with astonishment that for a moment he con- sidered abdicating the throne. Of disarmament in response to Napoleon's demand no thought could now be entertained. A refusal was sent in response to it, and, solely for the sake of gaining time, Prussia renewed her demand in Paris for the withdrawal of the French army, this time in the form of an ulti- matum, giving Napoleon until October 8th to return a decisive answer. Only with reluctance and justifiable apprehension had the king allowed himself to be persuaded into this course. Russia he might indeed reckon upon as friendly, but support from the Czar could not, under the most favourable circumstances, reach the seat of war before the end of November. With England the existing quarrel must first be settled before there could be hope of receiving from her the subsidies indispensable to the course now entered upon. There remained as an ally only Sax- ony, which was exasperatingly slow about making her prepara- tions for war, while the Elector of Hesse, selfishly regarding only his own interest, remained neutral. For the rest Prussia had but her own forces to rely upon. These Frederick William did not overrate.* During the long years of peace which had elapsed the defects in the military administration had become ineradicably fixed; the army was practically without a com- mander, for the only person qualified for the position — the Duke of Brunswick — was irresolute and enfeebled by age and — as a contemporary justly observed — " better fitted to receive than to issue orders." So situated it certainly was an act of colossal * Montgelas says in his "Memoirs" that "the King was by nature and principle opposed to all warlike undertaking and yielded rather to impulse from without than to any fixed conviction of his own. He feared Napoleon's superior genius and had little confidence in his own army, which seemed to him not in condition to carry on war with success. It is almost l^cyond question that he betook himself to the army with the idea that ho should lose a battle and thus be furnished with a pretext for concluding j)eace, since then the most incredulous would be convinced that resistance was impossible." Mr. 37] War with Prussia Begins 355 audacity for the Prussians to set tiiemselves up against the ever-victorious leader of the French, and for a long time lie him- self could not be brought to believe that they had any such intention and simply designated the undertaking as insane. On September 10th he wrote to Berthier: "Say in strict con- fidence to the Khig of Bavaria that if I have a quarrel with Prussia— which I consider most unUkely — but if ever she should be guilty of such madness, he shall have Bayreuth." Within his inmost soul, however, there was nothing he so much dreaded as that Frederick William should, after all, decide to disarm and so deprive him of the favourable opportunity for overcoming him while single-handed. The Prussian army, especially its cavalry, enjoyed an excellent reputation throughout Europe, and Napoleon, who shared the general opinion of it, was not with- out disquietude. So much the more, therefore, did it behoove him to be on the alert to catch and destroy this army by itself. To accomplish this end the Prussian envoy to Paris was de- tained there in suspense without explanation, while the French ambassador to Berlin was directed to allow himself to be drawn into no agreement of any kind, but rather to feign illness if no other way of escape presented. And for this end the available forces had already been started weeks before in all possible quietness and secrecy in the direction of the Rhine and toward Aschaffenburg, in order to reinforce the army in Germany by 100,000 newly levied troops. For this it was that the Emperor himself suddenly left Paris on September 25th, without noti- fying the Senate, and journeyed in haste to Mainz, where he issued the final orders. The war had begun. CHAPTER XIII FROM JENA TO TILSIT The good opinion of the Prussian army which Napoleon entertained impelled him now to proceed with still greater cau- tion than in the preceding year against the Austrians. For in this army he saw the creation of the great Frederick whom he so warmly admired, and its generals, if observant, might have accquainted themselves with his strategic manoeuvres during the campaigns of 1800 and 1805 and have prepared themselves for defence against them. He wrote to Soult that he had disposed his forces so as to outnumber those of the enemy, because he proposed to leave nothing to chance and meant to attack the adversary with twice as many men as he could muster wherever he should make a stand. It was with eight corps (including the Guard) under command of the most trusted leaders, a strong cavalry reserve under Murat, and a Bavarian auxiliary contin- gent, — in all with about 200,000 men, — that he planned to attack Prussia, and that from the direction of Southern Germany on the line between Bamberg and Berlin, which he had weeks before ordered studied in detail by French officers. He ex- pected to make this advance between the Thuringian Forest and the Erzgebirge with a force and rapidity which, with the heart of the Prussian kingdom so seriously threatened, should impel his opponent, whom he supposed in Thuringia, to withdraw to Magdeburg in order to hasten thence to the protection of the capital. These were still his plans when he wrote from Stras- burg to the King of Holland. His line of retreat would be toward the Danube in case the enemy should meet him earlier than he had planned for, and, should this way be cut off through an advance of the enemy toward Southern Germany, he would pass over and beyond him along the line between Leipzig and Frank- 356 iET. 37] Napoleon's Plan of Campaign 357 fort to the Rhine, which river was to be defended by his brother Louis from Wesel to this point, while a special corps under Mortier was to stand guard in the vicinity of Mainz. Thus prepared against all contingencies he could push forward his whole army toward the east without leaving occupied the space between the Rhine and Franconia. For to him that was the point of supreme importance, — and this he had learned from experience in the preceding year, — to keep all parts of his army directly under control "as a major does his battaUon." On October 5th, 1806, he communicated his orders to the various corps of the army: they were first to march in three columns toward Coburg, Lohenstein, and Hof, whence they were to pro- ceed toward Gera by way of Saalfeld and Schleiz under his direction. Meanwhile the whereabouts and purposes of the enemy must be clearly ascertained. But as to these his opponent was, alas, almost as much in the dark as Napoleon, and at the Prussian headquarters there was no appearance of a fixed plan of action. Only a year previous an army of 250,000 men had been levied ; the present enumera- tion revealed scarcely the half of that number, and in any case it was vastly inferior to that arrayed against it. The King had entrusted the supreme command to the Duke of Brunswick, the same man who had commanded the German army in 1792 and 1793, but, unwilling to absent himself from the field of honour, he joined the army in person. The fact of his pres- ence was not without unfortimate consequences. His military surroundings prejudiced him against the measures taken by the commander-in-chief and, as a result of the weak and irresolute character of the Duke, it soon became a question — as it was expressed by one of the officers present in a letter of October 6th — "whether 'headquarters' was to be regarded as meaning the King or the Duke." This officer was none other than Colonel Scharnhorst, chief of the general staff at headquarters. He had already, weeks before, elaborated a plan of attack whose high value has found appreciation in later criticism; the army, according to this, should cross the Thuringian Forest in order to gain the plain beyond, where the excellent cavalry might be 35^ From Jena to Tilsit [I8O6 used to the best advantage. The army would thus have been two weeks ahead of the enemy in making its way to this region, giving promise of a successful encounter. But the King clung with such pertinacity to the thought of peace that he was ready to sacrifice anything rather than appear to violate it. He was desirous of waiting until after October 8th, which was the date set for the reply of France to his ultimatum. But no reply arrived. Instead of it came the French themselves, making the execution of Scharnhorst's plan impossible. For the ad- vanced position along the Thuringian Forest was senseless unless the army were taking the offensive, while, in consequence of this period of waiting, the Prussians were forced upon the defensive, to which the position which they then held — with their centre under Brunswick at Erfurt, the right wing under Riichel at Gotha, and the left under Hohenlohe at Weimar — was thoroughly unfavourable. When it was learned, then, that the French were marching upon them in the east, it was the opinion at headquarters — that is to say, of Scharnhorst and Brunswick — that it was best to venture an attack of the entire army upon Napoleon's flank; Init in this also the commander- in-chief was not allowed to have his way. It was only after prolonged discussion that it was decided to send Hohenlohe ahead to the Saale, where his troops engaged on the 9th at Schleiz the French middle column, and on the 10th at Saal- feld, their western column. It was here at Saalfeld that Prince Louis Ferdinand, who commanded the vanguard, was killed — an event more demoralizing in its effect upon the army than the loss of the battle. Several of the generals demanded categorically the removal of the commander-in-chief, attrib- uting to him all the mistakes in the conduct of the war, whereas the only one which could really be ascribed to him lay in hav- ing yielded to obey where he should have conunanded. While matters were thus shaping themselves in the most unfavourable way for the Prussians, Napoleon had been ac- quainting himself, on liis way to (Jera, in regard to his opponent, whose principal force ho conchulcd to l^e at Erfurt. He at once recognized the possibility of outflanking him. On October 12th ^T. 37] The Battle of Jena 359 he gave orders for the whole army to abandon its northward course and wheel about to the left in the direction of the Saale, this being the same manoeuvre which he had executed the year before after crossing the Danube, and in 1800 when beyond the Po. Before the close of the same day Murat reached Naumburg with his cavalry. When word of all this was brought to the Prussian headquarters indescribable consternation prevailed. No hope of escape from being surrounded by the enemy remained to the Duke except in decampment that very night. But, as if the necessity for this step were not obvious enough to the most undiscerning, it was not until after nine precious hours had been wasted in discussion that it was put into execution, during all of which time the enemy was inexorably drawing nearer. So it was that Davout, hastening ahead toward the west with his corps, encountered at Auerstadt the main body of the army under Brunswick while on the march, and that at Jena Napoleon with the bulk of his troops came upon Hohenlohe, who was to conduct the rear-guard and protect the retreat of the army toward the north. At both points battle was waged on October 14th. Napo- leon had for days been longing for such an encounter. He supposed himself to be now in face of the principal force of his adversary, and, drawing to himself all the corps at his dis- posal, he attacked Hohenlohe with a number vastly superior to those opposed to him. Early in the morning, while it was yet dark. Napoleon rode up to the troops commanded by Mar- shal Lannes, who were to be the first to come under fire, and reminded them of the victories of the previous year, saying that matters now stood exactly as they had at the time when they captured Mack. This corps then, in company with the advance-guard under Ney, so stout-heartedly withstood the attack of the entire hostile army as to enable the Emperor to hold the Guard in reserve until the arrival of fresh forces.* * It was on this occasion that from the ranks of the Guard there suddenly resounded behind Napoleon an impulsive cry of " Forward 1" whereat the Emperor rebuked the over-confident speaker with the obser- vation that he should wait until he had commanded in twenty battles before venturing to advise him. 360 From Jena to Tilsit [I80G With these the task of overcoming the enemy was soon accom- phshed. Hohenlohe, recognizing the greatness of the danger, had sent to summon the assistance of Riichel with his army, but the latter was prevented from coming to his rescue by a contrary order from the commander-in-chief, and when, later, he arrived in spite of it upon the field of battle, Hohenlohe had already been overpowered and there was no possibility of changing the outcome of the battle. Napoleon's cavalry threw itself upon the Prussians as they began to give way, and the army turned and fled in wild confusion. While this was taking place near Jena, Brunswick had joined battle with Davout at Auerstadt, and, in spite of the advantage which Prussia here enjoyed in point of numbers, — she had 35,000 against 33,000 of the French, — in this action also she was defeated. The advantage had been with the Prus- sians in the early part of the battle, and victory must have been theirs had General Kalkreuth brought his reserve force of 18,000 men into action. He failed to do so because he re- ceived no orders to that effect, and no orders could reach him because the general-in-chief, mortally wounded, was no longer able to issue commands and there remained no sort of unity of direction. It had thus become impossible for the troops to clear the way for themselves through Naumburg, and the King, who now assumed supreme command, ordered a retreat to Weimar, where he hoped to find the detachments of Riichel and Hohenlohe intact; the wiser course, which would have been to swerve toward the north, he refused to consider for a moment. But instead of finding comrades he came upon the enemy; it was a moment of most cruel disappointment and at the same time of great personal danger. Headquarters and the rem- nants of the army were soon in irreprc^ssible flight before the pursuing French. Instead of reassembling, the army dissolved almost completely, desertion became general, and discipline a thing of the past. Of the original 130,000 soldiers there soon remained only 10,000 of the regular troops, who, conducted by Hohenlohe, described the arc of a great circle through Nordhausen, Magdeburg, and Neu-Ruppin to Prenzlau in the ^T. 37] Prussia's Fall 361 Ukermark [northern Brandenburg], where they were finally brought to capitulation by Murat, who asseverated to the German general that his corps was surrounded by 100,000 P>ench sol- diers, a statement as completely without foundation in fact as the romance he had invented the year before of a conclasion of peace when the question involved was the taking of the bridges over the Danube at Vienna. Other smaller detachments sur- rendered likewise, that of Bliicher, however, not without heroic resistance — a notable exception. Added to these disasters came the deliverance to the enemy of all the most important fortresses throughout the land, and the haste manifested in their surrender by those in command was a disgrace without parallel in history'. Thus it was at Erfurt and again at Magde- burg. — whither had fled for safety a reserve army which had suffered defeat at Halle. — and the same was true of Stettin and Ciistrin. "Those were days of horror," wTote Captain von Gneisenau to a friend; "better a thousand times to die than experience them again. These wall make an extraordinary page in our history." There being now nothing further to bar the way, Napoleon, surrounded by pomp and splendour, rode triumphantly into Berhn on October 27th, 1806. As Coignet reports: "The Em- peror was proud in his modest apparel, with his Uttle hat and penny cockade. His staff, on the contrary, was in full uniform, and to the foreigners it was a curious thing to see in the most meanly clad of them all the leader of so fine an army. ' ' On the previous day he had stood beside the tomb of Frederick II. in Potsdam; the effect of the admiration which he professed for the dead hero was, however, marred by his act in taking thence Frederick's sword and sash and sending them as a gift to the Invalides at Paris. Arrived at Berlin he computed the measure of his victories. They had delivered into his hand all Prussian territories as far as the Vistula, and it was not exaggeration when on November 12th he proclaimed to the w'orld at large from the residence of the HohenzoUerns: "The entire kingdom of Prussia is in my power." The only question was whether it would so remain. 362 From Jena to Tilsit [I8O6 Prussian arms could, it is true, no longer hope to avert the down- fall of the Fatherland, for, except for a little band of 15,000 men and a few fortresses in Silesia and on the Baltic Sea, the armed forces of the country had been dispersed and annihilated. But there were other enemies still left to Napoleon. One of these — ^Russia — had already declared itself Prussia's friend and champion, while another — England — might become such at any moment. For it was part of the Napoleonic system that his policy must always embrace the whole continent and there- fore never could deal with one opponent alone. On the day after the battle, the aid-de-camp of the con- quered king had arrived at the French headquarters with an appeal for peace. This Napoleon declined to grant, saying that he had already gained too great advantages not to follow them up as far as Berlin; peace would there more easily be de- termined upon. Frederick William then sent Lucchesini to him with full powers to sign preliminaries of peace. Hanover, Bayreuth, and all territory west of the Weser, besides a hand- some sum of money as war-indemnity, were what they were prepared to pay for the privilege of being left undisturbed. But the conditions imposed by the enemy were far beyond anything conceived by Prussia. He demanded all territory to the left of the Elbe up to Magdeburg and the Altmark, 100,- 000,000 francs war-indemnity, and, over and above this, Prussia's consent that Saxony and the German countries beyond the Elbe should become identified with the Confederation of the Rhine, Lucchesini and von Zastrow, the Prussian minister, had agreed without undue delay to accept these harsh terms, a resolve to which they were the more readily brought by a rumour which had gained currency that the Emperor was about to re-establish the ancient kingdom of Poland, of whose lands Prussia now owned vast stretches, including Warsaw and Posen. But by this time Napoleon had concluded to impose conditions even more severe. Hohenlolic had meanwhile capitulated, and the French columns had reached out even as far as the Vistula. Success so vast ought surely to be employed to some better ad- vantage than simply to make peace with Prussia alone! The Mt. 37] Napoleon and Poland 363 Emperor increased his demands, and finally stopped talking of peace alto(j;ethor ; for the present he would grant nothing but a suspension of hostilities, and that only under the most oppressive conditions : the French were to occupy the whole country up to the Bug River, eight fortresses were to be surrendered, — Danzig, Kolberg, Thorn, and Graudcnz among them, — while the Russians, who were already standing upon East Prussian soil, were to be ordered out of the country by the King. Even this was agreed to by the envoys who signed the treaty on November 16th. But the King would none of it. He recognized that in such condi- tions the aim was none other than the complete disarmament of Prussia and separation between the courts of Berhn and St. Petersburg. Relying upon Russia's aid, he determined to risk resistance to his mighty foe. \Vlien Napoleon learned of P'red- erick William's refusal to ratify the treaty, he drafted a procla- mation embodying for the House of Brandenburg the same deadly intent as had been conveyed in the Decree of Schon- brunn in respect to the Court of Naples: that it had ceased to reign. This difference, however, existed between the two occa- sions: at the time of the former, toward the end of December, 1805, the decisive victory had already been gained, and in this case the battle was yet to be fought. For the time being the proclamation was not made pubUc. For Napoleon everything depended upon vanquishing the ever-advancing Russians. This task he did not confide to his army alone. He proceeded at once with a scheme for playing off the Poles against the empire of the Czar. Under his protec- tion there arose a committee of insurrection at Warsaw, and a deputation of the high nobility from Posen, which appeared in Berlin on November 19th, received from him the assurance that France had never acknowledged the partition of Poland and that he himself, as Emperor of the French, would feel a deep in- terest in seeing the national throne re-established. On Novem- ber 25th he repaired in person to Posen in order to stimulate the insurrection to a yet greater degree. Many were the tokens of homage bestowed upon him as the hberator of the Father- land, and he was unsparing m his use of encouraging words until 364 From Jena to Tilsit [I8O6 an enrolment of volunteers was under way in Warsaw which furnished a national guard of 60,000 men. Not that he had the slightest intention of furthering the ideal aim of the Polish nation ; sentiments of that kind had long before ceased to appeal to him, and, as he was shortly to make evident in Spain, he was fast reaching the point where he was no longer able even to under- stand them. In Poland he saw nothing more than an instrument convenient to the furtherance of his policy, one which should now be made to serve his ends against Prussia and Russia, but which he was resolved to set aside as soon as its utility to him- self should be exhausted. A single unfortunate feature in these plans lay in the fact that Austria, like the other two states, now included extensive Polish territories, at that time reaching northward to the Bug River, and would necessarily be affected by a national uprising upon its borders, while Napoleon had every reason for remaining on the best possible terms with the power on the Danube in order to be safe from attack upon his flank. Accordingly, through General Andreossy. his ambassa- dor at Vienna, he had the suggestion made to Stadion, the Aus- trian minister, that Austria should exchange her Polish provinces for Prussian Silesia. But Russia, likewise on the alert, had at the same time sent Pozzo di Borgo, a fellow countryman of Napo- leon's, as her envoy to the Viennese court. Austria, thus ap- proached by both of the rival powers, declined to listen to either and remained neutral, contenting herself with pushing a corps of observation gradually forward toward the Prussian frontier, partly to prevent a revolt in Galicia and partly in order not to be unarmed while watching further developments in the northeast. Napoleon was now prepared to play a second trump against Russia in the shape of the Eastern question. It has been already repeatedly intimated that it was Napoleon's purpose to include Turkey in his system of universal sovereignty of Europe; this was really the ultimate cause of hostilities with Russia. It was, then, but natural that after his victorious campaign of 1805 he should take up this plan again. In January, 1806, the generals of his suite had already begun to make conjectures that he was meditating an expedition to Turkey, and by the /Et. 37] Napoleon and Turkey 365 following May the Prussian envoy reported to his government that the Emperor was planning alliances with the Porte, with the Republic of Ragusa, and with Persia, and that General S^ bastiani had imparted to him Napoleon's conviction that Russia would have to be crowded back behind a barrier erected be- tween the Baltic and the Black Sea. This same Sebastian! was sent soon after this on a special mission to Constantinople; he was instructed, in case the Czar should refuse to make peace with France, to incite the Porte against him, and he was actually in BO far successful as to induce the Sultan, Selim III., against the letter of an earher treaty, to dispossess the Woiwodes of Moldavia and Wallachia, who were partisans of Russia, whereat the Czar, who had long been waiting merely for a pretext, sent an army do\\Ti to the lower Danube. On November 11th, 1806, Napoleon wrote from Berlin to the frightened Grand Seignior that all Prussia was subject to him and that he was following up his advantages at the head of 300,000 men, adding that Fate had ordained the continuance of the Turkish Empire and had chosen himself as its saviour ; that now was the moment for ad- vancing to the Dniester with an Ottoman army, whilst he was himself operating against Russia from the region of the Vistula. Of course his object was simply thus to divide the Russian forces so that they might not all stand opposed to him at once and at the same time to fasten Austria's political attention upon the Danube, since Menna could not view with unconcern any en- croachments of Russia upon Turkish territory. In both at- tempts he was successful. Alexander I. declared war against the Porte and despatched 80,000 men against that power, and through the progress of the Russian troops upon the lower Dan- ube Austria actually was prevented later on from making a close alliance with her northern neighbour against Napoleon. The attempt to entice Vienna with Silesia as bait had indeed miscarried, but the same end had been reached by awakening her apprehensions in regard to Russia. But Great Britain, the most powerful enemy of Napoleon's poUcy, was just awakening to the fact that her formidable opponent had laid in ruins a state upon the Continent. On 366 From Jena to Tilsit [isofi November 21st a decree was issued from Berlin to all the world declaring England to be in a state of blockade and closing to her the Continent as far as it lay within the circle of Napoleonic supremacy. It will be remembered with what precision Bona- parte had devised this programme back in 1802 upon the first indications of renewed hostilities. "If England attempts to kindle war upon the Continent, her course will compel the First Consul to conquer all Europe." These had been his words in that memorable letter written by Talleyrand to Otto.* The Emperor was well on his way toward the fulfilment of that threat, and Great Britain must, of course, suffer the consequences. "The British Isles," so reads the decree of Berlin, "are from the present time in a state of blockade; all commerce with them is forbidden; letters and parcels bearing an English address shall be confiscated, as also every English warehouse upon the Continent, whether upon the territory of France or that of its allies; the same shall be true of all English merchandise; all EngHsh vessels, as also those coming to the Continent from English colonies and bonded ports^ shall be refused entrance to any European port. Any English subject found upon French soil shall be made prisoner of war." This decree was preceded by the statement that, since the English had arbitrarily ex- tended the rights of war upon the sea to cover also private prop- erty, the Emperor had concluded to repay them on land with the same coin To the mind of this extraordinary man, with a determination knowing absolutely no bounds, his purpose stood clearly defined. Europe was to be rendered submissive to himself to enable him as its lord to close it against England. Great Britain's commerce and industries must in consequence stagnate and fall into decay, and if it should ever become possible by land to divert from her the stream of riches flowing in from India, the proud island realm would be conquered and would have no choice but to submit to him who alone remained to sway the sceptre over land and sea.f This goal was indeed * See p. 266 ■j" There can be no question that tlio Emperor was constantly intent upon India. His brotlier Joseph testified to that eiTect in conversation Mr. 37] The French Advance into Poland 367 still far distant, and the men upon tho chcHs-lxtanl of iMirope must first be moved about with skill and artifice until the last king was checkmated; but the end seemed not unattainable, and it was with a mind filled with these designs tnat Napoleon led his army against the Russians. And were not these the same forces whom he had with but little trouble vanquished the year previous? Moreover, since that time the self-confidence of his troops had but increased as a result of new triumphs over the dreaded Prussian army. He, then, if any man, was justified in the beUef that the destiny of a world lay Avithin his clenched fist. On November 27th, 1806, the day upon which Napoleon reached Posen, the advance-guard of Murat's cavalry came upon Russian troops at Blonje to the west of Warsaw. General Bennigsen commanded the most advanced of the two Russian armies. General Buxhowden the other which was approaching. Before the French armies, which were being hurried forward by forced marches, General Bennigsen withdrew to Warsaw and finally across the Vistula and Narew to Ostrolenka, where he thought best to wait until the second column should come up before again moving forward. This junction of forces took place before the middle of December, whereupon he piLshed for- ward with his troops as far as Pultusk and the Ukra. The Russian arm}' was re-enforced by an East Prussian corps, 13,000 men strong, under L'Estocq, who took up his position to the east of Thorn, constituting a sort of right wing to the forma- tion. General Kamenski was commander-in-chief of the united forces. The French occupied Warsaw and Thorn and crossed the Vistula on a line between these two points: the corps of Bes- sieres, Ney, and Bernadotte turned eastward from Thorn, while Murat, Davout. and Lannes marched toward the north from Warsaw; between them Augereau and Soult advanced toward the Ukra, which thej' crossed under fire from the enemy anil in the presence of Napoleon, who had come up by way of Warsaw. with the Prussian envoy at that time, and Napoleon himself told his physician O'Meara at St. Helena that in 1800 after the war with Austria he had planned an expedition to Hindustan. In the same year three n gents were sent to Persia in the interest of France. 368 From Jena to Tilsit [I8O6 The Emperor, who now conjectured the principal force of the enemy to be at Golymin, west of Pultusk, decided upon attack- ing it from in front at that point with two corps, while Lannes with his corps should march to the right upon Pultusk and thus prevent the retreat of the Russians across the Narew, Soult and Bernadotte meanwhile directing their course around to the left, toward Makow, in order to cut off the road to Ostrolenka. T.ike all plans previously conceived by Napoleon this was based upon the idea of annihilating the enemy; it resulted in complete failure. The body of the Russian army was located, not at Golymin, but at Pultusk, where, on December 26th, it sustained an indecisive battle against Lannes, making possible its retreat across the Narew, and the forces with which Napoleon engaged on the same day at Golymin proved to be nothing more than the rear-guard of the hostile army and which, though beaten, was allowed to draw off toward the north without pursuit. With the enemy situated in this wise Soult's flank movement was rendered absolutely objectless. The Russians had thus escaped the en- compassing arms of the French army, while the latter had no other gain to show than that of a few square miles of barren land. What a change from the tales of victory dm^ing the last few months! And such unvarying success made Napoleon impru- dent. For lack of caution was clearly manifest in attempting to fall upon the enemy without arranging — as ever before — to keep the army concentrated, and again to base a double en- circhng manoeuvre upon a supposition which had not been proved a certainty. Moreover, there were also attendant diffi- culties of which it is evident that the Emperor had scarcely estimated the full importance beforehand. The tract of coun- try in which these encounters were taking place had shortly before been occupied by the Russians, who on their departure had carried with them everything transportable and destroyed the rest, so that the French who followed came only upon desert places affording nothing in the way of food or shelter. Hunger confronted them. The requisition S5'^stem had to be abandoned and storehouses established, and, as has been repeatedly testified Mr. 37] Hardships of the French 369 by eye-witnesses, the only thing which saved the army from starvation was the spirit of speculation among the Jews. To add to their other misfortunes, the marshy soil was now softened by a sudden thaw, making the task of reconnoitring more than ever difficult and hampering all movements of the army. The entire region was like a sea of mud over knee-deep in which the gallant soldiers waded and, weak from hunger, dragged them- selves laboriously forward, while the artillery stuck fast in the bog and became useless. On the march toward Pultusk there were outbursts of direst despair, and many a valiant soldier, who but shortly before had courageously faced death in battle, now took his own life. Even the Emperor's own coach could go no further over roads so seemingly without bottom; a horse had to be led up to the carriage door, so that he could ride on to Pultusk where, a few days before, Lannes's soldiers, up to the thighs in mire, had braved the fire of the enemy for eight long hours. Along this road, as his troops passed before him, the Emperor saw the depth of misery to which they were reduced and overheard complaints uttered against their will by even those most loyal to him — the soldiers of the Guard.* This made a deep impression upon him. A year before — it was on the day before the battle of Austerlitz — he had spoken amongst his generals of his former plans in respect to the East. One of them ventured to express the opinion that the scheme might even now be resumed, since the army was after all on the way toward Con- stantinople; but he was checked by Napoleon: "I know the French," said he. "Long expeditions are not easily put through with them. . . . France is too beautiful; they do not like to get so far from it or to remain away for so long." How much more unhappy, then, their lot here under conditions so absolutely desperate, with every mancBUvre hampered and * It would be a mistake to accept the assurances of Savary and Rapp that in the reproaches which the troops allowed to reach the ears of the Emperor there existed in reality nothing more than the rough jokes of a body of soldiers. They were nieant in all seriousness. Coignet, for instance, relates that the Guards, upon the return to winter quarters, met with sharp reproof that they had not held out more courageously in time of adversity. 370 From Jena to Tilsit [isoe every art of warfare laughed to scorn!* On December 2d, the anniversary of AusterUtz, in an order of the day he had reminded the troop? of the victory in Moravia. "Soldiers." said he, "we are not going to lay down our arms until universal peace shall have esta])lished and secured the power of our alhes and shall have restored to our commerce its liberty and its colonies. Upon the Elbe and the Oder we have gained Pondicherry, our enter- prises in the Indies, the Cape of Good Hope, and the Spanish colonies. Who would give to the Russians the right to control Destiny? Who would give them the right to frustrate plans so appropriate? They and we — are not both the soliders of Aus- terUtz?" But what cared these brave warriors in the swamps of Poland for Pondicherry and the Spanish colonies? Were France, perchance, in danger, or even only her glory and her extent, the appeal would not have been in vain. Moreover, it seemed as if the Russians of Pultusk really were no longer those of Austerlitz. They had fought and endured quite as valiantly on December 26th as had the soldiers of the invader. And Napoleon recognized that he durst not overstrain the bow which constituted his only weapon. Therefore, instead of fol- lowing in pursuit of the retreating enemy, he allowed the army to move into winter quarters. Along the Vistula from Elbing to Warsaw depots were set up for each army corps, but the troops themselves remained on the farther side of the river, pushed forward to a line running from the Frische Hafif through Willenberg and Ostrolenka to Warsaw. The difficulties attend- ing the commissariat had made necessary this unusual extension. But this time of repose did not continue for long. The Rus- sians had retreated in two columns in the direction of Grodno and Bielostok, and later united under command of Bennigsen near Szuczyn. Through the retreat of their allies the Prussians under L'Estocq had likewise been crowded toward the East into the vicinity of Angerburg, so that communication with Dan- * The Dnko of F^zensac alludes repeatedly in his "Souvenirs" to the impossibility of collecting sufficient intelligence by means of reconnois sance, and describes the extraordinary hardships attending the performance of the duties of an orderly. .^T. 37] Bennigsen Forces a Battle 371 zig was entirely cut off and even the route to Konigsberg lay exposed to sudden attack by the French. And such an attack was actually attempted. Ney, whose corps was encamped between Thorn and Willenberg and had suffered great privation, acting upon his own responsibility set out with his troops toward the north in the early part of January, 1S07, in order to find better quarters for them and, if possible, to capture Konigs- berg — a move which greatly vexed Napoleon, by whom he was sharply reprimanded and ordered back to his post. In the course of this excursion the Marshal had, however, chanced upon the Prussian corps, the consequence of which was that Bennigsen had arisen with his entire army to destroy Ney while on the march in an exposed condition, and to force Bernadotte, who occupied the region about Elbing, back across the Vistula and thus re-establish communication with Danzig. His expecta- tion was. then, while giving protection to the fortresses and being at the same time supported by them, to acquire a strong position. By this stroke Napoleon might perhaps be induced to give up his threatening position at Warsaw and concentrate his forces farther West. The news of this offensive movement on the part of the enemy reached Napoleon in Warsaw, whither he had repaired from Pul- tusk in order to gain some repose for himself also. The capital of the former kingdom of Poland was doing its utmost to please and flatter him. the women being by no means the most back- ward in their complaisance, and it is alleged that Napoleon gave no cause for being considered prudish. But at the news of Bennigsen's proceeding he tore himself at once away and promptly determined upon his course of action. He. also, would assume the offensive. With his army united in a com- pact mass he would strike northwards, break through the ene- my's long line of march before it could concentrate its detach- ments for battle, and scatter its various corps. Fortunately for Bennigsen, this plan was revealed to him tlirt)ugh a letter from headquarters to Bernadotte which was intercepted. Acting upon this information, he hurriedly collected about himself all his detachments and tried to evade the collision with the French 3/2 From Jena to Tilsit [1807 by turning northward in the direction of Guttstadt and Lands- berg. During his march forward he had directed the Prussian corps to describe the arc of a great circle about Freistadt to the west of Mohrungen, and this body of troops had now in hke manner to hasten toward the north so as to escape the French and be enabled to unite itself with the Grand Army. Napoleon's purpose was thus already frustrated. He might, it is true, still overtake the enemy, but he could not surprise him; he might conquer but not annihilate him. With five corps he pressed on beyond Willenberg; a sixth remained behind on the Narew to keep watch; a seventh under Bernadotte, who had received no orders, could only follow far in the rear. It was not until Feb- ruary 7th. when they reached Prussian Eylau, that they came upon Bennigsen, who now drew up his forces for battle and on the same day repulsed the foremost detachments of the French under Murat and Soult. Meanwhile, however, came up the body of the French army with the exception of Ney, who had kept behind L'Estocq's corps in order to hinder its junction with Bennigsen. On the morning of February 8th the hostile armies were drawn up opposite one another for battle. The forces were about equal in number, from 70,000 to 80,000 men on each side; the Russians had the advantage only in point of artillery. The snow blown by the icy north wind did not yet cover the victims of the previous day's encounter, but already the struggle had recommenced, and this was to be bloodier than any of the battles yet fought. After a prolonged artillery com- bat Napoleon proceeded to the attack. He was prepared, if need be, to sacrifice his left wing in order to triumph the more deci- sively with his right. Augereau, who formed the connect- ing link between the centre and Davout. here rushed forward upon the central point of the Russian line much as Soult had done at Austerlltz. But how different the result! There the enemy gave way, while here he not only stood his ground, but drove back the assailant with heavy loss. Grape-shot fell like hail upon the corps advancing toilsomely in the face of the snow- storm, and. as it wheeled, the Russian cavalry fell upon and put to the sword half of the devoted band. On charged the horse- .!>. 37] The Battle of Eylau 373 men of the enemy, headed direct for the cemetery of Eylau, where Napoleon had taken up his station, insomuch that his suite already called for horses in order to remove headquarters to a place of safety. But the Emperor is said to have impatiently motioned his disapproval and contented himself with ordering forward a detachment of the Guartl, at sight of which the troop of horse, now quite out of breath, turned to the right-about. But it was only with the greatest difficulty, and using as a screen 80 squadrons which Murat assembled for a mighty attack, that he was able to fill the gap thus made in his position. At this point Davout entered the lists and pushed his way relentlessly for- ward against the left wing of the Russians, and this he succeeded in turning completely so that it faced northwards, whereupon he proceeded to cut off the enemy's hne of retreat. Bennigsen's army seemed lost when suddenly appeared Schamhorst with a few thousands of L'Estocq s Prussians, the remainder having been left behind in combat with Ney; this last-comer imme- diately turned upon Davout and forced him back a long dis- tance. Orders to take part in the battle had not been received by Ney until noon, and by the time he reached the left wing darkness had already put a stop to the hideous carnage. The losses mounted up into the tens of thousands. Weeks afterward there yet remained mounds of unburied dead, and untold numbers of wounded, suffering from hunger as well as from their injuries, sought a miserable shelter in the roofless houses of Eylau or in abandoned ammunition -wagons. Auge- reau's corps had suffered such frightful loss as to make it neces- sary to disband it altogether. And all this sacrifice had been made for nothing! For the battle had remained indecisive. Napoleon for the first time had failed to win. In the first few hours after the battle he had even considered retreat, and WTote to Duroc that it would soon be necessary to transfer head- quarters to Thorn, and that consignments of funds might be retamed in Kiistrm and Posen, since it was possible that he should retire to the left bank of the Vistula "in order to secure quiet winter quarters sheltered from the Cossacks and from that swarm of light troops." But Bennigsen ordered it otherwise. 374 From Jena to Tilsit [1807 At midnight he decamped with his Russian army, and on the morning of February 9th the French found a clear field before them. Napoleon at once accepted this as a concession of vic- tory to himself. Scharnhorst denounced it as "a sin and a shame." Napoleon, however, unhesitatingly and at once laid claim to the proffered laurels; his bulletin, giving a garbled report of the manner in which the battle had gone, announced to all the world his triumph, and, rather for the sake of con- firming his statements than with any hope of deriving profit from the expedition, he despatched Murat a few days' journey in pursuit of the retreating enemy.* This done, however, he withdrew his entire army behind the Passarge and had them there resume winter quarters, since he felt himself too weak to follow up the enemy. For the losses incurred in battle had not been alone in reducing the strength of his army. Many thousands, driven by hunger and want, had dropped from the ranks and were roving over the country, extorting, from the wretched inhabitants by dint of craft or violence the httle yet remaining to them. And such was the effect of this example of levying contributions without authorization that the number of such marauders was estimated by one of the generals as reach- ing nearly 60,000.t Others may have been intimidated by the * The hand of the Bonaparte of old is at once recognizable again in the letter written by the Emperor to Cambac6res in which he directs him to insert in the "Moniteur" that the Russian army was wholly dis- banded; and again in the 61st bulletin, where he says that Konigsberg may congratulate herself that it did not come within his plans to follow the Russians up closely; and still again when in several letters written on the same day he gives different figures as the number of lost: 3000 wounded in his account to Cambac^res, 7000 to 8000 in that intended for Daru. The truth was that there were three times that number. t This is the number according to F^zensac How terrible was the destitution may be learned from Coignet's narrative. The Emperor himself wrote of it to Joseph and to Talleyrand. In a letter to the former he says: "We are living here in the midst of snow and mud, without wine, without brandy, without bread." France, to be sure, was not to be informed of their situation, and Ihorefore one of his letters to Fouch6 contained also a statement to the cfTcct that "the sanitary condition of the army was perfect, that it was supplietl with provisions enough for a ^T. 37] Winter Quarters 375 indomitable valour of the Russians, which excited even Napo- leon's admiration at Eylau. Others there were, as Baron von Gagem claims to have personally known, who openly resented the abominable slaughter of human beings for the sole purpose of ministering to the insane ambition of a single individual. Thus situated, the Emperor resolved upon acquiring a firm position in regions where it would be easier to care for the troops and to assemble re-enforcements so as to march against the enemy, when the a^^'ful winter should have passed, with forces greater than his. He would, no doubt, have even better preferred to withdraw to the other side of the Vistula, as he was counselled to do by his generals, including even the pliable Berthier. But that would have looked like retreat before the Russians, whose commander-in-chief had not neglected to proclaim himself victor of Pultusk and Eylau. Therefore there must be no fur- ther concessions; the army had to remain posted between the Vistula and the Passarge facing eastward, with Ney's corps as van-guard pushed forward as far as Allenstein on the Alle, while another under Massena still remained unchanged in position on the Narew. This arrangement afforded the advantage, — and it was the only gain resulting from the last battle, — that the Russians were thus cut off from the route to Danzig, whose fortress was now most zealously besieged. Napoleon selected Osterode as the place for his headquarters. And even here for weeks at a time there was not more than just enough to support the army, and he and his officers frequently subsisted upon what the soldiers tracked down and brought back. At first he had to be satisfied with a barn as dwelling- place until something more suitable could be found. It was not until early in April, when he moved into the castle of Fink- enstein, that his surromidings became in any wise comfortable. Nevertheless he endured the misery of the hard winter with a cheerfulness of spirit which was an example to his officers, while physically the tcnls of the campaign seemed rather beneficial to him than otherwise; he later asserted that he had never felt whole year, and that it was absurd to imagine that in a country like Poland there could be any lack of bread, meat, and wine." 3/6 From Jena to Tilsit [iso? better in his life. Osterode was the scene of much animation. Innumerable messengers came and went. Here the Emperor developed a marvellous rapidity of execution, and Savary was not without grounds for the assertion in his Memoirs that Napoleon would have required at the least three months in a large city for the business which he accomplished in less than one in this httle hole of Osterode, where he had everything immediately at hand and could at once set it in motion. And there was plenty of occasion for unceasing labour, for Napo- leon's political situation corresponded with the military outlook and was not a whit more encouraging. Turkey had not been successful in overcoming Russia and in compelling her to put forth a great display of forces upon the lower Danube; on the contrary, the advantage there lay entirely upon the side of the northern power, so that the Czar might consider transferring half of the corps from that expedition to the northern theatre of war. From Austria, whose attitude had remained uncertain, came tidings of armament which were exaggerated by the envoy Andreossy in his reports into readiness for war. The Swedes were advancing upon Stralsund, and a way must be found for warding off or at least paralyzing their attack. England was announcing to the world at large that she was on the point of sending an expeditionary corps to the North Sea coast of the Continent, which made it necessary for France to post an army of its own under Brune at the points threatened. Even Spain, heretofore so submissive, seemed about to raise difficulties. To add to these perplexities, at the news of the retreat to the Pas- sarge rentes had fallen at the exchange in Paris, and with them confidence in the Emperor. Without question, then, Napoleon had plenty to do if he were going to improve his situation or even to prevent being attacked during the next few weeks which he needed for strengthening his army. His first step was to renew advances to Frederick William. Immediately after the battle of Eylau — as if Scharnhorst's valorous deed had brought Prussia to life again — that state acquired new importance in the eyes of the would-be conqueror, and from the battle-field itself he wrote to Talleyrand at War- jet. 37] The Treaty of Bartenstein 377 saw, directing him to re-establish relations with the Hohenzol- lerns. Indeed, so much in haste did he feel to have this accom- plished that the way via Poland came to seem too long, and a few days later he sent his aid-de-camp, Bert rand, direct to the King at Memel to offer him the restitution of all his territory as far as the Elbe if he would conclude a separate treaty of peace with France. But Frederick William held stanch to his ally, and notified his adversary of this determination by a special messenger, whereupon Napoleon declared himself willing even to take part in a congress relative to the negotiation of a general peace, provided only — and to him that was the important point — an armistice should be agreed upon relegating the French be- hind the Vistula, but the Russians behind the Niemen. But this also he was unsuccessful in obtaining. Instead, Prussia and Russia allied themselves only the more closely by a treaty signed at Bartenstein, April 26th, 1807, according to the terms of which England, Sweden, Austria, and Denmark should be solicited to unite once more with the original parties to the treaty in forming a great coalition of liberation with the object of driving out Napoleon from Germany and Italy. Under no circumstances, however, was either Russia or Prussia to con- clude a separate peace with France. Rebuffed by Prussia, Napoleon turned to Austria. He com- missioned Andreossy to demand from that country that it should at last make a positive declaration of its intentions; he was, moreover, to state that the Emperor of the French was still will- ing and ready to conclude an alliance for the sake of which he would give up Silesia, which had been nearly completely con- quered by his troops, — meaning those of the Confederation of the Rhine, — and even, in case of necessity, to exchange Dal- matia for some equivalent. But Austria turned a deaf ear to these proposals also. Vienna, where Archduke Charles was foremost in counselling against taking part in the war, was prepared to offer nothing beyond her mediation, and submitted the following as basis for the same: a readjustment of German affairs, the integrity of Turkey, the division of Poland as here- tofore, and the participation of England in the negotiations. 378 From Jena to Tilsit [I807 (April 3d, 1807.) And even to these conditions Napoleon was disposed to accede, if for nothing more than the sake of having nothing to fear from Austria during the next few weeks ; but to the mediatorial proposals of Vienna Russia and Prussia replied with a pressing invitation to take part in the Treaty of Barten- stein. This again Emperor Francis felt called upon to refuse, considering that it would be better to wait until Napoleon had been defeated before taking the step, while Russia, being too weak to bring about this result unaided, wanted Austria's help precisely on this account. It was, then, vastly to the advan- tage of France that Austria decided upon remaining neutral. "This was," says Montgelas in his Memoirs, "at all events the greatest service ever rendered to Napoleon, for he would never have been able to resist an attack from Austria." The French Emperor could hardly bring himself to believe in such good fortune and felt by no means secure in respect to his right flank. So much the greater his zeal, therefore, in attempting to instil new life into the Turkish forces and in organizing in the East a great coalition against Alexander. He tried to bring about an agreement between the Porte and Persia, so that the latter also might take up arms against Russia. "Persia also must be roused" — were his directions sent to Sebastiani — "so that it shall direct its energies against Georgia. Prevail upon the Porte to give orders to the Pasha of Erzerum to march with all his forces against that province. Maintain the good will of the Prince of the Abkhasians, and persuade him into taking part in the great diversion against the common enemy." Even this seemed to him not enough. Toward the end of April there arrived at Finkenstein a messenger from the Shah, and with him Napoleon concluded a treaty in which he bound himself to compel the evacuation of Georgia by Russia and to send cannon and artillerymen to the King of kings. The latter was in return forced to pledge himself to break off his relations with England, to confiscate all l^ritish merchandise and to refuse entry into her ports to all Hritisli vessels, t<> stir up the Afghans and the peoples of Candahar against England, and to send an Mr. 37] Treaty with the Shah of Persia 379 army against Iiulia. "And if" — so reads Article 12 — "the Emperor of the French should desire to send an army by land against the English possessions in India, the Shah of Persia, as a good and faithful idly, shall grant them free passage through his dominions, in which case a special agreement shall be made in advance stipulating as to the route to be taken by the troops, the supplies and the means of conveyance to be furnished, as well to what auxiliary troops it would be expedient for His Majesty the Emperor of Persia to unite with this expedition." Truly a marvellous spectacle, this — of a man in the midst of such embarrassments, where the advance of a single Austrian army corps might mean catastrophe, making agreement w^ith an Oriental monarch concerning the most distant object of his aspirations. This is precisely what constitutes historical great- ness: the ability to keep the ultimate aim in view even in ad- versity, and to see over and beyond present calamity into the far-distant future. But the matter of paramount importance was after all for him to strengthen his army with fresh troops at the earhest possible moment so that his opponent, who was likewise mak- ing ready, might be outnumbered and so remain during the engagement now imminent. For this purpose he summoned from France and Italy everything available in the way of mili- tary forces, replacing them there with 80,000 men of the levy of 1808 accorded him by the Senate, which in the last months of the preceding year had granted his demand for the levy of 1807. From Spain and from the Confederation of the Rhine he like- wise demanded new auxiliary troops. He was thus enabled not only to create a reserve army in Germany to keep watch upon Austria, but to increase the corps laying siege to Danzig and make to his main army the addition of from 160,000 to 170,000 men — a figure to which Russia was far from attaining. And when, on May 24th, the proud fortress on the Baltic was brought to yield, another detachment which had been engaged there was released to swell the command upon the Pa.ssarge. And while the French army was thus increasing in strength the winter drew to a close. It had been a terrible enemy to the 380 From Jena to Tilsit [i807 invaders, but, on the other hand, a faithful ally to their oppo- nents, the only trouble being that they had not been able to appreciate it at its true worth. During the long weeks of cold Bennigsen had taken not a single serious step to hinder the enemy's task of replenishing his army. In February, having begun to follow the French, he had been advised to make an onset also upon them at this time, so as to drive them behind the Vistula, or at least to protect Danzig by contesting their control of the Frische Nehrung; but he neglected everything of this kind and contented himself with forming plans of attack, some- times upon Ney, who occupied an advanced position, and again upon Elbing, each of which he would in the end discard, so that Scharnhorst was persuaded that the Russian general was resolved not to risk the loss of his reputation of having never been defeated by a Napoleon. It was only when Danzig had fallen and the enemy stood opposed to him stronger than ever, when the advent of favourable weather had made the roads passable and the maintenance of the army less difficult, when the ground was once more in fit condition for precise reconnoitring and for rapid manoeuvre, when Napoleon had determined upon his own method of attack, — in short, when it was entirely too late, — that Bennigsen began to bestir himself. Now he proposed to fall upon the advance-guard under Ney, annihilate it and then pro- ceed with his forces against the main body of the army. But the intrepid Marshal fought his way most gloriously back to the main army. With this the Emperor was now, in his turn, moving forward, contriving at the same time to slip in between Bennigsen and the Prussian corps and driving both before him. The situation was again as before Eylau. Napoleon's design was to outflank the enemy upon the left while holding his attention absorbed at the front and, the victory gained, to drive him back against the Russian frontier. There was this peculiarity about th(! plan — and it has been for this reason condemned by the greatest military critics — that it left a way of escape open to the enemy, while, if the encircling move- ment had been carried out by the right wing, the Russians would have had no choice but to take the road to Konigsberg, where J JEt.37] Friedland 381 they could have been utterly destroyed through the numerical superiority of the French. The question arises whether, per- chance, Napoleon did not intentionally avoid the annihilation of Alexander's army. There may have been a revival of an idea which had often occupied his mind and which had found expression even before the battle of Austerlitz, — of coming to terms with the Czar. And that is by no means an improbable explanation of his conduct at this time. Certain it is that at Eylau the Russian army had greatly impressed him, and he was assuredly obeying something beyond the mere inspiration of the moment when he wrote to Talleyrand on March 14th: "I am of the opinion that an alHance with Russia would be most advan- tageous if it were not for the absurdity of it and if any reliance could be placed upon that court." There was besides this a special reason for such a course, for just at this time — in the early part of June, 1807 — Napoleon's purposes in regard to Turkey came to shipwreck. The Sultan Selim III., as the result of a mistrust but too well justified, had refused the offer of a French auxiliary corps of 25,000 men under command of Mar- mont, while his own general had conducted the war against Rus- sia in an indolent fashion, not preventing the enemy from press- ing forward as far as Orsowa, and it was but a short time aft^r this that the janizaries, opponents of all reform, had stripped the Sultan of his power and set up as his successor on the Bos- phorus Mustapha, of whom Sebastian! wrote on June 1st that he was hostile to France and that no influence was to be obtained over him. Under such circumstances was it not perhaps the part of discretion to execute his designs upon Turkey by uniting with Russia for the present rather than by striving against her — that is, to come to terms with the Czar at the expense of the ungrateful Moslem who so little understood assuming the role of a wiUing tool for the furtherance of French pohcy? And would it be expedient, if this were the end in view, to attempt the de- struction of the Russian army? But be this as it may, the fact remains that the Emperor sent one portion of his army to the left, northwards, to surround the enemy, another detachment under Victor against the Prue- 382 From Jena to Tilsit [1807 Bians, leaving Ney and the Guards to protect the rear, while he himself with three corps tried to overtake Bennigsen. In the last he was, indeed, successful on the evening of June 10th at Heils- berg, but here the enemy had entrenched itself strongly and re- pulsed the French as they approached. Only the fear of being surrounded on the north then compelled the Russian, in spite of his victory, to draw farther back along the right bank of the Alle, while Napoleon, grown cautious, awaited the coming up of Ney and the Guards, whom he had summoned before following Bennig- sen upon the left bank. On June 14th the latter reached Friedland on the route from Bartenstein to Wehlau, At this point he crossed the river in order to attack the French while on the march, hoping to demolish the vanguard under Lannes and break through the line. The manoeuvre was, however, so slowly executed that while the action with Lannes was yet in progress the other French corps had time to come up and be set in battle array by Napoleon. The Russian had now no choice but to accept battle, — and he lost it, not, however, without valiant defence. For Ney, who advanced with his command against the left wing of the Russians, was at first thrown back and the battle was saved to the French only by the audacious act of Napoleon, who, recognizing the danger, rushed with his reserve corps through the midst of the fleeing soldiers to renew the attack. A heavy cannonading brought the Russians upon this side to yield, and at this Bennigsen was compelled to order the retreat of the centre and right wings through Friedland and across the Alle. But now the French pressed on in piu^uit from everywhere, so that the crossing of the river could be but imperfectly accomplished, and one detachment of the Russian troops was perforce left on the further side of the river to destruc- tion by the enemy's cannon. On the same day the Prussian corps also sustained defeat by itself at the hands of the encircling army; it was driven back under the very ramparts of Konigsberg, and escaped only with greatest difficulty and almost disbanded to Tilsit on the Niemen, where, on June 18th, liennigsen also amved on his retreat. The latter, having crossed the river, destroyed the bridges behind him. ^T. 37] Truce with Russia 383 On the day follo^\ing this victory Napoleon wTotc to Josephine: "My children have appropriately celebrated the anniversary of Marengo; the battle of Friedland will contribute to the fame and glory of my people as much as the other. The entire Russian army put to rout, 80 cannon seized, 30,000 men killed or captured, 25 of their generals killed, wounded, or taken prisoner, the Russian Guard demolished — this makes a sister worthy of Marengo. Austerlitz, or Jena ! " This account was to some extent exaggerated. Bennigsen's army had, it is true, been thoroughly scattered during the action, but by the time it reached Allenburg m its fhght it had already gathered again, so that it was able to proceed thence in tolerable order. Their losses w^ere, indeed, so great that the general-in-chief proposed to the Czar to enter into negotiations for peace, but his intention in suggesting this course was only with a \aew to securing tune for re-enforcement. For, in the first place, he was certain of finding on the farther side of the Memcl L'Es- tocq's corps of Prussians and a reserve body of Russians under Labanoff, and, in the second, the army had not been crowded away from its line of operations, so that Napoleon might still look fon\-ard to the possibility at any time of a new engagement against which he also was having preparations made to the west of Tilsit, The worst feature of the situation lay in the attitude of complete dissatisfaction prevaiHng throughout the Russian army and partic- ularly among the officers, who almost without exception belonged to the party headed by the Grand Duke Constantine and who condemned "fighting for foreign interests." And this feeling manifested itself with a freedom defying all discipline. It is even claimed that Alexander was pointedly reminded of the fate of his father. Even in the days immediately after the battle there is said to have been carried on a correspondence between Constantine and Murat in consequence of which Prince Labanoff was sent on June 19th to conclude a truce with Napoleon. The latter demanded as a condition the surrender of certain Prussian fortresses which had not yet fallen , among others Kolberg and Graudenz. Having no power to regulate the disposal of these strongholds, the envoy turned homeward, but the Emperor at once sent Duroc after him commissioned to say to the adversar}^ that Napoleon was ready for 384 From Jena to Tilsit [iso? a cessation of hostilities even without these concessions if Russia would enter into negotiations for a separate peace. This offer was made known to the Czar, who agreed to accept it. On the 21st the truce was signed, and on the 24th Labanoff returned to TUsit with written instructions for proposing an alliance and an interview between the two sovereigns. This course was, indeed, directly contrary to the wording of the Treaty of Bartenstein signed on April 26th, and in reality treachery to Prussia. But in regard to that the Czar did not greatly concern himself. After all, as he might have argued, had not that treaty remained practically nothing more than a pious wish? Supposing he had formed the plan now as in 1805 of marching as it were at the head of the legitimate powers of Europe against the usurper in order to compel his descent from the pinnacle upon which he had placed himself, would it not be but too evident that Europe was not supporting him? England had taken up arms in a way far too half-hearted and incomplete to be able to take an active part in the conflict, and now had become in addition obdurate in the matter of money, for to Russia's appeal for an indispensable subsidy of 6,000,000 pounds she had returned a refusal. On the other hand British supremacy on the sea bore heavily upon Russian vessels and oc- casionally made itself very grievously felt. Nothing more was needed to create an aversion to England in the mind of the Czar. But if England had acceded only conditionally to the Treaty of Bartenstein, Austria, as has been seen, had refused absolutely to give it adherence. It was only after the possibility of a separate peace between France and Russia had been brought to the at- tention of the Court of Vienna that an envoy was despatched to Alexander, there to reawaken hopes of Austria's co-operation; but he came too late. In view of the neutrality of the power on the Danube Gentz had already in April counselled the Czar in a memorial to conclude peace with Napoleon and save for the future his forces which now, without assistance from Austria, were be- ing uselessly squandered. These representations are said to have made a profound impression upon the young monarch.* Id * Martens, Recueil, VI. 419. Gentz advised the Czar to impel JEt.37] Napoleon and Alexander at Tilsit 385 the case of Sweden, too, there was an obstacle to perfect agree- ment. This state had, to be sure, taken part in the war against Napoleon. But Finland was still a Swedish province, and Finland lay in the path of what v.^as called the "natural expansion "of Russia. And herein lay the element of discord in Russian poli- tics: that in fighting in behalf of the ancient order of things in Europe she was defending a cause to which her own interests urged destruction and those who are prone to conch mn the character of Alexander as vacillating and untrustworthy will do well to lay the blame not upon him alone, but upon the political aim of his em- pire as well. He was now personally under pressure from that party which demanded peace, and under this combination of cir- cumstances it is not a matter for astonishment that he should accept the proposals of the enemy. He further expressed a desire for an interview with Napoleon to which the latter readily consented.* On the 25th of June took place the meeting between the two Emperors. Upon a raft in the middle of the Niemen was erected a magnificent tent in which the interview might go on without witnesses. Both mon- archs were conveyed thereto in small boats accompanied by the acclamations of their respective Guards lining the opposite banks of the river. The conference lasted for more than an hour,dur- Aiistria to take part in the war by declaring in Vienna that he would otherwise share with France v.hat no one would assist Russia in defending. Alexander appears to have followed this advice, for, toward the middle of the month of May, his ambassador, Pozzo di Borgo, had a conversation with Stadion in which he represented to him that, in case of Austria's refusal, peace might very possibly be agreed upon without the co-opera- tion of that power: "which would remain excluded from a system estab- lished under circumstances which she alone would have caused to be so unfavourable." * This is at least according to what Napoleon himself wrote to Talley- rand on June 24th, 1807. (This is confirmed by the instructions of the Czar to Labanoff in which he said: " I like to entertain the hope that we shall easily come to an agreement with the Emj)eror Napoleon if we can confer without any intermediary." Taking the hint, Napoleon propo.'sed a personal interview through Duroc, June 24th. Martens, Recueil des Traitfe et conventions conclus par Russia avec les puissances etrangfires, XIII. 298, 299.— B.) 386 From Jena to Tilsit [I807 ing which time the retinue remained waiting outside of the tent, and within this hour the face of the world was changed. Of exactly what took place on this occasion we have no direct record. It was alleged by some that they caught the opening of the conversation. According to these accounts Alexander accosted Napoleon with: "I hate the English as thoroughly as you do, and I will second you in ever3'^thing you are willing to undertake against them"; to which Napoleon replied: "In that case there will be no difficulty in adjusting matters between us, and peace is made." And naturally! For why continue at war if he could now obtain peacefully that which he had de- termined by conquering and overmastering Russia to compel her to give — her accession to the blockade of the Continent in case England should refuse to accept the conditions imposed? Assuming that this was to be the outcome, he now doubtless re- sumed the project of a march upon India which had never ceased to occupy his mind and to participation in which he had won over Alexander's father in his day. Concessions were furthermore made upon both sides. The Corsican agreed to sacrifice the integrity of Turkey, — that point which had been the cause of contention between the two powers in July, 1S06, — renounced the idea of a re-establishment of ancient Poland, and assigned Finland to Russia, in return for which the Czar de- clared himself ready to accept all changes which Napoleon should make in the south, in Italy or in the Iberian peninsula, a basis for agreement being thus furnished with which both parties were, for the time being, content. It is indeed open to question whether all these considerations were brought up dur- ing that first interview, but it is certain that they were zealously discussed during those weeks of familiar intercourse between the two sovereigns. On June 26th Frederick William also was granted an interview with Napoleon, though only in the char- acter of a prot6g6 of the Czar's and not as a sovereign of equal rank pleading his own cause. Two weeks were thus spent together in Tilsit before the treaty of peace was signed. Napoleon displayed his utmost graciousness of manner so as to captivate the Czar, and a prince ^vr. 37] The Peace of Tilsit 387 so vain could not but be gratified and allured by the fact that the victor offered to him, the vanquished, the homage of his friendship. Both sides were, moreover, obliged to yield upon certain points which held concealed the germs of future discord. Napoleon, to be sure, no longer laid stress upon the re-establish- ment of Poland, but he was none the less opposed to having the duchy of Warsaw fall back into the possession of Prussia; he had involved himself too deeply with the Polish patriots to ad- mit of that. He even went so far at first as to suggest that Poland be united with Prussian Silesia to form a kingdom wiiich should be assigned to his brother Jerome, but he soon recognized that the time had not yet come for his purpose of extending his power as far as the Vistula, and withdrew his proposition. Silesia remained the property of Prussia, and the duchy of Warsaw fell to the King of Saxony, though with the provision that it should not be incorporated with his state. Only the Polish crown lands, of some 27,000,000 francs value. Napoleon reserved to himself for future use in rewarding his generals. For Jerome a com- pensation was provided by uniting the Prussian territories west of the Elbe with lands from the electorate of Hesse and duchy of Brunswick to form a kingdom of Westphalia.* On the other hand Alexander had counted as a certainty upon securing Con- stantinople, and had been likewise obliged to yield. At last, on July 7th, 1807, matters had reached a point where it was possible for the diplomats Talleyrand and Kurakin to append their signa- tures to the documents. Of these there were two, a peace convention and a treaty of offensive and defensive alliance. In the former were taken up and dealt with all stipulations involving Prussia. It was herein * Westphalia was to consist of the states of Brunswick-Wolfen- biittel, the Alt-Mark, and the territory of Magdeburg to the left of the Elbe, the territories of Halle, Hildesheini, and the city of Goslar, the petty state of Halberstadt and Hohenstein, the territory of Quedlinburg. the county of Mansfeld, the Eichsfeld, the cities of Miihlhausen and Nordhausen, the county of Stolberg, the states of Hesse-Cji.ssel. the former Hanoverian principalities of Gottingen and Grubenhagen with Hohenstein and Elbingerode, the bishoprics of Osnabriick and of Padcr- bom, Minden, Ravensberg, and the county of Rittberg-Kaunitz. 388 From Jena to Tilsit [I807 stated that: "Out of regard for His Majesty the Emperor of all the Russias, and wishing to give proof of his sincere desire to unite the two nations by the links of an unalterable trust and friendship," the Emperor of the French now restored to Frederick William his territories lying east of the Elbe except for the circle of Kottbus, which was to go to Saxony, and the Polish provinces of South Prussia and New East Prussia, of which the circle of Bielostok was to fall to Russia, w^hile the remainder went to make up the duchy of Warsaw just mentioned. The Czar, moreover, recognized Joseph as King of Naples, and pledged himself to recognize him as also Lord of Sicily as soon as a com- pensation should be found for its legitimate prince. Russia also gave her acquiescence to the establishment of Louis as King of Holland, and that of Jerome as King of Westphalia, as w^ell as to the Confederation of the States of the Rhine. Cattaro and the Ionian Islands were to be Napoleon's in return for the release of Danzig. He undertook to mediate between Russia and Tur- key, while Alexander was to bring about peace between France and England. Thus was it with the peace convention. The question was here still left open as to what was to take place in case England and Turkey did not consent to the conditions imposed by the mediating powers. To this the answer was contained in the second instrument — the secret treaty of alliance. In this the contract- ing parties pledged themselves to mutual support whether offen- sive or defensive, the first object of their attack being England if that power should not have accepted by November 1st, 1807, the Russian terms of peace, which demanded nothing less of Great Britain than that she should restore to France and her ally all conquests which she had made since 1805 and grant complete in- dependence upon the sea to all flags, upon compliance with which conditions Hanover should again be hers. The Porte was to be next in order in case the mediation of France should have led to no satisfactory result within three months of the conclusion of the Treaty of TUsit. In the first event Russia pledged hereclf to break off all relations with England, to use her power in the system of Continental blockade, and, in combination with France, to compel Mr. 37] The Treaty with Prussia 389 likewise Denmark, Sweden, Portugal, and Austria to take part in the war against England's commerce. In the second event Rus.«ia and France were to unite their forces to snatch from Turkey all her European possessions with the exception of Constantinople and Roumelia. Should Denmark. Portugal, or Sweden offer resistance to the demands of the allies, the country so resisting should be invaded by war conducted by both powers, should Sweden alone refuse to comply, Denmark should be constrained to csunry on the contest against her.* In a special agreement, which was probably only verbal, a division of Turkish territory is said to have been arranged; but although Napoleon showed a disposition to favour the designs of the Emperor of Russia, he would not consent to having the project clearly and distinctly formulated. Two days later, on July 9th. 1807. peace was Ukewise signed with Prussia. It was without avail that, unmindful of the re- peated affronts which had been offered her through Napoleon's bulletins, the young and beautiful Queen Louise appeared before the powerful enemy to her country to entreat for it a fate less hard, or at least the restitution of Magdebiu"g. She could obtain noth- ing beyond mere civilities and vague promises to which the Em- peror paid not the slightest regard next morning. His stipulations in regard to Prussia remained precisely as had been before agreed upon with Alexander. It is scarcely necessary to say that the unhappy country' was obliged to bind itself to keep all ports closed against England and. in case John Bull should fail to comply with the terms of peace imposeel. to enter into a league with France and Russia for the purpose of carrying on war against him. The^e were the essential points in the Treaty of Tilsit. .An attempt has been made to see in this a division of the mastery of Europe according to the principle that Napoleon yielded to the Czar the eastern half of the Continent, while reserving to himself * The authentic wording of the treaty of alliance has here been followed. Since the publication of the German edition of this book, when the text of the secret treaty was for the first time published complete, it has been publit^hed by Vandal, "Napoleon et Alexandre I.," p. 515, and by Martens in his Ilecueil, XIII, 322. 390 Fram Jena to Tilsit [1807 undisturbed dominion over the west. But the facts in the case would not bear out this idea in all particulars. In spite of every- thing the difference between victor and vanquished is clearly dis- cernible in the documents. Napoleon made not the least show of withdrawing from Turkey, and through his aUiance with Persia he still maintained a firm foothold in the East. Moreover, the duchy of Warsaw was now ruled by one of the princes of the Con- federation of the States of the Rhine. — for such had the new "king " of Saxony become in December. 1806, — and was thus imder direct influence of his policy. Here was a card which might be played against Russia at any time when he should feci so inclined. And Russia herself was at the mercy of France, at least in the matter of her industries, from the moment in which the war against Eng- land's commerce began. No! In the treaty of July 7th, 1807, there was nothing which looked hke renunciation or change of purpose on the part of Napoleon. His concessions to Russia meant nothing more than a pause on the way to universal do- minion. As far back as 1803, when war with England had be- come inevitable, the First Consul is said to have made approaches to Alexander I. with proposals culminating in a combined at- tack upon Great Britain and which were probably similar in nature to those of Tilsit. Cobenzl, the Austrian minister and a clear-sighted diplomat, at that time expressed himself in re- gard to Napoleon and his purposes in these words: "Never has any one laid himself more open to the suspicion of aspiring to a universal monarchy, and a man must begin by being one of two to finish by being the only one." I CHAPTER XIV THE SITUATION OF AFFAIRS IN FRANCE. BAYONNE AND ERFURT It would be, however, not only a mistake, but an injustice to Napoleon's powers of penetration, to assume that he had allowed himself to be persuaded by the demands of his external policy alone to the conclusion of peace with Alexander in 1807 in- stead of abiding by his original intention of unshackling Poland and, in alliance with that hereditary enemy of Russia, extend- ing his owii dominion by conquest to the farthest borders of the Continent. That which more than aught else determined him to arrest his course at the Niemen was consideration for pubHc opinion in France, knowing that he durst not forfeit all favour and kindly feeling on the part of his people; for he was already on the highway to such an outcome. The French had refused their sympathy with the war of 1805, and it was only through the marvellous victories of the Emperor, coupled with many an addition to the contents of the state's treasury, that they could be reconciled to it. But when, a year later, these cruel wars broke out afresh, the people began to see that their soldiers were no longer fighting in the interests of their country, but were wasting their blood only for the sake of the boundless ambition of this foreigner; that his policy was not, as he pretended, the policy of France. Henceforth no success however great could alter the popular feeUng. A contemporary relates that even the victory of Jena made absolutely no impression in Paris. On the other hand, dissatisfaction with the Empire steadily in- creased, though in secret. But however anxiously conceak\i from the innumerable spies in his employ, the facts still came to Napoleon's ears; here it was the audacious joke of some idler on the boulevard which was reported, there the cutting witti- 391 392 Affairs in France [i807 cism of an inhabitant of the Faubourg St. Germain, or perchance a newspaper article not discreetly enough revised: — nothing es- caped the vigilance of his informants. But even without spe- cial reports of this kind he would have been aware that the French people, whose sons he had demanded to fight his bat- tles, no longer made the sacrifice with the conviction that it was for the good of the nation, but that it was inwardly threat- ening to turn completely from him. Such a symptom as this he was too discerning to underestimate. Although he felt him- self able to cope with any popular uprising through the mighty army which he had attached to himself personally, he had never- theless learned too much from the Revolution not to reckon the current of popular sentiment as a distinct and important poht- ical factor. It was appalling to consider what would become of him if France should eventually cease to honour his drafts upon the future. Such an eventuaUty must on no account be allowed to occur. And it was because he knew the craving for peace existing among the French people and its horror of in- cessant war that he made peace with Russia and, even before leaving Tilsit, took steps for spreading abroad in France the re- port that the war of blockade was nearing its end. Then he returned to Paris to prove himself the solicitous administrator and bring about forgetfulness of his career as a conqueror. Here he was greeted with an enthusiasm outwardly similar to that of a year previous; there were illuminations and accla- mations, speeches and addresses somewhat more bombastic even than those of the former occasion, which had even then been lacking in spontaneity. For instance, the President of the Court of Appeals declared to his face that Napoleon had ceased to belong to ordinary human history, but should be classed among the heroes of antiquity. He listened with a serious coun- tenance to such disquisitions, and was doubtless no less serious in his contempt for an orator capable of such servility. At the opening of the Corps Legislatif he read a speech from the throne in which he expressed to the French the pride and satisfaction felt in the nation by its monarch, and in the Council of State was drawn up a report setting forth the blessings conferred by th^ ^T. 37] Guiding Public Opinion 393 imperial government. Such reports had repeatedly been made before this under the Empire. The first time was toward the close of 1804 and the second in March, 1806, after the Peace of Pressburg, in both of which cases the key-note had been the same: that Napoleon was indefatigably intent upon promoting the well-being of his people, but was nevertheless constantly interrupted in this task by disturbances from without. The result had been that France had turned with fury against these antagonists and hailed with acclamation the commander who promptly and brilliantly overcame them. 80 had it been even in 1805, but at present matters wore a different aspect. The next year, in order to be believed when asserting that the Em- peror had no further plans of conquest and no longer desired the bloody laurels which others had compelled him to pluck, the Minister of the Interior had to seek an entirely new funda- mental principle for use in his public declarations. This new theme was soon found, and now the story ran: that even if Europe had been so wicked as to force war upon the Emperor, he had not been prevented by it from the fulfilment of his duties as a ruler, especially as the war itself had been carried on solely in the interests of France. This text was further varied by the Minister in his representations of 1807, in which he said of Napo- leon that: "^Vhile he was seeking out the soldier in his tent amidst the snows of Lithuania, his eyes were resting in France upon the cottage of the poor, upon the workshop of the me- chanic; . . . while, as for us, we realized his absence only in hearing of his exploits." True, certain branches of industry had suffered, but this was nothing but a passing inconvenience, for the war in progress was a war for commercial independence, and every conquest made in it by the Emperor was a future gain to French traffic. Moreover, it was no small merit on the part of the monarch to have removed to such a distance the scene of operations that, "while the rest of Europe was writhing in the torments of war, France, serene and confident in her power, could look hito the future with the feeling of security whicli is the result of a happy past, desiring peace without being tired of the war and aspiring to that high destiny which lias been pre- 394 Affairs in France [I807 pared for her by him in whom she has placed her confidence, her glory, her affection. This expectation of a great people has been fulfilled, her fondest hopes surpassed. The hour of prosperity has come, who will venture to prophesy its termina- tion?" Though essentially hypocritical, these assurances did never- theless contain two statements not unsupported by fact: in the first place Napoleon did himself consider the commercial war against England to be an enterprise actually conducive to the welfare of France, and in the second, even during the course of the war he had not, as a matter of fact, dropped from his shoulders the burden of the administration in France. For Cambaceres, though appointed Napoleon's representative, was such in form only, and the couriers to Warsaw, Osterode, or Finkenstein were charged with questions in regard to even the most insignificant details. From such a distance it was nevertheless impossible to undertake any very vigorous meas- ures, and it was only now upon his return that the undivided attention of the monarch could be accorded to affairs of the in- terior. Napoleon well knew how little had been accomplished by the fine words of his minister; France must be convinced by acts and deeds that only under his own guidance could she be assured of prosperity and honour. He demanded at once upon his arrival to be furnished with the figures as to the exports and imports of French commerce, and to be informed how Italy and the Confederation of the Rhine could be made serviceable to it. The new commercial code was pubhshed. The bank was ordered to reduce the rate of discount. To check impoverishment and to help the needy state workshops were opened in all departments for those who were in distress, and work renewed upon public constructions planned and begun after the victorious campaign of 1805; these included roads over the Siinplon and Mont-Cenis, new canals, telegraph lines for the acceleration of correspondence, the resto- ration of the Basilica of St. Denis, — particularly the crypt which was used as th(^ tomb of royalty and which had been destroyed by the Revolution, — the founding of a new city in the Vendue, I Mt. 37] The Jewish Question 39^ the erection of monumental arches of triumph in PariK, the con- tinuation of the quais on the banks of the Seine, the embelHsh- ment of the capital by a wide Btreet running from the Tuileries to the boulevards (the Rue de la Paix), the completion of the Louvre, the laying out of a park on the Rue de Rivoli, the build- ing of the Pont des Arts, the Pont d'Austerhtz, and the Pont d'Jena, the raising of a column of triumph on the Place Ven- dome, besides many other works of the same order. All these provided labour for many hands, and prevented general distress, so that it was possible to forbid beggary. Among public abuses there was one especially which had fixed Napoleon's attention even before the outbreak of the war with Prussia. This was the condition of unremitting poverty prevailing among the peasants of the eastern departments, the cause of which was eventually found to lie in the exploita- tion of the people by the Jews through usury. For, ever since the National Assembly in 1791 had accorded to the Israelites civil rights similar to those of all other Frenchmen, there had poured in from foreign countries to the eastward streams of Jewish tradesmen who had settled in the departments on the Rhine and here for the most part carried on a business of usurious money-lending. Especially after pubhc security had been re-established by Bonaparte in the interior did they mass themselves in the German -speaking provinces. According to an official account submitted to Napoleon by the Minister of the Interior in April, 1807, the sums demanded upon mortgages by the Jews since 1799 amounted, in the Alsatian department of the Upper Rhine alone, to more than 23,000,000 francs, and Marshal Kellerman set at something more than 70 per cent the rate of interest customarily extorted by them. Most of them were successful in evading military service. For a moment Napoleon had thought of declaring null and void all debts upon mortgages at usurious rates, but upon further consideration vouchsafed to apply measures somewhat less severe. An as- sembly of Jewish Rabbis — a sort of revival of the great Sanhe- drim of Jewish history — was to take coimsel together to find a remedy against this evil, and, in fact, a series of resolutions 39^ Affairs in France [1807 was drawn up by this body in Paris, March, 1807, forbidding their fellow believers to exact usury as sinful and urging the youth of the nation to learn handicrafts. Thus stood matters at the time of the return of the Emperor from his campaign. These resolutions seemed to him, however, to offer too little guarantee, and he ordered elaborated an exceptional law bear- ing upon the Jewish population, which was to remain in opera- tion for a first period of ten years and of which the essential features were the following: Interest at more than 5 per cent should be reduced by the proper authorities, while that at more than 10 per cent should be declared usurious and the debt can- celled; no Jew might carry on business without a license from the proper authorities, and none lend money upon a mortgage without an act attested before a notary; Hebrews not yet resident in Alsace at the moment when this decree was put in force — it was promulgated March 17th, 1808 — could not estab- lish themselves there; in other departments they were allowed to settle only on condition of becoming landowners; every IsraeUte must perform military service and was debarred the privilege of hiring a substitute. It is not to be denied that this law was contrary to the Napoleonic Code, but it was effectual. Reports from the eastern departments showed improvement even within a few years, and Napoleon was enabled to allow of exceptions being made to a constantly increasing extent until the state of complete equality before the law was again attained. The Emperor's concern for the material prosperity of the French was closely aUied with his financial policy. Up to this time he had carried on his wars without substantially increasing the taxation and without assuming debts. "As long as I hve,'' he wrote on May 18th, 1805, to Barbe-Marbois, "I shall issue no paper." No method seemed to him so certain to mitigate the avereion felt by the people toward his wars as to prove that they demanded no pecuniary sacrifice. The system of requisi- tions in foreign countries had until now made it possible to abide by this policy, and it was further relieving the country of a heavy burden to liavc the greater part of the standing army remain, even in peace, without its borders. But this was, after all, far Mr. 37] Financial Policy 397 from sufficient, for in 1805 a painful cxpcricncp had been under- gone. The taxes had not been increased at the opening of the war, but money was nevertheless an imperative necessity. It had therefore been derived at this time from the cash ad- vanced to the government by an association of financiers, with the banker Ouvrard at their head, who had been accustomed to discount the assignments by the receivers of taxes of the income due in the course of the ensuing year. This same company man- aged incidentally also the financial affairs of the Spanish crown by advancing the subsidies exacted by France from Spain, tak- ing repayment with substantial interest upon the arrival of the silver fleet from America. But the war now declared upon Spain by England prevented the conveyance of the ingots, plunging the company into difficulties from which it was to be extricated only by aid of the Bank of France, which w^as, for this purpose, compelled to exhaust its supply of ready money. A crisis was the immediate consequence, bringing in its train bankruptcy to many important houses; capitalists throughout the country became uneasy. It was just at the time that Napo- leon was negotiating for peace with Austria in December, 1805. His presence in France became indispensable, and, as Montgelas asserts, it was this consideration more than any other, accord- ing to his own later testimony, which impelled him to the con- clusion of the Treaty of Pressburg, an opportunity which the Austrians might easily have turned to account by occasioning delays which would have caused serious embarrassment to Na- poleon. But such a predicament must never again befall. On that occasion the proclamation of peace, the newly established confidence of the people, and the 40,000,000 francs of Austrian war-indemnity had averted disaster. Now, after the second victorious campaign, the millions exacted from Prussia, Poland, and WestphaHa were taken to estabhsh not only a war- treasure, but likewise a "Service Bank" (Caisse de Sennce) which should make unnecessary the assistance of bankers in the future, and even furnish advance moneys upon the taxes. There was further established a treasury board {cour des Comptes) which was to assume control of the administration of finances. 398 Affairs in France [1807 The Emperor was thus enabled to demonstrate to the French people that his wars not only demanded no new sacrifices on their part, but that they might with their results actually be advantageous to the public finances. Nor was the encouraging aspect of affairs delusive, for the material situation of the coun- try continued to make real improvement. Commerce did in- deed suffer from the blockade, while the advanced prices of sugar and coffee bore hard upon all classes, but, on the other hand, the exclusion from Europe of English manufactures was helping to build up French industries. Hopes of universal peace and the re-established credit of the state contributed to raise the price of government 5 per cents to 93 in 1807, a point to which they were destined never again to rise during the reign of the Emperor. But Napoleon knew only too well that a people of so high a grade of intelligence as the French craved not material pros- perity alone, but was sensible of other needs which were not to be satisfied with money and bread. Precisely what these were he was confident that he knew. Wlien in 1797 at the close of the Italian war he for the first time considered making himself master of France and set that as his goal, he expressed himself in confidence to Miot in the following words : ''The French want glory and the satisfaction of their vanity, but as for liberty they have no realization of what it means." And from that time he had adopted this maxim as his guide. From every battlefield he had sent to assure them of the glories of their arms and thus ministered to their national pride. His next care was to make provision for their personal vanity. On August 12th, 1807, he addressed to Cambac^r^s a most extraordinary epistle in which he said: "Since it is part of human nature for a man to wish to leave to his children some token of the esteem in which he has been held, as well as to provide for them a suitable and sufficient inheritance," he reserved to himself the right to confer other titles of nobility upon such as had rendered service to the state in the same way as the titular duchies had been founded in the previous year. Ministers, senators, Councillors of State, presidents of the Corps L^gislatif, and archbishops as well, /Et. 38] The New Nobility 399 should be granted the right to the title of Count, which might be transmitted to their heirs in accordance with the laws of primogeniture provided the testator could entail with it a yearly income of 30,000 francs; the presidents of the electoral colleges and courts of justice who were appointed for life, the attorneys- general, and mayors of the most important cities of the country should be made Barons and miglit likewise transmit the title by entail if endowed with a yearly income of 15,000 francs; the members of the Legion of Honour might transmit their knight- hood with an income of 3000 francs, while a Grand Dignitary must be able to leave an income of 200,000 francs to his heir in order to preserve to him the title of Prince. Now all this was diametrically opposed to the laws of inheritance as set forth in the Napoleonic Code. The Emperor, however, tried to make the matter acceptable to the Senate by clearly pointing out to that body that no manner of political privilege was associated with these hereditary titles any more than with the new feudal duchies, and that the fundamental law of equaUty thus remained absolutely inviolate. Allured by the title of Count, the senators yielded consent, and in March, 1808, the law went into effect.* * Shortly after his promulgation of the decree respecting the new nobility Napoleon expressed himself to Madame de R^musat somewhat as follows: "Liberty is a need felt by a class small in number and gifted by nature with abilities above those of the common run of humanity. It can thus be restrained with impunity. Equality, on the contrary, pleases the multitude. I do not in the least offend against it in bestowing titles which are accorded to such and such persons without regard to the question of birth, which is just at present out of fashion. These titles are a sort of civic crown ; they can be earned by good works. Moreover, clever men will give to those whom they govern the same impulses which they themselves have. Now my own impulse is altogether upward, and a similar one is needed to give a like impetus to the nation. . . . Not that I fail to see that all these nobles, and especially these dukes that I create and upon whom I bestow such enormous dotations, are going to become somewhat independent of me. Decorated and wealthy, they will attempt to escape my grasp and probably assume what they will call the spirit befitting their rank. Still they will not run so fast but that I shall know how to come up with them well enough." In later years, however, after his fall, he did characterize it as a mistake after all to have made his 400 Affairs in France [I807 But these distinctions accorded to civil functionaries were trifling as compared with those which Napoleon allotted to his com- panions-in-arms. Now began the bestowal of the long list of Italian titles upon his marshals: Soult became Duke of Dal- matia; Mortier, Duke of Treviso, Savary, Duke of Rovigo; Bessieres, Duke of Istria; Duroc, of Friuli; Victor, of Belluno; Moncey, of Conegliano; Clarke, of Feltre; Caulaincourt, of Vlcenza; Massena, of Rivoli; Lannes, of Montebello; Mar- mont, of Ragusa; Oudinot, of Reggio; Macdonald, of Taranto; Augereau, of Castighone; Bernadotte, Prince of Ponte Corvo; Davout, Ney, and Lefebvre had acquired ducal titles in Germany: those of Auerstadt, Elchingen, and Danzig respectively; while Berthier had secured for himself the principality of Neufcha- tel.* With these titles were presented rich estates from the domains which the Emperor had reserved to himself from Poland, Italy, and Germany, and which were to be hereditary with the titles according to the laws of primogeniture. For the time being the Emperor dispensed 11,000,000 francs among these favourites, one half in cash and the rest in securities. Berthier was the recipient of a milhon, while Ney, Davout, Soult, and Bessieres each received 600,000 francs, Massena, Augereau, Ber- nadotte, Mortier, and Victor each 400,000, and the others 200,000 francs.f Provision was further made for the entire victorious instruments independent through wealth. Berthier, the one whom he had endowed the most splendidly of all, was the first to desert him. * Besides these military dukes there were also created a certain number from amongst the civilians: Cambac^res was made Duke of Parma; Maret, of Bassano; Lebrun, of Piacenza; Fouch^, of Otranto; and Cham- pagny, of Cadore. t The incomes of the marshals were some years later increased to a considerable extent, so that Berthier, for instance, as Prince of Neufchatel, Vice-Constable, Marshal, and Grand Himtsman, was annually in receipt of 1,.3.').'),000 francs; Davout, Duke of Auerstadt, and Prince of Eckmiihl, of 910,000 francs; Ney, Duke of Elchingen, and after 1812 Prince of Moskowa, of 728,000 francs; Mass6na, Duke of Rivoli, and after 1809 Prince of Esslingen, of 683,000 francs As for the civilians, under the Empire the emoluments of the oflice of Minister averaged not less than 200,000 francs, while the Minister of Foreign AfTairs received even more. Ambassadors, who were called upon to represent the power of ^T. 38] Rewards to the Army 401 army. Of the 18,000,000 francs which was employed for this purpose 12,000,000 fell to the rank and file, and was so appor- tioned that the wounded received a triple share, the remain- ing 6,000,000 being distributed among the officers. Such sol- diers as had lost a limb in the campaign were allowed pensions of 500 francs, while officers, commissioned and non-commis- sioned, who had particularly distinguished themselves were granted annuities up to 10,000 francs. Naturally the object of all this was but to make the more certain the loyalty of the army the less confident the Emperor became of his grasp upon the sympathies of the other part of the French people. It had been, moreover, for a long time his endeavour to denationalize the army as far as possible, so that it should not cease to serve his international schemes. On this account also — and not alone for reasons of finance and foreign politics — did he leave the Grand Army in Germany and Poland, which countries it was to evacute only when Prussia should have paid off the exorbi- tant sum which he had demanded as war-indemnity. Only the Guard had been allowed to return home, where it had been given strict orders to hold itself to the greatest possible extent aloof from civil hfe. In his care for the material interests of the French, for their thirst for glory, and for their vanity, Napoleon felt that he had done enough for this country of France which he had once cyni- cally called his mistress and which was so devoted that she was ready to sacrifice for him her treasures and her blood. He still held firmly to his idea that liberty was no requisite of the com- mon people, but only a pretence of those whom he disdainfully styled " Ideologists," upon whose shoulders he laid the blame of the anarchy of the Revolution, and against whose influence upon pubhc opinion he waged war with all his force. Hence arose his measures against the press, against newspapers and books, which became from year to year more severe; hence his sohcitude to the Emperor in the most splendid manner at foreign courts, were furnished with a salary more than sufficient, as, for example, in the case of Caulain- court, who was now sent to Russia with an annual stipend of from 700,000 to 800,000 francs. 402 Affairs in France [1807 withhold from all publicity the discussions of his laws, hence his attempts against the independence of the judiciary which could provide a refuge to the opponents of his system of compulsory benefits, and hence also his plan for protecting the coming generation from all temptations of unrestricted mental activity by means of a correct and uniform method of instruction. In all of these directions he displayed an indefatigable zeal which must not be passed over without comment in an historical sketch. Mention has already been made of Napoleon's antipathy to Madame de Stael, whom he compelled to leave France and event- ually sentenced to perpetual banishment "because," as he inti- mated, "she inspired thought in people who had never taken it into their heads to think before or who had forgotten how." He wrote from Finkenstein to Fouch^ that, much to his satisfaction, she was no longer talked about.* Chateaubriand, who, in 1802, had dedicated his ' ' Genie de Christianisme " to the ' ' Restorer of Religion," had brought himself into disfavour with the Em- peror by an adverse criticism of the d'Enghien episode and was likewise soon after obhged to leave his native country because his influence in the salons of the opposition party in Paris seemed dangerous. An article on Spain wliich he wrote in the "Mer- cure de France" shortly before Napoleon's return in 1807, and which contained allusions not to be misunderstood, had the fur- ther result of depriving him of his property. A still harder fate would have been his but for the friendship of Fontanes, who, like many another, had gladly put his talents at the service of the all-powerful Emperor. Jacques Delille, the author of "I'Homme des Champs" and " rimagination " and the trans- lator of the iEneid, escaped unscathed only on account of the high esteem in which he was held and the uncensurable nature of the matter of which he treated. His example was followed by a number of poets who carefully avoided every political and social problem and confined themselves to subjects of an indif- ♦ Madame de R^camier and Madame de Chevreuse shared the same fate as Madame de Stael. Even when stricken with mortal illness Madame de Chevreuse was not allowed to return to Paris that she might consult her physician, and died in exile. JErr.zs] The Censureship of Literature 403 ferent or inferior order which, as if in compcnBation, they treated in a masterly way, and it is perhaps safe to ascribe in some measure at least to that time of restricted thought and hampered imagination the high value already attached in France to the art of pleasing expression and perfection of form in and for itself. Upon the stage, to which the Emperor devoted special attention, he wished to see no subjects presented which dealt with '• times too near the present"; they must in any case belong to a period before Henri IV., for which popular character he entertained the most decided aversion. "I see," said he one day, " that you are playing a tragedy of Henri IV. That period is not yet distant enough to fail to awaken the passions. What the stage requires is antiquity." Not until Mozart's " Don Juan " had been demonstrated to him to be not dangerous to "I'esprit pubhc" could authorization be obtained for its produc- tion. Drama and comedy casting reflections upon modem life were in like manner interdicted, '' because," as Madame de Remusat explains, ' ' no one dared to exhibit upon the boards the weaknesses and foibles of the various classes of society when all society had been renewed by Bonaparte, whose work had to be respected." With such a fate for " belles-lettres " no one could doubt as to what would be that of the daily press. The beginnings of ne^\'spaper censorship imder the Consulate have already been considered. Under the Empire there remained at the end of a short time but four independent papers in Paris: the " Citoyen Frangais," the " Mercure de France," the " Journal des Debats," and the " Publiciste." Even the names were displeasing to the Emperor, who wanted nothing to do with " Citoyens " and " Debats," and, in fact, the " Gtoyen " was compelled to change its appellation to " Courrier Frangais, " while the ''Journal des Debats" had to become the ''Journal de I'Empire." These papers stood m constant danger of being suppressed. Wlien, in 1805, they ventured upon one occasion to make some ob- servations in regard to the luxury displayed at court, the editore were infonncd " that the Revolutionary times were past and over and that there now remained but a single party in France, 404 Affairs in France [I807 which would never suffer the newspapers to say or do anything contrary to its mterests." A year later Napoleon wrote to Talleyrand: "It is my intention to have the pohtical articles for the ' Moniteur ' written by officials in the Foreign Office, and after I have observed for a month how these are done I shall forbid the other newspapers to discuss polities otherwise than in imitation of the articles in the 'Moniteur.'" But when, as a result of these restrictions, the contents of the Paris papers be- came destitute of force or meaning he was no better satisfied than before. He wanted to be extolled. And just as he had prohibited all critical discussion of his government in hterature and periodical pubUcations did he want to impose silence also in the Tribunate, the one body to which the right of discussion still legally remained as provided for in the Constitution. He determined to make this impossible even behind closed doors. Accordingly at its last session in December, 1807, a decree of the Senate was submitted to the " Corps Legislatif " pronouncing the dissolution of the Tribunate, the members of which were appointed to office among the vari- ous sections of the "Corps Legislatif," while its president was called to the Senate, and, further, fixing the age fimit for mem- bership in the " Corps Legislatif" at forty years. Napoleon, who was himself at that time but thirty-eight, knew full well how much youth was disposed to be precipitate in dealing with po- litical projects, and wished to see only sedate and tranquilly- disposed men in this body, which for appearance* sake was still called legislative, but was such only in name. His will alone gave laws to France, all else was mere unessential form. Hence he was able to issue a decree by which he evaded the irremovability of judges, guaranteed by the Constitution, by requiring every judge to pass through a period of five years' probation before he could be recognized as definitely irremovable, the final de- cision to come from a commission of ten senators appointed by the Emperor. Hence it was, also, that imprisonment for political offenders again became a possibility. And every- where the Senate co-operated with obsequious assiduity, heed- less of the concealed aversion of unprejudiced minds for iKT. 38] A System of Repression 405 Buch boundless servility. Wliat mattered it to the senators that their conduct was regarded with contempt as expressed, for instance, by Joseph Ch^nier in his "Tiberius" where, speak- ing of the Roman senators, he says : "They daily seek their own opinion in mine eyes. Reserving to the wretched their hireUng insolence, Flattering in their discourse, in their very silence cringing. Fearing to think, to speak, perform an act. 'Tis I must blush for them, since e'en to blush They lack the courage " ? But Ch4nier was sufficiently mindful of his own advantage to keep his '•Tiberius" secure in his own possession under lock and key. while his " Cyrus" eulogized the Emperor. And what mattered it that the words "despotism" and "tyranny" were whispered about? They were only whispered, and for that very reason could not be far-reaching in their effect. As one day Suard, one of the most respected publicists, was speak- ing to Napoleon in terms of admiration regarding Tacitus and his descriptions of the Roman emperors, his Majesty replied: " Excellent, but he ought to make clear to us how it was that the Roman people tolerated and loved even the bad emperors. That is the point upon which it was of consequence to inform posterity." And here he hinted at the real foundation of his own power, for he was perfectly aware that the moment was not yet come when France could get on without him. He made frequent comparisons of his own government with that of the Roman emperors, especially with that of Diocletian. "You who are so well acquainted with history," said he to Narbonne in 1814, "are you not struck by the points of resemblance be- tween my government and that of Diocletian, by this close- woven net which I spread to such a distance, by these ubiquitous eyes of the Emperor, and by this civil authority which I have known how to maintain in all its force in an Empire absorbed in war? I have many traits in common with Diocletian from Egypt to Illyria, only I neither persecute the Christians nor abdicate the imperial throne." * Madame de Remusat lamented * Villemain, Souvenirs, p. 177. 4o6 Affairs in France [i807 to Talleyrand upon one occasion at about this time that, al- though she had no choice but to remain at the French court, she could not help hating the Emperor for his evil qualities, — for he sowed discord between friends and between man and wife, and made the most of the weaknesses of his attendants, so that he might govern them, thus divided, all the more surely. To this repUed the diplomat, who was also far from being kindly disposed toward Napoleon: ''Child that you are, why is it that you are always putting your heart in all that you do? Trust me, do not compromise it by feeling any attachment for that man, but be assured that, with all his faults, he is still very necessary to France, which he knows how to uphold and to this object each of us ought to contribute all in our power. ..." Therein lay the secret of the Emperor. With such precautions, then, Napoleon might rest content that not so much as a breath of adverse criticism would reach the mass of the French people to disturb the respect and esteem with which it regarded his government. But besides this he had for a long time cherished the idea of protecting the rising generation from the outset against any assaults of that kind by bringing them up to believe in imperialism, much as the Jesuit schools trained its disciples to ultramontanism. Beginnings toward the establishment of such a system had already been made in the time of the Consulate and have already been alluded to; they were now completed by the institution of the "University." A special circumstance added its weight to the furtherance of this project. 'In 1804 the great diocesan semi- naries had been founded in conformity with the stipulations of the Concordat. Only a short time afterwards the clergy had associated with them the so-called "little seminaries," which, like the state "lyc^es," or colleges, were preparatory to the higher professional studies. These ecclesiastical schools, like the secondary schools of the state, were open to all and were the better attended as the instructors made the most of their opportunities for finding fault with the methods of teaching as well as tlie morals of the imperial institutions. But criticism wa.s not to be tolerated by Napoleon, who now proposed to have ^T. 38] The Imperial University 407 the entire administrative organization regarded as his personal achievement, and a plan was maturing in his mind for ridding himself with the least possible delay of this competition in the education of the French youth. On May 10th, 1806, he issued a decree that a corporation should be established under the name of the "Imperial University," to which should be given exclusive charge of public instruction and the whole educational system. In the report made by Fourcroy, the Director of the Section of Instruction, occurred this statement: "His Majesty desires a corporation whose teachings are not exposed to every fever of fashion, which shall keep on when the government rests from its labours, and of which the management and the regula- tions shall be so national in character that none will inconsid- erately lay hands upon it to interfere in its workings. If this hope should be realized His Majesty expects to find in this corporation a guarantee against the pernicious theories of universal revolution. His Majesty proposes to carry out in a state containing 40,000,000 inhabitants all that has been en- joyed by Sparta and Athens and what the religious orders have striven with but imperfect success to attain." On March 17th, 1808, this statute, having been elaborated, was promulgated without authorization of the legislature. From this time the university included all branches of pubUc instruction now mon- opolized by the state — all institutions of learning from the primary school up to the faculties of the learned professions.* It was provided with its own budget in the form of an endow- ment of 400,000,000 francs in government stocks, and this was to be separate from the state budget, "so that education might not have to suffer under the temporary distresses of state finances." At the head of the corporation, formed of the entire scholastic profession of France, there stood a Grand Master appointed by the Emperor, and with him a Chancellor and a Treasurer, besides a University Council consisting of thirty members, of which ten were appointed by the Emperor for hfe * To this rule there were excepted only certain higher technical schools, such as the "Ecole polytechnique," which was organized on a niilitary basis, the scientific schools, and the great ecclesiastical seminaries. 4o8 Affairs in France [i807 and the remaining twenty by the Grand Master for a year's time. This Council was to draw up the regulations for the schools, to decide upon text-books and methods of instruction, and to exercise disciplinary power over the members of the University, that is, over the whole body of instructors in France. A part of this number — for instance, the professors at the "lycees" — had to pledge themselves to celibacy. All were free from the performance of military service. The teachers of the secondary schools were trained for their calling in the "Ecole Normale." Those particularly distinguishing themselves there were awarded — aside from promotion — titles of honour by the Grand Master and became titular officers of the University. The sphere of instruction throughout the whole country was divided up into districts called "Academies," each presided over by a Rector and an Academic Council resembling the Grand Master and Council of the University.* The whole system of public in- struction was then henceforth as strictly centralized and ruled with the same spirit of absolutism as the other departments of government. The institution has since that time received high commendation and has been condemned with equal vigour. One thing is certainly true, that young men attending the "lycees" learned more than the sons of the aristocratic families who were taught at home. The one fault of the system lay in the fact that the uniformity of the requirements left all too little scope for originality on the part of the teacher, and, if one of the principal tasks of education consists in the development and mental stimulation of individual talents so that these may at some future time be of the greatest possible service to the general good, there can be no doubt that herein the system was more than a failure, for the exact contrary was the result attained * In establishing the University Napoleon had in mind only the instruction of boys. He would not tolerate the idea of public schools for girls. "I do not think that there is any occasion for considering the method of instruction for girls," was his reply when his attention was called to this deficiency; "they cannot be better brought up than by their mothers; puljlic education is not suitable for th{>in, since they are not called upon to take part in public life." It was evident that Madame de Stael was not to be put out of his mind. ^T. 38] The Catechism of Loyalty 409 and probably intended; for the ultimate purpose of this insti- tution was after all, like the others, only to subserve the Em- peror's own system. But even if the national government had relinquished the direction of education to tiie corporation, and thus relieved itself of the burden, it still retained closely within its grasp the superintendence and control over the same. The decisions of the Grand Master had to be submitted first of all to the judgment of the Council of State, which had power to annul them, and in the departments the schools were visited by the prefects, who reported upon them to the Minister of the Interior, In fact the minister came forward to provide the very first text-book for the University: the catechism which had been brought to completion in 1806 with the concurrence of the Cardinal Legate Caprara, whom Napoleon had repeatedly assisted out of financial straits. In this catechism the political creed of the rising generation in France was thus formulated: "We owe to our Emperor Napoleon I. love, respect, obedience, fidelity, military service, tributes decreed for the defence of the Empire and of his throne; we owe to him also ferv-ent prayers for his safety and for the prosperity of the state, both spiritual and material. We are under obligations to perform all of these duties toward him because God has erouTied him with manifold gifts in war as in peace, establishing him as our sovereign, the instrument of His power, and giving him His own likeness upon earth. To honour and serve our Emperor is to honour and serve God Himself, and this is especially our duty because he it is whom God the Most High hath raised up in troublous times to re-establish public worship in the holy religion of our fathers and to be its protector. He it is who by his profomid and ener- getic w'isdom has brought back and maintained public order, who has defended the state with his powerful arm, and who has become the anointed of the Lord through consecration at the hands of the Pope, the sovereign pontiff of the Church Universal." To the question what was to be thought of those who should fail to perform their obligations toward the Emperor, the cate- chism made answer: "According to St. Paul they would sin against the ordinances of God Himself and draw down upon themselves eternal damnation." 41 o Affairs in France Liso? That was surely no small measure of success to have been attained by the famishing lieutenant of Valence, to see himself revered by the most cultured nation in the world as "the like- ness of God upon earth." And yet this was but a trifle when compared with his inordinate ambition. The bounds of that state had long been to him too restricted, and to walk the earth simply as the image of deity was, after all, not just to his mind. On the day of his coronation as Emperor, in December, 1804, he had said to Decres, the Minister of the Navy, that he had been born too late into the world, in which there was no longer anything great to be accomplished; and when Decres replied that he ought to be satisfied, he rejoined: "My record has been brilliant, I acknowledge, and I have had an excellent career. But how different from ancient times! Take Alexander, for instance; after having conquered Asia he announced himself to the people to be the son of Jupiter, and, with the exception of his mother, Olympias, who was in a position to know, and of Aristotle and a few Athenian pedants, he was believed by the entire Orient. Well, then, take my case! If I were to announce myself to-day to be the son of the Everlasting Father, if I were to declare that I was going to return thanks to Him by virtue of that fact, there isn't a fish-wife who would not jeer at me as I passed! The people are far too much enlightened; there is nothing great left to be done." In short, he was not satisfied. No one realized this more unmistakably than those imme- diately about him. From the Empress down to the meanest lackey the entire court had to suffer from this perpetual dissat- isfaction. Josephine, who well remembered how the young general had at one time regarded the union with herself as a stroke of fortune, had now sunk far beneath his level and trem- bled at the prospect of divorce, in regard to which Napoleon now first began to make intimations. Not that he desired a sepa- ration from the companion in life to whom he had become accustomed; it was only consideration for the inheritance of his crown which brought the idea more than formerly to mind. For Louis's son, the little Napoleon, whom the Emperor had once had thoughts of adopting, and who in gossip was spoken ^T. 38] Changes in Napoleon's Manner 411 of as his OUT! child, had died during the last campaign, while his httle brother was only an infant two years of age and of very delicate constitution.* Moreover, the alhance with Russia had suggested to him the idea of a union vdih the house of the Czars which should be "suitable to his rank"; at least it is claimed that such had been under discussion even in Tilsit. Under such circumstances it was not easy for Josephine to assert her posi- tion. She was all submissiveness and pliant devotion, addressed the Emperor even in the most confidential intercourse only as "Your Majesty," having long ceased to use the familiar "thou" in speaking to him, squandered, as she had been told to do, her 600,000 francs, and even more of pin-money, anxiously avoided every occasion in which she might be in the way of her tyrannical lord, and remained at all times equally gracious, equally amiable, equally insignificant. To the whole court she set an example of anxious foreboding, and her apprehension at her husband's return as a victor was characteristic, "for," said she, "the Em- peror is so prosperous that he \\'ill surely have much fault to find." And indeed the whole court was characterized by uneasi- ness and awe. Since the war of 1805 Napoleon was a changed man in one respect, inasmuch as he now carefully avoided all famiUarity with any one, surrounded himself with great cere- mony, and, if he allowed himself to be misled for a moment into using a tone of confidential and friendly feeling, at once effaced its impression by a few curt words addressed as to an inferior. No one of his brothers was allowed to seat himself in his presence, no one of them might venture to direct a word to him until spoken to, no one of them continued to use "thou " in addressing him. Frequently on reception evenings there would be many more than a hundred persons gathered together, of whom not one dared to utter a word, all awaiting speechless the appear- ance of His Majesty, And in case the Emperor was then in ill-humour on account of the msolent Enghsh papers, which were severe enough in their usage of " General Bonaparte," the entire court was made to feel the consequences. Then he cast * The third son of Queen Hortense, the future Emperor Napoleon III., was in 1807 j'et unborn. 412 Affairs in France [1807 off all semblance of courtesy; he would say, for instance, to a lady after she had stated her name : " O Heavens ! I had been told that you were pretty," or to an old man: ''You have not much longer to live," and other Uke urbanities. The melan- choly dreaminess which had characterized him at the time of the Consulate had thus given place to almost constant morose- ness, and it became more and more difficult to wait upon him. His manner of Ufe was irregular. He would sometimes keep his Council in session about him until far into the night without being himself in the least wearied thereby. And again, as fre- quently occurred, he would rise in the middle of the night in order to work, when he would dictate to his secretaries with such rapidity that his words could be followed only with a sort of short-hand; or else he would remain for hours in the bath, a habit he had acquired at the recommendation of his physician- in-ordinary, Corvisart, who was of opinion that it would tend to quiet his nerves. But in this he could scarcely be said to have been successful; his nervous irritabihty was constantly upon the increase, sometimes taking the form of convulsive weeping. The same man who had felt in perfect health in the midst of the fatigues and cares of the campaign and who did not move so much as an eyelash even at the most critical moments of a battle, could fly into a rage at the most trifling discomfort in his own palace. Many a garment did he tear to pieces in his impatience because it incommoded him even in the slightest possible degree, and it was understood among his attendants that it was necessary to supply state apparel which should be exactly fitting. For this reason he commonly presented rather a slovenly appearance, and, now that he had grown corpulent during the last few years, he made in walk and bearing anything but a majestic impression. But BO much the more splendid became the display of the court about him. Upon his return to Paris he had reproached Fouch^, his Minister of Police, the "Jacobin grown wealthy," as he called him, with not having exercised sufficient surveillance over the aristocratic salons in the Faubourg St. Germain with their conversations and witticisms all savouring of the opposi- I ^T. 38] Court Life 413 tion. Fouch6 at this announced to the high nobility that they could disarm the anger of the potentate only by making ad- vances to him, and, as a result, a large number of men of an- cient lineage, who had until now ranged themselves against the government, actually had themselves presented at court, thus enhancing its brilhancy to a very considerable extent. Besides these additions there now came to Paris also several of the Princes of the Confederation of the Rhine, either to render personal homage to their new lord or to beg of him some new favour. One of the two Grand Dukes of Mecklenburg con- cluded that the surest way of attaining his object lay in paying conspicuous attentions to the Empress. Dalberg also made his appearance to solemnize the marriage of Jerome to the Princess Katharina of Wiirtemberg on August 23d, 1807. He is said to have stood out prominently among the other German sovereigns as the only one with whom an animated conversation could be carried on. Those veterans who had aided Napoleon in winnmg his victories, the marshals, were also for the most part at court; not in uniform, however, but in state dress; not as warriors, but as chamberlains, because Napoleon did not like to be re- minded of hours of more familiar intercourse on the field and of many a sacrifice which had been made for him there. He spoke of them also sometimes in a way which was by no means flattering. " Davout," said he, "is a man upon whom I might bestow honours, but he will never know how to wear them grace- fully"; Neyhad ''an ungrateful and factious disposition"; Bes- sieres, Oudinot, and Victor were, accordmg to him, nothing more than " mediocre." Of them all Lannes alone had contin- ued to address him as " thou," to which manner of speech on his part Napoleon came at last to be reconciled, for he was in- dispensable. Besides this one man hardly Soult himself had the courage to express an opinion differing from his m regard to mihtary matters. Most of the others were under the spell of his powerful personaUty. The brutal ^'andamme admitted upon one occasion that he began to tremble when he came into the presence of "this devil of a man," and that Napoleon could drive him through the eye of a needle. 414 Affairs in France [I807 In the latter part of the summer of 1807 the Court was at Fontainebleau. There were organized theatrical performances by the best actors of the " Comedie Frangaise," concerts by the best ItaUan singers, balls, hunts on horseback, and other like diversions. But there was not much pleasure taken in them. Napoleon was occupied with affairs of business here as everywhere else, and generally out of temper. " I pity you," said Talleyrand to Monsieur de Remusat, the Prefect of the Palace, " for you are expected to amuse the imamusable." The entire court suffered imder it. The formal receptions or "cer- cles, " where no one spoke, and the perpetual tragedies — for comedy was prohibited — were productive of tedium and weari- ness. This fact did not escape the Emperor, who asked Talley- rand what could be the cause of it, to which his illustrious diplo- mat replied: "It is because pleasure is not forthcoming at beat of drum, and you always look as if saying to each of us, 'Come, ladies and gentlemen, forward, march!'" Talley- rand might venture to say more than most men. Napoleon affirmed that he was the only person with whom he could talk. There was one thing, however, which must above all be guarded against : he must not for a moment think himself indispensable, as had seemingly been threatened since the Treaty of Tilsit. For that reason he bestowed upon him after the war the Grand Dignitary office of Vice-Grand Elector with a munificent in- come, but deprived him of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs, his new dignity being incompatible with the old office, which fell to the lot of Champagny, who had been until now Minister of the Interior. Talleyrand was, however, to continue his per- manent adviser, and at Fontainebleau he was indeed to be seen every evening limping into the Emperor's cabinet, whence he would not again appear until after long hours had elapsed. And, in fact, matter enough did the times provide for their discussions. Suddenly, in the midst of the festivities at Fontainebleau, arrived tidings which amazed and terrified the world at large, but which to Napoleon and his plans were of very special sig- ^T. 38] England Seizes the Danish Fleet 415 nificance: England had sent a fleet with an expeditionary corps to surprise and attack Denmark, which was a neutral power; Copenhagen had been bombarded for three days, from the 2d to the 5th of September, 1807, and the Danish fleet there stationed carried off. Such an abrupt and swiftly-executed act on the part of the ever-dilatory British had been anticipated by no one, not even by Napoleon himself. It developed later, to be sure, that soon after the conclusion of the secret Treaty of AlUance at Tilsit the English government was, through an indiscretion, made acquainted with its contents and had gath- ered from it that Denmark was soon to be constrained to take part in the Continental Alliance and, with her fleet, to shut out British vessels from the Baltic. The London ministry had now warded off this stroke by the outrage committed upon Copenhagen. For although the energetic Frederick, Prince Regent of Denmark, governing in place of the dotard Christian VII., now concluded an alliance with France, — on October 30th 1807, — his fleet was already gone, leaving no means of guard- ing the passage through the Sound against the British. This conduct on England's part furnished the solution to one of the two great questions which had been left open at the time of the Tilsit Alliance: there was no longer any possibility of an amicable arrangement between Great Britain and the Continent while under the ascendency of Napoleon. Russia was obUged to acknowledge as hopeless her mission to mediate peace and, in accordance with the terms of the Alliance, to declare war against England. And this she proceeded to do on November 7th, 1807. It was not indeed without mis- givings that the Czar made up his mind to this step, for, as has been stated, traffic with the island realm was a necessity to his empire. The source of Russia's wealth lay in the export of the products of her rich fields and forests, which were disposed of through the agency of the British, who could handle them better and more economically than any one else; on the other hand, the lack of home industries made articles of British manu- facture indispensable to Russian consumers. Those classes of the population most immediately concerned — first of all the 41 6 Affairs in France [1807 landed nobility, then the merchants and the financiers — saw themselves threatened with enormous losses; the amiy, which had previously been itself desirous of peace,was now more than ever dissatisfied at the prospect of having shed its blood for nothing but the ruin of the country ; in short, the opposition to the introduction of the Continental blockade was almost uni- versal and manifested itself here and there with suspicious open- ness. This feeling is supposed to have had much influence later in leading to the rupture with Napoleon. But, for the present at least, Alexander, who was convinced that it would be long before a successful war could be waged against the all- powerful French, maintained his own autocratic will, although he felt httle personal confidence in his great ally.* The essential point was to him, after all, that he saw in this aUiance the means of obtaining possession of the Turkish principalities upon the Danube — Moldavia and Wallachia — as well as of Fin- land, still belonging to Sweden. Hardly more than a few days had passed after his rupture with England before he formally demanded of Savary, the French ambassador at St. Petersbm"g, that these two princi- palities should be united to Russia and that they should pro- ceed to the partition of Turkey, the plan of which had been pro- posed at Tilsit. For French mediation between Russia and Turkey, which constituted one of the stipulations of the Treaty of AUiance and which was to have brought about peace be- tween the two powers, had resulted in nothing. On August 29th, 1807, prehminaries had, it is true, been signed at Slobosia, but the Czar had refused to ratify them since they contained no word of ceding to him the two principaUties. This question was very soon to give rise to discord between the allies, not, to be sure, outspoken and pubhc, but secret. Napoleon was kept exactly informed concerning the current of the opposition in Russia by his envoy Savary, who was replaced at St. Petersburg in December ])y the "Ambassador Extraordi- * In November, 1807, upon beinj^ warned by Scholer, the Prussian ambassador, against reposing too much confidence in Napoleon, he had repHed that in deahng with that man there could be no thought of reliance. iET. 38] The Turkish Question 417 nary " Caulaincourt, and by tSoiilt and Davoiit, who had remained with their corps in Poland and Prassia. He also knew, and that through personal experience, how suddenly the Czar might be persuaded into taking a political course directly contrary to that which he had been pursuing. He was thus obliged to bear constantly in mind the possibility of a change of front on the banks of the Neva. It was, as has been said, his principle of guidance to treat all friends as if they might at any time become his enemies. And how easy it would be for Russia under pre- vailing conditions to change again into a foe! And he was to assist such an ally to greater power! He was actually to pro- cure the principahties on the Danube for the Czar and thus yield to him the most direct influence upon Oriental affairs, in spite of the fact that he so especially desired to control them himself! Of a surety not. He refused peremptorily to pro- ceed to the dismemberment of Turkey; in the first place, as he said, England would surely take the lion's share in appropri- ating Egypt, Cyprus, etc., which would make her position in India mvuhierable and thus put an end to his own vast schemes. For this reason, he beheved it to be indispensable — and there were other reasons which argued in favour of such a decision — to keep his army on the watch along the Russian border-line, and to delay the evacuation of Prussia by the continual exaction of new and inordinate contributions from that state.* And there was still another consideration. As has been observe ed, there now prevailed m Turkey also a feehng of opposition to France; already the Porte had begun to make advances toward England and threatened to estab- lish friendly relations with that power. If that result should be brought about, British commerce, which was to have been * In a convention signed July 12th, 1807, the Prussian negotiator, General Kalkreuth, had allowed the French to impose upon him the stipulation that Prussia should indeed be evacuated according to designated times and stages, but onlj- upon its having paid the war-indemnity in full or upon having furnished sufficient guarantee of its payment But, since this indemnity had by order of Napoleon been arbitrarily set at over 150,000,000 francs, there was little prospect that Frederick William III would ever be able to fulfil that condition. 41 8 Affairs in France [I807 shut out from all Europe, would thus have opened to it a wide access, while to Napoleon, whose thoughts were always bent upon an expedition to India, the sally-port toward the east would be closed. That was not to be tolerated. The Balkan Peninsula must be brought absolutely under his own control. For this it was that he had demanded Corfu, and for this that he now ordered it fortified in all haste and, immediately upon hearing of the Russian declaration of war against England, gave orders to his Minister of the Navy to assemble a fleet with which he might again conquer Malta and Sicily, whilst shutting out the British in the west from any access to the Mediterranean by an attack upon Gibraltar; for this he now requested of the Sultan permission for his troops to pass from Dalmatia through Albania, and for this also he re-enforced the corps in Dalmatia. This was expecting much of Turkey; to ask more would have meant driving her into England's arms. To demand that she should surrender the principalities on the Danube to her he- reditary foe would unquestionably have brought about that result. It may be, as Alexander afterwards averred, that Na- poleon was the first to speak of the Danubian principalities at Tilsit, but, if so, it was of course only for the sake of winning over the Czar to his system of opposition to England. Since, then, this object had been accomphshed by Russia's declara- tion of war against George III., there was no further occasion for heeding his promise. Instead of this the Corsican now made two moves upon the great poUtical chess-board which ab- solutely checkmated Russia's Oriental schemes. In the first place, while making, of course, constant affirma- tions of his friendship to the Czar, he declared himself ready indeed to procure the countries on the Danube for Russia, but only in case that state would authorize his annexation of Prus- sian Silesia; otherwise, in case the Czar did not withdraw his troops from Wallachia, his own should continue to occupy Ger- many. Now Russia could not with any semblance of decency lend her own assistance to the s})oliation of I'russia, whom she had taken under her protection, and accortlingly dechncd, leav- ing her divisions on the Danube, thus enabling Napoleon to jet. 38] Overreaching the Czar 419 refer in Constantinople to his own good offices and to the ma- licious Russians who did not want peace, — by means of which representations he was actually successful in inducing the Turks to keep their ports closed against the English. Then he proceeded to make his second dexterous move against Alexander. Gustavus IV. of Sweden, partly from fear of experiencing the fate of Denmark, and partly out of personal dislike of Napoleon and his system, had adhered to his alliance with England. Napoleon now reminded the Czar of that arti- cle of their agreement presupposing this case, urging Alexander to declare war against his brother-in-law, the King of Sweden, and conquer Finland for himself, saying that he would gladly lend his assistance, and that Bernadotte with his army corps in Holstein was already set apart for that purpose. Although the principalities on the Danube lay nearer the heart of the Czar than Finland, he nevertheless acceded to this proposal, and, while his Minister in St. Petersburg was still deluding the Swedish ambassador with false assurances of safety, the Russian troops suddenly crossed the border into Finland during the last week of February, 1808. Evidently he had counted upon the expedition as being very easy of accompUshment, especially in view of the promised aid from France, and had not reduced his forces upon the Danube. The outcome was, however, quite different from what he had looked for. The Swedes, supported by the English, offered effectual resistance, whereat the Czar began to appreciate the difficulties involved in the enterprise and that his expeditionary army must be re -enforced. Poland could not be stripped of soldiery on account of the French in Prussia, and he thus saw himself compelled to draw his re- enforcements after all from the Danubian principalities, which meant giving up hope of conquest there for the time being. This measure would, it is true, not have been necessar}' if Berna- dotte had really given the promised support to the Russians. But he did nothing of the kind. For it was precisely the pur- pose of Napoleon to entangle Alexander so inextricably in the Finnish undertaking that he would abandon Turkish enter- prise of his own accord. To Caulaincourt the Czar made com- 420 Affairs in France [I8O8 plaint, demanding to know why it was that, althougli France had pledged herself to give efficient support to Russia's efforts against Sweden, Marshal Bernadotte had suddenly ceased to advance. In reply the ambassador could only allege as the reason the difficulties in the way of crossing the Belt to Schonen. But this was, of course, not the true answer. That the Czar might have read in a letter of Napoleon's to Talleyrand, dated April 25th, 1808, in which he said: "You understand well enough that I could not as a matter of fact so lightly turn my soldiers upon Sweden, and that my concerns do not lie in that direction." On the contrary, the French divisions in Poland and Prussia were now concentrated and strong fortifications erected at the strategic point near Modlin where the Bug River flows into the Vistula^a precaution against all contingencies, for dissatisfaction was increasing daily in the land of the ally and there was no knowing what would come of it. Meanwhile, as a decoy to Russia, he instructed Caulaincourt, his ambas- sador at St. Petersburg, not to refuse frankly to discuss the partition of Turkey, but to reserve the solution of the question for a new interview between the two emperors. This attitude which Napoleon had assimied toward Russia must be kept in mind in order rightly to comprehend his con- duct of the same time toward the other states of Europe. As a matter of course it was impossible under existing circum- stances for Prussia and Austria to escape from the sphere of his power, for the incessant occupation of Northern Germany not only had the effect of holding Russia in check, but at the same time threatened and hampered the political affairs of the powers of Middle Europe. Therefore Alexander had hardly more than issued his manifesto against England before the Prussian Court at Memel was compelled to recall its ambassador from London on November 29th. In February, 1808, Napoleon de- clared without the least circiunlocution to the brother of Fred- erick William in Paris that the question of the evacuation of Prussia had its own place in the great combination of universal policy and was not in the least a matter of money, which was equivalent to saying that even upon the fulfilment of all French /Et 38] Pressure on Austria 421 demands the King could not hope to be rid of the French in- vaders. Toward Austria Napoleon proceeded in a manner somewhat less summary. During the course of the last two years that state had completed the reorganization of its army and had maintained it, in spite of financial distress, undiminished in number. A certain consideration was therefore called for in dealing with this power. But it was, after all, nothing more than a matter of form when Napoleon suggested to the Aus- trian court that it should attempt to mediate peace in England, demand the return of the Danish fleet and, in case this were refused, recall its ambassador. It was in reality a command which Austria, hard pressed by a Franco-Russian alliance and threatened by a French army to the north, had no choice but to obey. In consequence, in January, 1 808, Count Starhemberg demanded his passports in London and only in strictest confi- dence informed the government of George III. that, in spite of appearances, Austria remained amicably disposed toward Eng- land. In fact Austria was expected to account herself fortu- nate because in October the French had at last condescended to evacuate Braunau, to atone for which, however, they had proceeded in the regulation of the Italian boundary-line very much to the disadvantage of Austria. In Vienna there was, indeed, talk of overtures which France had made in regard to this matter of a division of Turkey in which Austria should be invited to share. Napoleon had, it is true, admitted the possi- bility of such a partition and had promised to her, as he had to Russia, her portion in the spoil; but the Emperor had aimed only to excite one of these powers against the other, Turkey constituting for the future an excellent apple of discord, so as to make both serve the ends of his own policy. And when one hears of Stadion, the Minister, cherishing the vain hope of ob- taining a fat morsel including Bosnia, Servia, and a slice of Bul- garia besides a strip of country connecting it with Saloniki, and then compares with this Napoleon's promises made at the same time to Russia, one can scarcely restrain a smile at see- ing how the machinations of the Corsican, one after another 42 2 Affairs in France [isos were unfailingly successful and how he never failed in finding dupes. But if Napoleon could thus impose his will upon the Great Powers, how much more disregardful and emphatic his deal- ings with the smaller states which could have no thought of resistance! To begin with Italy, English wares had here found a place of refuge in the Tuscan harbour of Livorno. They arrived there under the American flag, were stored and for- warded from time to time as far as Leipzig. The dowager queen of Etruria, who, imprudently enough, had surrounded herself with persons ill-disposed toward France, declared it to be im- possible for her to close her ports to a neutral flag. Thereupon Napoleon, at the end of August, 1807, ordered General Miolhs with 6000 men to march into Tuscany and confiscate all Eng- lish merchandise in the country, following up this act by an announcement to the queen that she must surrender to France her country, for which she would find compensation on the Ibe- rian Peninsula according to arrangements made with Spain. On May 30th Tuscany, likewise Corsica and Elba, were declared constituent parts of France and apportioned into three de- partments. There now remained in Italy only a single small state which dared to defy Napoleon's system; this was that of the Pope. This bordered on two seas and could not be omitted in case the Continental system of blockade were to be rigidly enforced. The strained relations existing between Pope and Emperor prior to the last war have already been spoken of. During the war the French ambassador Alquier had devoted all his energies to the effort to induce the Holy Father to acknowledge Joseph as King of Naples and to participate in what was termed the "Italian Federation" under the suzerainty of Napoleon, or, in oth(»r words, in an offensive and defensive alliance with Naples and the kingdom of Italy. But he met with no success. The Pope would recognize Joseph only upon condition of a guarantee of his own independence and neutrality, that is, that he should not be called upon to join the league directed against England. Upon this refusal, on July 22d, 1807, Napoleon had -(Et. 38] Pressure on the Pope 423 written from Dresden to Eugene Beauharnais a letter which was to be shown to Pius VII. "The present Pope," wrote Napoleon in truly characteristic style, "is too powerful. Priests are not qualified for governing. Why is it that the Pope will not 'render unto Caesar the things that are Caesar's'? Is he greater here on earth than Jesus Christ? Perad venture the time is not far distant, if my state affairs continue to be interfered with, when I shall cease to recognize the Pope as anything but Bishop of Rome, having the same rank and privileges as the bishops of other states under my sway. I should not be afraid to unite the Galilean, Italian, German, and Polish churches in a council for carrying on my affairs without a Pope." Of more practical significance was a command issued by Talleyrand on the same day to the ambassador at Rome: he was to exact of the Holy Father the admission of twenty-four Frenchmen into the College of Cardinals and his bestowal of full powei-s upon Caprara, his legate in Paris, for the execution of a treaty regulat- ing the questions now at issue. To neither of these demands would the Pope accede. Instead, Baj'anne, who had been none the less appointed by France as Cardinal, was despatched by the Curia to Napoleon to appease him and accord to him, if need be, what had been refused scarcely a year before — coro- nation as Emperor of the West — but on no account the increase in the number of the Cardinals, and the entrance into the Fed- eration. But this was to Napoleon, whose plans in the Medi- terranean have already been set forth, the essential point. "What is most of all important to the Emperor of the French," wrote Champagny to Caprara, "is that the temporal sovereign of Rome should act with France so that, situated in the midst of the great Empire, surrounded by his armies, he should not be foreign to his interests or to his policy. . . . The interests of humanity, the voices of 60,000,000 of men, are calling to him: 'Compel England to live at peace with us, to give us back our ports, our coasts, our ships, our maritime and commercial rela- tions.' If the Pope alone upon the Continent desired to remain attached to these Britons, would it not be the duty of the head of the Empire to unite at once with the Empire that part of his 424 Affairs in France [I807 domains which isolated itself from it by its political attitude and to annul the gift of Charlemagne, which was being used as a weapon against his successor? . . . And yet the Emperor would be contented with uniting to his Empire only the legations of Urbino, of Macerata, and of Ancona, which are indispensable to him in order to unite Upper Italy with Naples." This was his chief requirement, but to this were attached sundry minor de- mands: the suppression of religious orders in Italy, the increase in the number of French Cardinals, and the extension of the Italian Concordat to include Venetia. The threat of annexing the three legations produced in Rome the most painful impression. It had not been forgotten there how Pius had, three years before, made the long and wearisome journey to Paris and there even discredited himself to some extent in the eyes of the Catholic world for the sole object of regaining the previously surrendered territories of Bologna, Ferrara, and Romagna, and now for a second time was he to lose a portion of his territories and precisely that portion yielding the most revenue. The Cardinals — the same who out of re- gard for their financial advantage had before counselled in fa- vour of the coronation journey — now, on the same account, urged the Pope to yield. He at length did so, and declared himself ready to make common cause with France against England and to receive French garrisons into Ancona and Civita Vecchia. But Napoleon must have foreseen this compliance, for he acted accordingly. Without a waiting the decision of the Curia, he gave orders to General Lemarrois toward the end of December, 1807, to march without delay into the three legations in question, while he meanwhile prevailed upon Cardinal Bayanne in Paris to sign a treaty sanctioning all his demands, amongst others also the one requiring that in the future the College of Cardinals should consist of Frenchmen to the extent of one third. His real purpose in this course was to force the Pope from his conciliatory attitude into one of resistance, so as to take from him the whole instead of a part only of the States of the Church. And this ])urpos(^ was accomplished. Pius, deeply wounded at the arbitrary occupation of his eastern provinces, not only JF.T.3H] The Papal States Annexed 425 refused his ratification to the treaty just agreed upon, but would have no further concern in the .federation against England. This was all that Napoleon had been waiting for. He could now with some appearance of truth denounce the Pope to the world as the hindrance in the great work of the estabUshment of peace, reason enough to justify Charlemagne the second in taking back the gift made by the first of that name. Before the end of Jan- uary, 1808, General MiolUs received instructions to occupy Rome, and on February 2d he entered that city. He was to banish from the country all non-Roman prelates, to incorporate the papal battalions into those of France, to dissolve the Holy Father's guard of nobles, and take upon himself the administra- tion of the affairs of the country. All this was carried into completion by April, 1808, the States of the Church being thus converted into a French province. Napoleon was at this time in Bayonne. He had been led thither by a political transaction of far-reaching significance in the world's history. Spain was the country concerned. Its king, Charles lY., had up to this time continued an incapable existence and the queen a shameful one, while the people had suffered, destitute and oppressed, under the rule of the Prince of the Peace, who submitted unresistingly to the hegemony of the neighbouring state. At the command of Napoleon the country had become involved in war with England after having sacrificed its ships, its commerce, and to some extent its colo- nies, in order to preserve its existence, which would otherwise have been imperilled by France, an existence, which had con- tinually to be purchased anew by the payment of high tribute both in men and troops. Not until the time when Napoleon began to make war against Prussia was there any evidence that the court at Madrid might cease to yield its customary submis- sion. At that time the Russian ambassador used all persua- sions to induce Spain to take part in the coalition, while the English threatened to foment revolt in the Spanish colonies in South America. The fate of the Bourbon king of Naples, Ferdi- nand IV., who was a brother of the Spanish king, further added to the fear in which Napoleon was held, and, when it became 426 Affairs in France [I8O8 known that he was going forth to contend against the renowned Prussian army, preparations for war began to be made in Madrid in the hope that he would meet with defeat; a manifesto issued somewhat prematurely spoke in ambiguous terms of strife which had become unavoidable. But this document bore a fatal date — October 14th — that of the battle of Jena. The news of the brilhant victory overthrew the entire project of resistance; the mobilization, which had been represented to the French am- bassador as directed against Portugal, was discontinued and the Prince of the Peace was again overflowing in assurances of his devotion to France. But Napoleon's ambassador had not been in the least misled as to the true meaning and progress of affairs. He reported upon them, and the Emperor read the despatch and the famous manifesto in Berlin just at the moment when he believed him- self to be nearing his goal of universal domiriion and was pre- paring to take his last steps eastward toward attaining it. Eye- witnesses declare that he became pale with excitement. Still he was able to master his feelings. Spain was allowed to have no inkling that he had any knowledge of the change of bearing planned at Madrid, of which he had furthermore received con- firmation particularly through intercepted reports of the Prus- sian ambassador in Madrid. He quietly received the renewed protestations of devotion as if of pure gold, from which he at once proceeded to derive profit. He demanded that a contin- gent of 15,000 men should be sent from the troops now under arms to the mouth of the Elbe to take part in the defence against England, demanded that the Continental blockade should be strictly enforced, the Si)anish fleet united with that of France in Toulon, and imposed uj^on the court of Madrid the burden of the maintenance of 25,000 Prussian prisoners. Now had there been at the head of Spanish affairs a strong and popular government, it might have availed itself of this moment to open its ports to England and declare itself against France. Ensuing years have proved that in this country of Charles IV. there was no lack of forces available for rosistan(;e, and who can say what might have been the effect of such a de- JE^. 38] Demands upon Portugal 427 sertion after the indecisive battle at Eylau? But Spain's gov- ernment was weak and not in the slightest degree popular; Godoy and the guilty queen were absolutely hated and only the Crown Prince rejoiced in the sympathies of the people, and that for the very reason that the queen and the Minister were devising means of cutting him off from the succession to the throne. It was upon these contentions between government and people and amongst the ruling powers themselves that Napoleon based his purpose of bringing Spain more completely under his own dominion. The only question was how this was to be accomplished. Talleyrantl would have been in favour of a marriage between the Spanish Crown Prince and a French Princess, one of the Taschers, for instance, as a means of bring- ing the state into the federal system of the French hegemony. The Emperor, however, had other views. It may be that upon reading Godoy's manifesto his determination was at once made to deprive the Bourbons here also of the throne and give it to some member of his own family. The path was a devious one by which he ultimately reached this goal. It led in the first place by way of Portugal, 111 Tilsit it had been agreed in regard to the court at I^isbon that it should be summoned to make a declaration of war against England and, in event of refusal, be treated as an enemy. In this Spain was now called upon to co-operate. This was mak- ing no small demand, for the Crown Prince John of Portugal^ regent for his mother, who was of unsound mind, was the son- in-law of Charles IV.; but in spite of this fact the Spanish am- bassador in Lisbon associated himself with the representative of France when the latter demanded the closing of the ports of Portugal, the dismissal of the British ambassador, and even the arrest of all Englishmen within the country, with the confisca- tion of their property. In the answer returned by the Portu- guese Minister, who had secretly come to an understanding with England, he agreed to the closing of the ports, though not to the arrest of the foreigners, to whom, moreover, a hint was surreptitiously given to retire from the country at the earliest possible moment. This result was far from satisfactory to 428 Affairs in France [I807 Napoleon, who had been thus overbearing in his demands merely for the sake of provoking opposition, and he at once pro- ceeded to act. On September 30th, 1807, the two ambassadors, French and Spanish, left Lisbon, and on October 18th 20,000 French soldiers under Junot crossed the border, directing their march upon Portugal. On October 27th a secret treaty be- tween France and Spain was signed at Fontainebleau in which the following points were agreed upon: Portugal was to be conquered and divided into three parts, of which the northern- most, lying between the Duero and Minho rivers, should con- stitute the kingdom of North Lusitania, to be given to the Queen of Etruria as compensation for Tuscany; the southern- most, which was formed of the provinces of Alemtejo and Al- garve, was to be Godoy's under the name of the Principality of Algarve, while the middle portion was to remain in the hands of France imtil the establishment of universal peace. The Por- tuguese colonies were to be likewise divided, and the King of Spain was to assume the title of Emperor of America. In the drawing up of this treaty Champagny, the Minister of Foreign Affairs, was purposely left out and Duroc ordered to put his name to the document ; Tallejrrand also had no knowledge of it. The only other person in the secret was Murat, who foresaw here a possibihty of at last gaining a kingdom for himself. No danger but that the treaty would receive ratification in Ma- drid in view of the interest in it of the Prince of the Peace, who had even before the last war sought vainly in Paris to get pro- vision made for himself at the expense of Portugal. On the same day the military part of the enterprise was also regulated in a separate convention: France was to proceed through Spain against Lisbon with 30,000 men, while 16,000 of the Spanish troops should occupy Northern and Southern Portugal. A special article conceded to France the right to assemble at Bay- onne a further force of 40,000 men, who were, however, to in- terfere only in case the British should attempt to land troops in Portugal. In view of these threatening hostilities. Prince John had for a moment hesitated as to whether it were not better after all ;Et. 38] The Attack on Spain 429 to submit absolutely and uncoiulitionaliy to Napoleon, but his decision was anticipated by the "Moniteur" of November 15th, 1807, which read: "The Prince Regent of Portugal loses his throne. The downfall of the House of Braganza furnishes one more proof that ruin is inevitable to whomsoever attaches liim- self to the EngUsh." There now remained to him no alter- native but flight, since his little country could not contend alone against Spain and France. On November 27th the royal family took ship for Brazil to seek a new home beyond the seas. A few days later Junot with a handful of exhausted troops arrived at the city now without a master and without thought of resist- ance ; the Portuguese colours were lowered from the citadel to give place to the tricolour of France. The Treaty of Fontainebleau is historically important, not so much for its political adjustments as for the military arrange- ments therein agreed upon. The Spanish troops were directed toward the west, which is tantamount to saying that a French army would be thus enabled to reach Madrid without encoun- tering serious resistance. And that was, as a matter of fact, the purpose which Napoleon had in mind. Circumstances at the court of Madrid were largely responsible for the fact that he was able to carry it out. For just at this time the internal dis- cord there reached its climax. Ferdinand, the Crown Prince, was conspiring against his mother and Godoy to get hold of the reins of government; the plot was discovered and a manifesto issued by the king proclaiming the high treason of his son. Both parties turned "for counsel" to Napoleon. That impartial adviser, thinking the time propitious for action on his owti part, admonished Charles IV. against delaying the important expedi- tion against Portugal on account of palace squabbles, and gave at the same time secret instructions to the bearer of the letter to acquaint himself carefully in regard to public feeling in Spain and the strength of her fortresses and army. On the same day, November 13th, 1807, General Dupont, who commanded the second French expeditionary corps of 40,000 men, also received orders to advance across the Spanish frontier as far as ^'ittoria, although there was as yet not the slightest indication of a disem- 430 Affairs in France [I8O8 barkation of English troops. vSoon after — early in December — the Emperor betook himself to Upper Italy in order to meet his brother Joseph in Venice and offer to him the Spanish crown, an arrangement already agreed upon in most profound secrecy be- tween the two emperors in Tilsit, so that Joseph now despatched a trusted messenger to Alexander I. to convey to that monarch messages of respect which should secure the Czar's favour to himself in the new capacity in which he was about to appear.* During December and January in the neighbourhood of 30,000 French soldiers marched into Spain and took up positions temporarily near Valladolid and Burgos; Murat was made com- mander-in-chief. No one knew what was their purpose there. The Spanish people assumed that they had come to set the Crown Prince upon the throne and to overthrow the hated rule of Godoy, and welcomed them therefore with rejoicing. And Ferdinand himself was of the same opinion. Charles IV., on the other hand, in an anxious letter begged for enUghtenment. Napoleon's answer was a lie. The troops, said he, were destined to prevent a debarkation of the English and were consequently to march on to Cadiz. Godoy, who saw to the bottom of the scheme, advised flight to the southern provinces, but, when preparations for that course were begun, the people seized the idea that Godoy was trying thus to make impossible the change of system planned by Napoleon, and proceeded to Aranjuez, where the court was staying, and there compelled the king to dismiss his minister and himself to abdicate in favour of his son. This development was thoroughly out of keeping with the plans of the Emperor. It had been his hope that the royal family would, Uke that of Portugal, actually take to flight, which * Upon this point the "M6inoires" of Miot de Melito (II. p. 349 and following), the confidant of Joseph, are a witness scarcely to be disputed He even mentions the name of the officer who was entrusted with the mission to St. Petersburg. Moreover, lAicien, whom Napoleon chanced upon in Mantua, December, 1807, relates that he also among others was offered the kingdom of Spain by his imperial brother, who e.xclaimcd: "Do you not see it, then, falling into the hollow of your hand thanks to the follies of your beloved Bourbons and to the stupidity of your friend the Prince of the Peace?" -Et. 38] The Conference at Bayonne 431 he would then have demonstrated in this case, as he had in the other, to be due to attachment to England. But now on March 23d, 1808, immediately following Murat's entrance into Madrid, the new king, Ferdinand \'1I., also puts in his appearance amidst the joyful acclamations of the people. To a large projjortion of the population it now first began to seem as if the French had really been preparing the way to the throne for the young prince. This was fatal to Napoleon's own plans. He at once set about devising some means of separating the yoimg mon- arch from his people, whom he had not yet recognized as king. For this purpose Savary was sent to Madrid. He was to repre- sent to Ferdinand that the Emperor was himself on the way to Spain, and that it would be a way of ingratiating himself for the young king to go out to meet him and ask his recognition. Ferdinand thereupon actually set out for Burgos and continued on thence to Vittoria, without, however, seeing anything of the Emperor. Instead there was delivered to him here a letter from Napoleon to the effect that before he could sanction the accession to the throne he must satisfy himself in an interview with Ferdi- nand as to whether Charles IV. had really abdicated of his owti free will or only under compulsion, this interview to take place in Bayonne. Among those about the young prince there were many who raised their voices in warning against undertaking the journey thither; the populace of \'ittoria used every effort to prevent his crossing the frontier. But what else was to be done? All about the French were encamped and the invitation was in reality a command. "At Vittoria," said Savary at a later date, "I thought for a moment that my prisoner was going to escape me; but I managed it after all by frightening him." On April 14th, Ferdinand — a prisoner in truth — reached Bay- onne, whither Napoleon had likewise invited the king and queen, his parents, and Godoy. It will surprise no one to learn that the Prince did not find here what he had come to seek. Napoleon not only refused to him his recognition, but demanded of him outright that he should give back the crown to his father, confident that Charles IV. had no further desire to return to a country wiiich 43 2 Affairs in France [I8O8 execrated his rule and where unmistakable affronts awaited him- self and the Prince of the Peace. Ferdinand attempted at first to refuse, but when news penetrated to Bayonne of an insurrec- tion in Madrid which was attributed to his instigation, and when Napoleon threatened to treat him as a rebel, he yielded and returned the crown to Charles IV., who confidingly placed it in the hands of the Emperor. On June 6th, 1808, Napoleon set it upon the head of his brother Joseph.* It was not without the use of guile and of brutal force, to be sure, but Napoleon had nevertheless gained his end. The Pyrenean peninsula had now come indirectly under his sway. It was yet to be seen whether it would so remain. Were that the case, then the band which he had been forging against Eng- land was actually welded, and from the Pillars of Hercules as far as the Vistula the Continent was subject to his more or less per- emptory orders; then the colossus in the East would no longer venture to think of separating from him to pursue his own course. He must have experienced a feehng of high satisfac- tion in contemplating the successes of the year just past, suffi- cient to drive far from him any misgivings which he might have had as to the morality of his proceedings. He could give new scope to his designs. The English, either because of the attack directed against Sweden by Russia, or because of the events in * Joseph had not remained uninterruptedly the person upon whom Napoleon desired to confer the Spanish crown. At one time — after the first abdication of Charles IV. — the Emperor had offered it to his brother Louis in a letter of March 27th, 1808. The reason for this was, on the one hand, a personal resentment against Joseph, who had permitted himself a slight deviation from one of the orders issued by his brother, whereat the Emperor had reprimanded him in harshest terms on March 25th (Du Casse, "Suppl^iment k la correspondance de Napoleon I." p. 100), and on the other hand Napoleon had received notification of the extensive smuggling carried on by the English under the American flag in Holland, artd for that reason was already cherishing the wish to incorporate that country completely with France. (See Napoleon's letter of March 29th, 1808, to his Minister of Finance, Gaudin, in the Ifith volume of his "Corre- spondance.") Louis declined the offer, saying that he was bound by his oath already given to the people of Holland, and shortly afterwards Joseph was again restored to favour. Mt.38] Project for the Invasion of India 433 Portugal, had been brought to withdraw the larger part of their ships from the Mediterranean and the ocean and had directed them toward the north. Napoleon at once resolved to fortify rapidly his already strong position in the great interior basin, to equip three fleets, of which two, making the circuit of Africa and bearing 18,000 soldiers, should set sail for India, while the third should start from Toulon to debark 20,000 men in Egypt. At the same time, as had been agreed upon at Tilsit, an expe- ditionary corps composed of French, Russian, and Austrian troops should penetrate into Turkey, — for it was with this in mind that Napoleon had brought up the question of its partition in Vienna and at St. Petersburg, — march upon Constantinople and thence plunge into Asia, where they were to cross Persia — as they frankly acknowledged, although that country had been an ally of France since 1807 — and continue thence toward the East. The mere tidings that the corps was on the march, as Napoleon said to himself, would provoke an insurrection among the popu- lations of India which had been subjugated by the British; that insurrection would destroy the credit and influence of England, and that country, recognizing its ruin, would be compelled to sign a treaty of peace which would put an end to the tyrannical domination which it exercised upon the seas and would thus cause to disappear the last and greatest obstacle which was pre- venting the extension of his Empire over the entire globe. According to Talleyrand's statement to Metternich, Napoleon wrote on June 30th to Eugene Beauharnais that by October or November he should be in Italy, to direct from there all this vast undertaking.* * Vandal's "Napoleon et Alexandre I*'" has established the fact that early in March, 1808, the project of invading India formed the topic of long discussions between the Czar and Caulaincourt at the same time that the question of the partition of Turkey was being agitated. Public sentiment also was aroused in regard to it. Indeed in Danz's interesting pamphlet, published in Jena in 1808 and bearing the title "The Marcii of the French upon India," this expedition is spoken of as a matter already determined upon: 30,000 Russians and 30,000 Frenchmen, supported by Persia and countenanced by the dissatisfied Nabobs, were to put an end to English rule in India. The general peace so much ^\ished for 434 Affairs in France [iso-s But what if these successes should not prove lasting? What if there came to distiu-b his reckoning a factor which he had overlooked, a force which he was unable to appreciate or to weigh because he was himself wanting in the feelings which gave it birth? If he had but accepted the command of the Army of the West in 1795, he would have come to know in La Vendee from personal observation the heroic courage engendered in a people which had been wounded, deceived, and driven to despera- tion, and he would, perhaps, not have been led into the mistake which he now made of showing his disdain of popular feeling in Spain by practising deception upon it. He would perhaps have followed the counsel of Talleyrand and have attached the popu- lar young king to his family and interests in place of thrusting him from his throne. Ferdinand was of course a worthless char- acter, and Napoleon's purpose to elevate the standing and civi- lization of Spain an intention deserving of the highest praise, but the point upon which everything turned was, after all, that the will of a people whose power was not to be computed was opposing its resistance to his projects. The Emperor was to learn this to his cost, and that within a very short time. In July, 1808, Joseph made his entrance into Madrid. He had ceded the throne of Naples to Murat. Charles IV. with his wife and favourite repaired to Italy. The young prince, Ferdi- nand, remained under surveillance at Valenjay in France. The new king brought with him a new constitution which had been deliberated upon in Bayonne by 150 Spanish notables; he brought also capable ministers and the most excellent intentions to raise the decadent kingdom to new power and new splendour. But he found the country in a state of tumult. There were doubtless in Spain intelligent statesmen who recognized the advantage to their country of a newly regulated system of government and who were ready to contribute their services toward its main- could be attained only through victorious combat with England. It was an idea of gigantic proportions thus to keep occupied in Asia the elements of Europe which were dissat isfied with Napoleon's hegemony, while demon- strating to the nations of Europe that this step was indispensable to the^'"" welfare and happiness. I /Et. 38] The Uprising of the Spanish People 435 tenance, but their prudent judgment was more than offset by the wounded feeling of millions who regarded it as a national disgrace which must be revenged to have been thus taken un- awares and duped by the foreigners. Moreover, religious pride was linked with patriotism among this people which had over- come the unbelieving Moors and the heretical Reformation, and the hatred toward the foreign despot was the more pronounced because he it was who had robbed the Pope of his throne. In short, the nation "refused ratification to the Treaty of Bayonne," as Napoleon himself subsequently expressed it, and sprang to arms. And success crowned the effort. The revolt had begun in Asturias, and before the end of May had spread with furious rapidity. Messengers were despatched to England to ask as- sistance, and found ready sympathy. Ever}'^'here bands were forming, for the most part under leadership of the monks, and in many cities there arose Juntas, that is to say, councils gov- erning in the name of Ferdinand VII., who alone was recognized and spoken of as king. At first, it is true, the French troops were able to make their way throughout the country, but be- fore long they foimd themselves resisted by the "banditti." The population of Saragossa fought heroically against the be- sieging forces and compelled them to withdraw; in Valencia the same occurred; and although Bessieres conquered on July 1-lth, on the open plain near Medina de Rio Seco, his conquest was counterbalanced by the loss in the mountains of Dupont's entire corps of 17,000 men, which was obliged to surrender near Baylen on July 22d. The tidings of this event drew all re- maining Spain into the insurrection, so that even Joseph's Coun- cil of Ministers was affected by it. He himself no longer felt secure in the residential cit}', and before the end of July turned northward, withdrawing the entire French army behind the Ebro. Meanwhile the longed-for support from England had landed in Portugal, where, on August 30th, near Cintra, Junot was brought, although on tenns most honourable, to surrender. And as if tliese disasters were not sufficient, the Spanish soldiers stationed in Fiinen, Langeland, and Jutland, upon hearing of 43^ Affairs in France [I8O8 the great revolution, at once deserted their French commanders and took ship upon EngHsh vessels which would bear them back to their native country. Napoleon, when leaving Bayonne in July, had felt no doubt that the revolt in Spain would soon be subdued, and the news of these events astounded and perturbed him greatly; Dupont's capitulation made him beside himself with rage, while the re- port from Cintra seemed rather to depress and discourage him, for there had taken place that which caused him the most pain : the British had again obtained mastery of Portugal, the cordon was broken. If this damage were to be made good, stronger forces must be brought to bear than had hitherto been em- ployed in Spain, the ''Grand Army" must be partially if not wholly drawai thither from Germany. But this was equivalent to giving up his dominating position in the east by means of which he had for a year been holding in check three of the Great Powers: Russia, Prussia, and Austria. And this was the more unfortunate because just at this moment there were beginnmg to be perceptible smouldering fires of resistance in the two Ger- man states which might but too easily flame out in war if the pressure now held upon them were to be once removed. It was not without solicitude that Vienna had observed events occurring in Italy: the incorporation of Tuscany and the ejection of the Pope from his temporal dominions. Then followed the occurrence at Bayonne, producing a tremendous impression. It was useless then, apparently, to show oneself docile and obedient in the performance of all that seemed good to the all-powerful Emperor — useless to be allied with him, the risk of falling into his toils was not thereby lessened. All ancient dynasties of Europe seemed threatened by a similar fate, and Austria was pre-eminently a dynastic state, since it was in the reigning family that its dissimilar component parts found their chief bond of union. Therefore it was that the danger to dynasties was here especially regarded as a menace to the state, and Austria prepared for war. During May and June, 1808, were organized on a modern plan a reserve and a Landwehr, and the people crowded eagerly into the rapidly Mr. 38] Unrest in Germany 437 formed battalions.* Napoleon made a categorical demand for explanation, and in July threatened war; it was iniiversally supposed that it must follow. But the renouncement of this purpose was for the time being necessitated through the arrival of the disastrous tidings from Spain. Provision for careful observation of Austria was, however, made by the instructions to Davout to move back into Silesia from Poland, while Mor- tier's corps was ordered to remain in Franconia. The corps of Ncy and Victor were summoned back across the Rhine. Prussia was meanwhile in no less a ferment than Austria, though feeling w^as necessarily more suppressed and concealed on account of the presence of the French and their adherents. In the previous year, after the battle of Eylau, a conspiracy was formed under the leadership of former Prussian and Hessian officers to stir up a revolt throughout the territory between the Weser and the Elbe in case the British should land in north- em Germany. Ever since the peace of Tilsit the feeling of bit- terness among the people had but increased under the oppres- sion of the French soldiery. Under the very eyes, as it were, of the foreigners there were held secret meetings for the pro- motion of hatred and of thirst for war; in April, 1808, the "Tugendbund" of Konigsberg was instituted, which, though in itself innocent, was later to lend its name to all secret organiza- tions hostile to France. Besides these the government, with Stein and Scharnhorst in the lead, worked at the regeneration of the state and its army to strengthen both against the ap- proaching contest. All this could not permanently escape * On August 10th, 1808, the French ambassador, Andr^ossy, reported by letter to the home government: "From what takes place before our eyes and from reports arriving from all sides it would appear that Austria has never presented so martial an aspect as now, that the Austrian govern- ment has never before been the cause of an impulse such as it has now communicated to the nobility and to all classes of citizens. The 'Moria- mur' of the Hungarians under Maria Theresa surely did not call forth proportionally as many combatants, nor were they more promptly armed and drilled than the number of men that the call to arms of the govern- ment commissioners and the enrolment have just furnished to the militia." (Archives of Foreign Affairs.) 438 Affairs in France [I8O8 Napoleon, and, even if he had not otherwise had knowledge of it, an intercepted letter from the Minister, Stein, to the Prince of Wittgenstein dated August 15th, 1808, must have revealed it to him, for therein was it plainly said that the national bitter- ness in Gennany was to be encouraged, and if Napoleon should refuse the proposals put fonvard by Prussia the plans of the sprhig of the previous year should be resumed. It scarcely seemed possible that this was the same Prussia which he sup- posed Jiimself to have annihilated in those two battles in Thu~ ringia and whose very existence he had granted only as a sort of favour. And not in Germany only but even in the southeast, where Napoleon had expended his utmost skill in diplomacy, did the results of his efforts appear to be slippmg from his grasp. In Turkey a revolt had nearly broken out, Mustapha IV. had been driven from the throne and his brother Mahmud II. made Sultan on July 28th, 1808. Under his rule France no longer found any sort of spirit of tractability. The ambassador was con- fronted with reproaches in regard to the fickle policy of France, and was impressed with the idea that Turkey was intent upon a separate treaty with Russia rather than upon the friendship of Napoleon. The entire edifice of Napoleonic supremacy over the Conti- nent, so closely approaching its completion, seemed tottering. The Emperor at once recognized the gravity of the situation, but he was no less swift in perceiving the means of relieving it. The only power capable of preserving quiet in Prussia and Austria until Spain could be reduced to order was Russia. The thing to do, then, was to attempt to secure once more the good- will of that country, lliere w^as, indeed, no denying that he had conducted himself toward the Czar in a most equivocal manner, but that impression was not ineffaceable. The evacua- tion of Prussia was already to be regarded as a concession made to Alexander, and Napoleon hastened to represent it as such. A second concession with respect to the Danubian principalities would, he hoped, secure his end. Hitherto he had been putting off the Czar in regard to these coveted territories until the mat- ^T. 39] Alexander Decides for Napoleon 439 ter could be discussed verbally between them. This interview should now take place. Hanlly had Joseph's flight from Madrid been made known in Paris l^efore an envoy, bearing the invita- tion to an interview in Erfurt, was despatched post-haste to St. Petersburg, where he was to call attention to the withdrawal of the troops from Pmssia and to make request of the Czar that he would protest in Vienna against further military prepa- rations. Erfurt had previously been suggested by Alexander as the place of meeting, and he was now urged to name the date for that occasion. Everything depended upon Russia's de- cision, for Austria also had been making approaches to the same power, and England had sent to ascertain the attitude it would assume, while the King of Prussia had intimated in con- fidential letters that he was not disinclhied to make common cause with the Court of \'ienna. It was everywhere recognized that Alexander w^as not really at heart a party to the French alliance, and if he had at this time tendered his aid to the other powers, it is most likely that the result would have been then what came to pass five years later. Ncjthing is known of what took place in the council of the Czar; one fact alone has tran- spired: that at a certain moment Alexander was keenly hn- pressed by a letter from Tolstoi, his ambassador in Paris, and particularly by the following passage: "Austria's destruction should be looked upon as the forerunner and means to our own." But the Czar was not to be prevailed upon by his neighbours. He knew that he was necessary to Napoleon, and that he would therefore be allowed his own way in his Oriental plans — much as they might be opposed to Napoleon's desires. The war against Sweden had meanwhile assumed a more favourable aspect, and Russia was again at liberty to turn her attention toward the South. To desist now once again from hostilities toward his southern neighbours, so as to ally himself with Prussia and Austria in opposing France, would have postponed into the distant future the object so ardently coveted — the possession of the jjrincipalities on the Danube, and possibly also Constanti- nople. Moreover, Alexander was not without vanity, and he was anxious to demonstrate to the opposition in the country 440 Affairs in France [I8O8 by means of a striking success that he had not erred in his choice of the way to Russia's greatness when deciding at Tilsit to at- tach himself to the Emperor of the French. Of course apostasy now would be regarded only as an acknowledgment on his part that his judgment had been at fault. And the longer Napoleon was kept occupied in Spain the better Alexander's hopes of at- taining his goal in the East. Therefore nothing must be allowed to occur which should interrupt Napoleon in his undertaking upon the Iberian Peninsula; Austria and Prussia must be brought to a state of tranquillity, since a war brought about by them would call the French eastward and necessitate the directing of Russian forces toward the west instead of letting them gather in the south the laurels which had come within such easy reach. The interests of Alexander and Napoleon were thus for the time being identical upon this point, that the swords of the powers of Middle Europe should be kept in their scabbards as long as the war in Spain should continue. Hence it was that the Czar zealously dissuaded his friend Frederick William III. from taking part in any hostile act on Austria's part, and urged him to ratify that most oppressive convention which Prince William had signed in Paris on September 8th, 1808, according to which Prussia had still to pay 140,000,000 francs, to deliver to the French the fortresses on the Oder, to maintain the number of the army at a figure below 42,000, and, in case of war between France and Austria, to furnish an auxili- ary corps. In Vienna also he gave warning that quiet must be preserved so that, as he said, the painful necessity might be spared him of arraying his forces against Austria. This done he took his departure for Erfurt. Here, from September 27th, festivity followed upon festivity. It was not known until afterwards that the life of the Corsican Caesar was being threatened by Prussian conspirators. Napo- leon did the honours to his imperial guest with pomp and splen- dour as before at Tilsit. His grenadiers were selected as mili- tary attendants, while his political train was composed of the princes of the Confederation of the Rhhie. The actors from the "Com6die FranQaise" played before "a parterre of kings" ^T. 39] The Conference at Erfurt 441 the masterpieces of French tragedy and upon a certain occasion when Voltaire's "(Edipus" was being performed, as Tahna pronounced the words: "The friendship of a great man Is a true gift of the gods, " the Czar arose and, seizing the hand of Napoleon, clasped it in his own, to the applause of the audience. Yet, as a matter of fact, there existed not the slightest trace of sympathy of feeling between these two men, and everything which would appear as the outward expression of such was simply the result of calculation. Alexander was at heart not in the least degree attached to Napoleon, whose encroachments he regarded as an unmixed evil. "The torrent must be allowed its course," said he one day. But each of them recognized his o\\ti advantage in their appearing to Europe as friendly and united, and acted accordingly. We are not so much in the dark as to their inter- views as is the case with the meeting at Tilsit. We know that Napoleon asked Alexander to unite with him in demanding of Austria the recognition of Joseph as king of Spain, and, by way of enforcing his demand, he was, according to Talleyrand's Memoirs, to post a Russian army corps in the immediate vicinity of the Austrian frontier. On the other hand, it is known that Alexander did not accept the proposal, reserving to himself simply liberty of action in respect to Turkey, and promising co-operation only in case Austria should declare war. Napoleon's secret object in this had been to involve Russia in war with her German neighbours and thus keep her forces employed so that they could not be directed against Turkey. Alexander, for his part, believed — as was whispered by Talleyrand, who had now already begun to side against Napoleon — that in abstaining from threats of any kind to Austria he should hold France in check with the help of Vienna and vice versa, and thus be enabled to pursue his own designs upon the lower Danube without having aught to fear from either. Napoleon's first scheme having thus failed, he besought the Czar to defer bringing about a rupture with the Porte, at least 442 Affairs in France [isoa until after England should have accepted or rejected the pro- posals of peace which they were together about to submit to her. But Alexander had determined upon demanding the two prin- cipalities of Turkey as the condition of peace, and again refused acquiescence, and Napoleon was once more obliged to be con- tent. The final result of the meeting at Erfurt was a new treaty of alliance signed on October 12th, 1808, and which was to remain secret "for ten years at least." The first matter therein decided was that the two powers should unite in presenting to England a new proposal of peace, and that upon the basis of present possession ("Uti possidetis"), a totally gratuitous pro- ceeding, since it was just this existing supremacy of France upon the Continent which England had been contesting ever since 1803. In Articles 8 to 10 Napoleon then acknowledged the ex- tension of the Russian boundary as far as the Danube, and further engaged not to interfere in affairs between the Czar and Sultan, and to take no part therein in case of the outbreak of war be- tween Russia and Turkey unless Austria should molest Russia in her proceedings. There it stood now, legally drawn up and signed — the act providing for that against which he had for so long secretly con- tended : Russia was to enter into possession of the principalities on the Danube. For himself there had been but one thing gained, and for that the interview was scarcely requisite: he could now really proceed to the regulation of affairs in Spain without danger of immediate interruption by threatenings in the East. On the whole it was, however, nothing less than a political defeat which he had undergone. The Czar indeed felt that to make an en- trance into Constantinople was all very fine, but that there were also very real advantages to be derived from a conquest in which there was no obligation to share with others. Later, in 1810, Napoleon in conversation with Metternich expressed regret at "having been thrown out of his course" at Erfurt. Possibly his consequent ill-humour was the occasion of sundry unfeeling acts at this time of whicli history has preserved the record. As, for instance, upon one occasion he invited Prince William of Prussia, who was present as the representative of his brother, to a rabbit- JET.S9] Napoleon and Goethe 443 hunt upon the battlefield of Jeiui; while another da}', in the presence of Alexander, he called upon soldiers who w'cre march- ing through the town to recount their exploits in the war against Russia, and rewarded some of them therefor with the order of the Legion of Honour. Talleyrand characterized such conduct very justly in saying to Montgelas: "We Frenchmen are farther advanced in civilization than our sovereign; he has not passed the stage of civilization in Roman history." But while Napoleon was not always extremely courteous in his bearing toward princes, he distinguished with special favour the great men of Germany whom he saw during his sojourn at Erfurt. On October 2d the author of "Faust" was admitted to audience. Goethe himself has reported in regard to the occasion that Napoleon greeted him with the words: "You are a man!"* and talked with him about "Werthers Leiden," dramatic art, and fate tragedy, and proposed to him the composition of a work in which the death of Ciesar should be represented in a manner more worthy and imposing than had been possible to Voltaire. "The world should be shown," said the Emperor, — and it is not difficult to perceive his object, — "that Caesar would have been a benefaction to it, and that everything would have been very different if he had but been allowed time to execute his magnani- mous projects." A tragedy such as this would, in his opinion, be instructive both to kings and peoples. For what, indeed, did one want of fate in tragedy? Statecraft, according to him, was the real destiny. And just as he had summoned Goethe to think highly of Caesar, or, in other words, of himself, did he endeavour to brhig Wieland to inculcate a better opmion of the Roman emperors than that commonly entertained. It was the same view about Tacitus which he had already repeatedly discussed with Suard, Johannes von Miiller, and others, always with the idea that he might eventually be compared with the successors of Augustus. Christianity was another of the subjects which he brought up in conversation with Wieland, and which he desig- nated as " an unsurpassable system of philosophy, since in recon- *"Vous 6tes un homme." See Diintzer's Life of Goethe, p. 578. note 3.— B. 444 Affairs in France [I8O8 ciling man with himself it at the same time secures public order and tranquillity to the state in the same degree that hope and happiness are assured to the individual." There was evident purpose in Napoleon's conduct in Erfurt and Weimar in mani- festing far greater respect to the princes among poets than to the different local rulers: in the first place he desired to show sympathy of some kind with the German nation, which was constantly drawing farther from him, and next he wished the world to see that, in spite of crown and sceptre, he felt himself more closely allied with men of genius than with those whom birth alone had placed above the ordinary level. CHAPTER XV THE CAMPAIGNS IN SPAIN AND AUSTRIA. MARIE LOUISE Napoleon had obtained in Erfurt the respite of which he stood in need for carrying on his contest against Spain. How long this respite would last was indeed uncertain, and he must therefore be on the alert to crush out the rebellious movement b> the most expeditious and forcible stroke possible and thus get back the lost throne for his brother. And this was necessary not only for the sake of confirming his power, but also for the sake of his prestige. The world must never be allowed to assume that he had made a mistake in robbing the Spaniards of their native-bom king, or indeed that he were capable of a mistake of any kind, for he did not feel sufficiently secure, nor was he high-minded enough, to acknowledge an error without fear of detriment to himself. For this double reason he resolved to cross the Pyrenees hhnself with forces far outnumbering those of Spain, and prove to all Europe that resistance to hhnself was an impossibility. The troops which had undergone defeat in Spain had been for the most part only young, untried soldiers; those whom he now took with him were the unconquered veterans of Uhn and Austerlitz, of Jena and Friedland. It cost no small struggle to these troops simply to pass through their native country after having been absent from it for three years, and Napoleon tried to inspire them with enthusiasm by making speeches to them full of fire and flattering promises, and secretly gave orders to the municipal officers of the cities to honour them upon their march with banquets and carousals, with songs and speeches expressing pride in their past achievements and confi- dence in those to follow, seeking thus to impress the warriors with the idea that the hopes and desires of France were really 445 44^ Campaigns in Spain and Austria [isos centred in the feats of arms Avhich they were about to perform.* And with the troops went also their tried and trusted leaders: Lannes, Soult and Bessieres, Ney and Lofcbvrc, Moncey and Victor, all were detailed to Spain with Berthier as Chief of the General Staff. All together, besides the Guard and the cavalry reserve, there were eight army corps sent to engage in the struggle with the rebellious people; for even Junot, who had been de- feated at Cintra, was again to take part in the conflict with his 20,000 men. An army was thus made up of more than 200,000 combatants under leadership of the greatest of military geniuses, fitted out with every equipment and excellently clothed and fed. All these exertions put forth by Napoleon in order to regain the prestige which he had lost in Spain were in striking contrast * Two of Napoleon's decrees addressed to the Minister of the Interior in September, 1808, are exceedingly characteristic. "I desire," said he in one of them, "that you should direct the prefects of departments along the line of march to be unsparing in attentions to the troops and to use every means to keep up the good spirits animating them and their love of glory. Harangues, couplets, free theatrical exhibitions, banquets — these are what I expect of citizens in honour of soldiers who are returning as victors." A few weeks later he wrote : "The troops have been feasted at Metz, at Nancy, at Rheims. It is my wish that they should be similarly entertained at Paris, at Melun, at Sens, at Saumur, at Tours, at Bourges, and at Bordeaux, which will mean three times for the same troops. You will kindly send me an account of what the cost of this will be per head, according to what you have authorized. Order songs made ready in Paris for distribution in these various cities. These songs are to recount the glory acquired by the army and that which is yet to be won, to extol the freedom of the seas which is to be the result of its victories. These songs are to be sung at the banquets to be given. You will have to order three collections of songs so that the soldier shall not hear the same ones twice over." These orders were carried out to the letter. F^zensac, for instance, mentions in his "Momoires" that "The march of these different corps through France was a triumphant progress. The municipal authorities in all cities vied with one another in showing zeal in their reception. Everywhere were organized military festivities; everywhere banquets were tendered them. Compliments, harangues, soldier songs followed one upon another celebrating the triumphs of the Grand Anny and predicting others to follow." No one realized that all of this had been secretly prearranged by the Emperor and paid for out of his pocket. jet.39] Lack of Preparation in Spain 447 to the preparations made by his opponents, which were pitifully meagre. Instead of following up and turning to the best account their victories at Baylen and elsewhere driving the French completely out of the country and making provision for its defence, the Spaniards had given themselves com- pletely over to an intoxication of joy which made them forget all danger threatening in the future and imagine their task of national liberation already accomplished. Every one over- estimated the amount of forces at disposal, as also the capacity of the generals and the courage of the troops, for whom nothing could have been more pernicious than this over-hasty giving up to the triumphs already won; the va- rious Juntas in their rivalry worked at cross-purposes to one another, and the different generals likewise; the people, hereto- fore accustomed to the most absolute rule and now left sud- denly without a master, sank into helplessness and anarchy. "The French were welcome to enter the country if they pleased; they would be surrounded right and left and taken prisoners all at once" — this was the opinion, not as expressed by subordinates and the lower classes of people, but as the conclusion of a council of war held in September. In fact some of the newspapers even spoke seriously of "wreaking vengeance upon the other side of the Pyrenees." And meanwhile, blinded by this infatuation, the army — which had been ostentatiously estimated at between 300,000 and 400,000 men, while numbering in reality little more than 100,000 — was left without sufficient cavalry, the troops were not drilled for fighting and were without clothing and provisions. Moreover, instead of putting it under com- mand of a general-in-chief, the military guidance was entrusted to a war-committee, which was to direct operations from Aran- juez, where it had established headquarters. Under such management there could result nothing but cruel disappoint- ment, the contest was by far too unequal. Nothing would have been more satisfactoiy for Napoleon than for the Spaniards actually to carry out their plan of marching forth and attempting to surround the French army, "\^^lile still in Erfurt he gave orders to allow the left wing of the adversary, 44^ Campaigns in Spain and Austria [isos consisting of over oO,0()0 men under General Blake, to advance as far as possible toward Biscay and Navarre, so as to fall upon it in the rear with considerable forces which should be thrust in between it and the Spanish centre. But toward the end of October Lefebvre was tempted to offer battle ahead of time, and the enemy was compelled to retreat from Durango to Valmaseda, thus frustrating the plans of the Emperor. Upon arrival of the latter at headquarters in Vittoria, on November 5th, 1808, Le- febvre was sternly reprimanded, but the plan for breaking through the line of the enemy was, after all, not given up. The Spanish centre, consisting of about 25,000 men, was held under command of Castanos between Calahorra and Tudela on the Ebro, and the right wing under Palafox at Saragossa. The advance of the main body of the French army was now directed between Cas- tanos and Blake towards Burgos, while two corps were detailed to follow at the heels of Blake. The conquest of Burgos was brought about after the defeat of an insignificant Spanish re- serve army on November 10th, and at the same time Blake was involved in a battle near Espinosa, which he lost on the 11th. Cut off from his Ihie of retreat, it was ordy by abandoning his entire baggage-train that he was able to save himself from cap- ture by Soult. He directed his flight toward Asturias, where a small Spanish corps under Romana received the fragments remaining of what had been the left wing of the Spanish army. The next task which Napoleon now set himself was to crush Castanos, who had meanwhile joined forces with Palafox. For this purpose he proceeded to send Ney, with his corps some- what re-enforced, from Burgos southeastward to Soria, so as to fall thence upon the rear of the enemy, or cut off his line of retreat, while Tvannes should attack in the front from Navarre. The attack in front took place as arranged and was successful, Lannes defeating the cnemj'^ in the battle of Tudela on Novem- ber 23d. Palafox was obliged to retreat to Saragossa, while Cas- tagnos fled toward the south, where he would unquestionably have been captured by Ney had the latter not been deceived through exaggerated reports as to the strength of the enemy, Mr. 39] The Capture of Madrid 449 which made him hesitate and finally remain in Soria. But at all events the two Spanish amiies had been scattered. There yet remained the British expeditionary corps in Por- tugal, to which Junot had before been compelled to surrender at Cintra, and which was now approaching under John Moore by way of Salamanca, while 10,000 Englishmen were advancing from Corunna. Of this movement Napoleon was as completely in ignorance as was Moore of the defeats of the Spaniards. The Emperor, who had proceeded from Burgos on to Aranda, assumed rather that the English would march through the valley of the Tagus upon Madrid, and therefore bent all his energies upon putting himself in possession of the capital. After giving orders to Moncey to blockaile Saragossa he marched on toward the Sierra de Guadarrama, which encloses and defends the plain to the north of ^Madrid, while, preceding the main army, Lefebvre advanced upon its right to Segovia by way of Valladohd, and Ney upon its left in the direction of Guadalajara. The pass of Somosierra was defended by 12,000 Spaniards, who, provided with artillery, were in a position to make further progress an arduous matter to the French. The declivities and the solitary road here mounting abruptly were covered by sixteen cannon be- hind which were concealed strong detachments of infantry. The first thing, before dawn, on November 30th Napoleon ordered his tirailleurs to climb the heights, a feat successfully accom- plished under cover of fog; the road, although swept by the Spanish artillery, was cleared by the Polish horse-guards, who rode at a gallop into the face of the terrific fire, hewing down the gunners and driving back the enemy's infantry as well. The defenders of the pass fled in all directions without thought of order. The road to Madrid was free of all obstructions. At that capital uncontrollable excitement prevailed at the realization of the contrast between the self-complacent and boast- ful assurances with which the Juntas had until now been delud- ing the nation, and the fact of the French being at the gates of the city. The horrors of despair which this knowledge brought with it were of advantage only to the conqueror, who was thus enabled to appear as the restorer of order, and who, b}' the harsh 450 Campaigns in Spain and Austria isos measures with which he subdued all manifestations of anarchy, was successful in calming no small part of the population and even to some extent in v/inning them to himself. On December 4th the city surrendered to the Emperor, and before the close of the same da}^ he promulgated four decrees calling for a complete revolution of public affairs in Spain: the Inquisition was sup- pressed and its domains declared national property; all feudal rights werei abolished; the provincial tariffs were done away; the monasteries were reduced to one third of their number and, for such monks as desired of their own free will to enter the secular clergy, pensions were provided. Joseph, who followed his brother's victorious army, protested indeed that these were encroachments upon his rights as a ruler and threatened to re- sign, but this privilege was denied him by Napoleon, who de- clared to him, as he did to the inhabitants of Madrid, that he had come as a conqueror, since the act of Rayonne had been nullified by the Spanish rebellion, and his right was that of the victor. In Burgos he had already published a decree of proscription, and those thereby made outlaws had reason to rejoice at suffer- mg no greater hardship than being carried off to France, their property being, of course, confiscated. In this exhibition of sever- ity, as in every act of Napoleon's, there was a distinct purpose, and his aim here was to make the rule of his mild and lenient brother seem desirable. In a proclamation of December 7th he called the attention of the Spaniards to Joseph and his moderate and constitutional government. "It depends only upon your- selves," said he, "to determine whether this constitution shall remain your law. But if all my efforts prove vain and you will not justify the confidence which I repose in you, there will be left to me no alternative but to treat you as conquered provinces and to place my brother upon another throne. I shall then my- self assume the crown of Spain, and I shall find means of making it respected by the refractory, for God has endowed me with both power and will to overcome all obstacles." The desired effect was at once produced. In Madrid citizens, officials, and even the clergy hastened to swear allegiance to Joseph as king, and from the provinces also (at least those into which the French had ^T. 39] Movements of the English 451 already made their way) there came in the oaths which Napo- leon had demanded. It was through religious fervour that the Spanish people had been kindled into opposing the most ener- getic possible resistance, and it was Napoleon's tlesign to make use of that same religious zeal for binding the nation into sub- jection by an oath based upon it. "WTiile affairs were being thus managed in Madrid Moore with his English troops had advanced to Salamanca, where, hearing of the various defeats of the Spanish, he had been for some time awaiting developments, not daring to continue his march farther. It was a considerable time before this came to the knowledge of the Emperor, who had never ceased to suppose that the British would march straight upon the capital. Even as late as Decem- ber 14th he had ordered Victor and Bessieres to Talavera and beyond, while Ney was to leave part of his troops to cope with the remains of Casta iios' corps and return with the other part to ]\Iadrid. It was not until some days later that he learned the true facts of the case from Soult, who was stationed near \'alla- dolid so as to maintain communication between the main army and France. These tactics on. Moore's part seemed at first incom- prehensible, but Napoleon at once recognized how they might be turned to the destruction of the British. Soult, who had shortly before been instructed to march into Galicia, now re- ceived re-enforcements with orders to entice Moore as far as possible toward the east, whilst Napoleon himself would march from Madrid with 40,000 men in a northwesterly direction, so that, after crossing the mountains, he could fall upon the rear of the enemy in 01<1 Castile. The plan was excellent, but was destined, after all, to but partial success. Infonnation had reached Moore of Napoleon's earlier command to Soult to proceed into Galicia, and, acting upon this, he had not continued his advance for the present to- ward Valladolid, but had swerved to the north from his course in order to effect a junction with the forces approaching from Corunna before venturing an attack upon Soult. This movement had the effect of placing a greater distance between himself and the army m pursuit from Madrid. Now Napoleon may very 452 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [isos likely have supposed the march through the Guadarrama Pass and the Old Castilian plains a much simpler and easier matter than it proved to be, for he encountered all sorts of difficulties. In the mountains the troops suffered from snow-storms and sleet. He was obliged to order his horse-guards to dismount and break the way leading their horses, whilst he himself walked in their midst. This occurred on December 22d as they were making their way across the Pass of Espinar. On the following day there came a thaw, turning the rivers into raging torrents, and these had to be forded, since all bridges had been washed away, threat- ening a new danger. All these obstacles combined to' hamper and impede the progress of the troops, so that it was with great difficulty that they finally got as far as Astorga. Moore, having meanwhile discovered the true situation of affairs, had bent his course toward Corunna ; owing to the start which he had of his pursuer, he was able to escape the danger of being ground to atoms between the armies of Soult and Napoleon, and the French had to content themselves with following him up closely, a task which the Emperor turned over to Soult alone, returning himself from Astorga to Benavente and thence to Valladolid. Could he have foreseen that the English upon reaching Corunna would not find the transport fleet ready and would be obliged to draw up in line of battle, that through Soult's dilatoriness they would be afforded time for assuming an advantageous position, and finally for embarkation, he would probably have set himself at the head of the pursuing forces. But all this was not to be fore- seen, and, regarding his own work as ended, after directing Soult to occupy Portugal, he left the country on January 17th and hastened to Paris. He had undertaken the campaign in Spain with a twofold purj)ose; of this but one part had been accomplished: with one or two rapid blows he had conquered the victors of Baylen and restored the halo of his own invincibility. The second was, however a failure: Spain's resistance had not been overcome. Battles had been won and amiies had been beaten, dispersed, driven off, but the country remained unconquered, the people unsubdued. The remains of the vanquished armies might still Mr. 39] Why Napoleon Left Spain 453 reassemble in the south and strengthen themselves for new com- bat; the British might land with their fleet in Portugal or else- where. In the judgment of Jomini, the great war-critic, it would have required a systematic campaign of two years' duration, with the expenditure of from 300 to 400 million francs for the sustenance of the army, to carry through the subjugation of Spain. But we know how much Napoleon was pressed for time and upon how unsteady a basis his supremacy in Europe was resting. For it was one of the consequences of his world-em- bracing policy that it was constantly assigning new problems to him before he had been able to solve that upon which he was already engaged. Down to very recent times the truth of the assertion has never been questioned that on January 2d, 1809, Napoleon received letters in Astorga whose contents gave him cause for serit)us imeasiness and eventually led him to determine upon turning back with the Guard; in these letters there were supposed to have been reports of new and energetic preparations for war in Austria and of secret agreements between his formerly antago- nistic ministers, Talleyrand and Fouche, which prevented the Emperor from losing himself in the mountains of the west. Lan- frey and other historians have characterized this as mere Napole- onic invention and given it as their opinion that, as when facing the English coast in 1805, the Emperor was only in search of a pretext for escaping from the situation in Spain so as to acquire new glory as a warrior by striking another blow at Austria. This view is, however, not to be accepted as correct, for it has been shown from new historical sources, such, for instance, as the "Souvenirs" of Maret and documents of Mettemich's, that there was an intrigue which was by no means insignificant conducted by Talleyrand, Fouche, and others, who declared the Spanish undertaking, and, indeed, all of the world-embracing policy of the Emperor to be prejudicial to France. Mettemich, it must be admitted, exaggerated greatly in seeing in this intrigue a conspiracy already developed, and in a band of malcontents a political party bent upon revolution with whom reckoning must be made. In so representing matters at the court which had 454 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [i809 sent him out he was taking the course best adapted to lead in Vienna to the very mistake which had caused Mack in 1805 to advance as far as the lUer.* But, however this may have been, there was enough in the matter for the news in regard to it to make an impression upon the Emperor, who was by nature in- clined to be mistrustful, and to recall him to France just as a com- munication of the same order had decided him to return after the battle of Marengo in ISOCf But of greater weight than this in determining Napoleon to leave Spain was the consideration of Austria's attitude. While he had been fighting in Spain Austria had zealously pushed for- ward her military preparations and appeared resolved upon war. And for this there was abundant justification. The fact that Napoleon was occupied in Spain was in itself a favouring circumstance. Metternich, who repaired in person to Vienna in order to advise in the light of what he had seen and heard, de- scribed the available forces of the French as scarcely superior in number to those of Austria, and was of the opinion that the Spanish war would keep busy so large a part of them "that Austria's forces, inferior to those of France, as they had been before the Spanish insurrection, would be at least equal to them at the outset." In his memorandum of December 4th, 1808, he estimated that Napoleon had at his disposal for opera- tions in eastern Europe only a little more than 200,000 men, and on the same day Francis' minister, Stadion, reported to him his conviction that the hour had come "for making immediate use of the forces of the Austrian state, whose reconstruction had been so successfully persevered in ever since the beginning of the year. The desperate financial situation furnished another argu- ment in favour of decisive action. For the army could be main- tained at its full complement only until spring, when measures * "We have at last reached an epoch," said the Austrian ambassador in a memorandum dated December 4th, 1808, "where allies seem to be offering within the PVench Empire itself, and these allies are no vile and low-born intriguers; men who might represent the nation call for our support ; that support is to our own interest, our one interest, and like- wise to that of posterity." t See page 203. ^T. 39] The Situation in Prussia 455 of some kind would have to be taken. For weeks already England had been besought for subsidies, but these had been promised only upon the actual breaking out of war. But was there, then, no other help besides the Spanish diversion and England's ma- terial support upon which Austria might rely? True, there was no further counting in Prussia upon the ministry of Stein, who had advocated a German national revolt, for Stein, at the request of Napoleon, had been deposed from office and had come as an outlaw to reside in Austria. But his downfall had, after all, brought about no real change of system at the Konigsberg court. Was it not, indeed, to be regarded as a distinct indication of amity that Count Goltz the Prussian minister, should frankly communicate to the Austrian ambassador early in December the fact of the convention entered into with France on September 8th with the assurance that the king, even if not able to draw out at once from the obligations thus imposed upon him, would nevertheless seize the first propitious occasion to range himself upon the side of Austria? At all events this assurance was allowed great weight in the deliberations in Vienna. They had indeed no means of knowing that the ministers might not always repre- sent exactly the views and purposes of the King. And this was just what happened on the present occasion. Alexander I., on his journey home from Erfurt by way of Konigsberg. had invited Frederick William to visit him in St. Petersburg. The Czar's object was to remove him from his surroundings, where all were eager for war. and induce him to abide by the September conven- tion. In this he succeeded. When the King returned to his own country before the middle of February he would thenceforth hear nothing more of taking any part in warlike operations, and ex- horted Austria to preserve the peace, or at the utmost to limit her action to parrying an attack by Napoleon; he should himself not separate from Russia. Now the course upon which Stadion had fixed was based upon just the point of allowing no time to the foe of ancient political systems to concentrate his forces and prepare for h\irling himself again with suj^erior numbers upon the power on the Danube. His proposal was rather to forestall such a possibility by attacking Napoleon before the Spanish 45^ Campaigns in Spain and Austria [isoo difficulties should have ceased to engross his attention and while his forces were still to a great extent involved in the penin- sula. This announcement of Frederick William's meant more than the destruction of the hopes of Prussia which had been entertained in Vienna. It revealed at the same time that Austria had been equally mistaken in cherishing hopes in regard to Russia. Talleyrand's attitude toward the Czar at Erfurt had been made known through Metternich's communi- cations from Paris, and St. Vincent, the Austrian diplomat, upon his return from the congress, had testified that every- thing had not passed off with perfect smoothness between the two Emperors. Doubts had therefore arisen as to the sincerity of the friendship between Franr:e and Russia in spite of the ostentatious manner in which it was displayed, and the Russians began to hope that the Czar, even if not prepared to adopt an entire change of policy, would at least remain neutral in case of war between France and Austria. But to Prince Schwarzenberg, who had been sent as Austrian ambassador to St. Petersburg, Alexander, hoping to convince Austria with the same arguments which had proved efficacious in deahng with Prussia, flatly announced that he should be obliged to fulfil his engagements to Napoleon, since the Vienna court was unquestion- ably the aggressor and his military support was in that case pledged to France by the terms of the Treaty of Erfurt (March 2d). Now the object of the Czar was simply to procure for himself the widest possible freedom of action in the Orient, and he was in nowise concerned in furthering Napoleon's schemes of dominion over the world; so later, when he recognized that Austria was resolved upon war in spite of all discouragements, he vouchsafed the secret assurance that he would avoid dealing rigorously with her. (April 15th.) But even if the Czar and the King of Prussia were opposed to war with France, were there not among the inhabitants of their countri 's many who felt otiicrwise and who were strong enough to co( rce their governments to take them into considera- tion? Indeec it is a fact of the greatest significance in histor}- iET. 39] Popular Feeling in Germany 457 that at this time neither Alexaiuler nor Frederick WilHam did represent the feeUng and desires of their peoples. For, just as in Austria pubUc opinion had clamoured for war ever since the commission of the crime at Bayonne * so in Germany and Russia enmity toward Napoleon had become a national hatred which was making itself felt more and more plainly. Public sentiment in Prussia was clearly set forth in a letter to the Queen from the Prussian Minister of Foreign Affairs : " If the King delays any longer to fix upon a course compatible with the wishes of the people, who are loud in their demands for war against France, a revolution will be the inevitable result." Even personal ene- mies of Stein's, such as the Minister Beyme, importuned Fred- erick William to separate from Russia and accept the homage of the provinces which had formerly been his on the farther side of the Elbe. Others called his attention to the danger which he was incurring — that Austria, in case she should be victorious in this war of liberation, might get a footing also in northern Ger- many, since Silesia v/as already signifying her desire to return under Austrian rule. Ernst Moritz Arndt, indeed, cried aloud to the world: "Liberty and Austria! shall be our battle-cry; long reign the House of Habsburg ! " A storm of enthusiasm swept over all Germany and made itself felt in Vienna in spite of the dissuasions and warnings of the King of Prussia, who now again had thoughts of abdicating just as he did previous to the battle of Jena. Was it then so serious an error of Stadion's when, acting upon this impression, he took into account the German people rather than its rulers, and finally succeeded in constraining even the cold-hearted Emperor Francis to "hold the knife, so to speak, to the throat of Napoleon"? (End of February, 1809.) Just what Austria hoped to gain by the war is to be seen from the instructions of January 29th given to Count Wallmoden, who was empowered to act as plenipotentiary in the negotiations with England: "to get back to the point of inward strength and * On March 18th, 1809, the French Charg^ d' Affaires wrote to the home Ministry from Vienna: "In 1805 the government alone advocated war, neither the army nor the people desired itj in 1809 it is demanded by government, army, and people." 458 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [I809 consistency at which the country stood after the last treaties previous to the Treaty of Pressburg, . . , but with the understand- ing that the right is reserved to make certain minor arrangements concerning the improvement of our frontier and our position toward Germany when a favourable opportunity shall present itself, particularly as two younger branches of the hereditary dynasty have been deprived of their rightful inheritances in the course of the revolutionary wars and must find, either in Ger- many or Italy, rehabilitation in their inherited territories or compensation therefor." Somewhat farther on it is declared: "It is Austria's desire, if she should be successful in overthrow- ing the tributary system of Napoleon, to see every lawful pro- prietor again in possession of the lands belonging to him before the time of Napoleon's usurpations. This principle is to apply first of all to Spain; then in Italy to the King of Naples, the Pope, and the King of Sardinia; in Germany to the King of Prus- sia, to the Elector of Hesse, to the Duke of Brunswick, and to the King of England as regards Hanover, and, lastly, to the present duchy of Warsaw in favour of Prussia. The court of Vienna extends this principle even to those princes of Germany whom in the approaching war it would be compelled to treat as foes, but whose return into their inherited lands at the close of the war it is ready to guarantee beforehand, although with cer- tain conditions more or less severe according to the conduct observed by them during the course of the war." * To what extent Napoleon was informed as to these intentions on the part of Austria when he so abruptly ceased operations in Spain it would be impossible to say with any degree of accuracy. It has, however, been shown that many a bit of information reached him, generally by way of Munich, concerning the country's preparations, of Austrian agitations to rebellion in * Austria was even prepared "to grant to the King of Sardinia an addition to his former territories sufficient to prevent his being compelled in every war to tal^e slielter under tlie 1 'rench flag and to serve as advance- guard to tlie I<"r(!neh army.'' It was tiierclore at least gross exaggeration when, upon tlie i)asis of this very document, Austria's aim in 1809 was recently described as "the mastery of both Italy and Germany." (Oncken, Das Zeitalter der Revolution, II.) Mr. 39] Napoleon's Preparations 459 Tyrol, of secret agreements between the Tyrolese nobility and the government at Vienna, with various other acts indicative of a renewal of hostilities. During his Spanish campaign he had not for a moment lost sight of Austria, and although he had left only 60,000 men in northern Germany under Davout and 30,000 in the south under Oudinot, he was constantly intent upon the strengthening of these forces, which would have l)Pon by no means competent to resist a sudden attack of the Austrians. He de- manded of the Senate the conscription of 1810, and succeeded in having the number of annual recruits raised from 80,000 to 100,000 men. This last measure being retroactive enabled him to draw 20,000 men additional from those Uable to military service in each of the years from 1806 to 1809. A young army of 160,000 men was thus collected out of which he organized a fifth battalion to every regiment. He further withdrew from Spain two divisions and the Guard, and ordered two other di- visions which were already on the march thither to face about and return to Germany, so that by the middle of April — the time at which he assumed that war would break out — he had at his disposal there 200,000 men exclusive of the army in Italy. It was annoiuiced in Paris that the Spanish affair was at an end. the country subdued. He was firmly resolved upon the new contest and was unsparing of pains in preparation for it. Here again he was concerned in demonstrating the inviolability of his supremacy: henceforward no one need cherish the hope of agitating with impunity against him whilst he was elsewhere occupied. In his eyes any state manifesting the slightest inde- pendence of movement was regarded as rebellious and deserving of punishment. Moreover, to this was added still another con- sideration. While in former wars the army had been self-sustaining and had yielded in addition very substantial financial profits, the Spanish campaign had not only brought into the treasury no war indemnity, but, on the contrary, had occasioned very great expenditure. The financial situation had thereby suffered greatly and absolutely demanded improvement. "He is in need of money," said the Russian envoy Romanzoff to Mettemich in 460 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [i809 regard to Napoleon; "he made no attempt to conceal the fact from me; he wants war with Austria as a means of getting it." In Vienna, on the other hand, Zichy, formerly Minister of Finance and now a member of the ministry, but not in charge of a depart- ment, was Hkewise crying: "War, for the business situation demands it!" So the great aims of world-mastery on the one side contending with world-liberation on the other were inex- tricably bound up with the material necessities of state economy. Strife was inevitable since both parties desired it. But to Napo- leon, to whom it had so often meant much, it was now doubly important to make out Austria as the aggressor, not only in order to be able to demand of Russia the help promised under those circumstances, but also in order to appear again to the French as the one who was against his will constantly being drawn into war by foreign powers. To this intent he had, for instance, cir- culated the last week in February a report that he had sent to Vienna to make proposals of a most acceptable nature in the hope of maintaining peace — a statement true only in appearance. Moreover, he needed time to complete his preparations, for the recruits had been assembled only by the middle of February and needed first to be drilled. It was not until the beginning of March that he gave orders to concentrate forces in southern Germany, and not until the last days of the month did he arrange the strategic arrangement of his forces, which was to be completed by April 15th under supervision of the staff. Hos- tihties would not, he hoped break out before that time or pref- erably until even later, somewhere about the end of April or beginning of May, as he wrote on March 27th to Eugene Beau- harnais. By that time the 200,000 men of the army in Germany ought to be assembled around Ratisbon^ which was to serve as headquarters, and only in case of the Austrians engaging earlier than had been counted upon were they to occupy the line of the Lech with Donauworth as point of support. Should they be suc- cessful in assuming the position at Ratisbon — with Davout at Nuremberg, Mass6na, in command of the forces last sent out, at Augsburg, and Oudinot with the Bavarian troops near Ratisbon — they were prepared against all contingencies. The enemy, whose /Et. 39] Vacillation in Austria 461 main arm}' Napoleon know to bo in Bohemia, mip:ht either make; an incui-sion into Bavaria at Cham and attempt tf) march direct upon Ratisbon, in which case the French divisions rapidly as- sembled would stop him in the valley of the Rep;en, or he might direct his course toward Nuremberg or Bamberg, running the risk of being cut off from Bohemia, or, again, he might de- bouch to the north toward Dresden, when the French would sally into Bohemia and follow him into Germany; but if the Austrians should arrange to outflank the French position on both sides, the French wovild proceed to attack their centre, keeping open a Hne of retreat along the Lech. Everything depended upon the question when the Austrians would open hostilities — for the first step must be left to them to take on account of Russia — and in what direction that step would be taken. In the offices of the Austrian quartermaster-general the new campaign against France had long been under considera- tion. A plan had been elaborated as early as October, 1808, according to which Davout was to be attacked in Saxony and the North German princes and peoples incited to rise in oppo- sition to Napoleon. But then had followed a long series of vacillations due to the fact that immediately about the Emperor there existed all the time two currents of opinion, one, repre- sented by Stadion, advocating the most expeditious possible offensive operations, and the other, represented by Archduke Charles, advocating extensive equipments for defence against the possibiUty of Austria's being finally attacked. This inde- cision continued to the end of the year, and the question was still open when the entire month of January had passed The only certainty reached was that the preparations for war could not be completed before the end of March. It was not until the beginning of February that the Emperor decided upon taking the offensive. And now a new plan of operations was formed according to which one corps, under Archduke Ferdinand, should march toward Warsaw, another division of the army, under Archduke John, should penetrate into Italy and roiLse the Tyrol to insurrection, while a corps under Hiller should 462 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [I809 take up its position on the Inn, but the body of the army, under Archduke Charles, shoukl be concentrated in Bohemia so as to 9perate thence according to the position which the main force of the enemy should adopt. (February 8th.) But by the time that the separate corps finally began to assemble in Bohemia, news came of the advance of the French in Suabia and of Davout's march upon Wiirzburg, that is to say, of the concentration of the hostile army in the valley of the Danube, and fears began to be felt that it might press forward to the right bank of the river, overpower with its vastly superior numbers the solitary corps under Hiller and march direct upon the capital, while the main body of the Austrian army in march- ing from Bohemia to the Danube might encounter difficulties in crossing the river and arrive too late to prevent catastrophe.* Hence it was decided about the middle of March that, instead of proceeding directly against the French with seven of the corps which had been assembled in Bohemia, a detour should be made through Linz enabling them to unite first with Killer's detachment and so assume the offensive in crossing the Inn rather than by way of the Bohemian forest. Two army corps only which were left behind in Bohemia were ordered to take the direct route and march upon Ratisbon with the expectation that they would have rejoined the main forces before the de- cisive battle should take place. The result of this decision was that three weeks were lost in executing marches with extreme deliberation, giving time to the Bavarians to make all their military preparations, including the evacuation of Munich. It was April 9th before the Austrians stood at the Inn ready for crossing, on which day the Archduke Charles sent to Munich his declaration of war. A few days before the Prince had addressed his army in a * The Austrian Colonel Stutterheim claims to have learned from "those who were well informed" that these were the reasons which in- fluenced the decision, but the whole matter is at present still wrapped in darkness. The usually accepted idea is that differences in regard to the plan of operations arose between General Mayer on the one hand and Archduke Charles and his second, General Griiime, on the other. But this view lacks confirmation. Mt.S9] The Meaning of the Contest 463 military order charging them with the mission of hherating the Continent. "Tiie hberty of Europe has taken refuge under your banners," said he; "your victories will loose its fetters, and your German brothers, now still arrayed in the ranks of the enemy, await dehverance at your hands." Then, apos- trophizing Germany, he continued: "Austria's sword is not drawn for the sake of her own independence alone, but also in behalf of the liberty and national honour of Germany." By a manifesto issuing from the pen of Gcntz announcement was made to the world that it was not against France that war was being waged, but solely against the system of constant expansion which had been the cause of the prevailing confusion of political relations. The war which had its beginning in April, 1809, was then no war of state against state, no contest to decide the greater or less extent of a pohtical sphere of influence, but a struggle for the independence of the nations of Europe against a power which had long ceased to recog- nize the confines of state boundaries, but which, on the contrary, strove to obliterate them as far as possible and impose upon the different peoples the revolutionary system of centralized equahty. Even before the hostile armies encountered one another in Bavaria war had already sprung into blaze elsewhere. First of all in the Tyrol. A deep-seated hatred against Bavarian rule existed in this country, particularly among the nobility and peasant population, and that government could count its few adherents only in the larger cities among the citizens belong- ing to liberal circles. This feeling of resentment was due to various measures taken by Bavaria toward the tributary coun- try. It had divided it into three districts, had abolished its name, done away with the provincial diet, introduced military conscription, and, more than all, had hn posed ecclesiastical reform. Promises made by Austrian emissaries and the gov- ernment at Vienna served to encourage this animosity, and when no question remained of open war the Tyrolese peasantry arose and, after giving successful battle to the Bavarian troops, compelled them to capitulate and took possession of the capital, 464 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [I8O9 where they were soon joined by the Austrians, whose arrival was hailed with shouts and rejoicing. At the same time the army commanded by Archduke John advancing from Carinthia had defeated the French under Beauhamais at Pordenone, and on April 16th, 1809, had overcome them a second time in the battle of Sacile or Fontana Fredda, driving them back as far as the Piave and Adige. Success had likewise attended the corps of Archduke Ferdinand in his advance into Poland, so that on April 20th he was able to enter Warsaw. The value of these successes was enhanced by the fact that, in spite of the delay to the Austrian advance caused by the changes in their plan of operation. Napoleon was none the less taken by surprise, since he had not expected attack until some weeks later. Much now depended upon whether the main army of Austria would understand taking advantage of the favourable circumstances to effect rapid and decisive operations. Berthier was entrusted with the supreme command of the "German Army" until the Emperor should himself reach the theatre of war. He was, however, by no means competent for the performance of this task. Napoleon had given explicit directions to recall Davout to the Lech and there concentrate the army, that is, whatever the circumstances, to unite the forces before going into action ; but, instead of following instruc- tions, Berthier left Davout stationed at Ratisbon and relied upon bringing Oudinot and Massena up into line with him to the south of the Danube. The only result of this proceeding was that the French army, instead of being concentrated, remained for several days split up into two parts liable to be overpowered one after the other by the Austrian army, which was moving forward as a single solid body. But this favourable oppor- tunity was neglected by the Austrians. Six days were spent, from April 10th to 16th, in getting from the Inn to the Isar, a distance covered by the French a short time afterward in two days' march, and when, on the morning of the 17th, the Arch- duke set out from Landshut northwards toward Ratisbon so as to take the offensive against Davout, that general had al- ready fallen back in spite of Napoleon's orders. The Emperor, Mr. 39] Napoleon Joins the Army 465 however, arrived upon the Danube just in time to rescue his army from its perilous situation. By means of the signal telegraph Napoleon had learned in Paris on the evening of the 12th of the crossing of the Inn by the Austrians and of their declaration of war. He at once started for the scene of action; travelling for four days and nights with but short delays for rest and refreshment, he reached Donauworth on the morning of the 17th. Here he at once perceived the mistake which the Austrians had made in ad- vancing too slowly, and, enraged as he was at the confusion which Berthier's blundering had caused, the position held by the enemy served to reassure and calm him again. "Where is the enemy?" he asked as he left the vehicle in which he had been travelling. "The Archduke crossed the Inn and the Isar," replied Montyon, who often described the scene after- wards, "then swers^ed to the right and is now on the march to natisbon." This report seemed at first incredible to the Emperor, and he had to be again and again assured of its cor- rectness before he would put faith in it. "At these words," said Montyon, "the Emperor seemed to increase in stature, his eyes flashed, and extending his arms toward Ratisbon he ex- claimed, with a joy which was betrayed in look, voice, and gesture: "Then they are mine! That is a lost army! In one month we shall be in Vienna!" The Emperor was mistaken. Three weeks were to suffice for removing all obstacles to his entry into the Austrian capital. The generalship now displayed by Napoleon has been by common consent and at all times classed among the greatest of his achievements. It is needless to describe the campaign in detail. Only its results need to be indicated. The two French armies might even yet have been defeated one at a time by the Austrians, since the distance m a straight line from Landshut to Ratisbon was only seven miles and that from Augsl^urg to Ratisbon sbcteen, and it has been observed with good reason that Napoleon had years before even less time and space at his disposal when in his first Italian 466 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [I809 campaign he defeated separately before Mantua the two Aus- trian armies sent to the reUef of that city. But the Austrians continued their advance always at the same deliberate pace, and furthermore, since uncertainty existed as to whether Da- vout were still in Ratisbon or had moved backward toward the west, their forces were divided so that only one half was directed toward that city, while the other pushed on toward Abensberg in order to attack the Marshal while makhig a flank movement and prevent his junction with the Bavarians.* Meanwhile Napoleon had begun to issue his orders from the hour of his arrival on the 17th: Davout was to fall back from Ratisbon to Ingolstadt, following the right bank of the Danube, and the Bavarians under Lefebvre were to keep in touch with him, while Massena was to advance from the Lech toward the Inn. The latter in particular was directed to use all possible expedition, since Napoleon in the end fixed upon a plan which enabled him not only to unite his own army, by drawing back the left wing and pushing forward the right, but to execute his favourite manoeuvre as well, of threatening the enemy in his line of retreat, which was in this case towards I^andshut. All these movements were duly carried out amidst a series of suc- cessful engagements with both wings of the Austrian columns. It was not long before the concentration of the army had been effected, and by April 20th Napoleon was prepared to take the offensive with his whole line, Davout being on the left in the neighbourhood of the Laber, Massena on the right near Moss- burg, the Emperor at the centre with the Bavarians, and several French divisions across the Abens. Napoleon's sagacity in making this disposition of forces was clearly proved by the out- come, for before the close of the 20th he had already pushed his way between the two halves of the hostile army, throwing back upon Landshut one of them which had pushed forward to the northwest under command of liiller, while the other, commanded by Charles, succeeded on the same day in taking * Radetzky, who himself took part in this campaign, regards this division of forces for the sake of taking Ratisbon as the second great mistake of the Austrians, the first being the march by way of Linz. .t:t 39] Napoleon's Wonderful Strategy 467 Ratisbon. Leaving to some of the lesser forces the task of pursuing Hiller to Neumarkt and beyond, Napoleon himself at once turned against the Archduke. That general had drawn to himself in Ratisbon one of the two corps from Bohemia, which had likewise taken unnecessary time for the march, and, thus re-enforced, he advanced on the 22d toward the south. But at Eckmiihl Vandamme attacked and overcame the corps under Rosenberg constituting the Austrian centre, while Da- vout forced "back its right wing and Lannes threatened to out- flank its left. In spite of extraordinary bravery displayed by the Austrians, such an onset proved irresistible; they were forced to withdraw again into Ratisbon, where on the following day (the 23d) occurred another engagement, the loss of which compelled the Archduke to cross the Danube so as to make his way back to the capital by w-ay of Bohemia. Without making any attempt at pursuit of the Prince, Napoleon now gave orders to advance upon Menna. In later years, when in exile at St. Helena, he repeatedly averred that the greatest and most adroit of military manoeuvres had been that which he had carried out in the battles of Abensberg antl Landshut and finally completed in that of Eckmiiid, the action at the last-named point particularly being in his estima- tion the military feat most worthy of admiration. And indeed when it is taken into consideration that less than a week before he had found a severed army iu which the greatest confusion pre- vailed w^hile confronted by an enemy with concentrated forces, and had wuthin those few days found means to unite his owti army and divide that of his adversary and then severally to defeat those sundered parts, there are few who w^ould deny him the honour to which he thus laid claim. And next to this strategic genius, that which was most truly marvellous in this extraordinary man was his untiring energy of mind which allowed him no sleep, and scarcely even food, until his aim had been accomplished. "Work is my element," said the pris- oner at St. Helena. "I was bom and bred for work. I have known the limitations of my legs, I have known those of my eyes, but I have never been able to discover my limitations for work.'! 468 Campaigns in Spain and Austria |1809 These victories in Bavaria were, moreover, important not only as brilliant military achievements. They constituted the decisive feature of the whole war, which in consequence of them totally lost its original character. Austria had expected to carry on an offensive warfare, and had made its beginnings with this intention; she was now thrown back upon the defensive and was henceforth never able to assume the offensive beyond her own confines. Hardly five days before she had appeared as the foremost combatant of all Europe, and her army was now nothing more than the defender of its own state ! For, as a further conse- quence of the disasters suffered by Charles, the Archdukes John and Ferdinand had been compelled to give up again the ground which they had gained in Italy and Poland. At the Austrian headquarters there prevailed the deepest dejection. From Cham, whither Archduke Charles had withdrawn, he wrote to Emperor Francis : ' 'Another such an encounter and I shall have no army left. I await the negotiations for peace." But in spite of the enormous losses sustained during this campaign of five days' duration — and these were estimated at over 50,000 men — the Austrian Emperor was not yet of opinion that the time had come for yielding. He was at this time still under the influence of Stadion, who was in no wise ready to give up hope of a happy issue. "Everything is not yet lost," the minister writes to his wife, "if only we can manage to infuse courage into the Archduke and his army, which, by the way in which it has been sacrificed, has every reason to feel disheartened." The brother of the Premier, Count Frederick Stadion, was to this intent despatched to headquarters, and as a result the voice of the genera 1-in-chief actually began to take on a more confident tone. He did in- deed write to Napoleon — to which no reply was ever vouch- safed — offering to enter into negotiations, but he nevertheless cherished the hope of being able to effect a junction between Budweis and Linz with the two corps under Hiller, which, falling back before Napoleon, had reached the Inn and were now marching down the Danube, and with their help to conipel the enemy to retreat by threatening him in flank and rear. (Letter jet. 39] The Capture of Vienna 469 from Archduke Charles to Francis II. from Neumarkt, April 28th, 1809.) But these hopes proved illusive. At Linz Hiller was unable to iiold his own against the pursuing French, who far out- numbered him, and after a heroic combat at Ebelsberg (May 4th, 1809) he was obligetl likewise to yield the hne of the Traun. It was not until Crems was reached that he was able to gain the left bank of the Danube, and here he awaited the Archduke, who was advancing by way of Zwettel and Meissau ; about the middle of May the two portions of the army were united upon the eastern slope of the ]5isamberg, opposite Vienna. In conversation with General Bubna of the Austrian army at a later date Napoleon himself designated it as a military error not to have followed up the Archduke into Bohemia; he had, said he, long hesitated at Ratisbon, and had decided in favour of the advance upon Vienna only on account of the general situation in Europe; that is to say, in order to prevent the refractory elements of northern Germany from allying themselves with Austria. On May 13th he made himself master of the city, which did not oppose any very effective resistance, and proceed- ed again, as in 1805, to set up his court in Schcinbrunn. Much had indeed been thus accomplished, but it was yet far from being a complete conquest. For the possession of the enemy's capital did not have full significance until the hostile army posted opposite the city should be likewise vanquished, and if Napoleon wished to continue to act upon the offensive he must risk an engagement, although his forces were diminished by detachments, Lefebvre having been sent with the Bavarians against the Tyrol and Bernadotte left in Linz, while Davout was but now on the march toward Vienna. He selected as his means of approach to the enemy a crossing to the southeast of the city near Kaiser-Ebersdorf. By this way, during the night of May 20th, he ordered his light cavalry-, the corps of Massena and Lannes, and behind them the Guard to pass first to the large island of Lobau and thence, during the next night, to the northern bank of the river, all of which was accomplished without interference from the enemy. It had been the Archduke's original plan to await the onset of the 470 Campaigns in Spain and Austria [I809 French in a position supported by the Bisamberg, for they seemed to be planning to cross at Nussdorf, but upon learning to his surprise of their having crossed the river below Vienna and that they had already taken possession of Aspern and Essling on the morning of the 21st, he determined upon issuing forth and attacking them with his superior forces. Furthermore, in order to make sure of remaining in this numerical superiority, he gave orders to destroy the bridge across the main stream at Ebersdorf by means of boats loaded w^ith stone set floating down the river, thus to prevent the possibility of re-enforcements reaching the enemy. But this undertaking was not hnmediately successful. The French continued to hold the points which they had occupied, and during the course of the night Napoleon was still able to draw over the river enough troops to allow of his proceeding farther on the morning of the 22d. For the tv/o armies were as yet not far from equal in point of numbers, and if the brigades under Davout should come up so that he could count upon them, Napoleon felt that victory for the French was assured; Davout could then relieve Lannes at Essling, and the latter could be entrusted with the task of dashing forward and breaking through the Austrian centre. And in fact hardly had Davout announced his arrival at Ebersdorf on the other side of the river before Lannes on this side received orders to advance. This command had already been, carried out with prodigious energy, and the A-Ustrian line had already been forced to bend and give ground in the middle, so that the Archduke was able to avert catastrophe only with greatest difficult)^, exposing himself personally and bringing into action all reserve forces, when suddenly the great bridge in the rear of the French gave way, the troops under Davout were kept back on the south side of the river, and Lannes, unsupported by troops from Essling, was forced to retreat. But now the Austrians on their side with unfaltering courage again advanced to the attack; Napoleon was once more forced to assume the defensive, and the battle took on the same character which it had borne on the j)revi()us day. A muuber of critical moments were yet to be passed tiu-ough in which the Archduke is said to have considered the advisability of retreat, but finall}'' the ^T. 39] Napoleon Repulsed 471 French were compelled to give up Aspem and Esslin<2; and retire to the island of Lobau, a movement protected with